Google
This is a digital copy of a book that was preserved for general ions on library shelves before il was carefully scanned by Google as part of a project
to make the world's books discoverable online.
Il has survived long enough for the copyright to expire and the book to enter the public domain. A public domain book is one that was never subject
to copyright or whose legal copyright term has expired. Whether a book is in the public domain may vary country to country. Public domain books
are our gateways to the past, representing a wealth of history, culture and knowledge that's often diflicult to discover.
Marks, notations and other marginalia present in the original volume will appear in this file - a reminder of this book's long journey from the
publisher to a library and finally to you.
Usage guidelines
Google is proud to partner with libraries to digitize public domain materials and make them widely accessible. Public domain books belong to the
public and we are merely their custodians. Nevertheless, this work is expensive, so in order to keep providing this resource, we have taken steps to
prevent abuse by commercial parlies, including placing technical restrictions on automated querying.
We also ask that you:
+ Make non-commercial use of the plus We designed Google Book Search for use by individuals, and we request that you use these files for
personal, non-commercial purposes.
+ Refrain from automated querying Do not send automated queries of any sort to Google's system: If you are conducting research on machine
translation, optical character recognition or other areas where access to a large amount of text is helpful, please contact us. We encourage the
use of public domain materials for these purposes and may be able to help.
+ Maintain attribution The Google "watermark" you see on each file is essential for informing people about this project and helping them find
additional materials through Google Book Search. Please do not remove it.
+ Keep it legal Whatever your use, remember that you are responsible for ensuring that what you are doing is legal. Do not assume that just
because we believe a b<x>k is in the public domain for users in the United States, that the work is also in the public domain for users in other
countries. Whether a book is still in copyright varies from country to country, and we can't offer guidance on whether any specific use of
any specific book is allowed. Please do not assume that a book's appearance in Google Book Search means il can be used in any manner
anywhere in the world. Copyright infringement liability can be quite severe.
About Google Book Search
Google's mission is to organize the world's information and to make it universally accessible and useful. Google Book Search helps readers
discover the world's hooks while helping authors ami publishers reach new audiences. You can search through I lie lull text of this book on I lie web
at|http : //books . qooqle . com/|
fy'di tjs. '-•■■
HARVARD COLLEGE
LIBRARY
FROM THE BEQUEST OF
CHARLES SUMNER
CLASS OF 1830
SctuUof jTotn Musstuhusctts
FOR BOOKS KHLATINC TO
POLITICS AMD HNB ACTS
J
o
The History
OF THE
Western Highlands
AND
ISLES OF SCOTLAND,
From A.D. 1403 to A.D. 1025,
WITH A
BRIEF INTRODUCTORY SKETCH,
From A.D. 80 to A.D. 1493.
• BY
Donald Gregory,
Joint Secretary to the Society of Antiquaries of Scotland; Secretary to the Iona Club;
Honorary Member of the Oteianic Society ofOlaegow;
Honorary Member of the Society of Antiquaries, Newcaetle-on-Tyne ;
and Member of the Royal Society of Antiquaries of the
North at Copenhagen.
SECOND EDIT/OK.
M
LONDON: HAMILTON, ADAMS, AND CO.
GLASGOW: THOMAS D. MORISON.
1881.
thnvf./x f
/Vi^'1^ u
-£- 2 t-C^C *
u
ft <\
HISTOEY
OF THE
WESTERN HIGHLANDS AND ISLES
or
SCOTLAND.
(
i
\
\
\
)
i
TO
THE RIGHT HONOURABLE GODFREY WILLIAM
LORD MACDONALD,
A BARONET OF NOVA SCOTIA ;
OTHERWISE STYLED,
Ifjacgfronuill itrt'it (gile&n,
OR
Ufacgnnafo jof % $sles:
HEIR-MALE OF JOHN, LAST LORD OF TLIE ISLES;
THIS WORK,
CONTAINING HANT PARTICULARS OF THE niSTORY OF HIS LORDSHIPS
ILLUSTRIOUS ANCESTORS, THE LORDS OF THE ISLES,
IS, WITH PERMISSION,
DEDICATED B?
HIS LORDSHIP'S MOST OBEDIENT SERVANT,
THE AUTHOR.
«I >
H .
f\
4
*
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Page
xREFACZ, ....... 1
INTRODUCTION.
A. D. 80-1493.
Object of the "Work and of the Introduction, . 1
The Caledonii and Mseatae, .... 1
The Ficti and Attacotti, ..... 2
The Dicaledones and Vecturiones, ... 2
The Irish Scots or Dalriads, .... 2
The Strathclyde Britons and Angles, ... 2
The Scottish Conquest under Kenneth Macalpin, . 3
The Dicaledones, or northern Picts, also called Albanich, 3
The Albanich, the earliest inhabitants of the Hebrides
or Western Isles, . • . . 3
The j are partly displaced by the Dalriads, . . 3
First appearance of the Scandinavians in the Hebrides, . 4
The Hebrides conquered by Harald Harfager, King of
Norway, ...... 4
The Vikingr of the Isles, ..... 4
Ketil, King of the Isles, ..... 5
Aulaf, Maccus, Gofra, and Ragnal, Kings of the Isles, . 5
Sigurd and Thorfin, Earls of Orkney, successively con-
quer the Isles, ..... 5
Diarmed MacMaelnambo, Godred MacSitric, Fingal, and
Godred Crovan, successively Kings of the Isles, . 5
Godred Crovan expelled from the Isles by Magnus Bare-
foot, King of Norway, .... 6
Sigurd, son of Magnus Barefoot, made King of the Isles, 6
Lagman, King of the Isles, .... 6
Donald MacTade appointed Begent of the Isles, . 7
He is expelled by the Islanders, .... 7
via
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Olave the Red, (or Olaf Bitling,) King of the Isles,
Ragnhildis, his daughter, is married to Somerled, Lord
of Argyle, .....
Mixture of Norse and Celtic blood in the Isles, .
The Fiongall or Norwegians, and Dabhgall or Danes,
Parentage of Somerled of Argyle,
Different opinions as to the origin of his family, .
Probability that he was of Irish, and not of Norse descent,
Gillibrede of the Cave, ....
Early life of Somerled, ....
His rapid rise and great acquisitions,
He marries a daughter of the King of the Isles, .
Godred the Black, King of the Isles,
His tyranny and oppression,
Revolt of many of the Islanders, who proclaim Dugall
son of Somerled, King of the Isles, .
War between Godred and Somerled,
Which is followed by a treaty and a division of the Isles,
The South Isles (except Man) ceded to the sons of Som-
Renewed hostilities between Godred and Somerled,
Godred flies to Norway, and Man and the North Isles
are seized by Somerled, ....
Wars of Somerled with Malcolm IV., King of Scotland,
Somerled enters the Clyde wrth a large army, and lands
near Renfrew, . . . " .
Defeat and death of Somerled, ....
Man and the North Isles return to Godred,
The Sons of Somerled, .....
Division of Argyle and the South Isles among them,
Quarrels between Reginald and Angus, sons of Somerled,
Angus and his three sons killed by the men of Sky,
Argyle and the South Isles divided between Dugall and
Reginald, the surviving sons of Somerled and Ragn-
hildis, ......
Dugall and Reginald are both called Kings of the Isles,
Reginald, son of Godred, a King of the Isles at the same
time, ....••.
Remarks on the import of the word King, as used by the
Scandinavians of the Isles, ....
7
7
8,9
8,9
10
10
10,11
11
12
12
12
13
13
13
14
14
14
14
15
15
15
16
16,17
17
17
17
17
17
17
17
17,1*
I
TABLE OF CONTENTS. IX
Page
Origin of the family of Be Ergadia or MacBugall, Lords
of Lorn, ...... IS
Origin of the family of Be Insulis or MacBonald, Lords
oflsla, ...... 18
Origin of the family of Be Insulin or MacRuari, Lords of
the North Isles, ..... 18
Representatives of these families in the reign of Alex-
ander III., ...... 18
These families held lands both under tho King of Nor-
way and the King of Scotland, . . • 19
Encroachments of the Scots on the Kingdom of the Isles, 19
Projects of Alexander II. , and his death, . .20
Proceedings of Alexander III. against Angus Macdonald,
Lord of Isla, ...... 20
Expedition of Haco to repress the aggressions of the Scots, 20
He establishes the authority of Norway over all the Hebrides, 20
His invasion of Scotland, his repulse, and death, . 20
Vigorous measures of Alexander III. against the Islanders, 20
Beath of Magnus, the last King of Man and the Isles, . 20
Treaty between Alexander III. and Magnus, King of Norway, 21
The Hebrides or Western Isles ceded to Scotland by Norway , 2 1
Allegiance of the Islanders transferred to the King of Scotland, 21
Position of the descendants of Somerled before and after
the cession of the Isles to Scotland, ... 22
They attend the Scottish Parliament in 1284, as vassals
of Scotland, ...... 23-
At this time, there was no Lord of the whole Isles; the
Lordship, as known in later times, embracing nearly
all the possessions held, independently of each other,
in 1284, by the MacBugalls, MacBonalds, and Mac-
Ruaries, . . . . 23
Forfeiture of the Lord of Lorn, and acquisitions of the Lords
of Isla and the North Isles, in the reign of Robert I., 24
Wise policy of King Robert, .... 25
Forfeiture of the Lord of the North Isles, . . 25
Beath of King Robert, .... 20
And of Angus Oig, Lord of Isla, .... 26
John of Isla, son of Angus Oig, joins Edward Balliol,
who confers upon him many lands, ... 26
Return of David II. from France, ... 26
X TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Page
When the Lord of Isla is forfeited, ... 26
He is pardoned and restored, .... 27
And the Lord of the North Isles is likewise restored to
his estates, ...... 27
Origin of the Macians of Ardnamurchan, . 26, 27
Ranald MacRuari of the North Isles is assassinated by
the Earl of Ross, ..... 27
His sister, Amie, wife of John of Isla, becomes his heir, 27
John of Isla, thus acquiring the North Isles, in addition
to his former possessions, assumes the style of Lord
of the Isles, ..... 27
The heiress of the MacDugalls carries Lorn Proper (to which
her father had been restored) to the family of Stewart, 28
Intrigues of the Court of England with the Lord of the
Isles, ....... 28
Turbulence and disaffection of the Lord of the Isles, 28
He is again reconciled to David II., ... 28
Marriages and issue of John, first Lord of the Isles, 29
His eldest son, by his second wife, (Margaret,) daughter
of King Robert II.. becomes his heir, to the exclu-
sion of the sons of the first marriage, . . 29, 30
State of the Isles at the death of the first Lord, . . 30
Donald, second Lord of the Isles, succeeds, . . 30
He marries Mary Leplie, afterwards Countess of Ross,
in whose right he was properly first Earl of Ross of
his family, . . . . . . 31, 32
His disputes with the Regent Albany — The Battle of
Harlaw, ...... 31
He is acknowledged as Lord of the Isles by all the Island-
ers, and even by his brothers of the half-blood, . 31
Disputes between Godfrey and Ranald, the surviving sons
of the first marriage of John first Lord of the Isles, 31
Origin of the Clan Ian Yor of Isla and Kintyre, and of
the Macdonalds of Keppoch, ... 32
Intrigues of the Islanders with England, . 32
Death and issue of Donald, Lord of the Isles, . . 33
Alexander, third Lord of the Isles and second Earl of
Ross, ...... 33
Is at first in great favour with King James I., 33
But soon rebels, ...... 34
TABLE OF CONTENTS. xi
Page
Causes of his rebellion — Feud between the Clanranald
and Siol Gorrie, ..... 34
Harder of John Mor of Isla, . . 35
The King holds a Parliament at Inverness, . 35
Where the Lord of the Isles, and many other chiefs, are
seized, ...... 35
Some of whom are executed, and others imprisoned, . 35, 36
Liberation of the Lord of the Isles, 36
He (after becoming Earl of Ross) assembles his vassals
and burns the town of Inverness, ... 36
The rebellion suppressed by the activity of the King, . 37
Surrender, and humiliating submission of the Earl of Ross, 37
He is imprisoned in Tantallon Castle, ... 37
The Royal forces in Lochaber are routed by Donald
Balloch of Isla, . . . . .37,38
And the Earl of Caithness is killed, ... 38
The King marches to Dunstaffhagc, and the rebels
disperse, ...... 38
But many of them are seized and executed, . . 38
A head, said to be that of Donald Balloch, sent from
Ireland to the King, ' . . . .38
This, however, is only a stratagem, by which Donald
Balloch escapes the pursuit of his enemies, . . 39
Forfeiture of Alexander, Lord of Lochaber, paternal
uncle of the Karl of Ross, .... 39
The Earl of Ross pardoned and liberated, . . 39
He is appointed Justiciar of Scotland, north of the Forth,
in the reign of James II., .... 39
He punishes the Clan Chameron for their former deser-
tion of him, ...... 40
The Clan Chattan contrive to escape his vengeance, . 40
He enters into a treasonable league with the Earls of
Douglas and Crawford, .... 40
Death and issue of the Earl of Ross, . . . 40, 41
John, fourth and last Lord of the Isles, and third Earl
of Ross, succeeds, . . . . .41
His brothers, Celestine Lord of Lochalsh, and Hugh
Lord of Sleat, ..... 41
Power and ambitious projects of William, Earl of
Douglas, . . . 41, 42
Xll TABLE OF CONTJENTS.
Page
Renewed league between the Earls of Douglas, Ross, and
Crawford, ...... 42
The King marches against the Douglases in the absence
of the Earl, who had gone to Rome, . . 42
The Earl of Ross rebels, and seizes the royal castles of
Inverness, Urquhart, and Ruthven in Badenoch, . 43
The Earl of Douglas returns from Rome, and is assassi-
nated by the King, ..... 43
The Douglases rise in arms, but are defeated by the
Royal troops, ..... 44
James, Earl of Douglas, retires to the Isles, . . 44
He is well received by Ross, who sends an expedition
under Donald Balloch to ravage Ayrshire, Arran,
and Bute, ...... 44
Excesses of the Islanders, .... 45
Flight of Douglas to England, and submission of
Ross, ...... 45
Ross is appointed one of the Wardens of the Marches, . 45
He is present at the siege of Roxburgh and at the death
of James IL, . .... 46
He and his vassals attend the first Parliament of
James III., ...... 46
He is induced by the Douglases to intrigue with the
King of JEngland, ... 46
Remarkable treaty between Edward IV. and the Earl
of Ross, . . . . . . 47, 48
The Earl of Ross rebels, and assumes regal powers, . 48
His forces are placed under the command of his bastard
son, Angus, and of Donald Balloch, . . 48
He is summoned before Parliament for treason, . . 49
But the rebellion is suppressed without the government
proceeding to extremities, .... 49
The treaty with England is at length discovered, . 49
And Ross is again summoned on a charge of treason, . 49
Sentence of forfeiture is pronounced against him, . 50
The Earls of Crawford and Athole sent against Rosa, . 50
Who sues for pardon through the medium of Huntly, . 50
He is pardoned and restored to his forfeited estates, . 50
But immediately resigns to the King the Earldom of
Ross and the lands of Kintyre and Knapdale, . 50
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XHI
Page
And is created a Baron Banrent and Lord of Parliament,
by the title of Lord of the Isles, ... 50
The Earldom of Boss inalienably annexed to the Crown, 50
The two bastard sons of the Lord of the Isles are made
heirs to the Lordship, . . . .51
Turbulent conduct of Angus, the elder of these, . . 51
The Islanders divided into two factions, one supporting
the Lord of the Isles, the other his son, . . . 51
Angus of the Isles invades Boss and gains a victory over
the Mackenzies and others at Lagebread, . . 52
The Earls of Argyle and A thole endeavour to reconcile
him with his father, but without effect, . . 52
Battle of the Bloody Bay, in which Angus gains a naval
victory over his father's adherents, ... 52
Donald Dubh, the infant son of Angus, seized by the
Earl of Athole and imprisoned, . . 53
Angus of the Isles invades and ravages Athole, and carries
off the Earl and Countess of Athole as prisoners, . 53
In his return to the Isles, he meets with a storm, and,
under the influence of superstition, he liberates his
prisoners and performs a humiliating penance, . 54
He is assassinated at Inverness, .... 54
Remarks on the chronology of the preceding events, 55
Alexander of Lochalsh becomes the heir-apparent of his
uncle, the Lord of the Isles, .... 55
He invades the Earldom of Boss, . . .55, 56
And ravages the lands of Cromarty, ... 56
But is routed by the Mackenzies at Blairnepark, 569 57
And his followers expelled from Boss, ... 57
Excesses of the Mackenzies after their victory, . . 57
The Earl of Huntly is sent against them, . . 57
The Lord of the Isles is Anally forfeited, . 58
And afterwards goes through the form of surrendering
his Lordship, ..... 58
He retires to the Monastery of Paisley and dies there, . 58
Notices of the vassal tribes or clans that followed the
Lords of the Isles, up to A.D. 1493, . . 58, 59
The house of Lochalsh, . . . • . . 59
The house of Sleat, or Clan Huistein, ... 60
The house of Isla and Kintyre, or Clan Ian Var, . 61
)
XIV
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
The Clan Ranaldbane of Largie, .
The house of Keppocb, or Clan Ranald of Lochaber,
The Siol Gome (of Uist), .
The Clan Ranald of Moydert, Morar, Knoydert, and
Glengarry, ....
The Clan Ian Abracli of Glenco, ;
The Clan Ian of Ardnamurchan, .
The Clan Allaster of Kintyre,
The Clan Gillean or Macleans, .
OfDowart,
OfLochbuy,
Of Coll, ....
Of Ardgour,
The Clan Leod (comprehending) —
The Siol Torquil or Macleods of Lewis,
The Siol Tormod or Macleods of Harris,
The Clan Chameron,
TheClan Ckattan,
The Clan Neill (comprehending) —
The Macneills of Barra, .
The Macneills of Gigha, .
The Clan Finnon or Mackinnons,
The Clan Guarie or Macquarries of Ulva
The Clan Duffie or Macfies of Colonsay,
The Clan Eachern or MacEacherns of Killelan,
The Mackays of Ugadale in Kintyre,
Notices of families temporarily connected with the Lord-
ship of the Isles, but not vassals at the date of the
forfeiture, 1493, .....
The Mackenzies of Kintaill, ....
Vassals of the Lordship of Lorn —
The Macdougalls of Dunolly,
The Stewarts of Appin, ....
The Earls of Argyle and the Campbells, .
Page
63
63
64
65
66
67
68
68
69
69,70
70,71
71
72-74
72
73,74
74-77
77-79
79,80
79,80
79,80
80
81
81
81
82
82
83
83
83
84,85
CHAPTER I.
AD. I493-ISI3«
Introductory remarks,
86
r
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XV
Page
Moderation of James IY. in regard to the Lordship of
the Isles, ...... 87
He proceeds in person to the West Highlands, . 87
Several of the vassals of the Isles make their submission, 87
He confers knighthood on Alexander of Lochalsh, and
on John of Isla, ..... 88
His promise to Alexander of Lochalsh, regarding the
free tenants of the Isles, .... 88
He again visits the Isles, and garrisons the castle of Tar-
bert, . . . • . . . 88, 89
He makes a third visit to the Isles, and garrisons Duna-
verty in Kintyre, . ... .89
Discontent of Sir John of Isla, .... 89
Who storms Dunaverty and hangs th* Governor, . 89
Sir John and four of his sons are apprehended by Macian
of Ardnamurchan, and afterwards executed in Edin-
burgh, ...... 90
The King visits the Isles a fourth time, and holds his
court at Mingarry in Ardnamurchan, 90
More of the vassals of the Isles make their submission, . 90, 91
Mackenzie of Kintaill, and Farquhar Mackintosh, eldest
son of the captain of the Clanchattan, are imprisoned , 9 1
Important act of Privy Council in reference to the Isles, 91
Reconciliation of five chiefs of rank in tho West High-
lands and Isles, . . . .92
Insurrection and defeat of Sir Alexander of Lochalsh, . 92
He is assassinated by Macian in the Isle of Oransay, 93
Mackenzie of Kintaill and Farquhar Mackintosh escape
from Edinburgh Castle, . . . .93
Mackenzie is killed at the Tor wood, and Mackintosh
again made prisoner, . . . .93
James IV. again visits the Isles, and holds his court in
Kintyre, ...... 93
He receives the homage of some of the Islanders, . 93
And suppresses the feuds of others, ... 94
Sudden change in the King's policy, ... 94
He revokes all the charters granted by him of lands in
the Isles, since 1493, .... 94
Commission to the Earl of Argyle to let the most part of
the Lordship of the Isles on lease, ... 94
xvi TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Ptice
Various grants to Argyle, Lord Gordon, Stewart of
Appin, and Macian of Ardnamurchan, . . 94, 95
Fend between the Macleans and Camerons, . 95
Legal proceedings against many of the old vassals of the
Isles, ...... 95
Discontent of the Islanders, . . . .95
They organize an insurrection in support of the claims of
Donald Dubh, son of Angus the bastard of the Isles, 96
Measures pursued by the King at this juncture, . 96
Macleod of Lewis is charged to deliver up Donald Dubh, 97
And is forfeited for refusing to obey, ... 97
Commission to Huntly and others for letting forfeited
lands on lease, . . . .97
Efforts of the King to break up the confederacy of the
Islanders, ...... 97
In which he is unsuccessful, .... 97
The Islanders invade and ravage Badenoch, . . 98
Preparations for suppressing this rebellion, . 98, 99
The rebels increase in numbers, .... 99
New distribution of the Highlands and Isles with refer-
ence to the administration of justice, . . 39, 100
Slow progress made by the government in reducing the
rebels, ..... 100,101
Submission of Maclean of Dowart and others of the rebel
chiefs, . . . . . . 101
Macleod of Lewis and others still hold out, . . 102
The rebellion is at length suppressed, . . .102
Donald Dubh is again imprisoned, . 102, 103
Consequences of the late rebellion, . . . 103
The King endeavours to promote a knowledge of the law
of Scotland in the Isles, .... 104
Great increase of power to the Earl of Huntly, . . 105
Gradual improvement of the Isles under James IV., . 106
Condition of the various tribes in the end of his reign, . 106
The house of Lochalsh, .... 106
The Clan Huistein,
The Clan Ian Vor,
The Macdonalds of Keppoch,
The Clan Ranald of Moydert,
The Clan Ian of Ardnamurchan,
107
108
108. 109
109. 110
110
r
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
The Clan Ian of Glenco, .
The Macleans and Clan Chameron,
The Macleods of Lewis, .
The Mackenzies and Macleods of Rasay,
Popularity of James IV. with the Highlanders,
Battle of Flodden, and death of James IV.,
Curious anecdote connected with the battle of Flodden, 112, 113
xvn
Pago
110
110,111
111
111
112
112
CHAPTER II.
A.D. 1513-1542.
Confusion in Scotland after the death of James IV.; 114
Insurrection of Sir Donald of Lochalsh, . . . 114
Who is supported by Maclean of Dowart and Macleod of
Dunvegan, ...... 114,115
The Earl of Argyle sent against the insurgents, . 115
Farther measures of the Privy Council against them, . 115,116
Macian of Ardnamurchan supports the government, . 116
Strength of the insurgents, . . . .116
Some of them submit, and their example is followed by
Lochalsh, ...... 116,117
Lochalsh projects a new insurrection, . . 117
Apparently owing to the intrigues of English agents, . 117,118
He expels Macian from Ardnamurchan, and seizes the
Castle of Mingarry, . . .118
His violence disgusts his followers, who desert him, . 118,119
Offers of Argyle, of the Macleans of Dowart and Lochbuy,
and of Macleod of Harris, to the Privy Council, 119-122
The Earl of Huutly and the Clanchattan, . 123
Two brothers of Sir Donald of Lochalsh are executed, . 123
Maclean of Dowart takes the oath of allegiance, . . 1 23
Feud between Lochalsh and Ardnamurchan, . . 124
In which the latter and two of his sons are killed, . 125
Argyle advises the forfeiture of Lochalsh, . . 125
And takes a protest regarding it, . . .125
«
Death of Sir Donald of Lochalsh, being the last male of
that house, . . . . .126
Comparative tranquillity of the Isles, . .126
XV111
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
P»ge
Increase of power of Argyle and the Campbells, . .126,127
Renewed disorders in the Isles, and their causes, . 127
Dowart exposes his wife on a rock, . . .128
And is assassinated by Campbell of Calder, . . 128
James Y. escapes from the hands of Angus and the
Douglases, . . . . . .129
Change of the policy of government regarding the Isles, 129
Feud between the Macdonalds of Sleat and Macleods of
Harris, ..... .130,131
Disturbances in the South Isles, . . . .132
Argyle employed against the South Islanders, . . 132
A herald sent by the Privy Council to treat with Alex-
ander of Isla, . . . . .133
The herald makes an unfavourable report, . . 133
Further preparations for an expedition to the Isles, . 133,134
Nine of the principal Islanders treat with the King, . 133,134
Who resolves to proceed in person to the Isles, . . 135
And makes great preparations with that object, . < . 135
Alexander of Islaoomes to Court, and is received into favour, 1 36
Maclean of Dowart likewise submits, . . 136
The King gives up his intention of going to the Isles, . 136
Offers of Argyle and Murray against the Islanders, . 136,137
These Earls proceed to the Isles, . . . .137
General submission of the Islanders, . . . 137,138
Terms given to Alexander of Isla, . . .138
The Privy Council begin to distrust Argyle, . . 139
Insidious conduct of that nobleman, . . .140
Accusations preferred by Alexander of Isla against him,
and offers of service by that chief, , . .140,141
Argyle recalled and committed to prison, . . 142
Alexander of Isla is sent to Ireland, at the head of a
body oflnen, by James V., . . . . 142
The King attends to the education of the son of that chief, 143
The West Highlands and Isles continue quiet for several
years, ...... 143
Present position of the Clanhuisteia of Sleat, . . 144
Insurrection of Donald Gorme of Sleat, . . . 145
He ravages Trouterness, and invades Kintaill, . . 145
And is killed before the Castle of Elandonan, . . 145,146
James Y. proceeds to the Isles with a large naval force, . 146,147
/
i
TABLE OF CONTENTS. xix
And makes all the great chiefs prisoners, . 147,148
Some of whom are liberated, on giving hostages for their
good conduct, ..... 148
Whilst others are detained in confinement, 148
Royal garrisons placed in the Isles, . . .149
The Lordship of the Isles inalienably annexed to the Crown, 1 40
Death of James V., and consequences of that event, 150
CHAPTER III.
AD. 1 542- 1 560.
State of parties in Scotland after the death of Jaroes V., 151,152
Intrigues of Henry VIIL, .... 152
Singular political changes. The Earta of Arran and
Lennox change sides, .... 153
Consistency of the Earls of Huntly and Argyle, . 154
Second escape from prison of Donald Dubh of the Isles, . 154
The captive chiefs and hostages liberated by the English
party, in order to assist Donald Dubh in embarrassing
Argyle and Huntly, . . .155,156
Donald Dubh and the Islanders invade the Earldom of
Argyle, ...... 156
Offers made by the Regent Arran to Donald Dubh, but
rejected, ...... 156,157
James Maodonald of Isla, alone of the Islanders, supports
the Regent, ...... 157
Disturbances in the North. Feud between the Clanranald
and the Frasers, ..... 157
Origin of this feud, .... .157,158
The Clanranald invade the lands of the Frasers andGrants, 159
Huntly, with the Frasers and Grants, marches against
them, and invades Lochaber, . . . 159
The Clanranald and their allies retire on his approach, . 159
Huntly and the Grants return by G lenspean and Badenoch , 1 60
Lord Lovat and the Frasers return by the Great Glen, . 160
They are intercepted by the Clanranald, . . .160
Battle of Kinloch-lochy, in which Lovat and nearly ail
bis followers are slain, .... 161,162
XX
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Pago
163
Huntly again invades Lochaber and -wastes the lands of
the rebels, ......
The Earl of Lennox, with an English armament, enters
the Clyde, and commits great devastations, 164-167
He intrigues with the Islanders, . . . .167
Failing in the main object of his expedition (the capture
of Dumbarton Castle), he returns to England,
Battle of Ancrum Muir, ....
By the influence of Lennox, the Islanders enter into a
treasonable correspondence with England, .
Proclamation of the Scottish government against Donald
Dubh and his followers,
The Islanders threatened with forfeiture,
Donald Dubh, now styling himself Lord of the Isles
sends commissioners to the English court, .
Names of his barons and council of the Isles,
Four thousand Islanders proceed to Knockfergus,
And take an oath of allegiance to England,
They engage to forward the views of Henry VI I L,
Description of these Hebridean troops, .
Treaty between the commissioners of the Lord of the
Isles and Henry VIII. ,
Preparations for an invasion of Scotland from Ireland,
The absence of the Earl of Lennox causes the postpone
ment of the expedition,
The Islanders return to Scotland — their dissensions,
Lennox a second time enters the Clyde, hoping to seize
Dumbarton Castle, ....
But is again foiled and forced to retire to Ireland,
Donald Dubh of the Isles dies at Drogheda,
He is sumptuously interred by Lennox, .
James Macdonald of Isla, changing his politics, is chosen
to succeed him, ....
But is only partially supported Ijy the Islanders,
Several of whom are reconciled to the Regent Arran,
James Macdonald enters into communication with the
Privy Council of Ireland and the Court of Eng-
land, . . . . . . 177,178
His proposals, and demand of a pension, . .178
Henry VIIL ceases to intrigue with the Islanders, . 178,179
167
168
169
169
170
170
170
170
170
171
171
172,173
173,174
174
174
175
176
176
176
177
177
177
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Lochiel and Keppoch apprehended and executed for high
treason, • .
Most of the other western chiefs submit to the Regent,
Disputes between Argyle and James Macdonald,
Settled by the mediation of the Regent, .
Battle of Pinky, .....
Many of the Islanders absent from the army,
Causes of their backwardness,
Influence of Mary of Guise, the Queen-mother, .
Who endeavours to re-introduce the policy of James Y. in
regard to the Islanders,
The Regent, by her advice, holds courts at Aberdeen and
Inverness, .....
Proceedings against the Clanranald and Clanchameron,
The Queen-mother assumes the Regency,
The Earls of Huntly and Argyle ordered to proceed against
the Clanranald and the North Islanders,
Their want of success, ....
Causes of Huntly's failure,
Inquiry into Huntly's conduct, .
He is disgraced and punished by the Queen Regent,
The forfeiture of the late William Macintosh, captain of the
Clanchattan, is rescinded,
Argyle sent against Macleod of Lewis, who submits,
A thole prevails on John Moydertach, captain of the Clan
ranald, to surrender himself to the Regent, .
Escape of John Moydertach,
The Queen Regent holds justice courts at Inverness,
Severity of her measures,
John Moydertach flies to the remote Isles,
Progress of the Reformation, as far as regards the High
lands and Isles, ....
The fifth Earl of Argyle becomes a great Protestant leader,
The Queen Regent, to weaken Argyle, intrigues with
James Macdonald of Isla, . . . .
But eventually fails of success, and Macdonald joins the
Protestants, . . .
Death and character of the Queen Regent,
Page
179
179
180
180
180
181
181
181
181,182
182
182
183
183
183
184
184
184
184
185
185
185
186
186
186
186,187
187
187
188
188
f
I
21X11 TABLE OP CONTENTS.
CHAPTER IV.
A.D. 1561-1585.
Page
•General remarks on the state of the Highlands and Isles, 189
Feud between the Macleans of Dowart and Coll, . 190
Fend between the Macleans of Dowart and the Macdonalds
of Isla and Kintyre, ..... 191
Proceedings of the Privy Council in this feud, . .191,192
Death of James Macdonald of Isla, in a battle in Ulster
with the O'Neills, ..... 192
Retrospect of the History of the Clandonald in Ulster, up
to the death of James Macdonald, . . 192-200
Rebellion of Shane O'Neill, Earl of Tyrone, . . 200
He is killed by the Clandonald in Ulster, . . 201
His successor, Torlogh Luineach O'Neill, kills Alexander
Oig, brother of James Macdonald, . . .201
The Clandonald of Lda and Kintyre weakened by their
losses in Ireland, ..... 201
Opposition of Argyle and Murray to the marriage of Queen
Mary with Darnley, ..... 201
They rebel, but are forced to fly to England, . . 201,202
Proclamation regarding the trade in cattle and other com-
modities with the West Highlands and Isles, . 202
Dissensions in the Clanchameron, and murder of Donald
Dubh, captain of that tribe, .... 202,203
Argyle extends his influence over the Clandonald of the
North Isles, and the Clanleod of Harris, . . 203
Retrospect of the history of these clans, pointing out the
circumstances which favoured Argyle's projects, 203-207
Queen Mary deposed. Effects of that event on the High-
lands and Isles, . . . 207
Vigorous measures of the Regent Murray, . . 208
He suppresses a feud between the Clanchattan and the
Macdonalds of Keppoch, .... 208
And another dispute between the Macdonalds of Sky and
the Mackenzies of Kintaill, .... 209
Causes of the latter feud, .... 20£
Retrospect of the history of the Siol Torquil or Macleods
of Lewis, . . . . . . 209,210
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XXlli
Page
of the Macleods of Rasay, .211
Feud between the Mackenzies and the Macleods of Lewis, 212
In which the Macdonalds of Sky support the latter, 212
Principal partisans of the contending tribes, . . 213
Regencies of the Earls of Lennox and Mar, . . 213
Regency of the Earl of Morton, . .213
Farther dissensions in the Siol Torquil, . . 213,214
Quarrel between the Earls of Argyle and Athole, . 214,215
Which is suppressed by the interference of the Regent, . 215
Argyle and Athole unite against Morton, who is at length
deprived of the Regency, . . . .215
Influence of Captain James Stewart, afterwards Earl of
Arran, ...... 215
Complaints by Glengarry and others against the Earl of
Argyle, for oppression, . . . .216
Violent conduct of Lauchlan Mor Maclean, the young
chief of Dowart, ..... 217
He renews the feud between his family and the Mac-
donalds of Isla, . . . .218
Temporary reconciliation between these tribes, . . 218
Feud between the chiefs of Glengarry and Kintaill, . 218,219
Renewed dissensions in the Siol Torquil, . .219,220
History of the Clandonald in Ulster, since the death of
James Macdonald of Isla, . . 221-227
Sorley Buy Macdonald, ancestor of the Earls of An-
trim,. ..... 221-227
Act of Council in favour of Angus Macdonald of Isla, . 227
Several great chiefe in the Isles summoned before the
Privy Council, ..... 227
'Continuation of the history of the Clanchameron, . 228,229
Fall of James Stewart, Earl of Arran, . . 229
James VI. assumes the Government, . . .229
CHAPTER V.
A.D. 1585-1595-
The feud between the Macdonalds and Macleans again
breaks out, ...... 230
XXIV
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Page
. 230,232
. 232,233
. 233,235
234
235
. 235,236
Causes of its renewal, ....
Mutual treachery of Maclean and Macdonald, .
Progress of the feud, ....
Barbarity of the Maodonalds,
Mutual ravages of the contending clans, .
Tribes involved in this feud on either side,
Measures taken by the government for suppressing this
feud, ....... 236
Important act of Parliament, commonly called the General
Bond, ...... 237
Angus Macdonald of Isla is outlawed, . . 237
Whilst Lauchlan Mor Maclean is received into favour, . 237
Treachery of Maclean to John Macian of Ardnamurchan, 238
Massacre of many of the Clan Ian, . . 238
The Macleans invade the lands of the Clan Ian, and are
assisted by some Spanish troops, . . . 230
The Macleans besiege the Castle of Mingarry, but are
forced to raise the siege, .... 240
The Macdonalds employ English auxiliaries, . . 240
Suspension of hostilities between the Macdonalds and
Macleans, ....... 240
The chiefs of Dowart, Isla, and Sleat, are entrapped by
the government, and thrown into prison, . . 240,241
Lauchlan Mor Maclean and Angus Macdonald are brought
to trial, and submit themselves to the King's mercy, 241
Observations on the policy of James VI., . . 241,242
Embarrassments and cupidity of that Monarch, . . 242
Maclean and Macdonald pardoned on paying a fine to the
King, ...... 242
And on agreeing to certain conditions imposed on them, 243,244
Murder of the bonny Earl of Murray, . . 244
And of John Campbell of Calder, . . . 245
These murders the result of one plot, . . . 245
Origin and progress of this plot, and names of the con-
spirators, . . . 245-251
Ardkinlass is suspected of the murder of Calder, * . 251
He refuses to plot against the Earl of Argyle,
Whose life is attempted by poison,
Ardkinlass has recourse to witchcraft,
Partial discovery of the plot,
251
252
252
252
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XXV
Pfege
Some of the inferior agents executed, . . .252
Ardkinlass and Macdoogall of Dunolly are thrown into
prison, but escape punishment, . . .252
Confessions of Ardkinlass and of Margaret Campbell, . 253
General feeling against the Chancellor Thirlestane, as
concerned in these murders, . . . 253
Further inquiry stifled by undue influence, . 253
Effects of the murder of the Earl of Murray and Campbell
ofCalder, ...... 254
The Macintoshes take part against Huntly, . 254
Who courts the Macphersons, .... 255
Feud between the Stewarts of Appin and Campbells of
Calder, ...... 255
The Island chiefs fail to perform the conditions imposed
upon them, ...... 255
They are summoned before the Privy Council, and threat-
ened with forfeiture, ..... 255
Proceedings in Parliament against them, . 256
The Earls of Huntly, Angus, and Erroll, and the chiefs of
Dowart and Isla, forfeited by Parliament, . . 256
The forfeited Earls rise in arms, .... 256, 257
The Earl of Argyle sent against them, . . . 257
Battle of Belrinnes or Glenlivat and defeat of Argyle, . 257, 259
Treachery and death of Campbell of Lochnell, . . 258
Gallant behaviour of Maclean of Do wart as one of Argyle's
officers, ...... 259
The King proceeds in person against the rebel Earls, • 259
Who are forced to disband their followers and fly abroad, 260
MacRanald of Keppoch submits to Argyle, 260
Macdonald of Sleat and Macleod of Harris lead some
forces to assist the rebel O'Donnell in Ulster, . 261
Tyrone offers to procure the expulsion of these auxiliaries 261
But rebels himself in the following year, . . . 261
The Scottish Privy Council forbid assistance to be given
to the Irish rebels, ..... 262
XXVI
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
CHAPTER VI.
A.D. 1595-1603.
Page
Endeavours of the King to increase his revenue from the
.Lsies, •■•••«•
Proclamation for an expedition to the Isles, by the King
in person, .....
Effects of this proclamation on the Islanders,
Position of the Siol Torquil,
The King gives up his intention of going to the Isles,
And orders the Commendator of Pittenweem against the
Clandonald of Isla and Kintyre,
Further preparations for this expedition,
Which is delayed for several months,
The King writes to James Macdonald of Dunluce (son of
Sorley Buy), .....
Some of the royal forces proceed to Kintyre,
Offers by the Macdonalds of Isla to the Privy Council,
The Commendator ofPittenweem holds a Court in Kintyre,
And receives the submission of the inhabitants of that
district, ......
Feud between the Macleans of Dowart and Coll,
Act of Privy Council in favour of the latter,
Renewed dissensions in the Siol Torquil,
One party of which tribe is supported by the Mackenzies,
Torquil Dubh Macleod of the Lewis is apprehended and
executed, ......
Neill Macleod, a bastard, takes the command of the Lewis, 271,272
Feud between the Mackenzies of Gerloch and the Siol
Vic Gillichallum of Rasay, . . . .272
Various plans for curbing the Clandonald of Isla, . 272
Conditions required from, and agreed to, by Angus Mac-
donald of Isla, . . . .272,273
Claims of James Macdonald of Dunluce, . .273
That chief is invited to Scotland, and arrives at Edin-
burgh on a visit to the King,
Hia claims are rejected by the Scottish Privy Council,
He is knighted by James VI., who grants to him some
lands in Kintyre, .....
263
264
264
264,265
265
265
236,267
267
268
26S
268
268
269
269
270
270
271
271
273
274
274
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XXvii
Pago
Maclean of Dowart and Macdonald of Isla prepare to pro-
ceed to Ireland with a body of men, . . 274
Apprehensions of the Irish Privy Council, . . 274,275
Probable views of Angus Macdonald in this measure, . 275
The projected enterprise of the Islanders is given up, . 275
Act of Parliament requiring the chiefs in the Highlands
and Isles to exhibit their charters, . . 275,276
Undue severity and real object of this Act, . . 276
Act of Parliament for erecting three new royal burghs in
the Highlands and Isles, .... 277
A Council of ten appointed to deliberate on the state of
the Highlands and Isles, . . . . 277
Forfeitures in consequence ofthe Act first above mentioned, 278
The Isle of Lewis and other lands granted to a company
of Lowland adventurers, .... 278
The terms of their contract with government, . . 279
The proceedings of government too precipitate, . . 279
And a strong party thus formed in the North Isles against
the adventurers, ..... 280
Sir James Macdonald sent from court to treat with his
father Angus Macdonald of Isla, . . . 280
Violent and unnatural conduct of Sir James, . . 281,282
The King proposes to make an expedition in person to
Kintyre, . . . ... .282
Preparations for this expedition, .... 282
The King again declines to go to the Isles, and names
the Duke of Lennox in his place, . . . 283
Probable causes of the King's backwardness, . . 283
The expedition seems to have totally failed, . . 283
Renewal of the feud between the Macdonalds and Mac-
leans, . . . . .284,285
Battle of Locligruinart in Isla between Sir James Mac-
donald (son of Angus) and Sir Lauchlan Mor Mac-
lean, ....... 285
Defeat and death of Maclean, .... 285
His son and successor invades and ravages Isla, encounter-
ing and defeating the Macdonalds, . . . 285
Lauchlan Mor Maclean seems to have been the aggres-
sor in this feud, ..... 286
Commission of Lieutenandry over the whole Isles and
XXV1U
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Pftge
Highlands of Inverness-shire granted to Lennox and
Huntly, ...... 286
Heal objection of this commission to assist the Lewis ad-
venturers, ...... 287
But it seems to have produced little effect, . . 287
Offers of Sir James Macdonald regarding Kintyre and
Isla, ....... 288
They are approved of by the Privy Council, . . 288
But lead to no satisfactory result, . . . 288
This failure the result of the intrigues of Argyle and
Calder, ...... 289
Progress of the Lowland adventurers in the Lewis, . 290
They are opposed by the natives, . 291
With whom at length they make an agreement, . . 291,292
Confessions of one of the Lewismen, . . 292
Mackenzie of Kintaill is apprehended in consequence, and
committed to prison, ..... 292
But escapes without a trial, through his influence with
the Chancellor, ..... 292
The King a third time projects going to the Isles in person, 292
And makes great preparations accordingly, . . 293
But a third time abandons his intention, . . . 293
Lennox made Lieutenant over the South Isles, . . 293
And Huntly over the North Isles, . . . 293,294
Instructions to the Lieutenants and powers conferred
upon them, ...... 294
These commissions produce no effect, . . . 294
Feud between the Macdonalds and Macleods in Sky, . 295,296
The Privy Council interfere, .... 296
And a reconciliation is afterwards effected between the
chiefs of Sleat and Harris, .... 297
Progress of the adventurers of the Lewis, . . 297
They quarrel with Neill Macleod, . . .297
Who defeats a party of them, . . . 298
Tormod Macleod assumes the command of the island, . 298
And, encouraged by the Mackenzies, attacks the colonists,
and forces them to capitulate, . . . 298
Terms of the capitulation, .... 299
The colonists, after evacuating the Lewis, make prepara-
tions to return, ..... 299
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XXIX
Page
But are forced to delay the recovery of the island for a time, 299
Renewal of the feud between Glengarry and the Macken-
zies, ....... 300
Mutual ravages of these clans, .... 300,303
The eldest son of Glengarry is drowned in the Kyles of
Sky, ....... 301
The Raid of Kilchrist and barbarity of the Glengarry men, 302
These disputes are at length amicably settled, . 303
James VI. ascends the throne of Great Britain, . . 303
His preparations for that event cause him to neglect the
Highlands and Isles, .... 303
Immediate consequences of this neglect, . . . 303,304
The expedition to the Lewis again delayed, . 304
CHAPTER VII.
A.D. 1603-1610.
Apprehension and imprisonment of Sir James Macdonald
Argyle presents him before the Privy Council, .
He is committed to the Castle of Blackness,
But, attempting to escape, is removed to Edinburgh Castle
Hector Maclean of Dowart promises to deliver up the
Castle of Dowart, ....
Lord Scone commissioned to proceed to Kintyre, to receive
the submission of the Islanders,
Many of the chiefs summoned to meet him there,
They are threatened with forfeiture if they disobey,
Proclamations for supporting Lord Scone in the execution
of his commission, ....
Offers made by Angus Macdonald of Isla, at Glasgow,
Lord Scone holds a court in Kintyre,
His proceedings in that district, .
Further proceedings of the colonists of the Lewis,
Tormod Macleod yields to the terms proposed by them,
But, on his going to court, the colonists become jealous
of him, .....
And procure his imprisonment in Edinburgh Castle,
The colonists are still annoyed by Neill Macleod,
305
306
306
306
306
306
306,307
307
306
307
308
308
309
309
310
310
310
\
XXX TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Lord Scone reports his proceedings, . 310
The result is unfavourable to Angus Af aodtaraald, 310
Argyle seeks a grant of Kintyre, and confers with Lord
Scone on the subject, .... 310,311
Sir James Macdonakl again attempts to escape, and is
again frustrated, . . . . .311
Angus Macdonald's hostage escapes from Dumbarton
Castle, . . . . . .311
Kintyre and Jura granted to the Earl of Argyle, . 311
The Maodonalds of Kintyre and Isla rise in arms and
threaten Galloway and Carrick, . . . 312
Argyle is appointed Justiciar and Lieutenant over the
South Isles, . . . . . .312
Limitations of his commission, .... 312
The Castle of Duny veg in Isla holds out against him, . 313
It is proposed to employ the Marquis of Huntly against
the North Isles, except Sky and Lewis, . . 313
Discussions between the King, the Privy Council, and
Huntly, on this subject, . . . .313
The extirpation of the North Iskaders seriously pro-
posed by the King, . » . . .314
And agreed to by Huntly, . . . .314
Kent offered by Huntly for the Isles proposed to be
granted to him, . 314
His offers submitted to the King, . . . 314
The proceedings of the Presbyterians against Huntly
cause his commission agaz&tft the North Isles to be
suspended, . . . . . .315
The Lewis adventurers weary eftfceir undertaking, . 315
And forsake the Island, . . . ..310
The Lord of Kintaill secretly procures a gnat of the
' Lewis, ...... 316
But is forced to resign it, on a oewplaint by the adven-
turers, ...... 316
The Lewis, by consent of the adventurers, granted Miew
to three individuals only, .... 31C
Petitions of Sir James MftcdonalA to the Privy
Council, . . . . . .316
He attempts to open a corftespondewe* with Hie Kiag mid
the Duke of Lennox, . 517
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
He joins Lord Maxwell in an attempt to escape from
Edinburgh Castle, .....
Maxwell escapes, but Sir James, after getting out of the
Castle, is retaken, ....
Instructions issued for his trial, .
He is examined by the Privy Council, .
His trial is postponed in the meantime, .
Ctreat preparations for a new expedition to the Isles,
Commission to Lord Ochiltree and the Bishop of the Isles,
to confer with Macdonald of Isla and Maclean of
Dowart, .....
Instructions to these Commissioners,
Angus Macdonald charged to deliver up the Castle of
Dunyveg, . . . . .
Further preparations for the expedition to the Isles,
The Bishop of the Isles sent to consult with the King,
Lord Ochiltree appointed Lieutenant over the Isles,
Counsellors appointed to assist him,
The King's instructions as to Sir James Macdonald,
Lord Ochiltree proceeds to the Isles,
And is joined by forces from Ireland,
Proceedings of the Royal forces, .
Ochiltree holds a court at Aros in Mull, .
Where the principal Islanders meet him and make their
submission, ......
He entraps and carries off most of these chiefs with him,
They are confined in Dumbarton, Blackness, and Stirling,
Ochiltree reports his proceedings to the Privy Council, .
Humble petitions of the imprisoned Chiefs,
Commissioners appointed for the improvement of the Isles,
Instructions from the King to these Commissioners,
These measures the commencement of a real improvement
in the Isles, ......
The Commissioners communicate with the different Chiefs,
And report the result of their deliberations to the King,
Sir James Macdonald is brought to trial and condemned
to death, ......
Bui the execution of the sentence is suspended, .
Probable causes of this apparent lenity, .
The King directs a survey of the Isles to be made,
Page
317
317
317
317
318
318
318
319
319
319,320
320
321
321
321
322
322
332
322
323
324
324
324
325
325
325
326
326
326
326,327
328
328
329
XXX11
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
329
The Commissioners for the Isles modify the King's plan,
Directions given to the Bishop and the chiefs in conse-
quence, ...... 329
The Bishop holds a court at Ioolmkill, . . . 330
Which is attended by all the island chiefs, . . 330
Who unanimously pass and bind themselves to observe
nine important statutes, .... 330,333
Details of the Statutes of Icolmkill, . . . 333
Effects of these Statutes on the descendants of those who
enacted them, ..... 333
Report made by the Bishop to the Privy Council, . 333
He is deputed to present the Report to the King, . 334
Measures taken by the Privy Council in consequence of
this report, ...... 334
A proclamation interfering with the trade of the Isles
is annulled, . ..... 334
Sir George Hay and Sir James Spens prepare for a new
colonization of the Lewis, .... 334,335
Bat, owing to the intrigues of Mackenzie of Kintaill,
are unsuccessful, ..... 335
And forced to quit the Island, .... 335
They sell the Lewis to Kintaill, .... 335
Who, having thus acquired a legal title to that island,
speedily reduces it to obedience, . . . 336
Fate of the survivors of the Siol Torquil, . 336-338
The representation of this tribe devolves on Macleod of
Basay, ...... 338
CHAPTER VIII.
A.D. 1610-1615.
The King approves of the Statutes of Icolmkill, . 339
Proceedings of the Privy Council in consequence, . 339
The Bishop of the Isles is appointed Steward -and Justice
of all the Hebrides, ..... 340
And Constable of the Castle of Dunyveg, . . 340
Temporary tranquillity of the West Highlands and Isles, 340,341
The Siol Torquil and the Mackenzie?, . . . 341
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XXX111
Page
The Clanchameron and Clanranald of Lochaber, 341
Dissensions in the Clanchameron, . . 342
Origin and progress of these dissensions, .342-345
Lochiel chastises his refractory clansmen, . 345
Lochiel and his followers proclaimed rebels, . . 345
And a commission given to Huntly against them, . 345
Dissensions in the Clanneill of Barra, . . .346
Origin of these dissensions, and their suppression, . 34 G, 34 7
Death of Angus Macdonald of Isla, . . 347
Isla granted in lease to Sir Ranald M acSorlcy Buy, 347
He endeavours to introduce some Irish customs into
Isla, ....... 347
But is prohibited by the Privy Council, . . 348
The difference between the Irish and Hebridean customs
at that time, caused by the greater progress of the
feudal system in the Hebrides, . 348
The principal Islanders continue in their obedience, 348
Fears of an insurrection of the Macleans, regarding the
lands of Morvern, ..... 348
The Castle of Dunyveg is taken from tho Bishop's
garrison by the Macdonalds, . 349
And placed in the hands of Angus Oig Macdonald, 349
"Who professes his readiness to restore it to the Bishop, 349
Petition and offers of Sir James Macdonald to the Privy
Council, . ... . 350
He is suspected of being privy to the seizure of Dunyveg, 350
His papers are examined, but rather prove the reverse, 350, 351
Angus Oig ordered to deliver up the Castle, . . 351
And a commission given to the Bishop against him, in
case he should refuse, . .351
Angus Oig refuses to deliver up Dunyveg, . . 351
The Bishop again visits Isla, carrying with him a con-
ditional pardon for the Macdonalds, . . 351
Who, however, not only retain the Castle, but make the
Bishop and his followers prisoners, . . . 352
The Bishop is compelled to treat with Angus Oig, 352, 353
And to give hostages for performance of his part of the
treaty, ...... 353
The Bishop is set at liberty, and writes tho Council
regarding the late events, . .353
3
XXXIV
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Page
Seasons for supposing that Angus Oig and his followers
w ere secretly incited by Argyle, . . 354, 355
The Privy Council prepare to recover Dunyveg by
force, ..... ? 355
Commission to Campbell of Calder against the Macdonalds
oflsla, ...... 355
It is proposed to grant Isla to Calder, . . . 356
Discontent of the Macdonalds, . . . .356
Opinion of the Bishop as to this project, . . . 356
New offers made by Sir James Macdonald, . . 357
Preparations for suppressing the rebels of Isla, . . 358
Instructions to Calder regarding this service, . • 358
The Earl of Dunfermline, Chancellor, intrigues for relief
of the Bishop's hostages, , 359
His emissary, Graham, by deceiving the Macdonalds,
procures the liberation of the hostages, , . 359
And, at the same time, encourages Angus Oig to hold out, 360
On the approach of the royal forces, Graham leaves the
Macdonalds to their fate, . . , .361
Isla is granted to Campbell of Calder, . . .361
Dunyveg is summoned by the Irish division of the royal
forces, ...... 362
But Angus Oig refuses to surrender, pleading the Chan-
cellor's instructions as received from Graham, 362, 363
Junction of the Irish and Scottish forces, . 363
Dunyveg is besieged in form, . . . .363
And, after a short siege, Angus Oig submits uncondition-
ally, ....... 364
But Coll MacGillespick and some of the garrison escape, 364
Many of the rebels are condemned and executed, . 364
Angus Oig and others reserved for examination by the
Privy Council, .... 364, 365
Investigation into Graham's proceedings, . . 365
Feeling against Argyle and the Chancellor regarding this
affair, ... ... 365
The investigation is smothered, .... 365
The Chancellor was really implicated, . . . 366
No credit given to the statements of Graham, . . 366
Coll MacGillespick and others of the Clandonald become
pirates, ...... 366
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XXXV
Page
Sir James Macdonald at length effects his escape from
Edinburgh Castle, .... 366, 367
His reasons for this step, . . . .367
Details of his flight and of the pursuit, . . 367, 368
He reaches the Isles in safety, .... 368
And is joined by Coll MacGillespick, . . .368
Whose followers receive Sir James with enthusiasm, 368, 369
Sir James sails in the direction of Isla, • . . 369
Measures of the Privy Council in this emergency, 369, 370
Instructions for defending the west coast against Sir
James and his adherents, . . . .371
Sir James Macdonald arrives in the Isle of Colonsay, . 372
He proceeds thence to Isla, and recovers the Castle of
Duny veg from Calder's Garrison, . . . 372
He dismisses his prisoners uninjured, . . .373
Numbers of his adherents at this time, . . . 373
Argyle is summoned from Court in order to act as Lieu-
tenant against the rebels, . . . .373
Further preparations by the Privy Council, . 373, 374
Auchinbreck appointed Lieutenant in the meantime, . 374
Trial and execution of Angus Oig Macdonald and his
followers, . . . . . .374
General sympathy for their fate, .... 374
Sir James addresses letters to many of the nobility
explaining his conduct, . . 374, 375
His character, and implacable hostility to the Campbells, 375
His letters, being intercepted, come into the hands of
the Privy Council, ..... 375
Who decline to hold any communication with him, . 375
Sir James fortifies the Island of Lochgorme, . 376
He attempts to seize Macneill of T aynish, . 376
He is joined by the men of Colonsay and Jura, . . 376
The men of Argyle and Lorn refuse to march against
him, unless under a Royal Lieutenant, . . 376
The Kintyre men prepare to join Sir James, . . 377
Various reports in circulation, . . .377
Further preparations by the* Privy Council, . . 377
Instructions from the King to the Earl of Argyle as
Lieutenant, ..... 377, 378
Sir James Macdonald proceeds to Kintyre, . . 378
XXXVi TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Page-
He sends the fiery cross through that district, and is
joined by many of the inhabitants, . . . 379
Auchinbreck, with a few troops, watches Sir James'
motions, 379
Report by Auchinbreck to the Privy Council, and mea-
sures taken in consequence, .... 379
Auchinbreck confines the rebels to Kintyre, . . 380
Secretary Binning writes in severe terms to Argyle for
his delay, ...... 380
Argyle has an interview with Binning, . . 380
And then confers with the Privy Council, . . 381
Arrangements made by the Council with Argyle, 381, 382
Argyle assembles his forces at Duntroon, . . 382
After reconnoitering the position of the rebels, Argyle
divides his troops into two divisions, . 382, 383
Intended to invade Kintyre both from the west and east, 383
Movements of the rebels, .... 383
Success of Argyle1 s tactics — Flight of the rebels, . 384
They are pursued by the royal forces, . . . 384
And attempt to rally in Isla, .... 385
Being closely pressed, they are forced to disperse, 385, 386
And Sir James, with a few followers, escapes to Ireland, 386-
Dunyveg and the Fort of Lochgorme are surrendered by
Coll MacGillespick, ..... 386-
Who receives a conditional pardon from Argyle, . 386
Argyle executes nineteen of the principal inhabitants of
Isla, ....... 387
He then returns to Kintyre, and executes many of the
rebels in that district, .... 38T
He endeavours to ascertain the movements of Sir James,
and the others who had escaped, . • 387, 388
The Council dissatisfied at the escape of so many of the
principal rebels, ..... 38$
Argyle reports his proceedings to the Privy Council, . 389
By whom they are generally approved of, • 389, 390
TABLE OF CONTENTS. XXXVli
CHAPTER IX.
AD. 1 615 -1625.
Page
Proceedings of the Privy Council against Macranald of
Keppoch and his son, .... 391
And for the suppression of some of the other rebels who
still infested the Isles, .... 392
-Commission to the Marquis of Huntly against Keppoch, 392
Several of the Island chiefs make their annual appear-
ance before the Privy Council, . . s 392
Conditions imposed upon them, by their own consent, 393-396
The exaction of calps abolished, .... 397
Keppoch and Lochiel continue outlaws, . . .397
State of affairs between Lochiel and Macintosh, . 397, 398
Lochiel is forced to reconcile himself with Huntly, . 398
And obtains the support of the latter against Macintosh, 398
Keppoch and his second son escape to Spain, and join
Sir James Macdonald, .... 398
Argyle's second son, James, made Lord Kintyre, . 399
Argyle becomes & Catholic, and, under pretence of bene-
fiting his health, goes abroad, . . . 399
And enters into correspondence with Sir James Macdonald
and Keppoch in Spain, .... 399
He is summoned before the Scottish Privy Council,
under pain of treason, .... 400
Arrangements made by the Privy Council for the good
rule of the Earldom of Argyle, . . . 400
Argyle, failing to appear, is declared a traitor, . . 401
He enters into the military service of Spain, and dis-
tinguishes himself, . . . . .401
The fee of the Earldom having previously been conveyed
to his eldest son, Lord Lorn, . . . 401
Sir James Macdonald and Keppoch recalled from Spain, 401
They receive pensions from the King, and pardons for
all their offences, ..... 401
The Privy Council object to their being pardoned, . 401
Without sufficient security being found for their future
good conduct, ..... 402
XXXviil TABLE OF CONTENTS.
Pact
Sir James Macdonald dies in London, . . . 402
Keppoch visits Scotland, and, having satisfied the Council,
is restored to his estate, .... 402
Commissions to Lord Gordon against Loch i el, and
Keppoch's eldest son, . . . .402
These commissions are not vigorously acted on, . . 403
Macintosh obtains a commission against Lochiel, . 403
The death of Macintosh opens a door for an amicable
arrangement between the Clan Chameron and Clan
Chattan, ...... 403
Lochiel freed from his outlawry, . . . 404
Additional enactments, by consent of the chiefs, for the
civilisation of the Isles, . . . 404, 405
Insurrection of the Clan Ian of Ardnamurchan, . . 405
Retrospect of the history of this tribe, showing the
causes of their insurrection, . . . 405-409
The Clan Ian rise in arms, and betake themselves to
piracy, . . . . . * . 410
Measures of Government for suppressing this insurrection, 410
Lord Lorn and other chiefs are employed against the
Clan Ian, ...... 410
The insurrection is suppressed, and Lord Lorn reports
hiB proceedings to the Privy Council, . , . 411
By whom his conduct is approved of, . . .411
Ardnamurchan and Sunart granted to Mr. Donald
Campbell, . . . . . .411
Who is afterwards created a Baronet, . . . 411
Fate of the survivors of the Clan Ian, . . . 411
Concluding notices of the different families treated of in
this work, ..... 412-427
The house of Lochalsh, . . . .412
The house of Sleat, . . .412
The Clan Ian Vor (comprehending) —
The Macdonalds of Colonsav, . . . 413
The Earls of Antrim, .... 414
The Macdonalds of Sanda, . . . 414
The Macdonalds of Largie, . . . 414
The Clan Ranald of Lochaber or Macdonalds of
Keppoch, ..... 415
The Clan Ranald of Garmoran (comprehending) — 416-418
TABLE OF CONTENTS.
XXXIX
Page
416
416
417
The Clan Ranald of Moydert, .
The Clan Ranald of Knoydert, .
The Clan Rao aid of Morar,
The Clan Ranald of Glengarry, and the prin
cipal cadets of these families,
The Clan Ian of Glenco, .
The Clan Ian of A rd nam urch an, .
The Clan Allister of Kintyre,
The Clan Gillean (comprehending) —
The Macleans of Dowart,
The Macleans of Lochbny,
The Macleans of Coll, .
The Macleans of Ardgour,
And their principal cadets,
The Siol Torquil or Macleods of Lewis and their
cadets, ....
The Siol Tormod or Macleods of Harris and their
principal cadets, . . . 420, 421
The Clan Chameron, . . . 421, 422
The Clan Chattan, . . . .422
The Clan Neil 1 of Bar ra, . . . .423
The Clan Neill of Gigha, . . . 423, 424
Cadets of the family of Gigha, . . . 424
The Mackinnons, Macquarries, and Maceacherns, 424
The Mackays in Kintyre, . . . * . 425
The Mackenzies, . . . .425
The Macdougalls, .... 425, 426
The Stewarts of Appin, .... 426
The Campbells, .... 426,427
Conclusion, ...... 427
417, 418
418
418
418
419, 420
419
419
419
419
420
420
PBEFACE TO FIRST EDITION.
It may naturally be asked by those who read only the
title-page of the present work, why it should have
been limited to the history of a portion merely of what
are commonly called the Highlands of Scotland, as well
as to a particular period of that history. I shall endea-
vour to explain in a few words the reasons which have
induced me thus to limit my subject.
Various causes contributed, in former times, to divide
the Scottish Highlands into two sections, between which
there existed a well-defined line of demarcation. The
West Highlands and Isles formed one of these sections:
the Central Highlands, and all those districts in which
the waters flowed to the East, formed the other. The
great mountain-ridge, called, of old, Drumalban, from
which the waters flowed to either coast of Scotland,
was the least of these causes of distinction. The
numerical superiority of the Dalriads on the west, and
of the Picts on the east side of Drumalban, and the
frequent wars between these nations; the conquest, and
occupation for nearly four hundred years, of the Hebrides,
by the warlike Scandinavians; and, lastly, the union of
11 PREFACE.
the Isles and a great part of the adjacent coast, during
the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries, under the sway
of one powerful family, while the eastern clans had no
similar community of interest, and owned no similar
controlling power: — these were the chief causes of the
distinction which, in later times, was found to exist
between the Western and Eastern Highlanders. The
history of the latter cannot properly be blended with that
of the former ; and, if introduced into the same work,
would only serve to distract the attention of the reader.
A perusal of tho following pages will show that, during
a great portion of the period I have endeavoured to
illustrate, the Western Clans had a common object which
frequently united them in hostility to the government.
In this way, the measures employed at first for their
coercion, and afterwards for their advancement in civili-
sation, came naturally to be separate from those directed
to the subjugation (if I may use the phrase) and im-
provement of the Eastern tribes. In the public records
of Scotland, with scarcely an exception, the distinction
I have pointed out is acknowledged either directly or
indirectly. So much for the reasons which induced me
to select, for tho subject of the present work, the history
of the West Highlands and Isles.
Having chosen this subject, I very soon perceived
that the history of this portion of the Scottish High-
lands might advantageously be divided into three por-
tions. The first portion might embrace its early history,
and the rise and fall of the great Lordship of the Isles ;
• ••
PREFACE. in
the second might trace the immediate effects of the
forfeiture of that Lordship, and bring the history down
to the time when, by the exertions of James VL, the
Western Highlanders, from being frequently in rebel-
lion against the royal authority, had begun to be dis-
tinguished for their lqyalty; and the third might
record their exertions in support of the house of Stewart,
increasing in energy in proportion as the hopes of that
unfortunate family became more desperate.
The great power and resources of the old Kings off
the Isles, and of the more modern Lords of the Isles,
have forced the history of the first of the periods above
mentioned on the attention of many of our historians.
Moreover, the national records, hitherto discovered,
referring to this period, are comparatively scanty, and
offer few materials for adding to what has already been
written on this branch of the subject. Again, the
numerous historical works which have appeared on the
great civil war, and on all the later struggles of the
house of Stewart, have made us tolerably familiar with
the conduct and relative position of the leading High-
land clans during the third period.
These considerations alone would have influenced me
in choosing for my subject the history of the second
period — that, namely, from a.d. 1493 to a.d. 1625, which
was as nearly as possible a perfect blank; but when I
discovered that our national records and other sources
of authentic information were full of interesting and
important matter bearing upon this portion of the
IV PKEFACE.
history of the West Highlands and Isles, I no longer
hesitated.
It is now six years since, desirous of procuring infor-
mation from every quarter, I announced to the public
the task I had imposed upon myself, and stated the
leading objects of the present work. I am bound to
acknowledge that I have received, in consequence, from
many private sources, information which, but for that
announcement, I never might have heard of, and of which
it will be perceived that I have made considerable use.
To the late Right Honourable Lord Macdonald; to
the late Sir John Campbell of Ardnamurchan, Bart.;
to the late Sir William Macleod Bannatyne, and the late
John Norman Macleod of Macleod; to the Right Hon-
ourable Lord Macdonald; Sir John Campbell of Ardna-
murchan, Bart. ; Sir Donald Campbell of DunstafFnage,
Bart.; Murdoch Maclaine of Lochbuy, Esq.; Hugh
Maclean of Coll, Esq.; Alexander Maclean of Ard-
gour, Esq.; Captain Macdougall of Macdougall, R.N. ;
Dugald Campbell of Craignish, Esq.; Major Campbell
of Melfort; Alexander Campbell of Ardchattan, Esq.;
Lieut.-Colonel Macniel of Barra; Captain Stewart,
Ardshiel; and John Stewart of Easnacloich, Esq.; I
am indebted for being permitted to examine their
ancient family papers, from which I have derived much
curious information.
Cosmo Innes, Esq., gave me access to the valuable
charter chest of Kilravock, from an inspection of which
I added greatly to the information I had previously col-
PREFACE. V
lected. Captain Alexander Macncill, younger, of Colon-
say, allowed me to peruse some of the ancient charters
and papers of the Gigha family, which have lately come
into his possession.
The late Sir William Macleod Bannatyne; Sir George
S. Mackenzie of Coul, Bart. ; Colonel Sir Evan J. M.
Macgregor of Macgregor, Bart; Gcovgo Macpherson
Grant, Esq., of Ballindalloch and Invereshie; John
Gregorson of Ardtornkh, Esq.; Colin Campbell, Esq.,
Jura; Lauchlan Mackinnon of Letterfearn, Esq. ; the
Rev. Dr. Norman Macleod, Glasgow; the Rev. Angus
Maclaine, Ardnamurchan; the Rev. Alexander Mac-
kenzie Downie; Charles Cameron, Esq., barrister-at-law;
Iaeut.-Colonel Cameron, Clunes; Captain Donald Ca-
meron, Stone; Colin Macrae, Esq., Nairn Grove; John
Macdonnel, Esq., Keppoch; Angus Maodonnell, Esq.,
Inch; Donald Macrae, Esq., Auchtertyre, Kintaill; Dr.
Mackinnon, Kyle, Sky; Dr. Maclean, Isle of Rom; Dr.
Maceachern, Arasaig; Mr. Lauchlan Maclean, Glasgow;
and Mr. Hugh Macdonald, Dervaig, Mull — have assisted
me either by submitting to my inspection copies of various
family histories, which have been of much service, by
pointing out various useful sources of information, or
by communicating authentic traditions; and I have
everywhere found a disposition to forward as much as
possible the inquiries in which I have been engaged.
The use I have made of the public records will readily
be perceived; and, in this department, my researches
have been facilitated by the kindness of the learned
VI PREFACE.
Deputy Clerk Register, Mr. Thomas Thomson, and of
Mr. Alexander Macdonald, who have pointed out to me
many curious original documents.
To the Curators of the Advocates' Library, I, in
common with many others engaged in historical pur-
suits, feel much indebted for the ready access afforded
to the valuable MS. collections of the Faculty of Ad-
vocates.
Frequent communications with my friends, Mr. Alex-
ander Sinclair, Mr. Cosmo Innes, and Mr. William F.
Skene, have assisted me to clear up several points
hitherto doubtful; and Mr. Robert Pitcairn,* editor of that
curious work, the Criminal Trials, has enabled me to
add considerably to my collections. I am likewise
under great obligations to Mr. David Laing, the active
secretary of the Bannatyne Club.
I did not neglect to examine the Scottish MSS. in
the British Museum, in which I received much assist-
ance from Mr. Joseph Stevenson. Mr. Tytler commu-
nicated to me some valuable documents (since publish-
ed) connected with the history of the Isles, from the
State Paper Office, London. Lastly, such information
as I required from the Irish records and historical MSS.
was communicated to me most readily by Mr. John
D' Alton, barristcr-at-law, Dublin, from his own valuable
historical and genealogical collections.
In order the better to arrange the information thus
collected, and to make myself acquainted with such
traditions as were not alluded to in the family histories,
PREFACK. VU
or, if alluded to, were without dates or otherwise defec-
tive, I made frequent visits to the West Highlands and
Isles; and succeeded in satisfying myself on many
doubtful points. In these journeys I conversed with
every individual supposed to be well informed that I had
the good fortune to meet; and the information thus
gained proved of essential service afterwards, when I
came to prepare the following pages for press.
Such have been the sources of my information. Of
the use I have made of it, it does not become me to
speak; but I may at least say, that I have striven to be
impartial. The necessity for minute research implied
in a work like the present, has a tendency to prevent
the author from drawing those general conclusions
which are so desirable in all historical works, and which
may occur more readily to those who peruse the result
of his labours without any previous knowledge of the
subject. This defect seems to be almost inseparable
from the pursuits of the antiquary, who, in fact, gene-
rally acts ns a pioneer to the historian. I shall be satis-
fied, therefore, if this work prove of service to a future
writer on the History of the Highlands, and assist him
in forming those general views which give to history
its chief value.
It was my intention to have added a dissertation on
the manners, customs, and laws of the Highlanders, in
which I had made considerable progress. Want of
space, however, lias forced me to postpone, but by no
means to abandon my design. When I resume it, I
Vlll PREFACE.
hope to be able to bring forward from my - collections,
which are increasing every day, many new illustrations
of these subjects.
The Introduction of the present Work embraces what
I have called the first historical period of the West
Highlands and Isles. Such an Introduction seemed
indispensable; and, while it is necessarily brief, I have
taken the opportunity of correcting some of the more
glaring errors of former writers.
Edinburgh, 10 Ainslib Place,
April, 1836.
TNTKODUCTION.
The object of the present work is to trace the history
of the territories once owned by the great Lords of the
Isles, from the time of the downfall of that princely race,
in the reign of James IV. of Scotland, until the acces-
sion of Charles I. to the throne of Great Britain. But,
for the better understanding of the subject, it appears
absolutely necessary to give a brief sketch, first, of
the early history of these territories ; and, secondly, of
the rise, progress, and fall of the potent family of the
Isles.
To enter into any speculation regarding the early
inhabitants of the country, would, in a work of this na-
ture, be superfluous, and inconsistent with the necessary
brevity of an Introduction. The facts bearing on the
subject are, unfortunately, few in number. From the
Roman authors, who afford the earliest accurate informa-
tion regarding the tribes of North Britain, it appears
A Dt that, during the two centuries after the inva-
8o"3°a sion of Agricola, A.D. 80, Scotland was in-
habited by two nations only — the Caledonii, and the
Mceatac. Of these, the Caledonii alone inhabited the
Highlands; and, indeed, all modern Scotland north of
the Friths of Forth and Clyde. After the third century,
the names of Caledonii and Mseatac disappear, and we
2 PICTS — DALRIADS.
find the Romans terming their northern opponents
Picti and Attacotti. Historians seem now to have
agreed that the Picts were, in fact, the Caledonians
under a new name ; that they were a Celtic race ; and
that, until the sixth century, they continued to be the
sole nation north of the Friths — being divided into two
great branches — the DicaUdones inhabiting the more
mountainous and more rugged districts north and west
of the Grampian range, and the Vecturiones inhabit-
ing the more level districts between the Grampians and
the German Ocean. Thus the former corresponded
to the Highlanders of the present day, whilst the latter
possessed the Lowlands, from the plains of Moray on
the north to Fife and Strathearn on the south. In the
beginning of the sixth century, a new people
was added to the inhabitants of Scotland, north
of Forth and Clyde — for, at that period, the Irish Scots,
frequently called the Dalriads, effected a settlement in
the western districts of the Highlands. At this time,
the country south of the Friths was occupied by the
Strathclyde Britons; but the subsequent conquest of
Northumberland and the Lothians, by the Angles, be-
fore the close of the sixth century, added that nation to
the inhabitants of the south of Scotland. During the
sixth, seventh, and eighth centuries, the history of
Scotland presents nothing but a succession of conflicts
between these four nations, which produced but little
permanent change in their relative situations. In the
ninth century, however, a re volution took place,
the nature of which it is almost impossible
to determine, from the unfortunate silence of all the
older authorities, whilst the fables of the later histo-
rians are quite unworthy of credit. But it is certain,
SCOTTISH CONQUEST. 3
that the result of this revolution was the nominal union
of most of the tribes under Kenneth MacAlpin, a
King of the Scottish or Dalriadic race, and the conse-
quent spread of the name of Scotland over the whole
country. However this important event might affect
the population of the rich and fertile Lowlands, it seems
perfectly clear, that the Dicaledones, or Picts, who
formed the bulk of the Highland population in these
early times, were secured from any sweeping change,
by the rugged nature of the country they inhabited.
In these Dicaledones, therefore, we see the ancestors
of the great mass of the modern Highlanders, excepting
those of Argyleshire ; among whom, in all probability,
the Dalriadic blood predominated. The name of
Albanich, which, as far back as we can trace, is the
proper appellation of the Scottish Highlanders, seems
to prove their desoent from that tribe which gave to
Britain its eatliest name of Albion, and which may,
therefore, be considered as the first tribe that set foot
in this island.
The earliest inhabitants of the Western Isles or
Ebudes (corruptly Hebrides), were probably a portion
of the Albanich, Caledonians, or Picts. In some of the
southern islands, particularly Isla, this race must have
been displaced or overrun by the Dalriads on their first
settlement; so that, at the date of the Scottish Conquest,
the Isles, like the adjacent mainland, were divided
between the Picts and Scots. The change produced in
the original population of the Western Isles, by the
influx of the Scots — a cognate Celtic race — was, how-
ever, trifling, compared with that which followed the first
settlements of the Scandinavians in the Isles, towards
the end of the ninth century.
4 CONQUEST OF THE ISLES
From the chronicles both of England and Ireland, it
appears that these northern piratps commenced their
ravages in the British Isles a hundred years before this
time, and many of them were thus well acquainted with
the Western Isles prior to their effecting a permanent
settlement in them. An important revolution in Norway
»» led to this settlement. About the year 880,
the celebrated Harald Harfager established
himself as the first King of all Norway, after bringing
into subjection a number of the petty kings of that
country. Many of the most violent of Harald s oppo-
nents sought to escape his vengeance, by leaving their
native land, and establishing themselves in the Scottish
Isles, from the numerous harbours of which they after-
wards issued in piratical fashion, to infest the coasts of
Norway. King Harald was not of a nature to allow
such insults to pass unpunished. He pursued
A D 888 *
the pirates to their insular fastnesses, and not
only subdued them, but added the Isles to the crown of
Norway. In the following year, the Vikingr of the Isles
revolted and renewed their piratical expeditions; but
were speedily reduced to obedience by Ketil, a Nor-
wegian of rank, despatched by Harald to the
Isles for that purpose. Ketil, however, having
ingratiated himself with the principal Islanders, soon
declared himself King of the Isles, independent of
Norway, and held this rank for the rest of his life.
According to the Norse Sagas, d\\ the race of Ketil
were either dead, or had left the Isles, about the year
900; and, for nearly forty years after this date, the
history of the Isles is very obscure.
Aulaf MacSitric, son of the Danish King of North-
umberland, and called by the historians, " Rex pluri-
HY THE SCANDINAVIANS. 5
marum insitlarum" fought at the great battle
of Brunanburg; and, on his death, he seems
to have been succeeded by Maccus MacArailt Mac-
Sitric, probably his nephew, who was contemporary with,
and is said to have been brought under subjection by
Edgar, the greatest of the Anglo-Saxon Kings. Gofra
MacArailt, King of the Isles, died, according to the
Irish annalists, in 989 ; and, in the following
JL "T) GOO
year, the Hebrides were conquered by Sigurd,
the second of that name, Earl of Orkney, who placed as
his deputy, or Jarl, over them, an individual named Gilli.
Sigurd seems to have lost his Hebridean conquests after
a time, as we read of a Ragnal MacGofra, King of the
Isles, who died A.D. 1004. On his death,
* however, Sigurd had resumed possession of
the Isles, which he held at the time of the celebrated
battle of Clunatarf, in Ireland, in which he
' "" " I014* was killed. Twenty years later, the Hebrides
A D 1014
were conquered by Earl Thorfin, the son of
Sigurd, from which we may infer that, in the interval,
they had been independent. Thorfin possessed the Isles
till his death, after which they seem to have
4' formed part of the dominions of Diarmed
MacMaelnambo, a potent Irish prince, who died A.D.
1072.
The next King of the Isles that we can trace, is God-
red, the son of Sitric (supposed to have been one of
the Irish Ostmen), who reigned in the Isle of Man.
To him succeeded his son, Fingal, who, after a des-
perate struggle, was dispossessed of his kingdom by
cir. a. d. another Godred, the son of Harald the
l°77- Black. This Godred, surnamed Crovan, or
the White Handed, is the undoubted ancestor of that
6 GODRED CROVAN — MAGNUS BAREFOOT.
dynasty of Kings of Man and the Isles which termi-
nated by the death of Magnus, the son of Olave,
A.D. 1265. Godred Crovan was first known as a
leader of the Norwegians under Harald Hardrada,
King of Norway, at the battle of Stainford Bridge,
where the latter was defeated and slain by
Harald, King of England. Escaping from
England, Godred seems to have fled to the Ishfs,
where he gradually formed a party strong enough to
enable him to expel Fingal from the Isle of Man.
But his conquests were not confined to the Isles ; he
likewise subjugated Dublin (which had for nearly two
centuries been the seat of a principality, formed by the
Scandinavian Vikingr) and a great part of Leinster.
He was, besides, very successful in war against the
Scots, whose King, at this time, was Malcolm III.,
commonly called Malcolm Canmor. For a length
of time the claims of Norway to the dominion of the
Isles had been neglected ; but they were now revived,
and triumphantly re-established by King Magnus Bare-
foot, who, at the head of an imposing force, subjugated
the Isles, and, expelling Godred Crovan,
placed on the throne his own son, Sigurd.
Godred died two years afterwards, in the island of Isla,
leaving three sons, Lagman, Harald, and Olave. On
the death of Magnus Barefoot, who fell in
an expedition against Ulster, Sigurd, becom-
ing King of Norway, returned to his native dominions,
when the Islanders, apparently with Sigurd's consent,
took for their King, LagflBar^ ihe eldest son of Godred
Crovan. This Prince, after a reign of seven years, the
most important event of which was an unsuccessful
rebellion against him by his brother Harald, abdicated.
i
/
LAGMAK — OLAVE THE BED. 7
his throne, and, assuming the cross, went on a pil-
grimage to Jerusalem, where he died. On this, the
nobility of the Isles applied to Murchard O'Brien,
King of Ireland, to send them a Prince of his own blood
to act as Eegent during the minority of Olave, the
surviving son of Godred Crovan. In compliance with
this request, the Irish King sent to the Isles a certain
Donald MacTade, who ruled for two years,
but made himself so obnoxious by his tyr-
anny and oppression, that the insular chiefs rose against
him with one accord, and forced him to fly
A. D. mi.
to Ireland, whence he never returned. Olave,
son of Godred Crovan, soon afterwards ascended the
throne, which he filled for forty years. His reign was
peaceful; but he conducted himself so as to preserve
his kingdom from aggression. This Olave is, by the
Norse writers, surnamed Bitting or Klining, from his
diminutive stature ; whilst, in the Highland traditions,
he is called Olave Vie Red. He was the father of
Godred the Black, who succeeded him: and one of
his daughters, Ragnhildis, was married to Homerled,
Prince or Lord of Argyle, from which marriage sprung
the dynasty so well known in Scottish history as the
Lords of the Isles.
From whatever race, whether Pictish or Scottish, the
inhabitants of the Isles in the reign of Kenneth
MacAlpin were derived, it is clear that the settlements
and wars of the Scandinavians in the Hebrides, from
the time of Harald Harfager to that of Olave the Red,
a period of upwards of two centuries, must have produced
a very considerable change in the population. As in all
cases of conquest, this change must have been most
perceptible in the higher ranks, owing to the natural,
8 MIXTURE OF NORSE AND
tendency of invaders to secure their new possessions,
where practicable, by matrimonial alliances with the
natives. That, in the Hebrides, a mixture of the
Celtic and Scandinavian blood was thus effected at an
early period, seems highly probable, and by no means
inconsistent with the ultimate prevalence of the Celtic
language in the mixed race, as all history sufficiently
demonstrates. These remarks regarding the population
of the Isles, apply equally to that of the adjacent main-
land districts, which, being so accessible by numerous
arms of the sea, could hardly be expected -to preserve
the blood of their inhabitants unmixed. The extent to
which this mixture was carried is a more difficult ques-
tion, and one which must be left, in a great measure, to
conjecture ; but, on the whole, the Celtic race appears
to have predominated. It is of more importance to
know which of the Scandinavian tribes it was that
infused the greatest portion of northern blood into the
population of the Isles. The Irish annalists divide the
piratical bands, which, in the ninth and following cen-
turies, infested Ireland, into two great tribes, styled by
these writers, Fiongall, or white foreigners, and Duhh-
gall, or black foreigners. These are believed to repre-
sent, the former the Norwegians, the latter the Danes ;
and the distinction in the names given to them, is
supposed to have arisen from a diversity either in their
clothing or in the sails of their vessels. These tribes
had generally separate leaders; but they were occa-
sionally united under one king; and., although both
bent, first on ravaging the Irish shores, and afterwards
on seizing portions of the Irish territories, they fre-
quently turned their arms against each other. The
Gaelic title of High FhiongalU or King of the Fion-
CELTIC BLOOD IN THE ISLES. 9
gall, so frequently applied to the Lords of the Isles,
seems to prove that Olave the Red, from whom they
were descended in the female line, was so styled, and
that, consequently, his subjects in the Isles, in so far as
they were not Celtic, were Fiongall or Norwegians.
It has been remarked by one writer, whose opinion is
entitled to weight/ that the names of places in the
exterior Hebrides, or the Long Island, derived from
the Scandinavian tongue, resemble the names of places
in Orkney, Shetland, and Caithness. On the other
hand, the corresponding names in the interior Hebrides
are in a different dialect, resembling that of which the
traces are to be found in the topography of Sutherland;
and appear to have been imposed at a later period than
the first-menfioned names. The probability is, however,
that the difference alluded to is not greater than might
be expected in the language of two branches of the
same race, after a certain interval; and that the Scan-
dinavian population of the Hebrides was, therefore,
derived from two successive Norwegian colonies. This
view is further confirmed by the fact that the Hebrides,
although long subject to Norway, do not appear to have
ever formed part of the possessions of the Danes.
Having thus traced, as briefly as possible, the origin
of the inhabitants of the Western Highlands and Isles,
as we find them early in the twelfth century, it remains,
in the second place, to trace the rise, progress, and fall
of the great family of de Insulis, or Macdonald, Lords
of the Isles.
The origin of Somerled of Argyle, the undoubted
founder of this noble race, is involved in considerable
1 Chalmers' Caledonia, Vol I., p. 26(5.
10 SOMERLED OF ARGYLE.
obscurity. Of his father, Gillebrede, and his grand-
father, Gilladomnan, we know little but the names.
According to the seannachies or genealogists, both
Irish and Highland, Gilladomnan was the sixth in
descent from a certain Godfrey MacPergus, who is
called, in an Irish Chronicle, Toshach of the Isles, and
who lived in the reign of Kenneth MacAlpin. There
is a tradition that this Godfrey, or one of his race, was
expelled from the Isles by the Danes,1 which, if cor-
rect, may apply to the conquest of Harald Harfager,
who, in all probability, dispossessed many of the native
chiefs. But the Celtic genealogists do not stop short
with Godfrey MacFergus. Through a long line of
ancestors, they trace the descent of that chief from the
celebrated Irish King, Conn Chead Chath, or Conn of
the Hundred Battles. Such is the account of Somer-
led's origin, given by those who maintain his Scoto-Irish
descent. Others have asserted that he was undoubtedly
a Scandinavian by descent in the male line. His name
is certainly a Norse one;2 but then, on the other hand,
the names of his father and grandfather are purely Cel-
tic; whilst the intermarriages that must have taken place
between the two races in the Isles and adjacent coasts,
make it impossible to found any argument on the Chris-
tian name alone. Somerled is mentioned more than once
in the Norse Sagas, but never in such a way as to enable
us to affirm, with certainty, what the opinion of the Scan-
dinavian writers was as to his origin. He appears to have
1 MS. History of the Macdonalds, by Hugh Macdonald, a Seannachic
of the end of the 17th century.
•The Norse Somerled) and the Gaelic Somhairle, are both rendered
into the English, Samuel.
HIS ORIGIN. 11
been known to them as Sumarlidi Haulldr,1 and the
impression produced by the passages in which he is
mentioned, is rather against his being considered a
Norseman. It is possible, however, as he was certainly
descended from a noted individual of the name of God-
frey, that his ancestor may have been that Gofra Mac-
Arailt, King of the Isles, who died in 989. But, on the
whole, the uniformity of the Highland and Irish tradi-
tions, which can be traced back at least four hundred
years,2 leads to the conclusion that the account first
given of the origin of Somerled is correct.
It is from tradition alone, as it appears in some of the
genealogical histories of the Macdonalds, that any par-
ticulars of the early life of Somerled can be gathered ;
and it is obvious, that information derived from a source
so liable to error, must be received with .very great cau-
tion. We are told that Gillibrede, the father of Somer-
led, was expelled from his possessions, and that, with his
son, he was forced to conceal himself, for a time, in a
cave in the district of Morvern, whence he is known in
tradition as Gillibrede ixoHn Uaimh, or Gillibrede of the
Cave. From certain circumstances, obscurely hinted at, it
would seem that Gillibrede, after the death of Malcolm
Canmor, had, with the other Celtic inhabitants of Scot-
land, supported Donald Bane, the brother of Malcolm, in
his claim to the Scottish throne, to the exclusion of Ed-
1 Uaulldr, in its strict sense, implies, that the person who bore tho
epithet was a cultivator of the soil, and not of noble birth. Bat it was
very commonly applied as a nickname to kings and nobles, so that no
inference as to the rank or status of Somerled can be drawn from the
use of the word in the present instance.
* Genealogical MS. (in Gaelic) of the loth century, printed in
Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, Vol I., p. 60.
12 RISE AND MARRIAGE OF SOMEULED.
gar, Malcolm's son. Consequently, on the Anal triumph
of the Anglo-Saxon party, Gillibrede would naturally be
exposed to their vengeance in exact proportion to his
power, and to the assistance he had given to the other
party. Of this chief we hear no more; nor are we
informed of the extent of his possessions, or where they
lay, but they are believed to have been on the mainland
of Argyle. Soineiled, when young, was, through an
accident, which is minutely detailed by tradition, drawn
from his obscurity, and placed at the head of the men
of Morvern, collected at the time to resist a band of
Norse pirates, who threatened to ravage the district.
On this occasion Somerled, by his courage and skill,
defeated these fierce marauders; and, soon after, fol-
lowing up this success, recovered his paternal inheritance,
and made himself master of so large a portion of Argyle,
that he thenceforth assumed the title of Lord or Regulus
of Argyle, and became one of the most powerful chiefs
in Scotland. There U every reason to believe, that, by
his talent and braverv, he hud now raised himself to a
higher rank than his father, or any of his immediate
predecessors held. It appears by no means improbable,
too, that Somerled, aware of his own power and resources,
contemplated the conquest of a portion, at least, of the
Isles, to which he may have laid claim through his
remote ancestor, Godfrey. On these, or similar grounds,
Olave the Red, King of Man and the Isles, was natu-
rally desirous to disarm the enmity, and to secure the
support of the powerful Lord of Argyle, whose marriage
Cir. a.d. with Ragnhildis, the daughter of Olave — the
1 140. -first authentic event in the life of Somerled —
seems to have answered this purpose. Of this marriage,
which is lamented bv the author of u The Chronicle of
TYRANNY OF GODI1ED THE BLACK. 13
Man/' as the cause of the ruin of the whole kingdom of
the Isles, the issue was three sons — Dugall, Reginald,
and Angus.1
Olave the Red, after a peaceful reign of forty years,
was murdered in the Isle of Man, by his
nephews, the sons of Harald, who had been
brought up in Dublin, and had made a claim to half
the kingdom of the Isles. Godred the Blacky who
was in Norway at the time of his father's death, returned
to the Isles without delay, and being received with joy
by the Islanders as their King, apprehended and exe-
cuted the murderers. Early in his reign, he was invited
by the Ostmcn of Dublin to rule over them, and was
thus led into wars in Ireland, in which he was success-
ful; but, on his return to Man, thinking that no one
could resist his power, he conducted himself so tyranni-
cally, that he speedily alienated the affections of many
of the insular nobility; — one of the most powerful of
these, Thorfin, the son of Ottar, addressed himself to
Somerled, and demanded from him his son, Dugall, then
a child, the nephew of Godred, whom ho proposed to
make King of the Isles. The ambitious Lord of
Argyle readily entered into the views of Thorfin, who,
with his partisans, carrying Dugall through all the Isles,
except apparently Man itself, forced the inhabitants to
acknowledge him as their king, and took hostages from
them for their obedience. One of the chief islanders,
Faul by name, escaping secretly, fled to the court of
Godred, and made him aware of what had just taken
place. Roused by the emergency, the king collected
1 I follow here the Orkncyinga Saga, p. 383, which is very
explicit, and is a better authority than the Chronicle of Man. The
latter add* a fourth son, O'avc.
14 WARS BETWEEN SOMERLED
a largo fleet, with which he proceeded against the
rebels, who, under the guidance of Somcrled, with a
fleet of eighty galleys, did not decline the encounter.
After a bloody but indecisive action, a treaty
was entered into, by which Godred ceded to
the sons of Somerled what were afterwards called, in
Scottish geography, the South Isles, retaining for him-
self the North Isles and Man. The point of Ardna-
murchan formed the division between the North and
South Isles, so that, by this treaty, Bute, Arran, Isla,
Jura, Mull, and several smaller islands, as wTell as the
district of Kintyre (which, singularly enough, has always
been reckoned among the South Isles),1 although
nominally ceded to the sons of Somerled, were, in reality,
added to the possessions of that warlike chief, who
naturally acted as guardian for his children during their
minority. From this time, says the chronicler, may be
dated the ruin of the Kingdom of the Isles* The
allegiance of all the Isles to Norway seems still to have
been preserved.
Two years after this treaty, Somerled invaded Man
with a fleet of fifty-three ships, and laid the
whole island waste, after routing Godred in
battle. Whether this invasion was in consequence of
1 The origin of this was a stratagem of Magnus Barefoot. After
that prince had invaded and conquered the Isles, he made an
agreement with Malcolm Canmor, by which the latter was to
leave Magnus and his successors in peaceable possession of all the
Isles which could be circumnavigated. The King of Norway had
himself drawn across the narrow isthmus between Kintyre and
Knapdale, in a galley, by which he added the former district to the
Isles. This anecdote has been doubted by some, but it appears in
Magnus Berfaet's Saga, a contemporary work ; and it is certain that,
as late as the commencement of the seventeenth century, Kintyre was
classed by the Scottish government as one of the South Isles.
AND GODRED THE BLACK. 15
any infringement of the treaty by Godred, or whether
it arose from the insatiable ambition of Somerled, is
uncertain; but the power of Godred was so much
broken, that he was compelled to visit Norway to seek
assistance against his rival ; nor did he return to the
Isles till after Somerled's death, from which it may be
inferred that the latter had succeeded in extending his
sway over the whole Isles.
Malcolm IV. was now King of Scotland. To
this prince, Somerled had early made himself ob-
noxious, by espousing the cause of his nephews, the
sons of Wymund or Malcolm MacIIeth, a claimant of
the earldom of Murray, whom it suited the Scottish
government for the time to detain in prison as an im-
postor, but whose claim now seems, on minute inquiry,
to have been well founded.1 Owing to the additional
power which he acquired from the late events in the
Isles, Somerled was enabled, on one occasion, to bring
his contest with the Scottish King to a close by a treaty,
which was considered so important as to form an epoch
from which royal charters were dated.2 From some
cause, which our historians do not sufficiently explain,
this ambitious lord was, ere long, induced again to
declare war against Malcolm, and, assembling a numer-
ous army from Argyle, Ireland, and the Isles, he sailed
up the Clyde with one hundred and sixty galleys, and
landed his forces near Eenfrew, threatening, as some of
the chroniclers inform us, to make a conquest
" " * of the whole of Scotland. Here, according
1 On the first appearance of Malcolm MacHeth, Somerled gave
him hia sister in marriage, which shows the opinion he entertained of
the justice of Malcolm's claims.
3 Sir James Dalrymple's Collections, p. 425.
1G DEATH OF SOMERLED.
to the usual accounts, Somerled was slain, with one of
his sons,1 and his great armament dispersed, with much
loss, by a very inferior force of the Scots. But, from
the well-known character of this celebrated chief, there
seems great reason to believe that tradition is correct,
when it states that he was assassinated in his tent by
an individual in whom he placed confidence, and that
his troops, thus deprived of their leader, returned in
haste to the Isles. In their retreat, they, probably,
suffered much from the Scots, who, if not privy to the
assassination, must have soon learned the disaster that
had befallen the invaders. From the same traditionary
source we learn that the King of Scotland sent a boat,
with the corpse of Somerled, to Icolmkill, at his own
charge; but modern inquiries rather lead to the con-
clusion that he was interred at the Church of Sadale,
in Kintyre, where Reginald, his son, afterwards founded
a monastery. Somerled, according to tradition, was
"a well-tempered man, in body shapely, of a fair
piercing eye, of middle stature, and of quick discern-
ment." 2
Besides the three sons of his marriage with the
daughter of Olave the Red, Somerled had other sons,
who seemed to have shared with their brothers, according
to the then prevalent custom of gavel-kind, the main-
land possessions held by the Lord of Argyll; whilst the
sons, descended of the House of Man, divided amongst
them, in addition, the South Isles, as ceded by Godrcd
in 1156. The Isle of Man, and any other conquests
made by Somerled in the Isles, from 1158 to his death
1 The eon's name was Gillecolane (Gillecallum or Malcolm).—
Hailes' Annals, ad annum 1164.
3 Hugh Macdonald's MS.
THE SONS OF SOMEELED. 17
in 1164, did not remain with his family, but fell again
under the authority of Godred the Black, their proper
ruler, with whose descendants they remained till the
final cession of the Isles to Scotland, a century later.
In the division of the South Isles, Mull, Coll, Tiree,
and Jura, seem to have fallen to the share of Dugall ;
teh, and Kintyre to that of Reginald; and Bute (which,
from its position, was peculiarly exposed to the aggres-
sions of the Scots) to Angus. Arran was, perhaps,
divided between the two latter, and may have been the
cause of the deadly quarrel which, we know, existed
between them ; for, in 1192, the Chronicle of Man
mentions a battle between Reginald and Angus, in
which the latter obtained the victory. Eighteen years
later, we learn, on the same authority, that Angus was
killed, with his three sons, by the men of Skyo ; after
which, it is probable, that Argyle and the South Isles
were exclusively divided between Dugall and Reginald,
tho latter of whom bestowed Bute and part of Kintyre
upon his son Roderick, or Ruari, who became the
founder of a distinct family, which afterwards became
very powerful in the Isles. Both Dugall and Reginald
were called Kings of the Isles at the same time that
Reginald, the son of Godred the Black, was styled
King of Man and the Isles ; and, in the next genera-
tion, we find, in a Norse chronicle, mention of three
Kings of the Isles, of the raoe of Souaerled, existing at
one time.1 It is evident, therefore, that the word king,
as used by the Norwegians and their vassals in the
Isles, was not confined, as in Scotland, to one supremo
1 Anecdotes of Olave the Black, edited by Johnston. This chronicle
informs us that the Sudureyan Kings, of the family of Somerled, ware
very untrue to King JEJaeo.
o
IS THEIR DESCENDANTS.
ruler, but that it had with them an additional meaning,
corresponding either to prince of the blood-royal or to
magnate. Many seannachies or genealogists, in later
times, being ignorant of, or having overlooked this dis-
tinction, have, by means of the expression King of the
Isles, been led to represent those whom they style the
direct heirs or successors of Somerled, through his son
Reginald, and who alone, according to them, bore the
royal title, as holding a rank very different from that
which they actually held.
It would occupy too much space here to enter mi-
nutely into the history of the immediate descendants of
Somerled prior to the great expedition of Haco, King
of Norway ; — suffice it to say, that from Bang Dugall
sprung the great House of ArgyU and Lorn, patro-
nymically Macdugall,1 which, at the time of Haco's
expedition, was represented by Dugall's grandson,
Ewin, commonly called King Ewin, and sometimes,
erroneously, King John. From King Reginald, on the
other hand, sprang two great families, that of Isla,
descended from his son Donald, and therefore patro-
nymically styled Macdonald; and that of Bute, de-
scended from his son Ruari, already mentioned, and
therefore patronymically styled Macruari.2 At the
date of Haco's expedition, we find that the family of
Isla was represented by Angus, the son of Donald (the
Angus Mor of the Seannachies); that of Bute by
Ruari himself and his sons, Allan and Dugall. It
appears that most, if not all of the descendants of So-
1 This family used generally the territorial surname of ude Ergadia"
or " of Argylc."
3 Both the Macdonalds and Macruaries used the territorial surnames
of " de Yla? or " of Isla," and " de Insulis," or " of the Isles."
\
THE SCOTS ACQUIRE BUTE. 19
merled, had, for a century after his death, a divided
allegiance, holding part of their lands, those in the Isles,
from the King of Norway; their mainland domains
heing, at the same time, held of the King of Scotland.
The latter, whose power was now gradually increasing,
could not be expected long to allow the Isles to remain
dependent on Norway, without making an effort to
conquer them. . The first footing obtained by the Scots
in the Isles was, apparently, soon after the death of
Somerled, when the Steward of Scotland seized the
Isle of Bute. That Island seems after this to have
changed masters several times, and, along with Kin-
tyre, to have been a subject of dispute between the
Scots and Norwegians, whilst, in the course of these
quarrels, the family of the Steward strengthened their
claims, by marriage, in the following manner. We
have seen that Angus MacSomerlcd (who is supposed
to have been Lord of Bute), and his three sons, were
killed in 1210 ; nor does it appear that Angus had any
other male issue. James, one of these sons, left a
daughter and heiress, Jane, afterwards married to
Alexander, the son and heir of Walter, the High
Steward of Scotland, who, in her right, claimed the
Isle of Bute, and, perhaps, Arran also.1 This claim
was naturally resisted by Ruari, the son of Reginald,
till the dispute was settled for a time by his expulsion,
1 In the traditions of the Stewarts, this lady's grandfather is called
Angus Mac /frrie, which, as I conceive, is an error for Angus MacSwr/ie
— the latter being the way in which MacSomerled (spelt MacSomhairle)
is pronounced in Gaelic. That there was, about this time, a matrimonial
alliance between the house of Stewart and that of Isla, is probable
from a dispensation in 1342, for the marriage of two individuals of
these families, as being within the forbidden degrees. Andrew
Stewart's " Hist, of the Stewarts," p. 433.
20 EXPEDITION OF HACO.
and the seizure of Bute and Atran by the Scots.
Their success here encouraged the latter to further
encroachments, and it is well known that Alexander
II. died on the coast of Argyleshire, while leading
an expedition against the Isles. Although this event
suspended for a time the projects of the Scots, they
were by no means forgotten, but, on the contrary, were
resumed in the course of a few years. Early in the
reign of Alexander III., Angus, the son of Donald,
and Lord of Isla, was closely pursued by
that King, because ho would not consent to
become a vassal of Scotland for the lands he held of
Norway. The complaints of Ruari of Bute, and the
other Islanders, to the Norwegian court, of the aggres-
sions of the Scots, led to Haco's celebrated expedition,
in which, without difficulty, he made himself master of
such of the Isles as had been conquered by
A. D. 1263. *
the Scots, and restored Bute to Ruari, who
had long been in Norway, seeking assistance from
him, and had accompanied him on this expedition .
These triumphs were, however, of short duration. The
Norwegians, not content with re-establishing their au-
thority in the Isles, proceeded to ravage the neighbour-
/ ing districts of Scotland, and, while thus occupied, at a
Nate season of the year, suffered severely from storms,
which, joined to a check they received at Largs, in an
attempt to make a descent on Ayrshire, caused them to
retire to the Orkneys, where Haco soon after died.
Alexander III. immediately took advantage of this
circumstance, and resumed his projects against the
Isles with such success, that, on the death of
Magnus, King of Man (a descendant of God-
red the Black), Magnus of Norway, the successor of
/
CESSION OF THE ISLES TO SCOTLAND. 21
Haco, was induced to cede all the Western Isles to
Scotland. One of the articles of the important treaty
by which this cession was made, provided that a certain
annual sum should be paid by Scotland to Norway, in
consideration of the latter yielding up all claim to the
Isles. Another declared that such of the subjects of
Norway as were inclined to quit the Hebrides, should
have full liberty to do so, with all their effects, whilst
those who preferred remaining, were to become sub-
jects of Scotland. To this latter class, the
King of Norway, in fulfilment of his part
of the treaty, addressed a mandate, enjoining them
henceforth to serve and obey the King of Scotland, as
their liege lord; and it was further arranged, that none
of the Islanders were to be punished for their former
adherence to the Norwegians.1
1 The preceding portion of this introductory sketch has been
drawn up with great pains, from the best authorities to which I
have had an opportunity of referring; and much has been done to
rectify the chronology. Want of space has prevented my quoting
these authorities more minutely. I may here mention, generally,
the authorities I allude to: — Caledonia, Vol. I., and the Roman
authors there referred to; the efirly Scottish Chronicles, printed
in the Appendix to Innes's Critical Essay, and elsewhere ; the early
Irish Chronicles, or Annals, printed in the Scriptorcs Rerum Hiber- '
nicarum ; the Scriptorcs Rerum Danicarum; the Orkneyinga Saga;
Magnus Berfaet's Saga; Chronicle of Man; Anecdotes of Olave
the Black; Expedition of King Haco in 12G3 ; Rymer's Fcedera
Angliac; the Saxon Chronicle; CoUectanea rfo Rphim Alhanimg »
Dr. M&cpberson's Dissertations ; Mr. Dillon's Observations on the ~
'Norse Aecotmfr tjMtaco's Expedition, in the Archaeologia Scotica,
Vol. II. ; Lord Hailes* (Sir David Dalrymple's) Annals ; Duncan
Stewart's History of the Stewarts, &c, &c. I must hero acknow-
ledge the valuable assistance which I have received from my colleague
and friend, William F. Skene, Esq., not only in the researches
which were rendered necessary by my undertaking the present
22 THE ISLANDERS BECOME
During these transactions, the position of the descend-
ants of Somerled was rather singular. Ewin of Lorn,
who, in 1240, had refused to join the Scots, attached
himself, in 12G3, to Alexander III. ; but, at the same
time, honourably resigned into the hands of Haco all
that he held of the crown of Norway. On the other
hand, Angus of Isla, who had previously been made to
give hostages to Alexander, was, on the arrival of Haco
in the Isles, forced to join the Norwegians in person.
Ruari of Bute and his sons were devoted partisans of
Haco. The treaty of cession seems to have been acted
on, in a libend manner, by the Scottish king. Ewin of
Lorn was, of course, restored to the lands he had for-
merly held of Norwajr, and further rewarded for his
services. Angus of Isla, having determined to remain
in the Isles, became, according to the treaty, a vassal
of Scotland for his lands there, and was allowed to
retain, under a single king, all that ho had formerly
held under two. Lastly, the sons of Ruari, although
forced to resign Bute, had lands assigned to them (on
their agreeing to remain subjects of Scotland) in that
portion of the Isles which had belonged to the King of
Man. Hence this family came to be st^ed Macruaries
of the North Isles; and, on the death of Dugall, called
Rex Ilebudum, one of the brothers,1 Allan,
A. D. 1268. . . . _ . . . .
the survivor, united, in his person, the posses-
sions of both, to which afterwards he appears to have
added the Lordship of Garmoran, on the mainland.
The Isles of Skye and Lewis were conferred upon the
work, but in all the historical inquiries which I have had occasion to
make for several years past.
1 Langebeck, Scriptores Rerum Danicarum, vol. III., p. 109.
SUBJECTS OF SCOTLAND. 23
Earl of Ross,1 no part of these islands, or of Man,
Arran, and Bate, being granted by Alexander III. to
the descendants of Somerled. Of these descendants,
there were, in 1285, three great noblemen, all holding
extensive possessions in the Isles, as well as on the
mainland, who attended in that Scottish
Parliament by which the crown was settled on
the Maiden of Norway. Their names were, Alexander
de Ergadia of Lorn (son of Ewin of Lorn), Angus, the
son of Donald, and Allan, the son of Euari.2 From the
nature of the treaty in 1266, it is obvious that these
individuals were vassals of the King of Scotland for all
their possessions, and not merely for what they held on
the mainland, as some have supposed. It is further
clear, that, at this time, none of the three bore the title
of Lord of the Isles, or could have been properly so
considered; and it is equally certain, that the first
individual whom we find assuming the style of Lord of
the Isles, in its modern signification, possessed all those
Isles, and very nearly all those mainland estates, which,
in 1285, were divided among three powerful noblemen
of the same blood. But of this hereafter. From the
preceding remarks, it will readily be perceived that
the boasted independence of the modern Lords of the
Isles is without historical foundation. Prior to 1260,
the Isles were subject to Norway; at that date, the
treaty of cessiop. transferred them to Scotland; and,
ever since, they have remained subject to tho latter
crown, notwithstanding successive rebellions, instigated
in every case by the government of England, in order
to embarrass the Scots.
i p^— *WEJnriFT frt M"«5*frfl,,^'^hflrfr™j p. 124, No. 26.
s
24 THE INTERREGNUM ; AM> THE
la the series of struggles for Scottish independence,
which marked the close of the thirteenth and the open-
ing of the fourteenth centuries, the Lords of Lorn, who
were closely connected by marriage with the Comyn and
Bulliol party, naturally arrayed themselves in opposition
to the claims of Bruce. On the other hand, the houses
of Isla and of the North Isles supported, with all their
power, the apparently desperate fortunes of King Robert
L;1 and thus, when he came to be firmly seated on the
throne, had earned the gratitude of that Prince, in the
same proportion as the family of Lorn, by the inveteracy
of their hostility, had provoked his resentment. On the
>ft>rfeiture of Alexander, Lord of Lorn, and his son and
heir John, their extensive territories were granted by
Bruce to various of his supporters; and, amongst others,
to Angus Oig, i.€.y Junior, of Isla, and to Roderick or
Ruari MacAlan, the bastard brother and leader of the
vassals of Christina, the daughter and heiress of Alan
MacRuari of the North Isles.2 The Isles of Mull (the
possession of which had, for some time past, been disputed
betwixt the Lords of Isla and Lorn), Jura, Coll, and Tiree,
with the districts of Duror and Glenco, fell, in this way,
to the share of Angus Oig. Lorn Proper, or the greatest
part of it, was bestowed on Roderick MacAlan, to whom
his sister Christina gave, at the same time, a large por-
tion of her inheritance in Garmoran and the North
Isles.3 The Lordship of Lochaber, forfeited by one of
the powerful family of Comyn, seems to have been
divided between Angus Oig and Roderick. The former
1 Barbour's Bruce ; Fordun a Goodal, II., p. 234. Angus of Isla
joined the party of Bruce as early as 1286 ; Ty tier's Scotland, I. 65.
2 Robertson's Index, p. 2, No. 51, 52, 54 ; p. 26, No. 23.
3 Charter in Haddington's MS. Collections, Adv. Library.
REIGN OF ROBERT BRUCE. 25
likewise obtained, in this reign, the lands of Morvern1
and Ardnamurchan, which seem previously to have been
in the hands of the crown. But while Bruce thus re-
warded his faithful adherents, he was too sensible of the
weakness of Scotland on the side of the Isles, not to
take precautionary measures against the possible defec-
tion of any of the great families on that coast, who
might with ease admit au English force into the heart
of the kingdom. He procured from Angus Oig, who was*
now, apparently, the principal crown vassal in Kintyre,
the resignation of his lands in that district, which were
immediately bestowed upon Robert, the son and heir of
Walter the High Steward, and the Princess Marjory
Bruce.2 At the same time, the fortifications of the
Castle of Tarbert, between Kintyre and Knapdale, the
most important position on the coast of Argyleshire,
were greatly enlarged and strengthened, and the custody
of this commanding post was committed to a royal
garrison.3 Following out the same policy in other
places, the keeping of the Castle of Dunstaffnage, the
principal messuage of Lorn, was given by Bruce, not to
Roderick MacAlan, the "High Chief of Lorn," but to
an individual of the name of Campbell, who was placed
there as a royal constable.4
Towards the end of Brace's reign, Roderick MacAlan,
of Lorn and the North Isles, was forfeited of
A- D. i^2<\.
all his possessions, for engaging in some of
the plots which, at that period, occupied the attention
1 The district now called Morvern was, in former times, it would
appear, known as Keualban, or the promontory of Alban or Scotland.
2 Robertson's Index, p. l^H, No. 32.
8 High Treasurer's Accounts, temp. Rob. I.
4 Robertson's Index, p. 14.
26 JOHN OF ISLA.
and called forth the energies of that celebrated King.1
On this occasion, it is probable that Angus Oig, whose
loyalty never wavered, received further additions to his
already extensive possessions; and before Bang Robert's
death, the house of Isla was already the most powerful
in Argylc and the Isles. Angus Oig and his munificent
patron died about the same time; but John of Isla, the
son and heir of the former, was far from exhibiting the
same devoted loyalty to the House of Bruce which had
characterised his father.
When the star of Edward Balliol was in the ascen-
dant, John of the Isles was induced to join that party,
owing, in some measure, to Ms prospect of losing many
of the lands granted to his father by Robert Bruce, even
if he should remain neuter in the struggle which was
going on. To secure so important an adherent, Balliol,
besides granting to him nearly the whole of
' ' ° ' the territories which Angus Oig had possessed
at his death, gave, in addition, the lands of Kintyre and
Knapdalc, and the Isles of Skye and Lewis, which the
expected forfeiture of the High Steward and his rela-
tions, and of the Earl of Ross, was to place at the
disposal of the pseudo-King.2 On the return of David
II. from France, after the final discomfiture
of Balliol and his supporters, John of the
Isles was naturally exposed to the hostility of the Stew-
ard and the other nobles of the Scottish party, by whose
advice he seems to have been forfeited, when many of his
lands were granted to one of his relations, Angus Mac-
Ian, progenitor of the house of Ardnamurchan.8 This
1 Robertson's Index, p. 28.
» Rymer's Fcedera, IV., 711.
8 Ch. in Haddington's Collections, Adv. Library.
FIRST LORD OF THE ISLES. 27
grant did not, however, take effect ; and such was the
resistance offered by John and his kinsman, Reginald
or Ranald, son of Roderick MacAIan (who had been
restored, in all probability, by Balliol, to the lands for-
feited by his father), and so anxious was David at the
time to bring the whole force of his kingdom together
in his intended wars with England, that he
at length pardoned both these powerful chiefs,
and confirmed to them the following possessions : — To
John, he gave the Isles of Isla, Gigha, Jura, Scarba,
Colonsay, Mull, Coll, Tiree, and Lewis, and the districts
of Mervern, Lochaber, Duror, and Glenco ; to Ranald,
the Isles of Uist, Barra, Egg, and Rum, and the Lord-
ship of Garmoran, being the original possessions of his
family in the north.1 By this arrangement, Kintyre,
Knapdale, and Skye, reverted to their former owners,
and Lorn remained in the hands of the Crown, whilst it
is probable that Ardnamurchan was given as a compen-
sation to Angus Maclan.
Soon after this time, Ranald MacRuari
j4 * was killed at Perth, in a quarrel between him
and the Earl of Ross, from whom he held the lands of
Kintail. As he left no issue, his sister, Amie, the wife
of John of Isla, became, in terms of the above-men-
tioned grant from David II., his heir; and her husband,
uniting her possessions to his own, assumed henceforth
the style of Dominies I>isularum9 or Lord of the Isles.2
1 Robertson's Index, p. 100. The Lordship of Garmoran (also
called Garbhchrioch) comprehends the districts of Moydert, Arasaig,
Morar, and Knoydert.
2 The first recorded instance of this stylo being used by John of
Isla is in an indenture with the Lord of Lorn, 1354. — Appendix to
"Hailes' Annals of Scotland,1' 2nd edition. This indenture, a very
remarkable deed, does not appear either in the first or third edition of \
these annals.
S
28 JOHN, LOBD OF THE ISLES.
Thus was formed the modern Lordship of the Isles,
comprehending the territories of the Macdonalds of Isla,
and the Macruaries of the North Isles, and a great part
of those of the Macdugalls of Lorn; and although
the representative of the latter family was nominally
restored to the estates of his ancestors on the occasion
of his marriage with a niece of the King,1 yet he was
obliged to leave the Lord of the Isles in possession of
such portion of the Lorn estates as had been granted to
the latter by David in 1344. The daughter and heiress
of John de Ergadia, or Macdugall, the restored Lord of
Lorn, carried Lorn Proper to her husband, Robert
Stewart, founder of the Rosyth family, by whom the
Lordship was sold to his brother, John Stewart of Inner-
ineath, ancestor of the Stewarts, Lords of Lorn.2
After the reconciliation of David II. and John of
Isla in 1334, we can trace various attempts, on the part
of the English government, to withdraw the latter from
his allegiance, all of which seem to have failed.3 In
the later years of David's reign, the Lord of the Isles
was again in rebellion; nor was he reduced to obedience
without much difficulty. The records of the period,
however, show that his turbulence at this time was not
the result of English intrigue, but connected with a
general resistance, on the part of the Highlanders, to some
of the fiscal measures of the Scottish government.4 The
second reconciliation of the Lord of the Isles with David
II. took place in 1369, a year before the death of that
King; and, from this time till his death, in the reign of
Robert II., he conducted himself as a lojral and obedient
1 Robertson a Index, p. 30.
2 Inventory of Argyle Writs, title Lorn.
3 Rymcr'a Foedera, V., 530, 849. Rotuli Scoti®, I., 677.
4 Ancient Book of Record, quoted by Mr. Tytler, Vol. II., p. 109.
I
HIS MARRIAGES. 20
subject. Having thus given a brief sketch of the public
history of John, first Lord of the Isles, under the reigns
of David IL and Robert II., it now becomes necessary
to allude to his private history during the same period.
He married, as we have mentioned, Araie Macruari,
heiress of that family ; l and his sons by this marriage
were John, Godfrey, and Ranald. The eldest of these
sons was dead before 1369, leaving issue, Angus, who
did not long survive. Of the others we shall afterwards
have occasion more particularly to speak. Notwith-
standing that he had, in right of Amie his wife, succeeded
to such extensive possessions, the Lord of the Isles
divorced that lady,2 and married, secondly, the Lady
Margaret, daughter to Robert, High Steward of Scot-
land. Of this marriage there were likewise three
sons — viz., Donald, John, and Alexander. We cannot
fix precisely the date of this second marriage ; but it
must have taken place in tbe reign of David II., as
Donald, the eldest son, was named as a hostage by his
father in 1369. It is probable that the Lord of the
Isles, and his father-in-law, the Steward, had come to a
secret understanding before the marriage, on which they
afterwards acted, when, at the death of David, the
Steward ascended the throne by the title of
Robert IL Certain it is, that, after that event,
the destination of the Lordship of the Isles was altered,
so as to cause it to descend to the grandchildren of the
1 The dispensation for this marriage was dated in 1S37 ; Andrew
Stewart's History of the Stewarts, p. 446.
* It seems clear, from the unvarying tradition of the country, that
the Lady Amie had given no grounds for this divorce. She dwelt
on her own estates till her death ; and is said to have built the Castles
of Elanterira in Moydert, and Borve in Benbecula.
30 DONALD, SECOND LORD OF THE ISLES,
King.1 Aware that his right to Garmoran and the
North Isles was annulled by the divorqc of his first wife,
the Lord of the Isles, disregarding her claims, and trusting
to his influence with the King, his father-in-law, procured
a royal charter of the lands in question, in which her name
was not even mentioned. Godfrey, the eldest son of the
Lord of the Isles, by his first wife, resisted these unjust
proceedings — maintaining his mother's prior claims, and
his own as her heir; but Ranald, his younger brother,
being more pliant, was rewarded by a grant of the
North Isles, Garmoran, and many other lands,
J' to hold of John, Lord of the Isles, and his
heirs.- Such was the state of affairs in the Lordship of
the Isles at the death of the first Lord. He
'died at his own castle of Ardtornish, in Mor-
vern, and was buried inlona, with great splendour, by
the ecclesiastics of the Isles,8 whose attachment he had
obtained by liberal grants to the Church, and who
evinced their gratitude, by bestowing on him the appel-
lation, which tradition has handed down to our days, of
" the good John of Isla." 4
Donald, the eldest son of the second marriage,
became, on his father's death, second Lord of the
Isles, and in that capacity was, most undoubtedly, feudal
y/ superior and actual chief of his brothers, whether of
the full or of the half blood. He married Mary Leslie,
1 This appears from various charters in the public records, soon
after the accession of Robert II.
2 Reg. of Great Seal, Rot III., No. 18.
s Macvurich's MS. in Gaelic, commonly, but erroneously, called
the Red Book of Clanranald.
4 Sec Dean Monro's Genealogies, written in tho sixteenth cen-
tury.
CLAIMS THE EARLDOM OF ROSS. 31
who afterwards became Countess of Boss, and his con-
test with the Regent Duke of Albany, regarding that
Earldom, in the course of which the battle
. 141 1. ^ garjaw wag f0Ugh^ js i00 weu known to
require repetition here. It is only necessary to remark,
that the whole array of the Lordship of the Isles
followed him on that occasion, and that .he was not
weakened by any opposition, on the part of his elder
brothers or their descendants, which certainly might
have been looked for. Ranald, the youngest, but most
favoured son of the first marriage of the good John,
was, as the scannachies tell us, " old in the govern-
ment of the Isles at his father's death." After that
event, he acted as tutor or guardian to his younger
brother, Donald, Lord of the Isles, to whom, on his
attaining majority, he delivered over the Lordship, in
presence of the vassals, " contrary to the opinion of
the men of the Isles," * who, doubtless, considered God-
frey as their proper Lord. On the death of Ranald,
who did not long survive his father, his children, then
young, were dispossessed by their uncle Godfrey, who
assumed the style of Lord of Uist (which, with Gar-
moran, he actually possessed), but never questioned
the claims of Donald to the Lordship of the Isles.2
If the opinion of the Islanders was, at first, really in
favour of Godfrey, the liberality of Donald seems soon
to have reconciled them to the rule of the latter; at
least, there is no trace, after this time, of any opposi-
tion among them to Donald, or his descendants. As
1 Macvurich's MS.
* Charter by Godfridus de Insula, Dominus do - Uist, to the
monastery of. Inchaffray, in 1888 ; dated, " apud castrum nostrum
de Elantyrim : " Chartnlary of Inchaffray.
32 HIS BROTHERS.
the claim of " Donald of Harlaw," to the Earldom of
Ross, in right of his wife, was, after his death, virtually
admitted by King James I., and as Donald himself
was actually in possession of that Earldom, and acknow-
ledged by the vassals in 1411, he may, without impro-
priety, be called the first Earl of Ross of his family.
To his brothers of the full blood, he gave ample terri-
tories, as his vassals; and each of them became the
founder of a powerful family. The eldest, John Mor,
or John the Tanister, as he was called, was the proge-
nitor of a numerous tribe, called the Clandonald of the
South, or the Clan Ian Mhor of Isla and Kintyre,
where their hereditary possessions lay. Alexander, or
Allaster Carrach, the youngest of the brothers, was
styled Lord of Lochaber ; and from him descended the
Macdonalds of Keppoch, or, as they are sometimes
styled, the Clanranald of Lochaber. After the death
of John, Lord of the Isles, we discover various indica-
tions that the intrigues of the English court with the
Scottish Islanders had been resumed; and it is not
altogether improbable, that it was a suspicion of these
treasonable practices which caused the Regent, Robert
of Albany, to oppose, the pretensions of Donald, Lord
of the Isles, to the Earldom of Ross.1 But, although
English emissaries were, on various occasions, des-
patched, not only to the Lord of the Isles himself, but
to his brothers, Godfrey and John — and two of the
brothers even appear to have visited the English court
— we cannot, at this distance of time, ascertain how far
these intrigues were carried. Donald, second Lord of
i Hymens Fcrdera, VIII., 146, 418, 527. Rotuli Scotise, II., 94,
155.
ALEXANDER, EARL OF BOSS. 33
the Isles, had issue, by the heiress of Koss, Alexander,
cir. a. d. hk successor, and Angus, afterwards Bishop
1420. of the Isles; and, dying in Isla, he was
interred at Iona with the usual ceremonies.1
The history of Alexander, third Lord of the Isles,
and second Earl of Ross, of his line, is given, with
tolerable accuracy, by the writers of the period ; as his
high rank, and his relationship* to the sovereign, give
him a prominent place in the annals of the reign of
James L The policy of this King was, in every respect,
opposed to that of the family of Albany; and, conse-
quently, when the Earldom of ' Ross, which had been
procured by Duke Robert for his son, John, Earl of
Buchan, fell to the crown, by the death of
that nobleman,2 King James at once restored
it to the heiress of line, the mother of the Lord of the
Isles. In the following year, Alexander, Lord of the
Isles, and Master of the Earldom of Ross,
"sat upon the jury which condemned to death
Murdoch, Duke of Albany, his sons, and the aged Earl
of Lennox;3 but he did not long retain the favour
which, at this time, he seems to have enjoyed. To
understand, however, the position in which the Lord of
the Isles was placed when we first find him at variance
with the King, it is necessary to turn, for a while, to the
history of some of the branches of the family of the Isles.
1 Macvurich's MS.
2 John Stewart, Earl of Buchan and Ross, was killed at the battle of
Verneuil in France, in 1424.
* Bower's Continuation of Fordun's Scotichronicon ; Edit. Ilcamc,
IV., p. 1271. The historian styles him loosely Earl of Ross, in 1425 ;
but, from a charter granted by him two years later, we find that his
proper style, at this time, was "Magister Comitatus Rossise." — Uig. of
Great Seal, XE, 188.
6
34 SIOL GORRIE AND CLANRANALD.
It has been mentioned that Godfrey, Lord of TJist,
on the death of his younger brother, Ranald, asserted
successfully his claim to the North Isles and Garmoran,
from which he had been unjustly excluded by his father.
Both Godfrey and Ranald left male issue, who must
naturally have been opposed to each other, like their
fathers; but the meagre notices which we possess of
the domestic feuds in the Highlands and Isles at this
period, do not enable us to trace the progress of these
dissensions. We may readily conceive, however, that,
where so rich a prize was in dispute, much blood would
be shed, and many atrocities committed. The issue
of Godfrey, or the Siol Gorrie, as they were called,
must, for a time, have acquired a superiority over the
Clanranald — so the descendants of Ranald were styled ;
at least, under the year 1427, we find mention made,
by a contemporary historian, of Alexander MacGorrie
of Garmoran, described as a leader of two thousand
men.1 But, in addition to the causes of disturbance
arising from the rival claims of two families so closely
connected with the Lord of the Isles, there were other
circumstances which tended to involve that nobleman
in feuds which his disposition led him to settle by the
sword, rather than by an appeal to the laws. A certain
John Macarthur, of the family of Campbell, and a leader
of note in the Highlands, seems to have revived about
this time a claim which one of his ancestors had
acquired to a portion of Garmoran and the North
1 He is generally called by our historians, "MacRoari," which sur-
name he seems to have assumed from his father's maternal ancestors ;
or, which is most probable, "MacRorie,n as it is frequently written,
may be an error for "MacGorrie." Hugh Macdonald states distinctly
in his MS. that Gorrie had a son, Allaster. < ■
PARLIAMENT AT INVERNESS. 35
Isles;1 and it is not difficult to conjecture what recep-
tion such pretensions would meet with from the Lord
of the Isles and his warlike vassals. The event, how-
ever, that seems to have had most effect in throwing
the Highlands and Isles into confusion, was the murder
of John, Lord of Isla and Kintyre, uncle to the Lord
of the Isles, by an individual called James Campbell.
The latter is said to have received a commission from
the King to apprehend John of Isla ; but it is added,
that he exceeded his powers in putting that chief to
death.2 When we consider the lawless state in which
even the more accessible parts of Scotland were found
by King James, owing to the weakness and incapacity
of the Regent Murdoch, Duke of Albany, we can
easily conceive how the circumstances above alluded
to should have raised disturbances in the Highlands
and Isles, which it might require all the energy of the
King to suppress.
Determined to restore order, and to enforce
42 ' the laws, James held a Parliament at Inver-
ness, to which the Lord of the Isles, who is described
as the principal disturber of the public peace, and the
other great Highland chiefs, were summoned. On their
arrival at Inverness, they were, to the number of forty,
seized by a stratagem of the King, and committed to
separate prisons. Some, whose crimes were most noto-
rious, were immediately brought to trial, condemned,
and executed; and of this number were Alexander
1 Charter by Christina, daughter of Alan (MacRuari) to Arthur,
son of Sir Arthur Campbell, knight, early in the fourteenth century,
of the lands of Moydert, &c. This charter is quoted for the witnesses'
names in a MS. History of tho Macnaughtons in the Adrocates'
Library.
' Hugh Macdonald's MS.
3(5 SEVERITY OF JAMES I.
MacGorrie of Garmoran, and John Macarthur. At
the same time, James Campbell was hanged for the
murder of John of Isla, as if to show the impartiality
of the Sovereign. Others, whose guilt was not at first
so apparent, were detained in prison for some time,
and then executed; but the greater number, and among
them the Lord of the Isles, were liberated without
more severe punishment than was implied in their
imprisonment for various periods, according to the mag-
nitude of their offences.1 The Lord of the Isles, by
his conduct after his liberation, showed that he felt
deeply the indignity he had suffered. The death of
his mother2 had now made him Earl of Ross; and soon
after his return from prison, he summoned together his
vassals, both of Ross and the Isles; wasted
A T) 14.20
the Crown lands near Inverness, at the head
of a force of ten thousand men; and then burned the
town of Inverness to the ground. No sooner had
information of this inroad reached the King, than, with
his characteristic promptitude, he prepared to vindicate
his insulted authority. Leading in person some troops
1 Bower a Hearne, IV., pp. 1283-1. Chronicle of the Earls of
Ross, printed in the Miscellanea Scotica. Among the other chief.-*
mentioned, are, " Mah Mohan," that is, MacMahon or Mathewson of
Lochalsh, leader of one thousand men ; and a certain "Kenneth Moire,1'
whom I conjecture to have been the chief, for the time, of the Mac-
kenzies, although omitted in the MS. histories of that family, probably
from his leaving no issue.
3 In 1429, the Countess of Ross, being charged with encouraging
her son in his violent proceedings, was arrested and confined at Inch-
colm, in the Frith of Forth, where she is said to have remained fourteen
months a prisoner. Bower a Hearne, IV., p. 1226. This is hardly
reconcilable with a charter, dated 24th October, 1429, in which her son
styles himself Earl instead of Master of Ross. Sutherland additional
ease, cap. v., p. 30.
REBELLION AND HUMILIATION OF UOSS. 37
hastily collected, he succeeded, by forced marches, in
coming up with the rebels, who were then in Lochaber,
at a time when he was least expected. On the appear-
ance of the royal banner, the Clanchattan and Clan-
chameron, two potent tribes that supported the Earl of
Ross, went over to the King, who, following up his
advantage, attacked and routed the rebels, pursuing
them so hotly that their leader was glad to sue for
peace. James, however, sternly refused to enter into
a negotiation with his rebellious subject, on any other
footing than that of an unconditional surrender ; and
returned to his capital, after giving strict orders to his
officers, that every effort should be made to apprehend
the fugitive Earl. The latter, at length, driven to
despair by the activity of his pursuers, adopted the
resolution of throwing himself on the mercy of his
Sovereign. Upon the eve of a solemn festival, this
haughty nobleman presented himself before the King,
who, and the Queen and Court, were assembled in
the church of Holyrood. He was clothed only in his
shirt and drawers ; he held his naked sword by the
point in his hand, and, with a countenance and manner
in which destitution and misery were strongly exhibited,
he fell upon his knees, and, surrendering his sword,
implored the royal clemency. His life was spared, but
he was committed to close ward in the Castle of Tan-
tallon, under the oharge of William Earl of Angus.1
While the Earl of lloss was still in prison,
the Royal forces which, under the Earls of Mar
and Caithness, occupied Lochaber, in order to overawe the
clans of the west, were surprised and routed by a body of
the latter, under a leader named Donald Balloch. This
1 Bower a Hearnc, IV., p. 1286. Chronicle of the Earls of Ross.
38 RENEWED REBELLION IN THE ISLES.
chief was the cousin-german of the Earl of Ross ; being^
the son of that John of Isla who, as formerly men-
tioned, was murdered by James Campbell. The news
of the battle of Inverlochy, in which the Earl of
Caithness, and many of the royal troops, were killed,
and the Earl of Mar was severely wounded, was re-
ceived with great indignation by the King, who imme-
diately prepared to punish the aggressors. Having
procured from his Parliament a land tax, to defray the
expenses of the expedition, he soon made his appear-
ance at the Royal Castle of Dunstaffnage, in Lorn,
with the avowed intention of proceeding to the Isles,
to inflict exemplary punishment on Donald Balloch and
his followers. That chief, after ravaging the lands
of the Clanchattan and Clanchameron, had quitted
Lochaber, and, on the approach of the King, fled to
Ireland.1 The other leaders of the insurgents, dread-
ing the determined character of James, came to meet
him at Dunstaffnage, eager to make their submission,
and to throw the whole blame of the insurrection upon
Donald Balloch, whose power, as they affirmed, they
had not dared to resist. By their means, a number of
the most noted robbers in the West Highlands and
Isles were seized and led to immediate execution ; and
the peace of that part of the country secured
J " for some time to come, by the activity and
determination of the King.2 On the return of James
to Edinburgh, a head, said to be that of Donald Bal-
loch, was sent to him by Hugh Buy O'Neill, an Irish
1 It may be noticed here that Donald Balloch inherited, through
his mother, Margery Bisset, the territory of the Glens in Antrim.
a Tytler's Scotland, ILL 277-9. Buchanan, b. X., c. 33-36; Chronicle
of the Earls of Ross. Hugh Macdonald's MS.
\
ltOSS PARDONED AND RESTORED. 30
chief of Ulster; and it was generally believed at the
Scottish Court that the ringleader of the late insurrec-
tion was now no more. But, as Donald Balloch
certainly survived King James many years, it is obvious
that the sending of the head to Edinburgh was a
stratagem devised by the crafty Islander, in order to
check further pursuit. It is only necessary to mention
further, in connection with this brief rebellion, that
Alexander of Lochaber, uncle of the Earl of Ross,
seems to have been deprived of his lands for assisting
Donald Balloch; and that Ross, as superior of the
lands, was compelled by the King to bestow them upon
the captain of the Clanchattan, Malcolm Macintosh.
As Ross, after a captivity of about two years in the
Castle of Tantallon, received in this year a free
pardon in Parliament for all his crimes,1 it is probable
that he was not considered in any way answerable for
the insurrection of Donald Balloch and its conse-
quences. From this time, to the death of James I.,
he seems to have continued loyal, duly appreciating, as
we may suppose, the lenity shown to him by a prince
celebrated for the unbending rigour of his government.
In the minority of James II., the Earl of Ross held
the important office of Justiciar of Scotland,
4 " north oftheForth;2 an office which he probably
obtained from Archibald, Earl of Douglas and Duke
of Touraine, Lieutenant-General of the kingdom. In
what manner Ross exercised this office is uncertain ;
but it was, perhaps, under colour of it that he wreaked
i Bower a Hearae, IV., p. 1288.
* Charters in the Ch. Chest of Innes, a.d. 1438; the Ch. Chest
of Urguhart of Cromarty, 1439; and the Chartulary of Aberdeen,
1442.
40 EOSS JOINS WITH DOUGLAS AND CRAWFORD.
his vengeance on the chief of the Clanchameron, who
had deserted him in 1427. The latter, in order to
save his life, was now forced to fly to Ireland, where
he remained for many years, whilst his forfeited lands
were bestowed, by the Earl of Ross, upon John Garve
Maclean, founder of the family of Coll.1 The Clan-
chat tan were more fortunate in making their peace with
their oiFended superior, and most unaccountably suc-
ceeded in retaining the lands formerly possessed by
Alexander of Lochaber, from Angus his son. The
Earl of Ross being the most powerful nobleman in the
north of Scotland, was necessarily in frequent communi-
cation with the Earl of Douglas and the other leading
nobles of the realm, and thus became involved in their
intrigues. His loyalty to the son of James I. yielded
to the temptations held out to him; and, in 1445, he
entered into a secret and treasonable league with the
Earls of Douglas and Crawford.2 The details of this
instrument have not been preserved; but there is little
doubt that the confederate nobles had agreed, as the
first step in their designs, to the dethronement of James
II. But, before any overt acts of treason were com-
mitted in consequence of this conspiracy, the Earl of
Ross died at his castle of Dingwall.3 By
his countess, Elizabeth, daughter of Alex-
ander Seton, Lord of Gordon and Huntly, Alexander,
Earl of Ross and Lord of the Isles, had issue, John
his successor. Ue had likewise two other legitimate
1 MS. Histories of the families of Lochiel and Coll. Hugh Mac-
don aid's MS.
3 7th March, 1445, Sir James Balfour's Annals, I 173.
9 He was buried at the Chanonry of Ross, 8th May 1449. Chronicle
of the Earls of Roes.
HIS ISSUE.' 41
sons (but whether by the same mother or not is uncer-
tain), Celestine, Lord of Lochalche, and Hugh, Lord
of Sleat ; of whom, and their descendants, wc shall
afterwards have occasion to speak.1
When John, Earl of Ross, succeeded- to
449* the titles and estates of his family, King
James II. was actively employed in weakening the
power and usurped authority of William, eighth Earl
of Douglas, many of whose adherents, and, particularly,
the Livingstons, with which family the young Earl of
Ross was connected by marriage,2 were seized and
executed, for various treasonable acts committed by
1 1 call these sons legitimate, notwithstanding that Celestine is
called "filius naturalis" by Earl Alexander (Ch. in Ch. Chest of
Macintosh, 1447), and "f rater carnalis" by Earl John (Reg. of Great
Seal, VI, 116, 1463); and that Hugh is likewise called "fratcr ;
carnate" by Earl John (Ch, in Westficld Writs, in the possession of
Alex. Dunbar, Esq., of Scrabster, 1470). They are, however, both
called '*frater," without any qualification, by Earl John (Reg. of
Great Seal, VI. 116; XIII. 180). The history of Celestine and
Hugh and their descendants, as given in the present work, sufficiently
shows that they were considered legitimate, and that, consequently,
the words "naturalis" and ucarnalis," taken by themselves, and
without the adjunct " bastardu*" do not necessarily imply bastardy.
It is probable that they were used to designate the issue of those
handfast or left-handed marriages, which appear to have been so
common in the Highlands and Isles. Both naturalis and carnalis are
occasionally applied to individuals known to be legitimate in the
strictest sense of the word. A contract of friendship between the
Dunbars and Macintoshes, dated in 1492, contains this clause — "The
said Alexander Dunbar of Westfield, and Duncan Macintosh, Captain
of the Clanchattan, sail obserf and kcip kyndes and brethirhcid to
uthers as carnale brethire suld do, for all the day is of thair lyffis." —
(Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 83). In this instance, carnal can
have no meaning but one equivalent to german.
3 Chronicle of the Reign of James II., commonly called the Auchin-
leck Chronicle, pp. 42-44.
42 CONDITION OF DOUGLAS AND HIS PARTY.
them. It was found expedient to deal more mildly
with the Earl of Douglas, the head of the party, on
account of his great power and vassalage; but the
King, without absolutely depriving this nobleman of the
high office of Lieutenant-General of the kingdom — a
measure which might, at this moment, have excited an
extreme commotion — silently withdrew from him his
countenance and employment; surrounding himself, at
the same time, by the ablest and most energetic counsel-
lors of the opposite party, whom he promoted to the chief
offices in the State. Douglas, sensible that his dominion
was on the wane, determined to leave the country for a
season, and repair to Rome, on a visit to the
Pope. But, although he went abroad with
the apparent intention of remaining several years, he
left powerful friends at home, whose motions he directed,
i and by whose assistance he entertained the hope of
once more possessing himself of the supreme power in
the State; and there seems the strongest probability
that he now secretly renewed that treasonable corre-
spondence with the families of Ross and Crawford,
which has been already mentioned.1
Douglas' return, however, was hastened
by disturbances at home, arising out of the
insolence and tyranny of his brother, Douglas of Bal-
vany, to whom he had delegated his authority; which
compelled the King to conduct in person an armed
expedition into the lands of the delinquent. On this
occasion the King made himself master of Lochmaben
Castle, and razed to the ground that of Douglas, which
had long been the centre of insubordination. The Earl,
1 Tytler's Scotland, IV., pp. 70-86.
JOHN, EARL OF EOSS, REBELS. 43
alarmed at the news of this expedition, set out forth-
with on his return home. In the meantime his friends
and confederates were not idle in Scotland; and the
Earl of Ross, in particular, broke out into open rebel-
lion, and seized the Royal castles of Inverness, Urqu-
hart, and Ruthven in Badenoch.1 This last place was
immediately demolished; Urquhart was committed to
the custody of Sir James Livingston, father-in-law to
the Earl of Ross, who, on the first news of the rebellion
of the latter, had escaped from Court to the Highlands;
whilst Inverness Castle was supplied with military stores
and strongly garrisoned. The King, it may be supposed,
was too much occupied in securing himself against the
great power and ambition of the Douglas party in the
southern counties, now rendered more confident by the
return of their chief from abroad, to be able to take
prompt measures against the Earl of Ross; at least,
none such are recorded in the chronicles which have
come down to us. Eut there can be no doubt that
James contemplated proceeding to the north, to chastise
the rebels there; for it was upon the refusal of Douglas
to renounce the league offensive and defensive, into
which he had entered with the Earls of Ross and
Crawford, that the monarch, in a sudden fit of passion,
assassinated, with his own hand, that nobleman, whose
inordinate ambition was considered the chief cause of
all these commotions. William, Earl of Douglas,
being thus cut off in the height of his power, was suc-
1 It appears, from a contemporary chronicle, that Ross had some
private grievances to urge him into rebellion. AmoDg other things,
he complained that the King, who caused him to marry Sir James
Livingston's daughter, had promised him, with that lady, a grant of
lands, which promise had not been kept. Auchinleck Chronicle,
p. 44.
44 THE ISLANDERS INVADE AYRSHIRE.
ceeded by James, ninth Earl, his brother, who, after
repeated rebellions, was finally encountered and defeated
by the Earl of Angus, leader of the King's
A* D> I455' troops, at Arkinholme in Annandale. In this
battle, Archibald, Earl of Moray, and Hugh, Earl of
Ormond, brothers to the Earl of Douglas, wore slain;
whilst the Earl himself, with his only remaining brother,
Sir John Douglas of Balvany, made his escape into the
West Highlands. Here he was received by the Earl
of Ross, who still remained faithful to his engagements,
having, it would appear, hitherto escaped,by reason of the
remoteness and inaccessibility of his territories, the ven-
geance which had fallen so heavily on his confederates,
Douglas and Crawford. Ross immediately collected a
fleet of one hundred galleys, with a force of five thousand
men on board, and despatched this expedition, under the
command of his kinsman, Donald Balloch of Isla, to
attack the coast of Ayrshire, with the intention, proba-
bly, of encouraging the Douglas party again to draw to-
gether, should such a course appear expedient. Owing
to the able measures of defence adopted by the King,
this enterprise met with little success. Donald com-
menced hostilities at Innerkip in Ayrshire ; but being
unable to effect any object of importance, he proceeded
to ravage the Cumrays and the Isle of Arran. Not
above twenty persons, men, women, and children, were
slain by the Islanders, although plunder to a consider-
able amount — including five or six hundred horses, ten
thousand oxen and kine, and more than a thousand
sheep and goats — was carried off. The Castle of Bro-
dick in Arran was stormed and levelled with the ground;
whilst one hundred bolls of meal, one hundred marks,1
1 Cattle intended for winter consumption.
THE REBELLION SUPPRESSED. 45
and one hundred marks of silver, were exacted as tribute
from the Isle of Bute.1 The expedition was concluded
by an attack upon Lauder, Bishop of Argyle or Lismore,
a prelate who had made himself obnoxious by affixing
his seal to the instrument of forfeiture of the Douglases;
and who was now attacked by the fierce Admiral of the
Isles, and, after the slaughter of the greater part of his
attendants, forced to take refuge in a sanctuary, which
seems scarcely to have protected him from the fury of
his enemies.2
The Earl of Douglas returned to England after the
failure of the expedition under Donald Balloch; and
Ross, finding himself alone in rebellion, became alarmed
for the consequences, and, by a submissive message,
entreated the forgiveness of the King; offering, as far
as it was still left to him, to repair the wrongs
he had inflicted. James at first refused to
listen to the application; but, after a time, consented to
extend to the humbled chief a period of probation,
within which, if he should evince the reality of his repent-
ance by some notable exploit, he was to be absolved
from all the consequences of his rebellion, and reinstated
in the Royal favour.3 The Earl of Ross was, in 1457,
one of the Wardens of the Marches,4 an office of great
trust and importance, but obviously intended to weaken
his influence in the Highlands and Isles, by forcing him
frequently to resideat adistance from theseat of his power;
i It would seem that the Castle of Roth say was also besieged.
Acts of Parliament, II. 109.
* Tytler's Scotland, IV., pp. 86-127 ; Auchinlcck Chronicle, pp. 44,
51, 55 ; Acts of Parliament, II. 190.
* Ostler's Scotland, IV., p. 156.
« Rymer*s Fcedera, XI, p. 397.
46 THIRD REBELLION OF ROSS.
and as he was, at the same time, one of the nobles who
guaranteed a truce with England,1 it would seem that
he had lost no time in effecting a reconciliation with the
King. Previous to the siege of Roxburgh, at which
James II. was unfortunately killed, the Earl
of Ross joined the Royal army with a body of
three thousand of his vassals, well armed, in their pecu-
liar fashion. In order to prove his fidelity and loyalty,
he offered, in case of an invasion of England, to precede
the rest of the army, whilst in the enemy's country, by
a thousand paces distance, so as to receive the first shock
of the English. Ross was well received, and ordered to
remain near the King's person; but, as there was at this
time no invasion of England, the courage and devotion
of himself and his troops were not put to the test pro-
posed.2
Soon after the unfortunate death of James
II., and the capture of Roxburgh Castle, a
Parliament met at Edinburgh, which was attended by,
amongst others, the Earl of Ross, and all the Island
chiefs.3 Of this Parliament, however, no records now
exist. Apparently, Ross perceived that the new govern-
ment was not strong enough to command his obedience,
and thought this a favourable opportunity to pursue his
schemes of personal aggrandisement, and for that 'pur-
pose to renew his confederacy with the banished Doug-
lases. This once powerful family now looked chiefly to
the English King for their restoration to rank and power;
and, therefore, used all their influence to draw the Earl
1 Rymer's Fccdera, XI., p. 397.
3 Tyler's Scotland, IV., p. 176 ; Buchanan, b. XI.
» Tytler's Scotland, IV., p. 186 ; Auchinleck Chronicle, p. 60
February 1461, new style.
HIS TREATY WITH EDWARD IV. 47
of Ross into a league with Edward IV.1 On the
19th of October, Ross, by the advice of his principal
vassals and kinsmen, assembled in council at his castle
of Ardtornish, granted a commission, in the style of an
independent prince, to his trusty and well-beloved cousins,
Ranald of the Isles, and Duncan, Archdean of the Isles,
to confer with the deputies of the English King.2 The
Commissioners met at Westminster; and, after a
negotiation, concluded a treaty, which embraced some
extraordinary conditions. The basis of it was nothing
less than the contemplated conquest of Scotland by the
vassals of Ross and the auxiliaries to be furnished by
Edward, with such assistance as the Earl of Douglas
might be able to give. The Earl of Ross, Donald Balloch,
and John, the son and heir of Donald, agreed, upon the
payment to each of a stipulated sum of money, to become
for ever the sworn vassals of England, along with all their
retainers, and to assist Edward in his wars in Ireland
as well as elsewhere. In the event of the entire sub-
jugation of Scotland by the Earls of Ross and Douglas,
the whole of the kingdom to the north of the Forth was
tp be divided equally between the two Earls and Donald
Balloch; whilst Douglas was to be restored to the
possession of those estates between the Forth and the
Borders of England from which he was now excluded ;
and, upon such partition and restoration being carried
1 The King of England despatched the banished Earl of Douglas,
and his brother, Sir John Douglas of Balvany, to meet the Earl of
Ross or his ambassadors, by a writ dated 22nd June, 1461. Rotuli
Scotiae, II., p. 402. Tytler's Scotland, IV., p. 192.
* The English deputies were, Lawrence, Bishop of Durham, the
Earl of Worcester, the Prior of St. John's, Lord Wenlock, and Mr.
Robert Stillington, Keeper of the Privy Seal.
48 ROSS ASSUMES ROYAL POWERS*
into effect, the salaries payable to Ross and his asso-
ciates as the wages of their defection, were to cease.
The stipulated salaries were, to the Earl, £200 sterling
annually in time of war, and one hundred merks in time
of peace; to Donald Balloch, £40, and to John, his
son, £20 in time of war, and, in time of peace, half
these sums respectively. This remarkable treaty is
dated at London, on the 13th of February, 1462.1
While the negotiations which ended in the above
treaty were still pending, the Earl of Ross raised the
standard of rebellion. Ho assembled a large force,
which was placed under the command of Angus, his
bastard son,2 assisted by the experience of the veteran
Donald Balloch. Having made themselves masters of
the Castle of Inverness, these leaders proceeded to issue
proclamations, in the name of the Earl of Ross, to all
the inhabitants of the sheriffdoms and burghs of Inver-
ness and Nairn, couched in such a manner as to show
that Ross, overrating the effects of his contemplated
league with England, already assumed the powers of a
king in the north. The sheriffdom of Inverness at this
time comprehended not only the modern county of
Inverness, but likewise those of Ross and Caithness ;3
and it was, therefore, over the inhabitants of four of the
1 Ty tier's Scotland, IV., p. 194. Rotuli Scotiie, II., p. 407- H61,
old style. %
2 This i3 distinctly mentioned in the Summons of Forfeiture
against the Earl of Ross, in 1475. Acts of the Parliament of Scotland,
IT., p. 108. It does not appear, although generally asserted by our
historians, that Ross took the field on this occasion in person ; and,
indeed, the contrary may be inferred from the fact that his son acted
as his lieutenant, with the highest powers of that office. — Acts of ParL,
ut supra.
3 Reg. of Great Seal, XV. No. 63.
HE IS PROSECUTED FOR TREASON. 49
modern shires of Scotland that the Earl of Ross sought
to exercise royal authority. His proclamations com-
manded them to obey his bastard son, as his lieutenant,
under the pain of death, which the latter was fully
authorised to inflict upon the refractory; to pay to him
all the taxes usually paid to the Crown ; and to refuse
obedience to the officers of King James.1 How this
extraordinary rebellion was suppressed is uncertain.
We know that Ross was summoned before Parliament
for treason; and that, on his failing to appear, the pro-
cess of forfeiture against him was suspended for a time.
There is reason, also, to believe, that an army was actually
in readiness to march against him; although, eventually,
this course was rendered unnecessary, by submission on
the part of Ross, or by some other measures, which, as
yet, we have not been able to trace. It is certain,
however, that the Earl did not, at this time, receive an
unconditional pardon, although allowed to retain undis-
turbed possession of all his vast estates for about fifteen
years after this period.
At length the treaty concluded between
a. d. 1475. Edward jy and the Earl of Ross, in 1462,
came to light, when it was determined at once by the
Scottish Government to proceed against Ross as an
avowed traitor and rebel. Accordingly, that noble-
man was summoned, at his Castle of Dingwall, to appear
before the Parliament to be held in Edinburgh in
December, in order to answer to various charges of
treason.2 Commission was given to Colin, Earl of
1 Anchinleck Chronicle, p. 60.
* Acta of Parliament, II. 108. All his acts of rebellion, both in
1455 and 1461, were charged against him, as well as the league with
England.
7
50 BOSS EESIGNS THE EARLDOM OF BOSS.
Argyle, to prosecute a decree of forfeiture against him j1
and, on the appointed day, sentence was pronounced,
Ross having failed to appear.2 Nor was this an idle
ceremony. As soon as the weather permitted, a for-
midable armament, comprehending both a fleet and a
land force, was prepared to carry the sentence of Par-
liament into effect, and placed under the command of
the Earls of Crawford and Athole. The extent of these
preparations, and the persuasion of his friends, induced
Ross to sue for pardon, through the medium of the
Earl of Huntly. The Queen and the States of Parlia-
ment were likewise prevailed upon to intercede for the
repentant noble, who appeared in person at Edinburgh,
and, with much humility, and many expressions of con-
trition, surrendered himself to the Royal mercy. The
King, with wonderful moderation, consented to pardon
the offender ; and, in the Parliament held at
* I4 " Edinburgh on the 1st of July, John of Isla
was restored to his forfeited estates of the Earldom of
Ross and . Lordship of the Isles. He then came for-
ward, and made a voluntary resignation to the Crown
of the Earldom of Ross, the lands of Kintyre and
Knapdale, and all the castles, &c, thereto belonging ;
and, in return for this concession, was created, by the
King, a Baron Banrent and Peer of Parliament, by the
title of Lord of the Isles. The Earldom of Ross was
now inalienably annexed to the Crown, and a great
blow was thus struck at the power and grandeur of a
family which had so repeatedly disturbed the tranquil-
lity of Scotland.8
1 Argyle Writs.
9 Acts of Parliament, ubi supra.
8 Chronicle of the Earls of Ross. Fcrrerius (the continoator
DISCONTENT OF THE ISLANDERS. 51
By the favour of the King, the succession to the
new title and the estates connected with it, was secured
in favour of Angus and John, the bastard sons of the
Lord of the Isles ; * and Angus, the elder of them, was
soon afterwards married to a daughter of the Earl of
Argyle. This Angus was early accustomed to rebellion,
having acted as lieutenant to his father in the great
insurrection of 1461. Neither the favour now shown
to him by the King, nor his alliance with the Earl of
Argyle, were sufficient to keep the natural violence of his
temper within bounds ; and circumstances soon enabled
him to establish an ascendancy over his father. The
sacrifices made by the latter in 1476, when he gave
up the Earldom of Ross and the lands of Kintyre and
Knapdale, were very unpopular among the chiefs de-
scended of the family of the Isles, who further alleged
that he had impaired his estate by improvident grants
of land to the Macleans, Macleods, Macneills, and
other tribes. Thus, the vassals of the Lordship of the
Isles came to be divided into two factions — one com-
prehending the clans last mentioned, who adhered to
the old lord — the other consisting of the various branches
of the Clandonald, who made common cause with the
turbulent heir of the Lordship.2 In these circumstances
of Boece's History), p. 893 ; Acts of Parliament, II. p. 113 ; Tytler's
Scotland, IV., p. 246.
1 Acta of Parliament, II. 190, 15th July, 1476. John, the younger
of the two sons, was dead before 16th December, 1478. Reg. of Great
Seal, VIII. 120.
9 Hugh Macdonald's MS. The proceedings of the Islanders in
reference to Kintyre and Knapdale, caused the Lord of the Isles to
be summoned again, on a charge of treason, in April, 1478 ; but he
seems soon to have satisfied the Government of his innocence, and,
at the same time, to have procured the pardon of his son. Acts of
52 ANGUS, THE HEIR OF THE ISLES, REBELS.
Angus not only behaved with great violence to his
father, but he involved himself in various feuds, parti-
cularly with the Mackenzies. It appears that Kenneth
After Mackenzie of Kintaill had repudiated his first
a. d. 1480. wjfe^ Lady Margaret of the Isles, sister to
Angus; and the latter, supported no doubt by his kins-
men, determined to make his quarrel with Mackenzie
a cover for attempting to regain possession of the Earl-
dom of Ross, or a portion of it.1 He invaded Ross,
accordingly, with a body of his Island vassals; and,
encountering the Mackenzies and their supporters at a
place called Lagebread, he defeated them with con-
siderable loss. The Earl of Athole is said, by tradition,
to have commanded the troops opposed to Angus of
the Isles on this occasion. After this event Angus
became so bold, and the insurrection appeared so for-
midable, that the government is said to have employed
the Earls of Crawford, Huntly, Argyle, and Athole, to
reduce him to obedience. He seems to have been
expelled from Ross, and thence to have gone back to
the Isles, where the Earls of Argyle and Athole pro-
cured an interview between him and his father, the old
Lord, thinking thereby to bring about a reconciliation.
In this they were disappointed; and the breach was,
ere long, further widened, by the result of a sea-fight
between the contending factions in the Isles, in which
the adherents of John were routed with great loss by
Angus and his followers. This conflict was fought in
a bay in the Isle of Mull, near Tobermory, and is still
Parliament, II 115, 119. Reg. of Great Seal, VIIL 120. The son,
however, did not long continue in obedience.
1 MS. Histories of the Mackenzies.
DONALD DUBH, SON OF ANGUS. — RAID OP ATHOLE. 58
known in tradition as the battle of the Bloody Bay.1
Some time after this event, the Earl of Athole, who
still remained in the west, crossed over privately to
Isla, and carried off the infant son of Angus, called
Donald Dubh, or the Black, whom he delivered into the
hands of Argyle. The Islanders always maintained that
this boy was the son of the young Lord of the Isles
and of his wife, Argyle's daughter f but the legitimacy
of the child was afterwards denied by the government,
when, as we shall see, the Islanders brought him for-
ward as heir to the Lordship. In the meantime,
Donald Dubh was considered as a captive of great con-
sequence, and was carefully guarded by Argyle in the
Castle of Inchconnell in Lochow. The rage of Angus
knew no bounds when he discovered by whom his child
had Hieen carried off. He summoned his adherents
together, and sailing to the neighbourhood of Inver-
lochy, there left his galleys, whilst, with a body of chosen
warriors, he made a swift and secret march into the
district of Athole, which he ravaged with fire and
sword. His appearance was so unlooked for, that the
inhabitants were unable to make effectual resistance to
the Islesmen. The Earl of Athole and his Countess
took refuge in the Chapel of St. Bride, to which sanc-
tuary many of the country people likewise fled for refuge
with their most valuable effects. The sanctuary, how-
ever, was violated by the vindictive Islander, who
returned to Lochaber, his followers loaded with plunder,
and leading with him, as prisoners, the Earl and Countess
1 Hugh MacdonalcTs MS; MS. Histories of the Macleods and
Macleans ; Martin's Western Isles.
3 Macvurich's MS., &c, &c.
54 ASSASSINATION OF ANGUS.
of Athole.1 In the voyage from Lochaber to Isla,
many of his war galleys were sunk, and much of his
sacrilegious plunder lost, in a dreadful storm which he
encountered. Such was the effect this circumstance
produced upon the superstitious feelings of the turbu-.
lent heir of the Isles, that he soon liberated his prisoners,
without even procuring, in return, the release of his son,
which seems to have been originally his chief object in
the expedition; and he, moreover, performed an igno-
minious penance in the chapel which he had so lately
desecrated.2 His career was now drawing to a close.
Happening to be at Inverness soon afterwards, on his
Before way> as tradition bears, to attack his old enemy,
a. d. 1490. Mackenzie, he was assassinated by an Irish
harper.8 Thus fell Angus, the son and heir of John,
last Lord of the Isles. With all his violence, which
appears to have verged upon insanity, he was a favour-
ite with those of his own name, who, perhaps, flattered
themselves that he was destined to regain all that had
been lost by his father. The chronology of this por-
tion of the history of the Isles is so very deficient, and
1 Hugh Maedonajd's MS.; Ferrerius, p. 383; Bishop Lesleys
History of Scotland, edit. 1830, p. 34 ; Tytler, IV., p. 195-6. The
"Raid" of Athole has hitherto been, owing to an error of Ferrerius,
dated in 1461, in place of about twenty years later. It has likewise
been erroneously ascribed to John, Earl of Ross. Neither the
Auchinleck Chronicle (a contemporary MS., embracing the year
1461), nor the summons of treason against the Earl of Ross in 1475,
make any allusion to this remarkable occurrence, which must, there-
fore, have happened after the latter date. The Highland traditions
uniformly ascribe it to Angus, and not to his father, in which they are
undoubtedly correct
a Ferrerius, Lesley, and Tytler, vbi supra.
8 Hugh Macdonald'8 and Macvurich's MS.
ALEXANDER OF LOCHALSH. 55
the materials for supplying this deficiency are so scanty,
that the author has not yet been able to assign a
precise date to any of the events above narrated, from
the quarrels of Angus with his father to his death at
Inverness, The order in which they occurred has
been adopted, after careful consideration of all the
documents and traditions which bear upon this part of
the history j and it would appear that, whilst all these
events happened after the year 1480, the latest of
them (the death of Angus) must have occurred several
years before 1490.
The aged Lord of the Isles now resumed possession
of his estates, from which he had been for some time ex-
cluded by the unnatural violence of his eldest son, Angus;
and as John, his remaining son, had died without issue,
the rank of heir to the Lordship was now held by his
nephew, Alexander of Lochalsb, son of his brother,
Celestine. Some accounts say, that Lochalsh merely
acted as guardian for the child Donald Dubh, who still
remained a captive in Inchconnel; but this is hardly
reconcilable with known facts.1 He, apparently with
the consent and approbation of his uncle, who seems
now to have retired from active life, placed himself at
the head of the vassals of the Isles, and, with their
assistance, endeavoured, as it is said, to recover pos-
session of the Earldom of Ross. As the districts of
Lochalsh, Lochcarron, and Lochbroom, which Alexander
inherited from his father, and which he now held as
1 I allude particularly to a charter dated in 1492, and granted by
John, Lord of the Isles, and Alexander de In$itlia+ Lord of Lochalsh,
to John Maclean of Lochbuy, of the office of Bailliary of the south half
of the Isle of Tiree ; an office which formed no part of the patrimony of
the house of Lochalsh. Lochbuy Ch. Chest.
56 THE ISLANDERS INVADE BOSS.
a Crown fief, lay in the Earldom of Ross, his influence
there was greater than that of Angus of the Isles had
been. Yet the only Crown vassal of the Earldom who
joined him, was Hugh Rose, younger of Kilravock,
whose father, at this time, was Keeper, under the Earl
of Huntly, of the Castle of Ardmanach in Ross.1 In
the year 1491, a large body of Western Highlanders,
composed of the Clanranald of Garmoran, the Clan-
ranald of Lochaber, and the Clanchameron, under
Alexander of Lochalsh, advanced from Lochaber into
Badenoch, where they were joined by the Clanchattan.
The latter tribe, which possessed lands both under the
Lord of the Isles and the Earl of Huntly, was led by
Farquhar Macintosh, the. son and heir of the captain of
the Clanchattan. From Badenoch the confederates
marched to Inverness, where Farquhar Macintosh stormed
and took the Royal Castle, in which he established a
garrison; and where the forces of the Highlanders
were probably increased by the arrival of the young
Baron of Kilravock and his followers. Proceeding
to the north-east, the fertile lands belonging to Sir
Alexander Urquhart, the Sheriff of Cromarty, were plun-
dered, and a vast booty carried off by the Islanders and
their associates.2 It is probable that, at this time, Loch-
alsh had divided his force into two parts, one being sent
home with the booty already acquired, whilst with the
other he proceeded to Strathconnan, for the purpose
of ravaging the lands of the Mackenzies. The latter
clan, under their chief, Kenneth, having assembled their
forces, surprised and routed the invaders, who had en-
camped near the river Connan, at a place called Park,
1 Writs in Ch. Chest of Kilravock, ad tempus.
9 Kilravock Writs and Acts of Lords of Council, ad tempus.
BATTLE OF BLAIRNEPARK. 57
whence the conflict has received the name of Blairne-
park. Alexander of Lochalsh was wounded, and, as
some say, taken prisoner in this battle, and his followers
were expelled from Koss. * The victors then proceeded
to ravage the lands of Ardmanach, and those belonging
to William Munro of Foulis — the former, because the
young Baron of Kilravock, whose father was governor
of that district, had assisted the other party ; the latter,
probably because Munro, who joined neither party, was
suspected of secretly favouring Lochalsh. So many ex-
cesses were committed at this time by the Mackenzies,
that the Earl of Huntly, Lieutenant of the North, was
compelled (notwithstanding their services in repel-
ling the invasion of the Macdonalds) to act against
them as rebels and oppressors of the lieges.2 Mean-
while, the origin of these commotions did not escape
the investigation of the government; and the result
was, the final forfeiture of the Lordship of the Isles,
and its annexation to the Crown.
It does not appear, from the documents which we
possess, how far the Lord of the Isles was himself impli-
cated in the rebellious proceedings of his nephew.8 It
may be that his inability to keep the wild tribes of the
West Highlands and Isles in proper subjection was his
chief crime; and that the object of the government, in
proceeding to his forfeiture, was, by breaking up the
confederacy of the Islanders, to strengthen indirectly the
1 MS. Histories of Mackenzies; Sir Robert Gordon's History
of the family of Sutherland, p. 77; Hugh Macdonald's and Mac-
vurich's MS.
a Kilravock Writs and Acts of Lords of Council, ad tempus.
3 In 1481, the King of England appointed Commissioners to treat
with " the Earl of Boss and Donald Gorme."— Fcedera, XII. 140.
58 FORFEITURE OF THE LORD OF THE ISLES.
. •
Royal authority in these remote districts. The tenor of
ali the proceedings of James IV., connected with the
final forfeiture of the Lordship of the Isles, leads to this
conclusion. These proceedings will be considered at
more length in their proper place. At present, we have
only to record the fact, that, in the Parliament which
sat in the month of May, 1493, John, fourth
A. D. 1493
and last Lord of the Isles, was forfeited and
deprived of his title and estates.1 In the month of
January following, he appeared in presence of the King,
and went through the form of making a voluntary sur-
render of his Lordship ; 2 after which he appears to have
remained for some time in the King's household, in the
receipt of a pension.3 Finally, this aged nobleman
retired to the Monastery of Paisley, a foundation which
owed much to the pious liberality of himself and his
ancestors.4 Here he died, about the year 1498 ; and
was interred, at his own request, in the tomb of his
royal ancestor, King Robert II.6
Having thus traced the history of the great Lords of
the Isles from their origin to the final forfeiture of their
estates, it will be proper, before concluding this intro-
ductory sketch, to notice briefly the vassal tribes that
followed the banner of this powerful family. These
may be divided into two classes. The first compre-
hends those clans which boasted a male descent from
1 The records of this Parliament are very defective, nor is the Act of
Forfeiture preserved ; but some charters, granted soon afterwards , show
that the forfeiture must have taken place at this time.
3 Acts of Lords of Council.
3 lilgh Treasurer's Accounts, ad annum 1495.
* Chartulary of Paisley, pp. 125-6-7-8, 147, 156.
• Hugh Macdonald's MS.
CLANS IN THE ISLES. — MACDONALDS OF LOCHALSH. 59
the family itself; the second includes the clans of other
surnames. Most of the tribes alluded to became, by
the policy of James IV., after the final forfeiture of their
ancient line of Lords, independent of any superior but
the Crown. #It therefore becomes important, with refer-
ence to the object of the present work, to trace the
extent of the possessions of each clan, as well as its
position, both geographically and politically, with
respect to the others.
In the first class are included, the house of Lochalsh,
the house of Sleat, the Clan Ian Vor of Isla and Kin-
tyre, the Clan Ranald of Lochaber, the Siol Gorrie, the
Clan Ranald of Garmoran, the Clan Ian • Abrach of
Glenco, the Clan Ian of Ardnamurchan, and the Clan
Allaster of Kintyre.
I. The House of Lochalsh.
Celestine, or, as he is called in tradition, Gillespick,
of the Isles, second son of Alexander, Lord of the Isles
and Earl of Ross, was the first of this family. He
died in 1473, \ and was succeeded by his only son,
Alexander, whose insurrection, in 1491, led, as we have
seen, to the forfeiture of the Lordship of the Isles.
Besides the lands of Lochalsh, Lochcarron, and Loch-
broom, in Ross, and those of Fernacostrie, Creichmor,
and others, in Sutherland, which they held of the Earl
of Ross prior to 1476, and of the Crown afterwards,
these chiefs were superiors, under the Lord of the
• Isles, of the lands of Lochiel in Lochaber.2 In a
charter of the year 1492, Alexander of Lochalsh styles
himself likewise Lord of Lochiel. He was thus closely
1 Macvnrich's MS.
1 Reg. of Great Seal, VI. 116 ; XIH. 203.
60 MACDONALDS OF SLEAT.
connected with the Clanchameron, to whose captain,
Ewin Alanson, heritable keeper of his Castle of Strone
in Lochcarron, he gave one of his sisters in marriage. *
By his mother, Fynvola, daughter of Lauchlan Bronach
Maclean of Dowart, the Lord of Lochalsh was also nearly
allied to the numerous and warlike Clan Gillean.
II. The House of Sleat.
This family, whose representative, Lord Macdonald,
is now the undoubted heir-male of John, last Earl of
Boss and Lord of the Isles, sprang from Hugh, third
son of Alexander, Earl of Boss. In addition to Sleat
in Sky, which he occupied, and from which he took his
style, Hugh was nominal proprietor, under his brother,
Earl John, of lands in Uist, T!cnbecula, and Garmoran,2
in the possession of which he was opposed by his rela-
tions, the Clanranald of Garmoran.8 His first wife
was Fynvola, daughter of Alexander Macian of Ardna-
murchan, by whom he had John, his heir, who died
without issue. By his second wife, a lady of the Clan
Gun, he had a son, Donald — called Gallach, from being
fostered by his mother's relations in Caithness — who
afterwards became the heir of the family,4 and from
whom the present Lord Macdonald is descended.
Hugh of Sleat had several other sons, legitimate and
illegitimate, whom we shall have occasion afterwards to
notice. He appears to have survived the last forfeiture
1 Hugh Macdonald's MS.
2 Reg. of Great Seal, XIII. 185, 336, 337 ; XIV. 141.
8 Hugh Macdonald's MS.
4 Ibid. In 1460, Hugh of Sleat, with William Macleod of Harris,
and "the young gentlemen of the Isles," ravaged the Orkneys.
Macvurich's and Hugh Macdonald'B MS. I have nowhere else seen
I
MACDONALDS OF ISLA. AND KINTYKE. CI
of his brother, the Lord of the Isles, and to have pro-
cured a confirmation from the Crown of the
lands which he previously held under his
brother. The descendants of Hugh, who increased
very rapidly in the sixteenth century, were known as
the Clan Huistein, or children of Hugh, and sometimes
as the Clandonald north. Their appellation of Clan-
donald arose probably from this circumstance, that six
successive chiefs of this clan, after John, the son of
Hugh, bore the name of Donald; and the addition
north, indicating their residence in Sky and North
Uist, was adopted to distinguish them from the Clan
Ian Vor of Isla and Kintyre, who were also called
Clandonald. Since the extinction of the direct line of
the family of the Isles in the middle of the sixteenth
century, Macdonald of Sleat has always been styled in
Gaelic, " MacDhonuill na'n Eilean," or, " Macdonald of
the Isles."1
III. The Clan Ian Vor.
The founder of this powerful branch of the family
of the Isles was John Mor, second son of "the
good John of Isla," and of Lady Margaret Stewart,
daughter of King Robert II. John Mor received,
from his brother, Donald, Lord of the Isles, large
grants of land in Isla and Kintyre ; and he afterwards
cir. a.d. increased his possessions, by his marriage
I4°°- with Marjory Bisset, heiress of the district
of the Glens in the county of Antrim.2 The footing
any notice of this expedition, which seems to have been one of
considerable importance.
1 President Forbes1 Memorial, 1745.
9 Hugh Macdonald's and Macvurich's MS.
62 MACDONALDS OF ISLA AND KINTYKE.
which he thus obtained in Ulster was, in later times,
improved by his successors. On the death of John,
who, as above related, was murdered before 1427,
by a certain James Campbell, he was succeeded by his
eldest son, Donald, surnamed Balloch This is the
chief who defeated the Earls of Mar and
Caithness at Inverlochy; and who, having,
by a stratagem, escaped the vengeance of King James
I., took afterwards so prominent a part in the rebellions
of John, Earl of Ross and Lord of the Isles. His
celebrity as a warrior, and the high rank he held, have
led several historians into the error of calling him
Donald, Lord of the Isles, a title which he never
claimed. Donald Balloch, who had attained, before
1475, the rank of knighthood,1 survived the events of
that and the following year. It is probable
" I4 that, at this time, his lands in Kintyre — being
part of those resigned to the Crown — were either
retained in the King's hands, or bestowed upon a new
vassal, unconnected with the family of the Isles. To
Sir Donald succeeded his son, John, who did not long
survive, and was succeeded by his son, another John,
surnamed Calhanach, or warlike,2 who was at the head
of the Clan Ian Vor, when the Lordship of the Isles
was finally forfeited by James IV. At this time the
undisputed possessions of John Cathanach in Scotland,
comprehended a great part of Isla, and some of the
neighbouring Isles; and he also maintained a claim
of superiority over the remote district of Sunart, the
origin of which has not beea traced. s It is pro-
1 Writ in Charter Chest of Cassilis, dated 8th October, 1475.
3 Hugh Macdonald's and Macvurich's MS.
3 Acts of Lords of Council, A.D. 1496.
MACDONALDS OF LABGIE. 63
bable, too, that he and his clan possessed, by force, and
without legal title, a portion of Kintyre. The matri-
monial alliances of John Mor and his successors, down
to John Cathanach, were all contracted in Ulster ; but,
among those Scots who, during the fifteenth century,
married daughters of the family, we find Roderick Mac-
Alan of Moydert, chief of the Clanranald, Macdougall
of Lorn, and Bannatyne of Kaimes. In addition to
these notices of the Clan Ian Vor, it may be mentioned
that, from Ranald Bane, a younger brother of Donald
Balloch, sprang a race called the Clanranaldbane of
Largie in Kintyre — whose chieftain, or ceantigh, in
1493, was Donald MacEanald Bane. This tribe,
together with the Macallasters, Maceacherns, and
Mackays, in Kintyre, and the Macneills of Gigha,
became followers of the Clan Ian Vor, after the forfei-
ture of the Lord of the Isles. The Clan Ian Vor was
known also as Clandonald, from its celebrated chief,
Donald Balloch ; whilst, to distinguish it from the race
of Hugh of Sleat, the appellation Clandonald south
was employed. The chiefs were usually styled Lords
of Dunyveg (a castle in Isla) and the Glens.1
IV. The Clanranald of Lochaber.
Alexander de Insulis, commonly called Allaster Car-
rach, third son of John, Lord of the Isles, and Lady
Margaret Stewart, was the first of this family. In an
authentic deed of the year 1398, he is styled " Magni-
ficus vir et potens, Alexander de Insulis dominus de
1 John Mor himself is so styled in a writ of the year 1400 ; Hotuli
Scotise, II. 155. He is frequently mentioned as an ally of the
English, from 1389 to 1396; Fcedera, VII. 626, 639, 657, 716,
777, 824.
64 MACDONALDS OF KEPPOCH.
Lochaber."1 He was forfeited for joining the insurrec-
tion of the Islanders, under Donald Balloch, in 1431 ;2
and his lands, or a great part of them, were bestowed
upon the Macintoshes, from whom his successors were
never able to wrest the feudal possession. They con-
tinued, however, to dwell in that part of Lochaber called
the Braes, sometimes as tenants of Macintosh, some-
times by force, and without any legal right whatever.
From Allaster MacAngus, the grandson of Master
Carrach, this tribe received the appellation of Sliochd
Allaster VicAngus;8 and from Ranald, the grandson
of the second Allaster, it was afterwards named the
Clanranald of Lochaber4 — an appellation which, in the
course of the sixteenth century, nearly superseded the
former. The chief, at the date of the forfeiture of the
Lord of the Isles, was Donald, the elder brother of
Allaster MacAngus. The later chiefs of this family
were known as the Macranalds of Garragach and
Keppoch. Their Gaelic title was "Mac Mhic Eao-
nuill," i.e., Mac Vic Kanald, or the son of Ranald's
son.5
V. The Siol Gorrie.
Of this tribe, whose ancestor was Godfrey, eldest son
of John, Lord of the Isles, and Amie, the heiress of the
Macruaries of Garmoran, little remains to be said.
1 Chartulary of Moray, a record in which this chief is frequently
mentioned.
3 Hugh Macdonald's MS.
s Supplication, Ewia Cameron of Lochiel to the Committee of
Estates, 1650.
4 Acts of Parliament, HI. 467.
5 President Forbes1 Memorial, 1745.
THE SIOL GORRIE — THE CLANRANALD. 65
We have seen that Godfrey, under the style of Lord of
XJist, dates a charter at his Castle of Elantirrim, in
1388; l and that, in 1427, his eldest son, Alexander or
Allaster MacGorrie of Garmoran, was executed at In-
verness by James I.2 The latter had a son likewise
named Allaster, who died in 1460, and who receives,
from the seannachie that records his death, the title of
Lord of North Uist.3 From this time, although there
were several descendants of Godfrey still in existence,
the tribe fell into decay; the lands of Uist and Gar-
moran being granted by John, Earl of Ross, to his
brother, Hugh of Sleat, who, notwithstanding his charter,
was kept out of possession by the Clanranald.
VI. The Clanranald of Garmoran, comprehending
the families of Moydert, Morar, Knoydert, and
Glengarry.
The history of Ranald, younger son of John, Lord
of the Isles, and of the heiress of Macruari, has been
already noticed, and need not here be repeated.4 His
descendants came, in time, to form the most numerous
tribe of the Clandonald. During the whole of the
fifteenth century, they seem to have been engaged in
feuds regarding the lands which they occupied — first
with the Siol Gorrie, and, after the decay of that tribe,
with Hugh of Sleat, from whose successor they suc-
ceeded in acquiring a legal title to the disputed lands.6
Allan MacRuari, great-grandson of Ranald, and chief
of the Clanranald, was one of the principal supporters
of Angus, the young Lord of the Isles, at the battle of
* Chartolaiy of Inchaffray. ' Supra, p. 36.
8 Macvurich's MS. 4 Supra, p. 29 to 31.
• Reg. of Great Seal, XIH 336, 387 ; XIV. 337.
8
66 THE CLAN IAN OF GLENCO.
the Bloody Bay;1 and he likewise followed Alexander
of Lochalsh, in his invasion of Ross and Cromarty, in
1491, receiving a large share of the booty taken upon
that occasion.2 The Clanranald, being very prolific,
were connected, by marriage, with almost every family
of note in the Isles and adjacent Highlands. Contem-
porary with Allan MacRuari, were John Macranald of
Glengarry, Allan Macranald of Knoydert, and Angus
Macranald of Morar; being, next to himself, the leading
men in the tribe. The possessions of the Clanranald
seem, at this time, to have comprehended* nearly the
whole of Uist and Benbecula, the Lordship of Garmo-
ran, and the north-west part of Lochaber; in addition
to which, the district of Sunart was claimed by Allan
MacRuari, as a tenant under John Cathanach of Isla.s
The style usually borne by the chief of this clan was
Macranald of Moydert, captain of the Clanranald;
and, in Gaelic, "Mac Mhic Ailein," i.e., Mac Vic
Allan, or the son of Allan's son. Glengarry had the
Gaelic style of " Mac Mhic Alasdair," &e., Mac Vic
Allaster, or the son of Alexander's son ; and Knoydert
bore that of "Mac Ailein Mhic Ailein," i.e., Mac
Allan Vic Allan, or, the son of Allan the son of Allan.
VII. The Clan Ian Abrach of Glenco.
The founder of this tribe was John, surnamed Fraoch,
natural son of Angus Og of Isla, and brother of John,
first Lord of the Isles.4 His mother is said to have
been a daughter of Dougall MacHenry, then the lead-
1 Hugh Macdonald's MS.
2 Acts of Lords of Council, A.D. 1494, et sequen.
• Ibid, A. D. 1495. * Macvurich7s MS.
THE CLAN IAN OF ABDNAMUBCHAN. 67
ing man in Glenco,1 where John Fraoch afterwards
settled as a vassal, under his brother, the Lord of the
Isles, and where his descendants yet remain. The
early history of this family is very obscure. One of
them, probably from being fostered in Lochaber,
acquired the surname of Abracb, which he transmitted
to his posterity, who were known as the Clan Ian
Abracb.2 At the date of the last forfeiture of the
Lord of the Isles, the head of this sept was an indivi-
dual styled, in the records, " John of the Isles, alias
Abrochson." 3
VIII. The Clan Ian op Ardnamurchan.
The ancestor of this ancient branch of the Clan-
donald was John, surnamed Sprangaiehy or the Bold,
younger son of Angus Mor of Isla. Angus the son of
this John appears to have acquired Ardnamurchan in
the reign of David II. In 1495 his descendant and
representative, John Macian of Ardnamurchan, dis-
puted the possession of the adjacent district of Sunart,
with Allan Macruari of Moydert, who claimed it as
tenant of John Cathanach of Isla. This John Macian
likewise possessed some lands in Isla, Jura, and
Mull. The chiefs of this family seem always to have
held a high rank among the vassals of the Isles, prior
to the forfeiture, and to have been connected, by mar-
riage, with all the leading families.4
1 Hugh Macdonald's MS.
3 Acts of Parliament, A.D. 1587 and 1594.
3 Acts of Lords of Council.
4 These particulars regarding the Macians of Ardnamurchan have
been collected from the following sources: — Genealogical MS. of
the fifteenth century, printed in Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis,
Vol. I. ; Dean Monro's Genealogies ; Ch. in Haddington's Collections,
68 THE CLAN ALLASTER.
IX. The Clan Allasteb op Kintyre.
The Clan Allaster derived its descent from Alex-
ander, or Allaster, son of Donald of Isla, the grandson
of Somerled.1 The possessions of this tribe appear to
have been, from the first, in Kintyre, and were never
very extensive. Its chieftain, in 1493, appears to have
been John Dubh Macallaster; for, upwards of twenty
years later, we find mention of Angus Macallaster of
the Loupe, who is called " John Dubh's son." 2 After
the forfeiture of the Lordship of the Isles, this family
attached itself, for about a century, to the more power-
ful Clan Ian Vor. Next to that of Loupe, the most
important branch of the Macallasters, was the family of
Tarbert, the head of which was Constable of the Castle
of Tarbert on Loch Tyne side. .
The second class of the vassals of the Isles includes
those clans not descended from the family in the male
line, and bearing different surnames. Of these the
most important are, the Clan Gillean, or Macleans, the
Clan Leod, the Clan Chameron, the Clan Chattan, the
Clan Neill, the Mackinnons, Macquarries, Macfies
of Colonsay, Maceacherns of Killelan; and Mackays
of Ugadale.
I. The Clan Gillean.
At the date of the forfeiture of the Lordship of the ,
cir. 1342 ; Acts of Lords of Council, 1495 ; Keg. of Great Seal, XHL
123 ; XIV. 307.
1 Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 59.
9 Reg. of the Privy Seal, A.D. 1515. A certain Charles Macallaster
is mentioned as Stewart of Kintyre, A.D. 1481. Reg. of Great
Seal, X. 9.
J
THE MACLEANS OF DOWART. 69
Isles, this great clan was divided into four branches,
independent of each other; by which is meant that
each held of the Lord of the Isles, and that no one of
them was feudal superior of the others.
The first and most important branch, on account of
the extent of its possessions, was that of Dowart.
Lauchlan Maclean, surnamed Lubanach, the founder of
the house of Dowart, married, in 1366, Margaret,
daughter of the first marriage to John, first Lord of the
Isles.1 From John, and his successor, Donald, as Lords
of the Isles, Lauchlan, and his sod, Hector, received
extensive possessions, both in the Isles and on the
mainland.2 The same Hector was a principal leader,
under Donald of the Isles, at Harlaw, and lost his life
in that battle. His great-grandson, another Hector,
commanded the fleet of the Lord of the Isles at the
battle of the Bloody Bay, where he was taken prisoner
by the Clandonald.8 He was the leader of his tribe at
the time of the forfeiture in 1493, when his possessions
appear to have comprehended a great part of the Isles
of Mull and Tiree, with detached lands in the Isles of
Isla, Jura, Scarba, &c, and in the districts of Morvern,
Lochaber, and Knapdale. He was, moreover, heritable
keeper of the following castles: — Dowart, in Mull;
Carneburg, in the Treshinish Isles, off the north-west
coast of Mull ; Dunconnell, in Scarba ; Dunkerd, in the
Garveloch Isles, near Scarba ; and Isleborg, the locality
of which is uncertain. Maclean of Dowart has generally
been considered as the chief of all the Macleans.
The second branch of the Macleans, in point of im-
portance, was that of Lochbuy, sprung from Hector
1 Dispens. quoted in A. Stewart's History of the Stewarts, p. 447.
2 Eeg. of Great Seal, XIII. 800. 3 Hugh Macdonald's MS.
70 THE MACLEANS OF LOCHBUT.
Reganach, brother of Lauchlan Lubanach. Hector
was father of Murchard, whose great-grandson, John
Maclean of Lochbuy, was at the head of this sept in
1493. The nominal possessions of the family at that
date comprehended lands in Mull, Tiree, Jura, Scarba,
and Morvern, with the lands of Lochiel in Lochaber,
and those of Duror and Glenco in Lorn.1 The lands
of Lochiel, originally possessed by the Clanchameron,
had been granted, on the forfeiture of the chief of that
clan, by Alexander, Earl of Ross, to John Maclean of
Coll ; and were afterwards, for some reason which does
not appear, conferred by John, Earl of Ross, upon
Maclean of Lochbuy.2 All the three families kept up
their claims to the lands in question ; but the Clan-
chameron were successful in retaining the prize; and
the Macleans, although they appealed to the sword,
had little benefit from their charters to Lochiel. It is
uncertain whether the Lord of Lochbuy was more suc-
cessful in enforcing his claims to Duror and Glenco ;
but, with these exceptions, he seems to have possessed
the lands above-mentioned, free from interruption, up
to the time of which we write. The house of Lochbuy
has always maintained that, of the two brothers, Lauch-
lan Lubanach and Hector Reganach, the latter was the
senior ; but this is a point on which there is no certain
evidence.
The third branch of the Macleans was that of Coll,
descended, like Dowart, from Lauchlau Lubanach, who
was great-grandfather, it is said, of the fourth Laird of
Dowart and the first Laird of Coll, they being bro-
1 Beg. of Great Seal, XIII. 114, 115, 116.
2 Argyle Writs, A.D. 1461.
THE MACLEANS OF COLL AND ARDGOUR. 71
there.1 John Maclean, surnamed Gar ve, the first of Coll,
received that island and the lands of Qainish in Mall,
from Alexander, Earl of Boss, who afterwards, on the
forfeiture of Cameron, gave to John Garve a charter of
the lands of LochieL This led to feuds between the
Macleans and the Camerons, which continued long, and
in which much blood was shed ; but the Clanchameron
in the end maintained their ground. At one time John,
the son and successor of John Garve, occupied Lochiel
by force, and was at last killed at Corpach by the
Camerons.2 His infant son, John, born in Lochaber,
was saved by the good offices of the MacGillonies — a
tribe in Lochaber who generally followed the Clan-
chameron— and was afterwards known as John Abrach
Maclean of Coll.8 He was the representative of the
family in 1493, and from him his successors adopted
the patronymic, which is still applied to the Laird of
Coll, of Maclan Abrach.
The fourth branch of the Macleans, which held its
lands direct from the Lord of the Isles, was that of
Ardgour, descended from Donald, another son of
Lauchlan, third Laird of Dowart.4 Ardgour, which
formerly belonged to a tribe named MacMaster, was
conferred upon Donald, either by Alexander, Earl of
Ross, or by his son, Earl John. Eugene, or Ewin,
Donald's son, held the office of Seneschal of the House-
1 It is disputed which brother was the senior. Without going into
any details, I may state, that such evidence as I have seen tends to
support the claim of the family of Coll to seniority, and to the conclu-
sion, that the first Laird of Coll, whose mother was a Macleod of
Harris, was disinherited, to make way for his half brother, Lauchlan
Oig, whose mother was a daughter of the Earl of Mar.
3 MS. Histories of Macleans and Camerons.
» Writ in Ch. Chest of CoD, A.D. 1529. 4 Ma Hist, of Macleans.
72 THE CLAN LEOD.
hold to Earl John, in 1463 j1 and the Laird of Ardgour,
in 1493, was Lauchlan MacEwin Maclean.
A tribe so numerous, and possessed of such extensive
possessions as the Clan Gillean was, as might be ex-
pected, allied by marriage to all the principal families
of the Isles ; and its influence was, in this way, much
increased.
II. The Clan Leod.
This clan comprehended two leading tribes — the Siol
Torquil, or Macleods of Lewis, and the Siol Tormod,
or Macleods of Harris. Although descended, accord-
ing to tradition, from one common progenitor, Leod
(whence their collective appellation of Clanleod), the
Siol Torquil and Siol Tormod were, in fact, two power-
ful clans, perfectly distinct and independent of each
other. We commence with the Siol Torquil, as
having been connected with the Lords of the Isles for
a greater length of time than the other branch of the
Clanleod.
At the accession of David II., the islands of Lewis
and Sky belonged to the Earl of Ross.2 We have
already noticed the first claim of John of Isla (after-
wards Lord of the Isles) to these islands, founded on
a grant by Edward Balliol j and we have likewise seen
that, when he made his peace with King David in 1344,
this powerful chief had influence enough to retain Lewis,
whilst Sky was restored to its former owner. From
this time the Siol Torquil held Lewis as vassals of the
house of Isla. In the same reign Torquil Macleod,
chief of the tribe, had a royal grant of the lands of
1 Reg. of Great Seal, VI. 67.
* Robertson's Index, p. 53, No. 20; p. 124, No. 26.
THE CLAN LEOD OF LEWIS. 73
Assint, in Sutherland.1 These lands were, early in the
fifteenth century, given in vassalage by Roderick Mac-
leod of the Lewis, to his younger son, Tormod, ancestor
of the Macleods of Assint.2 The head of the Siol
Torquil, in 1493, was another Roderick, grandson of
the former, whose eldest son was mortally wounded
fighting for the old Lord of the Isles, at the battle of
the Bloody Bay,8 and died without issue. Torquil, the
second son, became heir of the Lewis, and married
Katherine, daughter of Colin, Earl of Argyle, which
shows that his family was then considered as one of
great power and influence in the Isles.4 The pos-
sessions of the Siol Torquil were very extensive — com-
prehending the Isles of Lewis and Rasay, the district of
"Waterness, in Sky, and those of Assint, Cogeache,
and Gerloch, on the mainland.
Malcolm, son of Tormod Macleod, and head of the
Siol Tormod, had, from David II., a charter of the
lands of Glenelg, which he and his successors always
held of the Crown.5 But the principal possessions of
these chiefs were, before the forfeiture in 1493, held
under the Lord of the Isles, by whose predecessors they
were acquired in the following manner. Harris, an
island, or rather peninsula, adjacent to Lewis, belonged
at an early period to the Macruaries of Garmoran and
the North Isles, under whom the chief of the Siol Tor-
mod appears to have possessed it. From this family
the superiority of the North Isles passed, as we have
already seen, to the house of Isla, by marriage; and
thus Harris came to form a part of the Lordship of the
1 Robertson's Index, p. 100. 9 Latin Hist of Macintoshes, MS.
» Hugh Macdonald's MS. 4 Reg. of Great Seal, XIII. 877.
8 Robertson's Index, p. 100.
74 . THE CLAN LEOD OF HARRIS.
•
Isles. The Isle of Sky, in which the Siol Tormod
had large tracts of land, formed originally part of the
Earldom of Ross, and likewise came to the family of
the Isles by marriage, along with the Earldom. When,
however, Ross was annexed to the Crown in 1476, Sky
did not, as formerly, go along with that territory, but
was left with the Lord of the Isles as an integral part
of his Lordship. The districts in Sky held by the
Siol Tormod under this nobleman, were, Dunvegan,
Duirinish, Bracadale, Lyndale, Trouterness, and Minga-
nish — forming fully two-thirds of the island.1 William
Macleod of Harris, great-grandson of the above-men-
tioned Malcolm, was one of the supporters of John,
Lord of the Isles, in the disputes between the latter and
Angus, his undutiful son; and was killed, fighting
against Angus and the chiefs of the Clandonald, at the
battle of the Bloody Bay.2 Alexander, commonly
called Allaster Crotiach, or humpbacked, son of William,
was at the head of the Siol Tormod in 1493.
The Lords of Lewis and Harris held a high and
equal rank among the vassals of the Isles., and were
allied by marriage to all the principal clans. In refer-
ence to the tradition of their descent from a common
ancestor, it deserves to be noticed that their armorial
bearings were different — that of Lewis being a burning
. Mount, that of Harris a Castle.8
III. The Clan Chamebon.
This tribe, as far back as we can trace, has had its seat
in Lochaber, and appears to have been first connected
1 Charter Chest of the family.
3 Hugh Macdonald's MS. ; Hist, of Macleods of Harris, MS.
8 Sir David Lindsay's Heraldry, Reg. Jac. V., and other Scottish
Heraldic Works.
THE CLAN CHAMEBON. 75
with the house of Isla in the reign of Robert Bruce,
from whom Angus Og of Isla had a grant of Lochaber.
There is reason to believe that the Clanchameron and
Clanchattan had a common origin, and for some time
followed one chief.1 These tribes have, however, been
separate ever since the middle of the fourteenth century,
if not earlier. Tradition mentions Allan, surnamed
MacOchtry, that is, the son of Uchtred, as the chief of
the Camerons in the reign of Robert II., at which time
a deadly feud subsisted between them and the Clan-
chattan, regarding the lands of Glenluy and Locharkaig,
in Lochaber. .From the same authority we learn that
the Clanchameron and Clanchattan were the tribes
between whom was fought the celebrated
combat of thirty against thirty, in presence of
King Robert III., at Perth.2 Donald Dubh, probably
grandson of Allan MacOchtry, led his clan at
" I41 ' the battle of Harlaw. He and the captain
of the Clanchattan, although they agreed in supporting
James I., when that King was employed in reducing to
obedience Alexander, Lord of the Isles, pur-
A. D. 1420. .
suedtheirprivatequarrelswithoutintermission.
In the same year in which they deserted the Lord of the
Isles and joined the Royal banner, these clans had a
desperate encounter, in which both suffered great loss;
but that of the Clanchameron was the most severe.3
Donald Dubh was present with the Royal forces
A. D. 14.31
at the battle of Inverlochy; after which his
lands were ravaged by the victorious Islanders under
1 John Major's History of Scotland, p. 302.
9 MS. History of Camerons, introductory to the life of Sir Ewin
Cameron of Lochiel.
8 Bower, John Major, and other Scottish historians, ad tempos.
76 THE CLAN CHAMERON.
Donald Balloch. On the liberation of Alexander, Lord
of the Isles, that nobleman took the earliest opportunity
of revenging himself upon the Clanchameron, for their
desertion of him in 1429. Donald Dubh was forced
to retire to Ireland, and his lands of Lochiel were
afterwards bestowed on John Garve Maclean of Coll.1
We have seen that John, Earl of Ross, granted the
same lands, at a later period, to John Maclean of
Lochbuy, and again to Celestine, Lord of Lochalsh.
It is natural to suppose that the Clanchameron, the
actual occupants of Lochiel, would resist these various
claims; and we know that John Maclean, the second
Laird of Coll, having held the estate for a time by force,
was at length killed by the Camerons, in Lochaber,
which checked for a time the pretensions of the Clan
Gillean. But, as the whole of that powerful tribe were
now involved in the feud — some from a desire to revenge
the death of Coll, others from their obligations to sup-
port the claim of Lochbuy — the chief of the Camerons
was forced to strengthen himself by acknowledging the
claim of the Lord of Lochalsh. The latter immediately
received Cameron as his vassal in Lochiel, and thus
became bound to maintain him in possession against all
who pretended to dispute his right to the estate.2 We
hear no more of the feud with the Macleans till after
the final forfeiture of the Lord of the Isles, when cir-
cumstances concurred to renew it with all its former
violence. Allan, the son of the above-mentioned
Donald Dubh, after becoming a vassal of Celestine of
Lochalsh for his lands of Lochiel, was appointed herit-
able Keeper of Celestine's Castle of Strone in Loch-
1 Hugh Macdonald's MS., and MS. History of the Camerons.
* Reg. of Great Seal, XII. 203.
THE CLAN CHATTAN. 77
carron.1 By a lady of the family of Keppoch,2 Allan had
a son, Ewin, who was captain of the Glanchameron in
1493, and became afterwards a chief of great note.
Besides the lands of Lochiel, Glenluy, and Locharkaig,
the Clanchameron occupied Glennevis, Mammore, and
other lands in Lochaber. The most important followers
of this tribe, at the end of the fifteenth century, were the
Camerons or Macsorlies of Glennevis, the Camerons or
Macgillonies of Strone, and the Camerons or Mac-
martins of Letterfinlay. These septs were all ancient
families in Lochaber, and seem to have adopted the
surname of Cameron, although not descended of the
family. The Macgillonies had taken the part of the
Macleans of Coll against the rest of the Clanchameron,
and suffered severely in consequence,8 but were after-
wards .reconciled to the latter. The chief of the Clan-
chameron was generally known in the Highlands by his
patronymical appellation of " Mac Dhonuill Duibh," i.e.,-
MacConnel Duy, or the son of Black Donald.
IV. The Clan Chattan.
The original possessions of the Clan Chattan, who are
said by some to have had a common origin with the
Clanchameron, seem to have been in Lochaber. From
this district, it is probable that the Clanchattan pro-
ceeded to settle in Badenoch, on the forfeiture of the
Comyns, in the reign of Robert Bruce. Here the tribe
became very numerous, and was divided into several
branches ; one of which, and the most important, the
i Keg. of Great Seal, XII. 203.
9 Ibid. Her name was Mariot, daughter of Aligns ; and her father
was the son and heir of Allaster Carrach of Lochaber.
* MS. History of the Macleans of Coll.
78 THE CLAN CHATTAN.
Macintoshes, kept up also a connection with Lochaber ;
while the other branches were entirely confined to
Badenoch. William Macintosh the chief of this
clan, received, in 1336, a grant of the lands
' I33 of Glenluy and Locharkaig in Lochaber, from
John of Isla, afterwards Lord of the Isles.1 From
this time a deadly feud prevailed between the Clan-
chattan and Clanchameron regarding these lands, which
lasted, with little intermission, for upwards of three
hundred years. In the fifteenth century Malcolm
Macintosh, then the chief, was involved in another
feud with the descendants of Alexander of the Isles,
Lord of Lochaber, the origin of which has been
noticed in the account of the Clanranald of Lochaber,
given above. This feud was kept up for more than
two hundred years. Although this Malcolm had,
along with the captain of the Clanchameron, deserted
Alexander, Lord of the Isles, in 1429, he afterwards
contrived to make his peace with that nobleman, from
a. d. 1443- w^om he received a confirmation of his lands
I447# in Lochaber, and a grant of the office of
Bailliary of that district. Duncan, son of Malcolm,
is styled, in 1467, Captain and Chief of the Clan-
chattan.2 He was in great favour with John, Earl of
Ross, whose sister, Flora, he married; and his eldest son
was Ferquhard, who engaged, during his father's life, in
the insurrection of Alexander of Lochalsh in 1491, as
has been already noticed. In addition to their lands
in Lochaber, the captains of the Clanchattan had
large possessions in Badenoch (in which district they
1 Charter Chest of Macintosh, as quoted in the Latin MS. History
of the family.
9 Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, VoL L, p. 80.
THE CLAN NEILL OF BARRA AND OF GIGHA. 79
resided), which, from the middle of the fifteenth
century, were held under the Lords of Gordon and
Earls of Huntly ; so that their allegiance was divided
between the latter and the Lords of the Isles.
V. The Clan Neill.
This tribe, like the Macleods, consisted of two inde-
pendent branches, carrying different armorial bearings,
and haying but little connection with each other, yet
said to be descended from brothers. These were the
Clan Neill of Barra, and the Clan Neill of Gigha.
Gilleonan, son of Roderick MacMurchard Macneill,
had, from Alexander, Lord of the Isles, in
42 ' 1427, a charter of the Isle of Barra, and of
the lands of Boisdale in South Uist.1 He was killed
in Coll, by John Garve Maclean, with whom he disputed
the possession of that island.2 His son, or grandson,
was at the battle of the Bloody Bay, and narrowly
escaped falling into the hands of the victorious Clan-
donald on that occasion.3 Another Gilleonan, pro-
bably grandson of the first, seems to have been chief
of this sept in 1493/
The first of the Macneills of Gigha of whom we have
any certain account, is Hector MacTorquil Macneill,
who was, in 1472, keeper of Castle Sweyn, in Knap-
dale, under the Lord of the Isles. Malcolm Macneill of
Gigha, probably his son, was chief of this sept in 1493.6
It deserves to be noticed here, that, after the forfei-
ture of the Lordship of the Isles, Macneill of Barra
1 Keg. of Great Seal, XIII. 188.
3 MS. History of Macleans of Coll. ' Hugh Macdonald's MS.
4 Gilleonan Macneill of Barra occurs in Record, A.D. 1515.
5 Reg. of Great Seal, XIII. 203. Ch. in Ch. Chest of Lochbuy.
80 THE CLAN FINNON.
followed Maclean of Dowart, while Macneill of Gigha
followed Macdonald of Isla and Kintyre. When, there-
fore, in the course of the sixteenth century, the Macleans
and Macdonalds came to be at deadly feud, and were
constantly engaged in acts of hostility, the two septs of
Macneills turned their swords against each other. This
circumstance, joined to the difference in their armorial
bearings, and to the fact that the Christian names used
in the one family were, with a single exception (the
name Neill), entirely unknown in the other, leads to the
conclusion that the tradition of their common descent is
erroneous.
VI. The Clan Finnon oe Mackinnons.
The first authentic notice of this ancient
A D 1 1 ka *
tribe, is to be found in an indenture between
the Lord of the Isles and the Lord of Lorn. The latter
stipulates, in surrendering to the Lord of the Isles the
Island of Mull and other lands, that the keeping of the
Castle of Kerneburg, in the Treshinish Isles, is not to
be given to any of the race of Clan Finnon.1 This
proves that the Mackinnons were then connected with
Mull. They originally possessed the district of Griban
in that island, but exchanged it for the district of Mish-
nish, being that part of Mull immediately to the north
and west of Tobermory. They, likewise, possessed the
lands of Strathordell in Sky, from which the chiefs
usually took their style. Lauchlan Macfingon, or
Mackinnon, chief of his clan, witnessed a charter by
Donald, Lord of the Isles, in 1409. 2 The name of the
1 Indenture printed in the Appendix to the second edition of
Hailea' Annals of Scotland.
9 Reg. of Great Seal, XIH 300.
MACQUARRIES, MACFIES, AND MACEACHERNS. 81
chief in 1493 is uncertain; but Neil Mackinnon of
Mishnish was at the head of the tribe in 1515.1 After
the forfeiture of the Lordship of the Isles, this family
generally followed Maclean of Dowart ; but occasion-
ally acted with the Macdonalds of Sky against the
Macleods.
VII. The Clan Guarie or Macquarries.
The first of this ancient tribe of whom we have any
authentic notice, is John Macquarrie of Ulva, who died
in 1473.2 He had a son, Dunslaff Macquarrie of
TJiva, who was chief of the Clan Guarie in 1493.
This family possessed the island of Ulva and some
adjacent lands in Mull, and followed Maclean of
Dowart after the forfeiture of the Lordship of the
Isles.
VHL The Clan Dufpie or Macpies op Colonsay.
Donald MacDuffie or Macfie of Colonsay witnessed
a charter of John, Earl of Ross, in 1463.3 The name
of the chief of this sept in 1493 is uncertain. Murroch
Macfie of Colonsay is mentioned in 153 1.4 The Clan
Duffie, after the forfeiture of the Lordship of the Isles,
followed the Macdonalds of Isla.
IX. The Clan Eachern or Maceacherns op
KlLLELAN.
This was an ancient tribe in Kintyre, which, after
the forfeiture of the Lordship of the Isles, followed the
i Reg of Privy Seal, A.D. 1515.
■ Reg. of Great Seal, XXXI. 159.
1 Reg. of Great Seal, VI. 17.
4 Acts of Parliament, ad annum 1531.
82 THE MACKAYS. — THE VASSALS OF BOSS.
Macdonalds of Isla and Kintyre. Colin Maceachern
of Killelan was head of this tribe in 1493.1
X. The Mackays op TJgadale in Kintyre.
Gilchrist MacTmar Mackay had a grant of lands in
Kintyre from King Robert Bruce.2 From him were
descended the Mackays of U^adale, who, after the
forfeiture of the Lord of the Isles, attached themselves
to the Macdonalds of Isla. They seem to have had no
connection with the Mackays of Strathnaver.8
Such were the principal clans in the Lordship of the
Isles at the date of the last forfeiture, in 1493, including
those descended of the house of the Isles, and those of
other surnames. They formed a large and attached
body of vassals while the Lordship existed ; and they
afterwards, as we shall presently see, made various
unsuccessful attempts to procure the restoration of a title
with which so many old recollections and traditions
were connected.
We have no space to notice in detail the Mackemies,
Munroes, Rosses, Dingwalh^ Urquharts, and Roses of
KilravocJc, who, as vassals of the Earldom of Ross,
were connected for about half a century with the Lord-
ship of the Isles. The forfeiture of the Earldom in
1476, made all these families independent of any supe-
rior but the Crown ; and, after that time, the Clankenzie
was the only one of them that exercised much influence
in the Isles, which arose chiefly from the locality of its
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, IV.f p. 148.
9 Ch. in Haddington's MS. Collections.
8 See Genealogies printed in Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, VoL L,
p. 54, from a MS. of the fifteenth century.
HACKENZIES, MACDOUQALLS, AND STEWARTS. 83
ancient possession of Kintaill, on the western coast of
Ross, and adjacent to the Isle of Sky. Alexander
Mackenzie of Kintaill received, in 1463, Strathgarve
and many other lands, from John, Earl of Ross ; * and
he increased his possessions greatly by grants from the
Crown, after the forfeiture of the Earldom. From this
time the Clankenzie always opposed the Clandonald,
and particularly such of the latter as possessed lands in
Ross.2 Kenneth, the son of Alexander, having divorced
bis wife, a daughter of the family of the Isles, was par-
ticularly exposed to the resentment of her relations.
It was he who routed Alexander of Lochalsh and his
followers, at Blairnepark, in 1491 ; and he died soon
after. Kenneth Oig, his son by the divorced wife, suc-
ceeded him, and was chief of the clan in 1493. On his
death, without issue, he was succeeded by his brother,
John, whose mother was a daughter of the Lord Lovat.
Of the other families in the West Highlands whose
history in the sixteenth century is mixed up with that
of the Islanders, the principal are, the Campbells,
the Macdougalls, and the Stewarts of Appin. Of the
two last, it is only necessary to say that they were, in
the end of the fifteenth century, vassals of the Earl of
Argyle, in his Lordship of Lorn ; and that their respec-
tive representatives, in 1493, were Alexander Mac-
do uga 11 of Dunolly, and Dougal Stewart of Appin.
The former was descended from the old house of de
Ergadia or Macdougall, Lords of Lorn ; and the latter
was the natural son of the last Stewart, Lord of Lorn,
whose daughter carried that Lordship to the family of
Argyle.
1 Dr. George Mackenzie's MS. History of the Mackenzies.
* All the genealogical histories agree in this.
84 THE CAMPBELLS.
The ancient and distinguished family of Argyle,
which was henceforth to exercise so great an influence
over the West Highlands and Isles, owed much of its
elevation to the same cause which first aggrandised the
house of Isla. To the gratitude of Robert Bruce for
his faithful services, Sir Neill Campbell of Lochawe was
indebted for many grants out of the lands forfeited by
the house of Lorn, the Comyns, and other supporters of
the Balliol party. The marriage of this baron with
Lady Mary, the sister of his sovereign, attached the
Campbells still more closely to the dynasty of Bruce ;
and their fidelity was proved in the minority of David
II. Early in the fifteenth century we find that Sir
Duncan Campbell of Lochawe, afterwards first Lord
Campbell, was accounted one of the most wealthy barons
in Scotland.1 Colin, first Earl of Argyle, Sir Duncan's
grandson, acquired by marriage the extensive Lordship
of Lorn,2 and held for a long time the office of Chan-
cellor of Scotland. In 1475 this nobleman was appointed
to prosecute a decree of forfeiture against John, Earl of
Ross, and Lord of the Isles;8 and, in 1481, he received
a grant of many lands in Knapdale, along with the
keeping of Castle Sweyn, which had formerly been held
by the Lord of the Isles 4 One of the daughters of
Colin, Earl of Argyle, was married to Ahgus, the young
Lord of the Isles, and was believed by the Islanders to
have been the mother of Angus' son, Donald Dubh,
i Rymer's Foedera, X. 802.
3 There are some doubts as to the precise mode in which Argyle
acquired Lorn ; for although he married one of the heiresses of line,
the Lordship appears to have been entailed on heirs male. He soon,
however, overcame aU difficulties, and possessed the Lordship without
opposition.
- Argyll Writs. * Reg. of Great Seal, IX.
THE CAMPBELLS. 85
who, as we have seen, was imprisoned in the Castle of
Iochconnell from his infancy. Another daughter of the
Earl of Argyle was married to Torquil Macleod of the
Lewis. Colin, first Earl, died in 1492, and was suc-
ceeded by his son Archibald, second Earl.1 It is
obvious that the mode in which the forfeited lands of
the Isles were disposed of by James IV. could not but
be a matter of deep interest to this potent family;
which, by its talent and policy, soon acquired an in-
fluence in the West nearly equal to what had been
enjoyed by the Lords of the Isles in the height of their
power.2
1 Histories of the family.
* The reader is requested to observe that, throughout this work,
where a patronymic is printed thus — " Mac Donald" — with a capital
letter, it indicates that the individual mentioned was really the Son of
Donald, or as the case may be. Where, on the other hand, a patro-
nymic is printed without the capital letter, thus — "Macdonald" — it is
merely a general surname, and does not indicate the precise parentage
of the individual
86
CHAP. I.
FROM THE FORFEITURE OF THE LORDSHIP OF THE ISLES IN
1493, TO THE DEATH OF KING JAMES IV. IN 1513.
In the preceding introduction, the history of the West
Highlands and Isles has been brought down to the period
when, by the forfeiture of John, last Lord of the Isles,
all the extensive possessions of that nobleman fell into
the hands of the Crown. We now proceed to the proper
object of the present work — namely, the history of these
districts during the reigns of James IV. and the three
succeeding sovereigns of Scotland. This portion of
Highland history has been selected for the following
reasons : — First, the Scottish historians of the sixteenth
century, and their followers, have passed it over in a
manner for which it is very difficult to account Secondly,
the national records, and other well-known sources of
information, hitherto neglected as far as the Highlanders
were concerned, supply ample materials for removing
the obscurity which the negligence of former writers has,
for such a length of time, thrown over the subject.
The repeated rebellions of the Lords of the Isles,
notwithstanding their propinquity to the Crown, and the
pardons so frequently accorded to them, make it pro-
bable that, on the occasion of the last for-
feiture, it had been determined by the Govern-
1493.] MODERATION OF JAMES IV. 87
merit to take all necessary measures to prevent in future
any single family acquiring an undue preponderance
in the Isles. This desirable result was sought at first by
means devised in a spirit of great moderation, and which
showed the wisdom of the counsellors of the young King.
The aged Lord of the Isles himself was, as we have
seen, treated with great mildness, although deprived of
his title and estates.1 Immediately after the forfeiture
of this powerful baron, James IV. proceeded in person
to the West Highlands, to receive the submission of the
vassals of the Lordship.2 In this the King judged
wisely; for experience had shown that the personal
presence of the sovereign was nowhere attended with
more marked effects than in the Highland portion of his
dominions ; and that the inhabitants of these wild and
almost inaccessible regions had so much respect for the
royal dignity, that they would willingly render to the
prince who should come in person to demand it,
that obedience which the king's lieutenant, with a
powerful army, might find himself unable to enforce.
Alexander de Insulis of Lochalsh, John de Insulis
of Isla, John Maclean of Lochbuy, and Duncan Mac-
intosh, captain of the Clanchattan, were among
the chiefs, formerly vassals of the Lord of the Isles,
who came in this year to meet the King and make
their submission to him. They appear to have re-
ceived in return royal charters of all or most of the
lands they had previously held under the Lord of the
Isles, being thus made freeholders and independent of
1 Introduction, p. 58.
1 He granted a charter at Dunstaffnage, on the 18th August, and
another at Mingany, in Ardnamurchan, on the 25th October, 1498.
Beg. of Great Seal, XIII. 200, 104.
88 JAMES VISITS THE ISLES. [1493.
any subject ; x and the two former were in such favour
with £he King that they received the honour of knight-
hood.2 Alexander of Lochalsh took the lead of the
other Islanders, as having been the presumptive heir to
the Lordship of the Isles previous to the forfeiture of
his uncle ; and he received from the King a promise to
secure all the free tenants of the Isles in their present
holdings/ an engagement which at first seems to have
been strictly adhered to. It must be allowed, that on
this occasion the King displayed great lenity, particu-
larly towards the knight of Lochalsh, who, as we have
seen, was the principal leader of the insurrection which
was the immediate cause of the forfeiture of the Lord-
ship of the Isles. Matters having been thus arranged,
the King took his departure for the Lowlands, resolving
to return next year and complete what had been so
well begun.
As some of the more powerful vassals still delayed
their submission, it became advisable that another
expedition should be accompanied by such a display of
military force as should effectually awe the disobedient.
In the month of April the King was in the
Isles, when he made preparations for a third
visit, by repairing and garrisoning the Castle of Tarbert,
one of the most important points on the west coast.
1 The Charters to Macintosh and Lochbuy are to be found in the
Reg. of Great Seal, XIII. 96, 114, 116, 116. That the others had
charters likewise (although not now extant), is inferred from the
fact of their being knighted about this time, and from other circum-
stances.
* Acts of the Lords of Council, 5th July, 1494. Treasurer's Accounts,
24th August, 1494.
* This promise is distinctly mentioned in several charters of the year
1498. Reg. of Great Seal, XIII. 336, 337.
1494.] HIS REPEATED EXPEDITIONS TO THE ISLES. 89
In the month of July he returned to Tarbert with a
powerful force, so anxious was he to hasten the settle-
ment of the Isles.1 He then proceeded to seize the
Castle of Dunaverty in South Kintyre, in which he
placed a garrison, provided, like that at Tarbert, with
artillery and skilful gunners. It will be recollected that
the districts of Kintyre and Knapdale were, in 1476,
expressly resigned by the Lord of the Isles, along with
the Earldom of Ross, to the Crown. A great portion
of Kintyre had been held, under the Lord of the Isles,
by Sir Donald de Insulis, surnamed Balloch of Isla,
prior to this resignation, which deprived Sir Donald and
his family of a very valuable possession. Whether Sir
John of Isla, the grandson and representative of Sir
Donald had, at the time he received knighthood, on
the first visit of James IV. to the Isles, any hopes of
the restoration of Kintyre, cannot now be ascertained.
But it is certain that he wasdeeply offended at the step now
taken, of placing a garrison in the Castle of Dunaverty;
and he secretly collected his followers, determined to
take the first opportunity of expelling the Royal garri-
son and taking possession of the district of Kintyre.
This opportunity was soon afforded to him. The King,
not expecting opposition from this quarter, was prepar-
ing to quit Kintyre, by sea, with his own personal atten-
dants— the bulk of his followers having previously been
sent away on some other expedition — when the chief of
Isla, finding everything favourable for his attempt,
stormed the castle, and hung the governor from the
wall in the sight of the King and his fleet.8 James,
1 Treasurer's Accounts, April and July, 1494.
* The Treasurer's Accounts, under August, 1494, show that Sir John
of the Isles was summoned, at that time, to answer for treason " in
90 EXECUTION OF SIR JOHN OF ISLA. [1494.
unable at the time to punish this daring rebel, took,
nevertheless, such prompt measures for the vindication
of his insulted authority, that ere long Sir John of
Isla and four of his sons were apprehended in Isla by
Macian of Ardnamurchan, and brought to Edinburgh.
Here they were found guilty of high treason, and exe-
cuted accordingly, on the Burrowmuir, their bodies
being interred in the church of St. Anthony. Two
surviving sons, who afterwards restored the fortunes of
this family, fled to their Irish territory of the Glens, to
escape the pursuit of Macian.1 In the course of this
year, likewise, two powerful chiefs, Roderick Macleod
of the Lewis, and John Macian of Ardnamurchan, made
their submission ; 2 and the activity displayed by the
latter against the rebellious Isles men soon procured him
a large share of the Royal favour.
In the following year, after extensive pre-
parations for another expedition to the Isles,
the King assembled an army at Glasgow ; * and, on the
18th of May, we find him at the Castle of Mingarry in
Ardnamurchan, being the second time, within two years,
that he had held bis court in this remote castle.4 John
Huchonson, or Hughson, of Sleat; Donald Angusson
of Keppoch ; Allan MacRuari of Moydert, chief of the
Kin tyre." The precise act of treason is learned from a tradition well
known in the Western Highlands.
i These particulars regarding the punishment inflicted on the chief
of Isla and his sons, are derived from the MS. of Macvurich and
Hugh Macdonald ; corroborated by a charter from the King to Marian*
dated 24th March, 1499, and preserved among the Argyle papers, reward-
ing the latter for his services in apprehending Sir John, his sons, and
accomplices.
9 Reg. of Great Seal, June, 1494, XIII. 128, 123.
• Treasurer's Accts., 1494-5. 4 Reg. of Great Seal, Xm. 179.
1495.] JAMES' EFFORTS TO INTRODUCE ORDER. 91
Clanranald ; Hector Maclean of Dowart, Ewin Allanson
of Lochiel, captain of the Clanchameron; and Gilleo-
nan Macneill of Barra, seem to have made their sub-
mission, in consequence of this expedition.1 In this
year, too, Kenneth Oig Mackenzie of Kintaill, and
Farqnhar Macintosh, son and heir of the captain of the
Clanchattan, were imprisoned, by the King, in the Castle
of Edinburgh. This may have been partly owing to
their lawless conduct in 1491 ; but was, more probably,
caused by a dread of their influence among the Islanders
— for the mothers of these powerful chiefs were each
the daughters of an Earl of Ross, Lord of the Isles.2
The measures now taken by the King were, soon after,
followed up by an important act of the Lords
# I49 * of Council, which merits particular notice.
This act provided, in reference to civil actions against
the Islanders — of which a considerable number were
then in preparation — that the chief of every clan should
be answerable for the due execution of summonses and
other writs against those of his own tribe, under the
penalty of being made liable himself to the party bring-
ing the action.8 This, although undoubtedly a strong
measure, was, in all probability, rendered necessary by
the disturbed state of the Isles after so many rebellions,
and could hardly fail to produce a beneficial effect; for,
in these wild and remote districts, the officers of the law
could not perform their necessary duties in safety, with-
out the assistance of a large military force. At the
same time that this important regulation was made, five
i Reg. of Great Seal, 1495, XIII. 150, 800, 203, 188.
9 MS. Histories of Mackenzies and Macintoshes. See also Intro-
duction to the present work, p. 83.
* Acta of the Lords of Council, VII., fo. 39.
92 LOCHALSH REBELS. [1496.
chiefs of rank — viz., Hector Maclean of Do wart, John
Macian of Ardnamurcban, Allan MacRuari of Moydert,
Ewin Allanson of Lochiel, and Donald Angusson of
Keppoch — appearing before the Lords of Council, bound
themselves, " by the extension of their hands," to the
Earl of Argyle, on behalf of the King, to abstain from
mutual injuries and molestation, each under a penalty
of five hundred pounds.1 Such were the steps taken
by the King and Council to introduce, at this time, law
and order into the remote Highlands and Isles.
The active share taken by King James in
supporting the pretensions of Perkin War-
beck withdrew his attention, for a time, from the state
of the Western Isles, and seems to have given oppor-
tunity for a new insurrection — which, however, was
suppressed without the necessity for another Royal
expedition. Sir Alexander of Lochalsh — whether with
the intention of claiming the Earldom of Ross, or of
revenging himself on the Mackenzies for his former
defeat at Blairnepark, is uncertain — invaded the more
fertile -districts of Ross in a hostile manner. He was
encountered by the Mackenzies and Munroes, at a place
called Drumchatt, where, after a sharp skirmish, he and
his followers were again routed and driven out of Ross.2
After this event, the knight of Lochalsh proceeded
southward among the Isles, endeavouring to rouse the
Islanders to arms in his behalf, but without success —
owing, probably, to the terror produced by the execution
of Sir John of Isla and his sons. Meantime, Macian
of Ardnamurchan, judging this a proper opportunity of
1 Acts of the Lords of Council, VII., fo. 39.
3 Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 77; Macvurich's MS.; Hugh
Macdonald's MS.
1497.] HIS DEATH. 93
doing an acceptable service to the King, surprised
Lochalsh in the island of Oransay, whither he had
retreated, and put him to death. In this Macian was
assisted, according to tradition, by Alexander, the eldest
surviving son of John of Isla, with whom he had con-
trived to effect a reconciliation, and to whom he had
given his daughter in marriage.1 Sir Alexander of
Lochalsh left both sons and daughters, who afterwards
fell into the King's hands, and of whom we shall have
occasion to speak in the sequel. About the same time
as the unsuccessful insurrection of which we have just
spoken, the chiefs of Mackenzie and Macintosh made
their escape from Edinburgh Castle ; but, on their way
to the Highlands, they were treacherously seized at the
Torwood by the Laird of Buchanan. Mackenzie hav-
ing offered resistance was slain, and his head, along
with Macintosh, who was taken alive, was presented to
the King by Buchanan. The latter was rewarded, and
Macintosh returned to his dungeon, where he remained
till after the battle of Flodden 2
In the summer of 1498, King James, still intent upon
preserving and extending his influence in the Isles, held
his court at a new castle he had caused to be erected
in South Kintyre, at the head of Loch Kilkerran,8 now
called the Bay of Campbellton. Alexander Macleod
of Harris, or Dunvegan, and Torquil Macleod, now
(by the death of his father Roderick) Lord of the Lewis,
paid their homage to the King on this occasion ; and
1 Macvurich's MS. ; Hugh Macdonald*s MS.
s MS. Histories of Mackenzies and Macintoshes.
» On the 16th June the King was at Stirling, and on the 28th of
that month, and the 3d and 5th of August, he dated charters "apud
novum castrum in Kintyre. " Reg. of Great Seal.
94 CHANGE IN THE KING'S POLICY. [1498.
some steps were taken to suppress the feud between
the Clanhuistein of Sleat and the Clanranald of Moy-
dert, regarding the lands of Garmoran and Uist.1 The
King soon afterwards returned to the Lowlands, leaving,
as he imagined, the Isles and West Highlands in a state
of tranquillity not likely soon to be disturbed. A few
months, however, sufficed to produce a wonderful change
in the relations between the King and his subjects in the
Isles. The cause of this change remains involved in
obscurity; but it must have been powerful, to induce so
sudden and total a departure from the lenient measures
hitherto pursued, and to cause the King to violate his
solemn promise, by revoking all the charters granted by
him to the vassals of the Isles during the last five years.2
The new line of policy was no sooner dertermined on than
followed up with the wonted vigour of the Sovereign.
We find him at Tarbert in the month of April,
when he gave commission to Archibald, Earl
of Argyle, and others, for letting on lease, for the term
of three years, the entire Lordship of the Isles as pos-
sessed by the last Lord, both in the Isles and on the
mainland, excepting only the island of Isla, and the
lands of North and South Kintyre.8 Argyle received
also a commission of Lieutenandry, with the fullest
powers, over the Lordship of the Isles; and, some
months later, was appointed Keeper of the Castle of
Tarbert, and Bailie and Governor of the King's lands in
Knapdale.4 Argyle was not, however, the only indivi-
1 Reg. of Great Seal, XIII. 305, 836, 337, 388, 377.
3 The King's general parliamentary revocation of all charters granted
in his minority could not affect those of the Islanders, which seem all
to have been granted after his attaining majority.
» Reg. of Privy. Seal, L, fo. 8. 4 Ibid, fo. 122, 108.
1500.] DISCONTENT OP THE ISLANDEES. 95
dual who benefited by this change of measures. Alex-
ander. Lord of Gordon, eldest son of the Earl
of Huntly, received a grant of numerous lands
in Lochaber, formerly belonging to the Lordship of the
Isles.1 Upon Duncan Stewart of Appin, who was much
employed in the Royal service, were bestowed the lands
of Duror and Glenco during the King's pleasure.2
The important services of Macian of Ardnamurchan
(who alone of all the Islanders seems to have retained
the favour of his Sovereign), were likewise suitably
acknowledged.8
About this time, the feud which had so long subsisted
between the Macleans and Camerons, regarding the
lands of Lochiel,4 broke out with renewed violence.
The Maclean 8 carried off a large prey of cattle from the
lands of the Clanchameron in Lochaber — an injury which
the latter, doubtless, did not suffer long to pass unre-
quited. These broils were ended for the time, probably
by the influence of Argyle; and the Macleans, who
appear to have been the aggressors, received a temporary
respite under the Privy Seal.6
Meantime, all the necessary legal steps
were taken preparatory to the expulsion of
many of the vassals of the old Lordship of the Isles
from their possessions6 The imminent danger in
which they now found themselves, joined to the escape
from prison and appearance amongst them of Donald
Dubh, whom they regarded as their hereditary Lord,
forced the Islanders into a combination, which soon
1 R*g. of Great Seal, XII. 422. « Reg. of Privy Seal, L, fo. 99.
3 Royal charter among the Argyle Writs, 29th March, 1499.
* Introduction, p. 70, 76. • Reg. of Privy Seal, I., fo. 114, 115.
* Acts of the Lords of Council, XI., fo. 13.
/
96 ESCAPE OF DONALD DUBH. [1501.
became formidable. The claims of Donald Dubh
to represent the family of the Isles have been already
stated;1 and, as they seem to have been, to a certain
extent, acknowledged by those who had, from his birth,
detained him in a rigorous confinement, it is not
surprising that the feelings of the Islanders should
have been enlisted in his favour. On his liberation
from his dungeon in the Castle of Inchconnel, which
he owed to the gallantry and fidelity of the men of
Glenco,8 Donald Dubh repaired to the Isle of Lewis,
and put himself under the protection of its Lord,
Torquil Macleod, by whom his cause was warmly
embraced. This powerful chief having married Kathe-
rine, daughter of the first Earl of Argyle, his opinion
as to the legitimacy of Donald Dubh — whose mother
was, according to the universal belief of the Islanders,
a sister of that lady — must have had great weight with
the other Hebridean chiefs and their followers. The
adherents of Donald, therefore, increased daily.
As the King was in constant communication with the
Earl of Argyle, with Macian of Ardnamurchan, and
Stewart of Appin,8 he did not long remain in ignorance
of the escape of Donald Dubh, and of its effect upon
the discontented chiefs of the West Highlands and
Isles. In order, probably, to check any insurrectionary
movements in Lochaber and the neighbouring districts,
the Earl of Huntly was sent to that quarter with in-
structions to collect the Crown rents by force, if neces-
sary.4 Torquil Macleod was charged, under the
1 Introduction, p. 53.
9 Macvurich's MS. ; Hugh Macdonald's MS.
* Treasurer's Accounts, ad terapus.
4 Beg. of Privy Seal, II, fo. 61.
1502.] MEASURES OF GOVERNMENT. 97
penalty of treason, to deliver up the person of Donald, the
bastard son of the late Angus of the Isles, who is de-
scribed as being at -Macleod's "rule and governance;"
and having failed to obey this mandate, he was formally
denounced a rebel, his lands being at the same time
forfeited.1 A commission was afterwards
given to the Earl of Huntly, the Lord Lovat,
and William Munro of Fowlis, to proceed to Lochaber
and let the King s lands of Lochaber and Mamore, for
the space of five years, to true men. At the same time
the commissioners had strict injunctions to expel all
broken men from these districts, which, in the state of
affairs at that time, was equivalent to an order to expel
the whole population. Similar directions were given
relative to the lands forfeited by Macleod of Lewis.2
The only ascertained result of this commission was a
grant, during the King's pleasure, * of the lands of
Mamore to Duncan Stewart of Appin, who was then
actively employed in the Isles.3 Many efforts were
made by the King to break up the confederacy of the
Islanders. His exertions were principally directed to
winning over Ewin Allanson of Lochiel, and Lauchlan
Maclean of Dowart. But although these powerful
chiefs entered into communication with their Sove-
reign, and one or both of them came to Court to follow
up their negotiations,4 yet, on their return to the
Highlands, they seem to have lost sight of every-
thing except the duty by which they fancied themselves
bound to support the claims of the alleged heir of
Innisgall.
1 Acts of the Lords of Council, XII., fo. 128.
* Reg. of Privy Seal, EL, fo. 108. > Ibid, fo. 84.
* Treasurer's Accounts. Beg. of Privy Seal, II., fo. 96.
10
98 THE ISIANDEBS INVADE BADENOCH. [1503.
At length the insurrection, which seems to
/ " have heen for some time apprehended, broke
out. It commenced by an irruption of the Islanders
and western clans, under their new leader, Donald
Dubh, into the district of Badenoch, which was plun-
dered and wasted with fire and sword, about the time of
the festival of Christmas, in 1503.1 As Badenoch be-
longed to the Earl of Huntly, and was inhabited chiefly
by the Olanchattan, who followed that nobleman in his
attempts to reduce Lochaber to obedience, we can easily
understand how the attacks of the insurgents came first
to be directed against this district. The rebellion thus
begun, soon became so formidable that the attention of
Parliament was necessarily drawn to the most effectual
means of suppressing it; nor was this found to be an
easy task. The array of the whole king-
dom, north of Forth and Clyde, was called
out; whilst the Earls of Argyle, Huntly,2 Craw-
ford, and Marischall, and the Lord Lovat, with other
powerful barons, were charged to lead this force against
the Islanders. Huntly undertook to seize and garrison
the castles of Strone in Lochcarron, and Elandonan in
Kintaill, as being "rycht necessar for the danting of the
His," provided the artillery and ammunition necessary
for besieging them were sent, by sea, at his Majesty's
charge. Letters were directed to be written to many of
the principal chiefs in the Isles, enjoining them to con-
cur with the other forces sent against the rebels, offering
* Acts of Parliament of Scotland, II. 263.
3 Alexander, third Earl of Huntly, succeeded his father in 1502.
He had, 14th August, 1503, a charter of the lands of Mamore in
Lochaber, previously held by Stewart of Appin, during the King's
pleasure. Eeg. of Privy Seal, II., fo. 84, 107.
1504.] FORFEITURE OF DOWAET AND LOCHIEL. 99
high rewards to such as should apprehend any of the
insurgents, and denouncing the penalties of treason
against such as should assist the latter. The state of
the castles of Inverlochy, Dunaverty, and Lochkil-
kerran — the two first of which seem to have been
ruinous, while the last was as yet unfinished — occupied
likewise the attention of Parliament; and measures
were adopted for invading the disturbed districts by sea
as well as by land. Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart, and
Ewin Allanson of Lochiel, who were the foremost to
join Macleod of the Lewis in proclaiming Donald Dubh
Lord of the Isles, were forfeited as traitors ; but, in spite
of all the efforts of Parliament, the insurrection con-
tinued for a while to gather strength. John Maclean
of Lochbuy, Dunslaff Macquarrie of Ulva, Gilleonan
Macneill of Barra, and Donald Macranaldbane of
Largie, were summoned to answer for their treasonable
support given to the rebels, who appear also to have
sought assistance both from England and Ireland.1
The Government, at the same time that these warlike
preparations were made, occupied itself in introducing
various important changes in the distribution of the
Isles and remote Highlands, with reference to the ad-
ministration of justice, which had, for many years, been
so little attended to, that the habits of the people had
become very wild and disorderly. To remedy this evil,
which had, in a great measure, arisen from the great
extent of the ancient sheriffdoms, the following legal
divisions of the Highlands and Isles were sanctioned by
Act of Parliament. A Justiciar or Sheriff was to be
appointed for the North Isles, and a similar functionary
1 Acts of Parliament, II. 240, et sequen. — commencing in March,
1503-4.
100 NEW LEGAL DIVISION OF THE HIGHLANDS. [1504.
for the. South Isles. The court of the former was to
be held at Inverness or Dingwall, and that of the latter
at Tarbert or Lochkilkerran.1 The inhabitants of
Duror and Glenco, and all the Lordship of Lorn, were
to attend the Justice Air or Circuit Court of Perth ;
those of Mamore and Lochaber, the Justice Air of In-
verness. The Justice Air of Argyle Proper was to be
held at Perth, if the King should desire ; so that High-
landers and Lowlanders might have equal facility in
obtaining justice. It was further enacted, that that
part of Cowal which was not comprehended within the
Earl of Argyle's heritable jurisdiction, should be
included in the Justice Air of Dunbarton; that the
Justice Air of Bute, Arran, Knapdale, Kintyre, and
Mekill Cumray, might, at the King's pleasure, be
holden either at Rothsay or at the burgh of Ayr ; and
that there should be appointed a Sheriff of Ross, whose
courts were to be held, according to the exigency of the
case, either at Tain or at Dingwall. 2
Notwithstanding the labours of Parliament, and
the great preparations made for suppressing the
rebellion in the Isles, two years elapsed before it
was finally quelled. Our information does not enable
us to trace regularly the progress of the Royal forces ;
but a few detached notices have been preserved, which
possess considerable interest. From them we learn
that the southern division of the Royal army had its
rendezvous at Dunbarton, in April, 1504 ; and that,
from this place, artillery and warlike stores of all kinds,
including "gun stanes," or stone bullets, were despatched
1 A Sheriffdom of Tarbert had been nominally established, at least
as early as 1480. Reg. of Great Seal, IX. 47.
* Acts of Parliament, II. 241, 249.
n
A. D. 1505.
1505.] THE REBELLION CONTINUES. 101
for the siege of Caraeburg, a strong fort on a small
isolated rock, near the west coast of Mull. In this year,
likewise, the Earl of Arran had two commissions against
the Isles ; and the Earl of Argyle, Macian of Ardna-
murchan, and Macleod of Harris or Dunvegan, were in
constant communication with the King, who did not
himself proceed to the Isles with this expedition. The
northern division of the army was commanded by Huntly,
who probably besieged and took the castles of Strone
and Elandonan. Owing, however, to the obstacles pre-
sented by the great extent of country, both mainland
and insular, which it was necessary to occupy for the
effectual crushing of so formidable a rebellion, little
progress could be made in one campaign. In the next
year, the Isles were again invaded ; from the
south by the King in person, and from the
north by Huntly, who made several prisoners, but none
•f them of high rank. 1 These persevering efforts, on the
part of Government, had, at length, the effect of dissolv-
ing the confederacy of the Islanders, and procuring the
submission of the chief leaders. Maclean of Dowart
•
set this example ; which was followed, after a time, by
Maclean of Lochbuy, and Donald Macranaldbane of
Largie.2 The submission of Dowart implied that of
Macneill of Barra, and Macquarrie of Ulva, two chiefs
who, since the fall of the Lord of the Isles, had followed
the banner of their powerful neighbours, the Macleans ;
1 Treasurer's Accounts, A.D. 1504-5. In these various expedi-
tions the Royal navy was much employed under Sir Andrew Wood
and Robert Barton ; but we have no detail of the services of these
distinguished officers in the Isles.
* Reg. of Privy Seal, III., fo. 1, 27 ; Treasurer's Accounts, ad
tempus ; Acts of Pari., IL 263, et sequen. ; Acts of Lords of Council,
XVIII., part I., fo. 40.
102 THE BEBELLION FINALLY SUPPRESSED. [1506.
so that the force of the insurgents was now completely
broken. Ranald AUanson, also, the heir of the chief of
Clanranald, was now in high favour at Court, and seems,
at this time, to have brought the feud of his family with
the Clanhuistein of Sleat to a successful issue.1 Tor-
quil Macleod of the Lewis, and others, who probably
despaired of pardon, still held out, and a third
campaign was thus rendered necessary. Mac-
leod was solemnly forfeited in Parliament for not appear-
ing to stand his trial for high treason ;2 and, in order to
execute this sentence, and to complete the dispersion of
the rebels, the Earl of Huntly again proceeded to the
North Isles. The Castle of Stornoway in Lewis was
besieged and taken, and the whole island reduced to
obedience ; but the fate of its Lord is uncertain. Y
Mackay of Strathnaver, who, with his clan, was of much
service in this expedition, was rewarded by a liferent
grant of the lands of Assint and Cogeach, forfeited by
the rebel Macleod.3 But although this tedious rebellion
was at length suppressed, it does not appear that the
projects of the Government for expelling the old inhabi-
tants from the Lordship of the Isles, and substituting
"true men" in their room, had made any sensible
progress. On the contrary, the clans of the Isles
and adjacent coasts continued to occupy, many of
them, perhaps, contrary to law, their ancient posses-
sions. Donald Dubh, the alleged heir of the Isles,
for whose sake the Hebridean chiefs had made such
sacrifices, again became a prisoner, and was committed
1 Reg. of Gr. Seal, XIV. 141 ; Reg. of Cr. Rentals, A.D. 1505.
3 Acta of Parliament, II. 268.
a Treasurer's Accounts, A.D. 1506. Reg. of Great SeaL XIV.
464.
1506.] PRIVATE FEUDS IN THE WEST HIGHLANDS. 103
to the Castle of Edinburgh,1 where he remained
until he made his escape a second time, nearly forty
years after this period, under the Regency of the Earl
of Arran. That event, as we shall see in the course of
the present work, caused the faithful Islanders once
more to rally round this unfortunate nobleman, the last
male in the direct line of his ancient house.
a.d. 1507- During the late rebellion the fury of the
I5I3- insurgents had been particularly directed
against the lands of the Glanchattan as vassals of the
Earl of Huntly, and of the Stewarts of Appin, who fol-
lowed the Earl of Argyle. The former clan were more
particularly obnoxious, as having, in order to save the
life of their captive chief,2 shaken off all connection
with the other vassals of the Isles, and as still
claiming extensive possessions in the heart of Lochaber.
The Stewarts of Appin, under the protection of the
Earl of Argyle, and by the favour of their Sovereign,
daily encroached upon the Lordship of the Isles from
the other side. It is not wonderful, then, that the
Clanchattan, whose lands of Glenluy and Locbar-
kaig in Lochaber had been for some years forcibly
occupied by the Clanchameron without acknowledg-
ment,8 should have suffered severely from the plunder
and devastation of the lands of Badenoch by the
rebels; whilst Appin, and other lands possessed by the
Stewarts, likewise felt the effects of a Highland inroad.
The feuds which, in former times, would have con-
tinued for generations between the injured parties and
«
1 Treasurer's Accounts, A.D. 1522-3.
2 Farquhar Macintosh, captain of the Clanchattan, who had been
a State prisoner since the year 1495.
» Since 1497 ; Acts of the Lords of Council, XVII., fo. 76.
104 GIFT TO A HIGHLAND STUDENT OF LAW, [1507.
the aggressors were now, by the influence of the King
and of the Earls of Huntly and Argyle, settled by
decisions of the Lords of Council, or of arbiters chosen
by the parties themselves.1
The King was not, however, content with merely
causing the laws to be obeyed — a result which might be
produced more by a dread of the Royal arms, than by
a sense of the benefits likely to flow from the introduc-
tion of order. He laboured to introduce a knowledge
of the laws of Scotland into the Highlands by means of
Highlanders. There is yet extant a gift of Crown
lands in the Isle of Sky, bestowed by James IV. upon
an individual named Kenneth Williamson, to support
him at the schools, with a view to his studying and
making himself master of the laws of Scotland, and of after-
wards practising asalawyer within thebounds of the Isles,2
Although during the remainder of this reign, justice
seems to have been dispensed with impartiality in all
parts of the kingdom, yet we have to regret that the
unsettled state of Scotland, during the three long
minorities which occurred between the death of James
IV. and the close of the sixteenth century, afforded but
too many opportunities to the turbulent clans of the
Highlands to relapse into the same lawless state from
which that monarch had so earnestly and so successfully
endeavoured to reclaim them.
The Royal authority was now so well established, and
the King himself was so popular among the Islanders,
that from the suppression of the insurrection in 1506,
to the disastrous battle of Flodden in 1513, the West
1 Acts of the Lords of CouncO, XIX., fo. 174 ; XX., fo. 104, 189,
237 ; XXIV., fo. 152-7-9 ; Reg. of Great Seal, XVI. 1.
9 Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, L, p. 22.
1513.] INFLUENCE OF THE EAKL OF HUNTLY. 105
Highlands and Isles seem to have been free from any
serious disturbance. The appointment of the Earl of
Huntly, whose services had been of such importance,
to the heritable Sheriffship of Inverness, did much to
extend the Royal authority in the North and West High-
lands. That extensive jurisdiction embraced the shires
of Inverness, Ross, and Caithness ; and Huntly was now
empowered to appoint deputies for certain specified
divisions of his sheriffdom. These deputies were to hold
their courts respectively at Kingussie, for the district of
Baden och; at Inverlochy, for that of Lochaber; at
Tain or Dingwall, for Ross; and at Wick, for Caith-
ness. In addition to this important office, Huntly was
appointed Governor of the Castle of Inverness, with
a large grant of lands for the support of a garrison.
Power was given to him to add to the fortifications;
and he was at the same time bound, on his own
expenses, to build upon the Castlehill of Inverness a
hall of stone and lime upon vaults. This hall was to
be one hundred feet in length, thirty feet in breadth,
and the same in height ; it was to have a slated roof,
and to it were to be attached a kitchen and a chapel
of proper size.1 The same nobleman had previously
obtained a grant of the site of the Castle of Inverlochy,
where he was bound to build a "tower and strength
with a barmekyn," which, however, had not been done —
owing to the Earl's constant employment in the King's
service — so late as the year 1511.2 From this period
1 Reg. of Great Seal, XV. 63. The Sheriffship and Governorship
were conferred upon Huntly by the same charter, dated 16th January,
1508-9.
a Beg. of Great Seal, XIV. 205 ; 22nd March, 1505-6. Keg. of Privy
Seal, III., fo. 167 ; IV., fo. 134.' As, at this time, the castle was un-
106 IMPROVEMENT IX THE STATE OF THE ISLES. [1507.
the great power formerly enjoyed by the Earls of Ross,
Lords of the Isles, was transferred to Argyle and
Huntly; the former having the chief rule in the South
Isles and adjacent coasts, whilst the influence of the
latter prevailed in the North Isles and Highlands.
The general effect of the vigorous government- of
James IV. was a decided improvement in the state of
the Isles during the latter part of his reign, which was
accompanied, however, by great changes in the relative
position of many of the principal insular families. These
changes we shall proceed briefly to notice. In the
course of James' frequent expeditions to the West
Highlands, the children of Sir Alexander de Insulis of
Lochalsh, who were all young at their father's death,
had fallen into his hands. It appears that they were
brought up in the Eoyal household, and we may presume
that their education was carefully attended to. Donald,
the eldest son — called by the Highlanders Donald
Galda, or the Foreigner, from his early residence in
the Lowlands — speedily became a great favourite with
the King. He was allowed to inherit his father's estates,
or a great . part of them, and was frequently permitted
to visit the Isles.1 This privilege he did not abuse
during the life of James IV. ; and, but for the untimely
death of that monarch, he would, no doubt, have
received still greater marks of favour.
The Clanhuistein, or family of Hugh of Sleat,
doubtedly ruinous, and as it was afterwards rebuilt, and continued for
a long time to hold a garrison under the Earls of Huntly — the present
ruins of Inverlochy Castle (as, indeed, might be inferred from the style
of architecture employed) can lay claim to no higher antiquity than the
earlier part of the sixteenth century.
1 Treasurer's Accounts, A.D. 1507 to 1512. Acts of tho Lords of
Council, XXIV., fo. 186.
1513.] BELATIVE POSITION OF THE CLANS. 107
was not so fortunate. John, the eldest son of Hugh,
having no issue himself, and haying probably quarrelled
with his brothers, made over all his estates to the Clan-
ranald, as well those estates which had been claimed
and forcibly occupied by that clan, as those which had
remained in his own hands.1 The rest of the Clan-
huistein, on John's death, were thus left without legal
rights to any landed property in the Isles ; and being,
moreover, viewed with jealousy by the Government, owing
to their propinquity to the last Lord of the Isles, they
were, in a manner, forced to become rebels. Donald
Gallach (supra, p. 60), their leader, was, with another
of the brothers, murdered by their own bastard brother,
Archibald, or Gillespick Dubh, an unprincipled and ambi-
tious man, whose atrocities seem to have been winked at
by the Government, on the ground, probably, that his
brothers were declared rebels, whom it was desirable to
exterminate. This happened about the year 1506;
and Archibald, the fratricide, having endeavoured to
seize the lands of Sleat, was expelled from the North
Isles by Ranald Allanson, the heir of Moydert, to whom
Sleat had been made over by John Huchonson, the last
legal possessor. Taking refuge in the South Isles,
where he joined himself to a band of pirates, Archibald,
after a time, procured his own pardon, by delivering up
to justice some of his lawless associates.2 He then
returned to Sky, and, being a man of ability, seized
the command of his tribe, and exercised the office of
Bailie of the extensive district of Trouterness; his right
1 Reg. of Great Sq&1, XIII. 336-7 ; XIV. 141. John Huchonson
had no brothers -german.
8 Hugh Macdonald's MS. ; Reg. of Privy Seal, HE., fo. 161. The
pardon was granted at the intercession of Argyle.
108 RELATIVE POSITION OF THE CLANS [1507.
to which, however acquired, was recognised by the
Government in 1510. x Such was the position of the
Clanhuistein in the end of James IWs reign.
The history of the principal house of the Clan Ian
Vor, from the time of the execution of its chief, Sir
John of Isla, and four of his sons, in or soon after the
year 1494, until the accession of James V., is a perfect
blank, as far as appears from the records. We know,
indeed, that the surviving sons possessed, during this
period, no heritage in Scotland;2 and although tradition
mentions that Alexander, the eldest, was reconciled to
Macian of Ardnamurchan, and assisted that chief in
putting to death Sir Alexander of Lochalsh, it seems
probable that his general residence was on his Irish
estate of the Glens, until after the battle of Flodden.
A subordinate branch of this family, the Clanranald-
bane of Largie, was engaged, as we have seen, in sup-
porting the pretensions of Donald Dubh; but they
made their submission, and received a pardon under
the Privy Seal in 1505.3
The private history of the Macdonalds of Loclwber,
or house of Keppoch, during this reign, is not devoid
of interest, Donald Angusson, grandson of Allaster
Carrach, the founder, was chief of this tribe in 1496.'
Being killed in a battle with Dougal Stewart, first of
Appin, about the year 1498, he was succeeded by his
son John. The latter made himself obnoxious to his
clan, by delivering up to Macintosh, as Steward of
Lochaber, one of the tribe who, having committed
some crime, had fled to his chief for protection, John of
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, IV., fo. 70 ; Hugh MacdonaloVs MS.
3 Acts of the Lords of Council, XXIX., fo. 128.
» Reg. of Privy Seal, III., fo. 51.
1513.] IN THE WEST HIGHLANDS AND ISLES. 109
Keppoch was, accordingly, deposed from the chiefship
by the elders of his tribe, and a singular dispute arose
as to his successor. The immediate descendants of
Allaster Carrach supported the claims of Donald Glas
MacAllaster, cousin-german and heir-male presumptive
of John, the deposed chief. On the other hand, some
of the subordinate, but long-established tribes in Loch-
aber, who had hitherto followed the descendants of
Allaster Carrach, proposed to. set up an individual of
another branch of the family of the Isles as chief of
that district of Lochaber in which Keppoch lies. This
was Godfrey or Gorrie, who was brought for the pur-
pose from Uist, and who claimed his descent from
Godfrey, Lord of Uist, the eldest son, as we have
shown, of John, first Lord of the Isles. The adherents
of Donald Glas eventually succeeded in procuring his
elevation to the command of the tribe ; and it is not a
little remarkable that from him sprung the later chiefs
of Keppoch, who always numbered among their most
attached vassals the descendants both of the deposed
chief and of the unsuccessful competitor, Gorrie.1
During the reign of James IV., this tribe continued to
hold their lands in Lochaber as occupants merely, and
without a legal claim to the heritage.
Previous to the year 1509, the Clanranald ofMoy-
dert appear to have been in high favour with their
Sovereign; and we have already seen the successful
1 These facte are well known to the descendants of the Keppoch
family who still remain in the Braes of Lochaber. The tribe most
active in setting up Gorrie was called Sliochd GiUemTiantich, or the
race of the Stutterer. The descendants of the deposed chief, some
of whom still remain, are pointed out as Sliochd a Bhrathair sheany
or the race of the elder brother.
110 RELATIVE POSITION OF THE CLAKS [1507.
issue of their feud with the Clanhuistein of Sleat
But in that year their chief, Allan MacRuari, if we
interpret rightly the studied obscurity of the Gaelic
historian, was tried, convicted, and executed in presence
of the King, at Blair in Athole, where his body lies
interred.1 His crime is not mentioned or even alluded
to by the seannachie ; nor do the records give us any
assistance in tracing it. He was succeeded by his
eldest son, Ranald Allanson, who, in 1513, met with the
same fate as his father ; and over the circumstances of
his death a similar obscurity is thrown by the delicate
hand of the Celtic narrator. The execution of Ranald
took place at Perth, and he seems, like his father, to
have been tried in presence of the King.2 As a chief
this Ranald was much beloved by those under him; and
he is highly praised for his good qualities by the family
historian.
While the other branches of the family of the Isles
were suffering more or less from the measures adopted
by Government after the year 1493, the Clanian of
Ardnamurchan, owing to the line of policy followed by
their chief, John Macian, as formerly noticed, increased
greatly in power, but became proportionably obnoxious
to the other Islanders. The Clanian of Glenco seemed
to share in the general misfortunes of their house.
Leaving the family of the Isles, and turning to the other
western clans, we find little to add to what has already
been written of them in the present chapter.
Towards the end of James IV.'s reign, the old"
quarrel between the Macleans and the Clanchameron,
regarding the lands of Lochiel, which had once more
1 Macvnrich's MS. 2 Ibid.
1513.] IN THE WEST HIGHLANDS AND ISLES. Ill
broken out, and another feud, carried on with much
bitterness, between the Macleans of Dowart and Lochbuy,
regarding their conterminous lands in Morvern and the
Isle of Three, were checked or extinguished by the
attentive care of the Sovereign. * The estate of Lewis
was, in 1511, restored to one of the old family — Malcolm,
the brother of the attainted rebel, Torquil Macleod;
one among many proofs that the attempt to introduce a
new class of tenants into the Lordship of the Isles had
proved unsuccessful.2 Hector Roy Mackenzie, pro-
genitor of the house of Gerloch, had, since the death of
Kenneth Oig Mackenzie of Kintaill, in 1497, and during
the minority of John, the brother and heir of Kenneth,
exercised the command of that clan, nominally as guar-
dian to the young chief. Under his rule the Clankenzie
became involved in feuds with the Munroes and other
clans; and Hector Roy himself became obnoxious to
Government, as a disturber of the public peace. His
intentions towards the young Lord of Kintaill were con-
sidered very dubious; and the apprehensions of the
latter and his friends having been roused, Hector was
compelled by law to yield up the estate and the com-
mand of the tribe to the proper heir.3 Hector Roy,
after a long and bloody feud, acquired from the Siol
Vic Gillichallum or Macleods of Rasay (a branch of
the family of Lewis), a small portion of the lands of
1 Acts of the Lords of Council, XIX., fo. 214— XX. fo., 105.
2 Reg. of Great Sea], XVII. 16. This charter was granted to the
exclusion of Malcolm Macleod's nephew, John, the son of Torquil.
See infra, ad annum 1528.
» Acts of the Lords of Council, XXII., fo. 142; Reg. of Great
Seal, XV. 89; MS. IIiBtory of Mackenzies, in the possession of
Lauchlan Mackinnon, Esq., of Lettcrfearn.
]12 BATTLE OF FLODDEN. [1517.
Gerloch, which his successors used so as to become in
time masters of the whole of that district. *
In spite of the apparent harshness of some of his
measures, the bold and chivalrous character of the
King had made, before the end of his reign, a deep
impression upon his Highland subjects. So great, in-
deed, was the attachment they felt for him, that when
he summoned the array of his kingdom to attend him
on his last and fatal expedition, the natives of the
distant Highlands and Isles repaired to his standard
with unwonted alacrity. The rashness of the Highland
division of the Scottish army is said to have been one of
the principal causes of the disastrous defeat at Flodden ;
and it is certain that . the Highlanders sustained a
very severe loss in the conflict. No Hebridean chief
of note appears to have fallen; but the Earl of
Argyle, and many of his clan, were among the slain.2
Tradition has preserved a curious anecdote connected
with the Mackenzies, whose young chief, John of Kin-
taill, was taken prisoner at Flodden. It will be recol-
lected that Kenneth Oig Mackenzie of Kintaill, while
on his way to the Highlands, after making his escape
from Edinburgh Castle, was killed in the Torwood, by
the Laird of Buchanan. — (Supra, p. 93). The foster-
brother of Kenneth Oig was a man of the district of
Kenlochew, named Donald Dubh Mac Gillecrist Vic
Gillereoch, who, with the rest of the clan, was at Flod-
den with his chief. In the retreat of the Scottish army,
this Donald Dubh heard some one near him say —
1 Letterfearn MS. Applecross's MS. History of Mackenzies of
Gerloch, Adv. Lib. Jac. V., 4, 15 ; Vol. L, p. 103.
2 Archaelogia Scotica, III. 324.
1513.] BATTLE OF FLODDEN. 113
" Alas, Laird ! thou hast fallen ! " On inquiry he was
told that it was the Laird of Buchanan who had sunk
from wounds or exhaustion. The faithful Highlander,
eager to revenge the death of his chief and foster-
brother, drew his sword, and, saying, " If he hath not
fallen, he shall fall," made straight to Buchanan, whom
he killed on the spot.1
Soon after their return from this battle, the Islanders,
taking advantage of the confusion occasioned by so great
a calamity, hastened to stir up a new rebellion. They
were led by Donald, now Sir Donald, of Lochalsh, who
seems to have been knighted under the Royal banner
in the field .of Flodden; but the history of this insur-
rection, as it belongs to the reign of James V., will be
found in the next chapter.
1 MS. History of Mackenzies, in the possession of L. MaekinnoD,
Esq., of Letterfearn*
11
114
CHAP. II.
DUBING THE REIGN OP JAMES V.— 1513-1542.
The death of so active a monarch as James IV. in the
prime of life, and the loss of so many of the chief
nobility of the country as fell at the battle of Floddea
Field, had the natural effect of throwing Scotland into
a state of great confusion. This was aggravated by the
evils usually attendant upon the minority of a sovereign
in these rude times, and from which the nation, in the
present instance, did not soon recover.
The Highlands and Isles had their full
A. D. 1513.
share of these evils. Scarcely had the High-
land chiefs returned, when a new plot was set on foot
for proclaiming a Lord of the Isles, in the person of
Sir Donald of Lochalsh. That chief himself, in the
month of November, 1513, with a large force of High-
landers, among whom were Alexander Macranald of
Glengarry and Wiland Chisholm of Comer, expelled
the garrison and seized the Castle of Urquhart on Loch
Ness, plundering and laying waste, at the same time,
the adjacent lands, which, with the castle, belonged to
John the Grant of Freuchy.1 About the same time,
1 Laird of Grant. Acts of Lords of Council, XXX., fo. 205.
1514] REBELLION OF SIR DONALD OF LOCHALSH. 115
Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart seized the royal Castle of
Carneburgh, near Mall ; and afterwards, with the assist-
ance of Alexander Macleod of Dunvegan, made him-
self master of that of Dunskaich, in Sleat. Sir Donald
was then proclaimed Lord of the Isles, and the numbers
of his adherents increased daily. To resist this rebel-
lion Colin, Earl of Argyle,1 who, in anticipation of
some outrages among the Islanders, had taken bonds
of fidelity from his vassals and others who had attached
themselves to the late Earl, was charged by the Council
to convocate so many of the King's liege subjects as
should be thought necessary, and to proceed against
Maclean and his associates.2 An act of
Council was then passed, appointing certain
individuals of influence in the north to take charge of
particular divisions of the northern shires, in the cha-
racter of Lieutenants, for the time. Among these,
Mackenzie of Kintaill and Munro of Foulis had charge
of Wester Ross. Ewin Allanson and William Lauch-
lanson were the guardians of Lochaber. At the same
time letters were written by the Council to all the
chief men of the mainland adjacent to the Isles charg-
ing them, in case the Islanders should land within their
territories with hostile intentions, to resist with their
utmost power ; and warning those who might refuse to
obey these orders, that they should be held equally
guilty with the insular rebels.3 These measures were,
1 Colin, third Earl, son and successor of Archibald, second Earl of
Argyle, who fell at Flodden.
3 Acts of Lords of Council, XXVI., fo. 25. Reg. of Privy Seal, V.,
fo. 12. Registers of Dunbarton. Protocol Book of Robert Watson,
Notary Public, fo. 23, 17th October, 1513.
3 Acts of the Lords of Council, XXVL, fo. 29.
116 . PARTIAL PACIFICATION- OF THE ISLES, [1513.
however, but feebly seconded ; and, some time
afterwards, it became necessary for John,
Duke of Albany, Regent of the kingdom, to give com-
mission to John Macian of Ardnamurchan to treat with
the less violent of the rebels, and to promise them the
Royal favour, and remission for their crimes, provided
they engaged to carry themselves in future as obedient
subjects, and to make restitution to those who had
suffered from their incursions.1 This commission excepts
the principal rebels, and shows the strength of the party,
which was far from contemptible ; embracing the Mac-
leans of Dowart, the Macleods of Lewis and Harris, and
Alexander of Isla, besides the near relations and per-
sonal adherents of Sir Donald of Lochalsh, and several
of the smaller clans in the Isles, who could not safely
refuse to take part with their more powerful neighbours.
In the course of a short time, the powerful influence of
Argyle prevailed upon the insurgents to submit to the
Regent, and, upon assurance of protection, to come to
Court, and arrange in person the terms upon which
they were to be pardoned and restored to favour ; and
considerable progress seems to have been made in a
pacification of the Isles in consequence of this treaty.2
Argyle and his followers took out a remission for
ravages committed by them in the Isle of Bute in the
course of the insurrection, and rendered necessary, it
may be supposed, from some of the rebels having there
found shelter and protection.3 In the north, Mackenzie
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, V., fo. 2.
* Reg. of Privy Seal, V., fo. 9, 12, 26, 35.
8 Ibid., fo. 31. Discharge by the inhabitants of Bute to the
Earl of Argyle, dated 26th May. 1518. Charter Chest of Mount-
stuart.
1516.] PARTIAL PACIFICATION OF THE ISLES. 117
of Kintaill, who had, without legal warrant, seized
the royal Castle of Dingwall for his own purposes, now
professed his readiness to deliver it up to any one
appointed by the Regent ; * and everything seemed to
promise a speedy conclusion to these intestine disorders.
Various disputes, which had arisen between
* " Sir Donald of Lochalsh and Macian of Ard-
namurchan, were submitted to the decision of the proper
tribunals ; and, by the influence of Government, mutual
obligations of redress were exchanged between these
chiefs, for the injuries done by each to the lands and-
properties of the other in time past.2 The reconcilia-
tion of Sir Donald to the Regent was apparently so
cordial, and so much power was still left to him in the
Isles, that, on the 24th Sept., 1516, a summons was
despatched to the Earl of Argyle, and to "^Monsieur de
Ylis," to join the Royal army, then about to proceed to
the Borders.3 Some months after this time, the latter
appears to have been in Inverness with no good inten-
tions ; for the Earl of Huntly was directed to watch his
motions; 4 and ere long he was again in open rebellion.
Sir Donald and his followers had joined with Alexander,
Lord Home, in the treasonable practices which brought
that nobleman's head to the block ; and, after his death,
had given shelter to his proscribed followers.6 This
1 Acts of the Lords of Council, XXVII., fo. CO.
2 Acta of the Lords of Council, XXVIL, fo. 162-3, 171, 180, 192,
205, 206, 207. Sir Donald appeared frequently before the Council at
this time, relying on a safe conduct. lie was likewise engaged in a
lawsuit with Argyle.
» Treas. Accounts, ad tempus. * Treas. Accounts, Jan. 19, 1516-17.
5 Reg. of Privy Seal, V., fo. 101, XIII., fo. 46. Lord Home and his
brother William were beheaded for treason, 8th October, 1516. Tytler's
Scotland, V., 122.
118 Sift DONALD AGAIN REBELS. [1517.
fact, regarding which all our historians are silent,
would seem to imply that Sir Donald was first excited
to rebellion by the intrigues of English agents, and
serves to account for the inveteracy of the Scottish
government against him after this time.1
Having given out to the Islesmen, that the
Lieutenandry of the Isles, and various other
offices belonging to the Crown, had been bestowed upon
him by the Regent and Council, Sir Donald succeeded
at first in raising a considerable body of men, with
■which he expelled Macian from Ardnamurchan, and
took possession of the Castle of Mingarry. Although
repeatedly charged, by order of the Council, to deliver
up the castle and lands to the rightful owner, he not
only refused, but, in defiance of the Government, he razed
the Castle of Mingarry to the ground, and ravaged the
whole district of Ardnamurchan with fire and sword.
Meantime, his chief leaders found that he had deceived
them, and that his intention was to lay waste, instead
of protecting, the lands of which he professed to have
received the control. They became disgusted, too,
with his refusal to follow their advice, and with the
reckless character of his proceedings (for the danger-
ous consequences, either to himself or his followers,
however obvious they might be, could not terrify him,
or divert him from his insane projects), and, at length,
taking the matter into their own hands, determined on
apprehending him, and delivering him up to the Regent.
Sir Donald, however, being made aware of their design,
effected his escape ; but his two brothers were made
1 Regarding Home's intrigues with England, and the policy adopted
by Lord Dacre, the English Minister, towards Scotland, see Tytler, V ,
108, et sequen.
1517.] HIS TWO BROTHERS APPREHENDED. 119
prisoners by Maclean of Dowart and Macleod of Dun-
vegan, who hastened to offer their submission, and
palliate their own conduct. Such is the account of
these transactions which we derive from the statement
of Maclean and Macleod themselves;1 and it appears
to be so far correct, and to be deficient only in omitting
the services of the Earl of Argyle, which, from other
sources, are known to have contributed mainly to bring
the affairs of the Isles to the present pass.2
Early in 1517, Argyle, with the Macleans of Dowart
and Lochbuy, and Macleod of Harris, presented to the
Council certain petitions and offers relating to the affairs
of the Isles. Although these petitions were each
separate and distinct, the tenor of the whole was uni-
form, and all advocated the suppression of Sir Donald's
rebellion. The importance of these State papers is so
great, and so much light is, by means of them, thrown
upon the history and manners of the period, that they
merit particular notice.
The petition of the Earl of Argyle, which was pre-
sented to the King and his Regent by the advice of
the Lords of Council, demanded that the Earl should
be invested with very high powers over the men of the
Isles, "for the honour of the realm and the common-
weal in time coming." First, he desired a commission
of Lieutenandry over all the Isles and adjacent main-
land, on the grounds of the vast expense he had pre-
viously incurred, of his ability to do good service in
future, and of his having broken up the confederacy of
1 Petition of Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart, and Alexander Macleod
of Dunvegan, to the Regent and Council, recorded in Books of Council,
XXIX., fo. 211.
9 Petition of Argyle to the Regent and Council. Ibid, fo. 210.
120 PETITION OF ARGYLE TO THE COUNCIL. [1517.
the Islanders, which commission he obtained, with cer-
tain exceptions.1 Next, he claimed and obtained
authority to receive into the King's favour all the
men of the Isles who should make their submission to
him, and become bound for future good behaviour — to
promise them remission for their former offences, and
to engage for the restitution, not only of their heritage,
but of such Crown lands as they previously held in lease,
upon proper security being given for payment of the
accustomed rents and duties, by the delivery of host-
ages and otherwise; the last condition being made im-
perative, "because the men of the Isles are fickle of
mind, and set but little value upon their oaths and
written obligations."2 Sir Donald of the Isles, his
brothers, and the Clandonald, were, however, specially
excepted from the benefit of this article. The Earl
likewise demanded and received express power to pur-
sue and follow the rebels with fire and sword, to expel
them from the Isles, and to use his best endeavours to
possess himself of Sir Donald's Castle of Strone in
Lochcarron. • Particular instructions were given to him
to demand hostages from the Clan Ian Vor, or Clan-
donald of Isla, and their followers, who were now the
principal supporters of Sir Donald; and, in the event of
their refusal, to pursue them with the utmost severity ;
while, on the other hand, if they should submit, their
leaders, the surviving sons of the late Sir John Cathanach
1 The exceptions were those parts of Lochaber belonging to the Earl
of Huntly, the Clanchattan, and Ewin Allanson ; also the Isles of Bate
and Arran. The duration of the commission was limited to three years,
and further during the Regent's pleasure.
3 This quotation is slightly but faithfully modernised, to make it
more intelligible.
J 517-] PETITION OF MACLEAN OF DOWART. 121
of Isla, were to receive Crown lands, in the Isles, to the
annual value of one hundred merks, to enable thein to
live without plundering the King's lieges, and to keep
good rule in time to come — they being now without
heritage, owing to their father's forfeiture.1
The petition of Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart, con-
tained the following demands: — First% a free remission
of all offences to himself and his associates; and parti-
cularly to his "kin, men, servants, and part-takers," fol-
lowing— viz., Donald Maclean,2 Gilleonan Macneill of
Barra, Neill Mackinnon of Mishnish, Dunslaf Mac-
quarrie of Ulva, and Lauchlan MacEwin of Ardgour —
it being understood that Dowart was ready to make
redress of all damages committed against the Earl of
Argyle and Macian of Ardnamurchan, according to the
decision of certain mutual friends. This remission was
authorised by the Council to be granted to Maclean,
upon hostages being given for future obedience. His
next demands are somewhat startling, when his own
previous conduct, and the history of his predecessors, are
taken into consideration, and might well justify the
charge of fickleness of mind brought against the
Islanders by the Earl of Argyle. He desired, in the
second place, that Sir Donald of Lochalsh, with his
associates, should be proceeded against as traitors, and
their lands forfeited, according to law, for their treason
and perseverance in rebellion. In the third place, he
demanded that Sir Donald's two brothers, then in his
custody, should be "justified," i.e., executed, according
1 Acts of the Lords of Council, XXIX., fo. 128 ; Petition of Argyle,
facing fo. 211 ; Reg. of Privy Seal, V., fo. 102.
2 Uncle to Dowart, and his heir, failing issue male of Dowart's body.
Reg. of Great Seal, XIII., 301.
122 PETITIONS OF LOCHBUY AND HARRIS. [1517.
to law, "for pleasure and profit to the King ajid Regent,
and for stability of the country; " and further stated that
he would act with double zeal in the King's service, as
soon as he should perceive that the Government was
serious in " destroying the wicked blood of tJie Isles ;
for, as long as that blood reigns, the King shall never
have the Isles in peace, whenever they find an oppor-
tunity to break loose, as is evident from daily experi-
ence"1 For his good services done and to be done —
and particularly for collecting, which he now under-
took to do, the King's duties, in all places " within the
point of Ardnamurchan" 2 (except those belonging to
Macian, who was to answer for himself), Maclean
demanded an heritable grant of one hundred merk lands
in Tiree and Mull, free from all duties. This., how-
ever, the Council would not give for a longer term than
till the majority of the King, an arrangement with which
he was obliged to rest satisfied in the meantime. He
made various other demands,chiefly regarding his lands
and possessions in the Isles; and, with some trifling
exceptions, these were all acceded to.8
John Maclean of Lochbuy, and Alexander Macleod
of Harris, demanded and received remissions for them-
selves, and their kinsmen and followers, upon giving
hostages, as in the other cases. The latter likewise
demanded an heritable grant of the lands of Trouter-
ness, in Sky, which was refused ; but he was continued
King's tenant as formerly.4
1 This quotation is likewise slightly but faithfully modernised.
* " Within" here means " south of."
3 Acts of the Lords of Council, XXIX., fo. 128, et sequen. Petition
of Dowart, facing fa 211 ; Reg. of Privy Seal, V^ fa 100, 101.
4 Ibid. See onwards, under the year 1528.
1517.] DOWART RECEIVED INTO FAVOUR. 123
The Earl of Huntly having found some of the Clan-
chattan rather unruly at this time, prevailed with the
Council to give directions to Argyle, Dowart, and the
others, to expel the Clanchattan from the bounds of
Argyle's Lieutenandry, in case they should fly in tbat
direction ; and, likewise, to give their assistance in re-
ducing them to obedience. On the other hand, Huntly
became bound to act in the same manner towards Sir
Donald of the Isles, or any other rebels who might be
flying from the Earl of Argyle, into those Highland
districts of which Huntly was Lieutenant. 1
In regard to the execution of the two brothers of Sir
Donald, urged by Maclean of Dowart, the Council
were divided in opinion; the majority being in favour of
capital punishment, while the others wished the matter
to be left entirely to the Regent; and, although it
cannot positively be affirmed, there is reason to think
that the opinion of the majority prevailed.2 When the
arrangements of the Council were finally concluded,
Maclean of Dowart appeared before them, and gave
his solemn oath of allegiance to the King and Eegent ;
binding himself, at the same time, to give his best assis-
tance to Argyle, as Lieutenant in the Isles, for the
good government of these districts, and as far as lay in
his power to observe the public peace, and administer
justice to all the King's lieges.3 It seemed now scarcely
possible that Sir Donald of the Isles, the principal
rebel, should escape death or imprisonment ; but he had
1 Acts of the Lords of Council, XXVIIL, fo. 77. ; XXIX., fo. 128.
2 Ibid, XXIX., fo. 128. The brothers of Sir Donald, whose names
are not mentioned in the Record, certainly died without issue, as
Sir Donald was succeeded by his sisters.
8 Ibid, fo. 128.
124 Silt DONALD CONTINUES IN REBELLION. [1517.
still some powerful friends, by whose assistance he kept
himself for some time longer out of the power of his
enemies, and was even enabled to revenge himself upon
one whom he had some reason to look upon as his
hereditary enemy, and as the instigator of many of the
measures taken against him.
John Macian of Ardnamurchan had, under James
IV., distinguished himself, as we have seen, by the
vigorous and unhesitating manner in which he supported
Government; and, among his other services, he had
apprehended Sir John of Isla, and put to death Sir
Alexander of Lochalsh. His activity and talent pro-
cured him much favour and many lucrative employments
in the Isles from that King, which were continued to
him by the present Government ; and, as he was well
aware that his concern in the death of the two indi-
viduals just mentioned would never be forgotten by
their children and kinsmen, and that vengeance was
only delayed till a favourable opportunity, he was one
of the first to join the Earl of Argyle upon his return
to the Isles after the battle of Flodden ; and he uni-
formly opposed, to the best of his ability, Sir Donald
of Lochalsh and his party. His lands and possessions
suffered severely in consequence; and his life was
sought with the utmost eagerness, not only by Sir
Donald himself, but by Alexander of Isla,1 who,
although Macian's son-in-law, had early joined the
rebels, with all his followers, determined to revenge
the death of his father and brethren. Some
time after the submission of the Macleans
and Macleod of Dunvegan, Sir Donald, assisted by
1 At least, such is the tradition ; supported by Hugh Macdonald*
and Macvurich's MS.
1518-19.] HE KILLS MACIAN OF ARDNAMURCHAN. 125
the Macleods of Lewis and Rasay, came southwards
to Ardnamurchan, where he met Alexander of Isla;
and, having united their forces, these chiefs proceeded
against Macian. They came upon the latter at a
place called Craiganairgid, or the Silver Craig in
Morvern, where he was defeated and slain, along with
two of his sons, John Sunoirtich and Angus, and a
great number of his men ; whilst the rumour of this
success brought many to join the insurgents. * Measures
had formerly been commenced to have Sir Donald
forfeited in Parliament for high treason ; and, upon the
Council being informed of the slaughter of the Macians,
Argyle advised that sentence of forfeiture should be
pronounced as soon as the necessary forms would
admit. In this, however, he met with some
opposition, which caused him to take a
solemn protest before Parliament, that neither he nor
his heirs should be liable for any mischiefs that might
in future arise from rebellions in the Isles ; as, although
he held the office of Lieutenant, neither was his advice
taken as to the management of the districts committed
to his charge, nor had he received certain supplies of
men and money, formerly promised to him by the
Regent for carrying on the King's service in the Isles.2
This last statement fully accounts for the length of
time Sir Donald had been allowed to remain at large
after the defection of so many of his adherents ; and it
is difficult to say how much longer this state of things
1 Macvurich's and Hugh Macdonald's MS. Macian was dead
some time before 18th August, 1519. Keg. of Privy Seal, V., fo.
139. In February, 1517-18, the Earls of Huntly and Argyle were
both directed to proceed against *' Donald Ilia, rebel and traitor,
and his complices.'9 Acts of Lords of Council, XXX., fo. 199.
* Acts of the Lords of Council, XXXII., fo. 122.
126 ' INFLUENCE OF ABGYLE [1520-7.
might have continued, had not his death, which took
place some weeks after his success in Morvern, brought
the rebellion, which had lasted with little intermission
during upwards of five years, to a sudden close.1 Sir
Donald was the last male of the family of Lochalsh,
and died without issue.
a. d. 1520- For some years after this time the Isles
w- remained in a state of comparative tran-
quillity, owing partly to the continued imprisonment of
Donald Dubh, which deprived the Islanders of their
natural leader. This interval of peace was employed
by Argyle in extending his influence among the chiefs,
with whom his commission of Lieutenancy brought him
in contact. He received from Alexander Macranald of
Glengarry and North Morar, a bond of man-rent or
service ;2 and this, it may be presumed, was not a soli-
tary1 instance among the vassals of the Isles. The
principal coadjutors of Argyle in these plans for the
aggrandisement of his family and clan were his brothers,
Sir John Campbell of Calder, and Archibald Camp*
bell of Skipnish. Calder, whose patrimony lay in
the district of Lorn, was particularly active; and,
having acquired from Maclean of Lochbuy certain
claims, hitherto ineffectual, which that chief had to
the lands of Lochiel, Duror, and Glenco, he did not
fail to make use of his opportunities. At first, he
1 Macvurich and Hugh Macdonald, in their MS., both agree
as to the fact of Sir Donald's death very soon after the slaughter
of Macian ; but they differ as to the place where he died ; the former
making it Carneburg, near Moll, the latter the Inch of Teinlipeil in
Tyree.
3 Crawford's M& Collections, Advocates' library, 5th February,
1619-20.
1520-7.] AND THE CAMPBELLS. 127
-was violently resisted by the Camerons and Stewarts,
the occupants of the lands in question, and suffered
many injuries from them in the course of this dispute.
But by transferring his title to these lands to his
brother Argyle, and employing the influence of that
nobleman, Calder succeeded in establishing a certain
degtee of authority over the unruly inhabitants, in a
mode then of very frequent occurrence. Ewin Allanson
of Lochiel, and Allan Stewart of Duror, were, by the
arbitration of friends, ordered to pay to Calder a large
sum of damages, and, likewise, to give to him, for
themselves, their children, kin, and friends, their bond
of man-rent and service against all manner of men,
except the King and the Earl of Argyle. In con-
sideration of these bonds of service, three-fourths of
the damages awarded were remitted by Calder, who
became bound also to give his bond of maintenance in
return. Finally, if the said Ewin and Allan should do
good service to Sir John in helping him to obtain and
enjoy lands and possessions, they were to be rewarded
by him therefor, at the discretion of the arbiters.1
By such means was the influence of the house of
Argyle extended and confirmed in the West Highlands.2
The first symptoms of renewed disorders in the Isles
arose out of an occurrence which is familiar to most
readers, as having formed the groundwork of a cele-
brated modern tragedy. Lauchlan Cattanach Maclean
1 Acts of the Lords of Council, XXXVL, fo. 109 ; XXXVIII.,
fo. 190 ; Reg. of Privy Seal, VL, fo. 47 ; Reg. of Great Seal,
XXIL 252.
2 Argyle's commission of Lientenandry over all the Isles and
adjacent mainland (except Bute and Arran) was renewed 16th Nor.,
1524 ; Reg. of Privy Seal, VII., fo. 102.
128 DO WART EXPOSES HIS WIFE ON A ROCK. [1527.
of Dowart had married Lady Elizabeth, daughter to
Archibald, second Earl of Argyle; and, either from the
circumstance of their union being unfruitful, or more
probably owing to some domestic quarrels, he determined
to get rid of his wife. Some accounts say that she had
twice attempted her husband's life ; but, whatever the
cause may have been, Maclean, following the advice of
two of his vassals, who exercised a considerable influence
over him from the tie of fosterage, caused his lady to be
exposed on a rock, which was only visible at low water,
intending that she should be swept away by the return
of the tide. This rock lies between the island of Lis-
niore and the coast of Mull, and is still known by the
name of the " Lady's Rock." From this perilous situa-
tion, the intended victim was rescued by a boat acciden-
tally passing, and conveyed to her brother's house.1
Her relations, although much exasperated against Mac-
lean, smothered their resentment for a time, but only to
break out afterwards with greater violence; for the
Laird of Dowart being in Edinburgh, was surprised,
when in bed, and assassinated by Sir John Campbell of
Calder, the lady's brother.2 The Macleans instantly
took arms to revenge the death of their chief, and the
Campbells were not slow in preparing to follow up the
feud; but the Government interfered, and, for the
present, an appeal to arms was avoided.3
The young King, now in his seventeenth
year, having made his escape from the fhral-
1 MS. History of Macleans.
3 Diurnal of Occurrents in Scotland (printed by Bannatyne Club),
p. 8, ad annum 1523 ; Letter, Commissioners of Lord of the Isles to
Privy Council of England, August, 1545— quoted by Tytler, V. 233.
» Reg. of Privy Seal, VI., fo. 66.
1528,] THE KING ASSUMES THE GOVERNMENT. 129
dom in which he had so long been held by the Earl of
Angus and the Douglases, the policy of the Govern-
ment seems to have undergone a considerable change.1
An important enactment regarding the Isles, one of the
first passed by the new Privy Council, points out the
means employed by Angus, during his usurpation, as it
may be called, of the supreme power, to secure adher-
ents in that quarter of the kingdom. This act bears,
that certain persons in the Lordship of the Isles had
obtained new titles to lands there, which might " turn
to the great skaith of his Majesty, both in respect to
his own proper lands and his casualties, without the same
be wisely considered and foreseen to be for the good of
his grace and realm." Indeed, it would appear that,
during the frequent minorities of the Scottish Sovereigns
the dilapidation of the Crown lands was the chief resource
of a weak or unpopular Government, in order to main-
tain itself longer in power, by the support of those who
were thus permitted to prey upon the patrimonial
revenues of the King. In the present instance all such
grants were declared null; and it was provided that, in
future, no lands should be bestowed in the West High-
lands and Isles, but by the advice of the Privy Coun-
cil and of the Earl of Argyle, the King's lieutenant
in the Isles : " because it is understood by the King,
that the said lands, or the most part thereof, are his own
proper lands, or in his hands, through forfeiture, escheit,
or non-entries."2
In this year, owing, perhaps, to the sudden change
of government, serious broils occurred both in the north
1 Tyfler, V., p. 221.
' Collectanea de Rebus Albanicisr I., p. 155.
12
130 FEUD BETWEEN THE MACDONALDS [1528.
and south Isles. The disturbances in the north arose
out of a feud between the Macdonalds and Macleods
of Harris, regarding the lands and office of Bailliary of
the extensive district of Trouterness, in the Isle of Sky.
To understand this feud properly, it will be necessary
to trace, with some care, the history of the district in
question. By a charter under the Great Seal, in August,
1498, the office of Bailliary, with two unciates of the
lands of Trouterness, was confirmed to Alexander
Macleod of Dunvegan, as having been formerly held
by him under the Lord of the Isles, and as being then
in the hands of the Crown, by the last forfeiture of that
nobleman.1 Two months later, another charter passed
the Great Seal, granting the same office, and eight
merks of the lands, to Torquil Macleod of the Lewis,
on precisely similar grounds.2 Both of these charters
seem to have been rendered null by the general revoca-
tion in 1498, or 1499, already alluded to. — (Supra,
p. 94.) In 1505, the eighty merk lands of Trouterness
were let, by the commissioners of the Crown, for three
years, to Ranald Bane Allanson of Moydert, the Earl
of Huntly being surety for the payment of the rent by
the latter.8 In 1510, Archibald Dubh, the blood-
stained captain of the Clanhuistein, was acting as
Bailie of Trouterness, and a letter was directed under
the Privy Seal to the tenants of Trouterness in his
favour.4 Ranald Bane of Moydert was executed at Perth
in 1513; and Archibald Dubh soon afterwards met with
the fate he deserved, being killed by his nephews, the
sons of his murdered brothers.6 Macleod of Dunvegan,
* Reg. of Great Seal, XTIT. 805. s Ibid, XIII. 377.
* Beg. of Crown Rentals, ad tempos.
4 Reg. of Privy Seal, IV., fo. 70. 8 Huge Macdonald'a MS.
1528.] AND MACLEODS OF HARRIS. 131
who seems to have been principal Crown tenant of Trou-
terness some time before 1517, had his lease con-
tinued from that year until the majority of James V. —
(Supra, p. 122.) Under the government of the Earl of
Angus, Dunvegan appears to have obtained also an heri-
table grant of the lands of Sleat and North Uist ; and
thus became additionally exposed to the hostility of the
Clanhuistein of Sleat, who were now under the com-
mand of Donald Gruamach.1 The latter chief sought
the assistance of his uterine brother, John MacTorquil
Macleod (son of Torquil Macleod of the Lewis, for-
feited in 1506, and nephew of Malcolm, the present
Lord of Lewis), a man like himself, without legal in-
heritance of any kind, in order to expel Dunvegan and
his clan from Trouterness. In this they were success-
ful, as well as in preventing him putting in force his
new charter to Sleat and North Uist. Trouterness was
again occupied by the Clanhuistein, and John Mac-
Torquil, taking advantage of the opportunity afforded
by the death of his uncle, and the minority of the son
of the latter, and aided by Donald Gruamach and his
followers, seized the whole barony of Lewis, which,
with the command of the Siol Torquil, he held during
his life.2 Having thus briefly traced the origin of the
disturbances which, in this and the following years,
occurred in the North Isles, we shall now turn to the
commotions in the South Isles.
1 Donald Gruamach (or grim-looking) was son of Donald Gallach,
and grandson of Hugh, Lord of Sleat. His mother was first married
to Torquil Macleod of the Lewis. Hugh Macdonald's MS.; Dean
Munro's Genealogies.
3 Acts of the Lords of Council, XXXIX., fo. 15D ; XLL, fo. 79.
Acts of Parliament, U. 833. Sir R. Gordon's History of the family of
Sutherland, p. 263.
132 DISTURBANCES IN THE SOUTH ISLES. [1529-
The Clandonald of Isla, and their present chief,
Alexander Maclan Cathanach, were probably among
the number of those rewarded by the Earl of Angus
with grants of the Crown lands. But the late Act of
Council having declared all such grants null, the efforts
of Argyle to enforce an act so favourable to himself,
and a sense of the injustice with which they conceived
themselves to have been treated, soon drove Alexander
of Isla and his followers into insurrection. They were
readily joined by the Macleans, who still
panted for an opportunity to revenge the
death of their late chief, and the combined clans made
descents upon Roseneath, Craignish, and other lands
belonging to the Campbells, which they ravaged with fire
and sword, killing at the same time many of the inhabi-
tants,1 The partisans of Argyle retaliated, by laying
waste great part of the Isles of Mull and Tyree, and
the lands of Morvern.2 The insurrection had pro-
ceeded to a great height in August of this year, when
Sir John Campbell of Calder, on behalf of his brother,
the Earl of Argyle, demanded from the Council powers
of an extraordinary nature, to enable him to restore the
peace of the country. He requested among other
things, that all the substantial householders in the shires
of Dunbarton and Renfrew, and the bailliaries of Car-
rick, Kyle, and Cunningham, might be commanded to
meet Argyle at Lochransa, in Arran, with provisions for
twenty days, and to assist him against the Islanders.
The Council refused to issue this order at present, on
acoount of the harvest ; but they gave directions for a
cannon, with two falconets and three barrels of gun-
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, IX., fo. 18. * Ibid, EX., fo. 179.
1529.] A HERALD SENT TO THE ISLANDEBS. 183
powder, under the charge of two gunners, and as many
carpenters, to be forwarded to Dumbarton, for the use of
the Earl, in case he should find it necessary to besiege
any of the " strengths " in the Isles. At the same time,
they determined upon sending a herald, "of wisdom
and discretion," to Alexander of Isla, with directions,
in the first instance, to summon him and his followers
to lay down their arms, under pain of treason ; and, if
he found them disposed to be obedient, the hearld was
then authorised to treat with that chief about his com-
ing under protection, to wait upon the King and state
his grievances in person, being prepared to give host-
ages (Lowlanders) for his obedience, and for his pay-
ment of the rents and duties of such lands as might be
assigned to him by his Sovereign.1
This mission, which indicated considerable doubt of
Argyle, was entrusted to a pursuivant named Robert
Hart, who, in the course of a month, reported to the
Council the result of his conference with Alexander of
Isla; which proved so unsatisfactory that directions were
immediately given to the Earl to proceed against the
rebels, and reduce the Isles to obedience without delay.2
Little progress was made, however, during the next six
months; but in the spring of 1530, prepara-
tions on a more extensive scale were commenced
for concluding this service. The tenants of the Isles,
according to a roll of them placed in Argyle's hands,
were to be summoned to come to the King's presence,
upon the 24th of May, " to commune with his Majesty
for good rule of the Isles." They were likewise to be
prohibited from giving any assistance to the rebels, or
1 Acts of Lords of CounoU, XL., fo. 80. * Ibid, fo. 117.
134 PREPARATIONS AGAINST THE ISLANDERS. [1530.
from convocating the King's lieges in arms, under the
pain of treason ; whilst the men of Carrick, Kyle, and
Cunningham, of Renfrew and Dunbartonshires, of
Balquhidder, Braidalbane, Rannoch, Apnadull, Athole,
Menteith, Bute, and Arran, were to be charged, under
high penalties, td join the King's lieutenant at such
places as he should appoint, and to continue with him
in the service for a month; and the burghs of Ayr,
Irvine, Glasgow, Renfrew, and Dunbarton, were to send
their boats with provisions for the army, for which pay-
ment was to be made. In case any of the Islesmen
should be afraid to trust themselves in the low country,
they were offered protections for their coming to the
King, and for thirty days additional, to admit of their
returning home safe.1
These preparations produced some effect. In the
month of May, nine of the principal Islanders,2 sent by
the hands of Hector Maclean of Dowart, one of their
number, offers of submission to the King, who imme-
diately granted them a protection against the Earl of
Argyle and any others, provided they would come to
Edinburgh, or wherever the King should happen to be
holding his court, before the 20th of June, and remain
as long as his Majesty should require their attendance ;
it being always understood that the protection was to last
for twenty days after their departure for the Highlands.
As an additional security for their safety in coming and
1 Acts of Lords of Council, XLI., fo. 77.
3 These were, Hector Maclean of Dowart; John Maclean of Lochbuy ;
John Moydertach, Captain of the Clanranald; Alexander Macian of
Ardnamurchan ; Alexander Macleod of the Harris (or Dunvegan) ; the
Laird of Coll (Maclean) ; John Macleod of the Lewis ; and Donald
Gruamach of Dunskaich (a castle in Sleat).
1530.] THEIR OFFERS OF SUBMISSION. 135
going, the King promised to take two of the following
hostages from the Earl of Argyle : — Duncan Campbell of
Glenurchy, Archibald Campbell of Auchinbreck, Archi-
bald Campbell of Skipnish, and Duncan Campbell of
Hangerig, who were to be confined in Edinburgh Castle.1
Colin, Earl of Argyle, dying in this year, was succeeded
by his son Archibald, fourth Earl, who immediately took
the oath of allegiance to the King, and was appointed
to all the offices held by his father and grandfather.2
Meantime, owing to the sickness and death of the late
Earl, the King's service in the Isles had remained sta-
tionary ; and, in the month of November, it was resolved
that the King should proceed in person against the
rebels in the following April, which term was afterwards
altered to the 1st of June ; and, in contemplation of the
Royal expedition, various important arrangements were
made. The array of Perth and Forfar, and of all
Scotland south of these shires, was directed to meet the
King at Ayr on the day appointed, with provisions for
forty days, to accompany his Majesty to the Isles;
whilst the array of the northern shires was ordered to
meet James, Earl of Murray, natural brother to the
King, and Lieutenant of the North, at Kintaill, or
elsewhere, as he should appoint, and to proceed in the
service according to his directions. Finally, a Parlia-
ment was summoned to meet at Edinburgh on the 24th
of April, to pass sentence of forfeiture against the
Islesmen who should then continue disobedient.3
1 Acts of Lords of Council, XLL, fo. 79. a Ibid, fo. 134.
» Ibid, fo. 118, 154 ; XLIL, fo. 35, 40. It appears that a " grati-
tude" of £5,000, to be levied on beneficed clergy of upwards of
£100 a- year income, was voted by the Churchmen in Parliament for
this expedition. Ibid, XLL, fo. 154, and Treasurer's Accounts, ad
tempus.
136 OFFERS OF SERVICE BT AROYLE [1531.
Alexander of Isla hastened to open a com-
munication with the King, as soon as he
became aware of the magnitude of the preparations
made for the Royal expedition ; and, having received a
protection and safeguard, he came to his Majesty at
Stirling, made his submission, and was received into
favour upon certain conditions, which shall be after-
wards noticed. The same course was pursued by
Hector Maclean of Dowart; and, as these chiefs had
been the principal leaders of the insurgents, the rebel-
lion might now be looked upon as nearly at an end j1 at
least the King's presence was no longer thought neces-
sary— the management of the expedition being com-
mitted to the Earls of Argyle and Murray. Previous
to their departure on this service, these noblemen gave
in to the Council certain offers, of which the following
is an abstract : — Argyle offered to pay the King's duties
as tenant of Kintyre, whether the land lay waste or not,
and both in peace and war, as his predecessors had done.
He then engaged to proceed to the borders of the
South Isles, and endeavour to prevail upon the inhabi-
tants, by fair means, to take their lands on lease from
the King's commissioners, and to pay the rents yearly
to his Majesty's comptroller ; and, in the event of their
refusal, he pledged himself with his own kinsmen,
friends, and followers, to compel them to obedience, or
eke to destroy them, root and branch, and quiet the
Isles in that way, without creating any burden upon the
rest of the country ; and, at the same time, he requested
that two of the King's household should accompany him,
to observe his behaviour, and to see that he did not
i Acts of Lords of Council, XLII., fo. 144, 185 ; Reg. of Privy Seal,
X., fo. 50, 68.
1531.] AND MUKRAY AGAINST THE ISLANDERS. 137
proceed to extremities, until all other means had failed.
On the ground of the experience of himself, and his clan
and friends, " in the dan ting of the His/9 he demanded,
farther, that the Council should be commanded to con-
sult with him, and take his advice in their future pro-
ceedings with reference to the Islanders, and particu-
larly in the punishment of the disobedient, and the
rewarding of those who should do the King good service.
Lastly, he desired a commission of lieutenandry over
the South Isles and Kintyre — a request which would
imply that James, when preparing to go in person to
the Isles, had revoked all former commissions. Mur-
ray made similar offers, and preferred nearly similar
petitions regarding the North Isles, over which he had
been appointed lieutenant ; but went a little further
than Argyle, in declaring his readiness to find security
for the regular payment of the King's rents, within the
districts committed to his charge ; and he concluded by
a statement, that he undertook this service upon his
own expenses, from a desire to forward the King's
service, and to pacify the country, and that he expected
no remuneration unless his endeavours were successful.1
The two Earls then proceeded to their respective posts;
and, in the course of this summer, the insurrection was
totally suppressed — not so much by their exertions as
by the voluntary submission of the principal chiefs, who,
finding that the King would gladly avoid measures of
extreme severity, followed the example of Alexander of
Isla and Maclean of Dowart, and made their personal
1 Acts of the Lords of Council, XLIL, fo. 186. Argyle, at this time,
at the King's request, resigned his heritable office of Chamberlain of
Kintyre, fo. 186.
138 SUBMISSION OF THE ISLANDERS. [1531.
submission to the Sovereign, by whom they were par-
doned, upon giving security for their obedience in future.
The terms given to Alexander of Isla, who was con-
sidered the prime mover of this insurrection, will serve
to show the line of policy pursued by the Government at
this period for restoring order in the Isles. This chief
having come to Stirling, and offered his service to the
King in the most humble manner, by written offers, and
having placed himself wholly at the King's disposal,
was restored to favour, upon the following conditions : —
He became bound to assist the Royal chamberlains in
collecting the rents and duties of the Crown lands in
the South Isles and Kintyre, and to procure for them
the assistance of all chieftains or heads of tribes in these
districts over whom he had any control, in proof of
their obedience to the Royal authority. He also pro-
mised to set at liberty all prisoners whom he had in
custody belonging to Argyle's party, and to abstain
from meddling with the lands and possessions of others ;
and, finally, he pledged himself to support and maintain
the Church in all her privileges, and to cause the rents
of ecclesiastical lands to be punctually paid. For these
promised services, he received a new grant, during the
King's pleasure, of certain lands in the South Isles and
Kintyre, formerly allowed to him under the regency of
Alexander, Duke of Albany, and a remission to himself
and his followers for the offences committed by them
during the late rebellion.1 Such were the means adopted
by James V. to win the Islanders to good government ;
and, as he was now sensible of the beneficial effects
attending a free personal intercourse between himself
and these warlike chiefs, he soon acquired as much
1 Acta of Lords of Council, XLII., fo. 186.
1331.] JEALOUSY OF ABGYLE'S INFLUENCE. 139
influence in the Isles as had been enjo}'ed by his gallant
and chivalrous sire. Of this, an instance occurred about
this time which deserves particular attention, as throwing
much light upon the conduct of the family of Argyle
towards the clans in their vicinity.
Colin, third Earl of Argyle, had, during all the
eventful changes of government in the minority of
James V., contrived to retain the . important^office
of lieutenant over the whole Lordship of the Isles,
and to make, this, in fact, an heritable office in his
family. But a jealousy of the increasing power of the
Campbells seems early to have been entertained by
some of the Privy Councillors, and from them transferred
to the young King. Nor is this much to be wondered
at. These councillors must have known that, in for-
feiting the ancient Lords of the Isles, James IV. con-
templated not a mere change of family, but an entire
alteration of system, which would give the Crown an
efficient control over these territories. Thev must
have observed with alarm the office of lieutenant in
the Isles — which implied much more extensive powers
than could legally be exercised by the feudal lord —
becoming hereditary in a family already distinguished
for its wealth and extensive vassalage. These feelings
seem gradually to have ripened into a suspicion that
many of the disturbances in the Isles were secretly
fomented by the Royal lieutenant, in the hope of bene-
fiting by the forfeitures which were expected to follow.
The first indication of distrust on the part of the King
and Council, was their sending a herald direct to the
chief of Isla in 1529; and when, two years afterwards,
that individual endeavoured to open a communication
with Government, he did so, not through Argyle, but
140 INSIDIOUS CONDUCT OF ABGYLE. [1531.
by the instrumentality of a worthy burgess of Ayr.
The Earl of Murray was now associated with Argyle,
whose operations, as we have seen, were restricted to
the South Isles, while the King ]ised every means to
encourage the Islanders to apply in person to himself.
When Archibald, fourth Earl of Argyle, proceeded
in 15S1 to the Hebrides, he was much disappointed
that the submission of Alexander of Isla and Maclean
of Do wart, joined to their influence upon the lesser
clans who followed them, had left him so little to do ;
and, as the remissions obtained by these chiefs placed
them beyond his power as long as they remained quiet,
he seized every opportunity of irritating them, so as to
cause them to break the peace, and enable him to
proceed against them. Failing in these designs, he
presented a complaint to the Council, alleging that
Alexander of Isla had been guilty of various crimes
against him and his followers, thinking in this way to
bring the other into discredit. Alexander being sum-
moned to answer the charges preferred by the Earl,
made his appearance without hesitation, much to the
surprise of his accuser ; whilst Argyle absented himself,
and did not even attempt to prove his allegations ; and
it was even reported that he took this opportunity of
proceeding, in concert with the Earl of Murray, again
to the Isles, where his appearance was dreaded as the
signal for new devastations. The chief of Isla, mean-
while, after waiting long for the arrival of Argyle,
gave into the Council a written statement of a very
remarkable nature. He denied solemnly the crimes
laid to his charge ; declaring that he had done nothing
since his restoration to favour, but by the Royal autho-
rity, and offering anew* to exert all his influence to
1531.] COMPLAINT OF ALEXANDER OF ISLA. 141
cause the King's rents in the South Isles and Kin-
tyre to be paid to any person properly appointed to
receive them. He expressed his apprehension of the
reported invasion of the Isles in terms which led to
the conclusion that, if such a measure was really in
progress, the authority for it must have been obtained
by false or exaggerated statements. He offered, i
commission were given to himself, or any other chief
in whom the King reposed confidence, for calling out
the array of the Isles, in the event of war with England,
or in any part of the realm of Scotland, to bring more
fighting men into the field than Argyle, with all his
influence, could levy in the Isles. He offered, likewise,
in case Argyle should be disposed at any time to resist
the Royal authority, and provided the King's commands
to that effect were issued to his lieges in the Isles, to
cause the Earl to quit Argyle, and dwell in another part
of Scotland, where " the King's grace might get reason
of Mm." He then undertook that, if any person in the
Isles offended the Earl, or any individual in the Low-
lands, he should cause the culprit to appear before the
King, and either stand his trial for the offence, or redress
the wrong inflicted, in the same way that Lowlanders
were bound to do; consideration being had for the
disturbed state of the Isles, caused, as this statement
distinctly asserts, by the late Earl of Argyle, and his
brothers, Sir John Campbell of Calder and Archi-
bald Campbell of Skipnish. Finally, he engaged
to perform all his Sovereign's commands, "for the
honour and weal of the realm, with all his power,
with the utmost diligence, and without dissimulation/' *
The King, . moved with the confidence reposed in him,
1 Acta of Lords of Council, XLI1L, fo. 64.
142 ABGYLE 1MP1US0NED AND DISGRACED. [1531.
made such an examination into the complaints of the
Islanders as satisfied him that the family of Argyle had
been acting more for its own benefit than for the welfare
of the country. The Earl was summoned to appear
before his Sovereign, to give an account of the duties
and rental of the Isles received by him;1 and James
was so much displeased with the result of his inquiry
into Argyle's proceedings, that he committed him to
prison soon after his arrival at Court. The conduct of
the Earl of Murray, too, seems to have given the King
great dissatisfaction. The Earl of Argyle was soon
liberated from prison ; but he was, at the same time,
deprived of the offices he still held in the Isles ; some
of which were bestowed on Alexander of Isla, who now
rose rapidly in the Royal favour.- Nor does Argyle
appear again to have regained his authority over the
Islanders till after the death of James V. Alexander
of Isla, soon after he had obtained this triumph over
Argyle, was sent to Ireland at the head of a
a. a 1532. body of seyen or e]ght thousand men# This
force was intended to create a diversion in favour of the
Scots, who were engaged in a war with England ; and,
as they committed great devastations in Ulster,3 it is
not improbable that their leader employed this favour-
able opportunity to add to his hereditary possessions in
that province. King James, at the same time, pro-
vided for the education of the eldest son of the chief
1 Treasurer's Accounts, 1st Nov., 1531.
3 Original Letter in State Paper Office, dated Newcastle, 27th
December, lo31, from the Earl of Northumberland to Henry VJUL,
which alludes to " the sore imprisonment of the Earl of Argyle, and the
little estimation of the Earl of Murray,1' by the King of Scots.
* Original Letter, Northumberland to Henry, 3rd September, 1532.
Cotton. MS., Brit Mus. Caligula, B. 1. 124.
1532-9.] TRANQUILLITY OF THE ISLES. 143
of Isla, who was placed under the special charge of
William Henderson, Dean of Holyrood.1 By this two
important objects were served. The mind of a future
leader in the Isles, as this young man proved to be in
after life, was improved and enlarged, whilst his presence
in Edinburgh, under the eye of the sovereign, secured
the obedience of his father.
a.d. 1532- But while he thus gained, by these and
I539b similar favours, the attachment of this parti-
cular family, James did not neglect the rest of the
Islanders. He kept up his influence by a close corre-
spondence with the different chiefs, and by frequent visits
to the West Highlands;2 so that, for several years, these
districts were in a more complete state of obedience
than at any former period. The petty feuds between
the different clans were not yet entirely suppressed.
We find traces, in the latter part of this reign, of the
old quarrels between the Clanchameron and Clancbat-
tan; betweeu the former tribe and the Macleans; and
between the two principal families of this last-mentioned
clan, those of Dowart and Lochbuy.8 But the general
peace of the Western Highlands and Isles was not
seriously disturbed till the year 1539, when a new
attempt was made to restore the Lordship of the Isles
and Earldom of Ross to one of the old family.
Many of the Islanders still regarded Donald Dubh,
for whose sake their fathers had risen in rebellion in
1 Treasurer's Accounts, 1531-1535.
2 The Treasurer's Accounts show that, in September, 1532, the King
was in Argyle and at Inverary. He was again in Argyle in September
and October, 1534.
* Acts of the Lords of Council and Session, Lib. X., fo. 83 ; XL, fo.
181 ; XIL, fo. 188.
144 DONALD GORME OF SLEAT [1532-9.
1503, as the proper heir; but the lengthened captivity
of this hapless chief, joined to the doubts of his legiti-
macy, which were countenanced by the Government,
contributed to bring forward another claimant. This
was Donald Gorme of Sleat, the son and successor of
Donald Gruamach. The talents of the father had done
much to raise the Clandonald or Glanhuistein of Sleat
from the depressed state into which they had fallen,
owing to confiscations and internal dissensions; and the
power of the son was much increased by his marriage
with the heiress of John MacTorquil Macleod. — (Supra,
p. 13 1) . That chief, the representative of an elder, though
forfeited branch of the family of Lewis, had, as we have
seen, obtained possession of the estates and leading of
his tribe; and although he did not hold these by any
legal title, the claims of his daughter, after his death,
were far from contemptible, especially when supported by
the influence of the Clandonald. A compromise seems
to have been entered into between Donald Gorme and
Ruari Macleod, the legal heir of the Lewis. Ruari
Macleod was allowed to enter into possession of the
estate of Lewis, as formerly held by Malcolm Macleod,
his father, and the last lawful possessor. In return for
such an important concession on the part of the chief
of Sleat, the other became bound to assist in putting
Donald Gorme in possession of Trouterness, against all
the efforts of the chief of Dunvegan and his tribe, the
Siol Tormod, who had again contrived to seize that
district. It is probable, too, that Macleod agreed to
co-operate with him in his endeavours to obtain the
Earldom of Ross and Lordship of the Isles, to which,
indeed, on the supposition of the illegitimacy of Donald
Dubh, and setting aside the forfeiture/ Donald Gorme
1539.]. RISES IN REBELLION. 145
-was heir-male. This was the foundation of a conspiracy
which soon embraced a majority of the Island chiefi,
and was only extinguished by the death of Donald
Gorme, and the active measures adopted by the King.
It is probable that Argyle's loss of influence may have
led the Islanders to expect that their object was to be
obtained by the favour of the Crown; but, if so, they
were disappointed, and their disappointment caused
them to attempt seizing by force, what they could not
compass by other means.
In the month of May this year, Trouter-
ness was invaded and laid waste by Donald
Gorme and his allies of the Siol Torquil, as we find from
a complaint made against thqm by Alexander Macleod
of Dunvegan.1 From Sky, taking advantage of the
absence of Mackenzie of Kintaill, who was opposed to
his pretensions, Donald Gorme passed over into Ross-
shire, where, after ravaging the district of Eanlochew,
he proceeded to Kintaill, with the intention of surprising
Mackenzie's Castle of Elandonan. This fortress was,
at the time, almost destitute of a garrison, and, had the
insurgents succeeded in their attempt, a formidable
rebellion in the Isles would have been the consequence.
But their leader, trusting to the weakness of the
garrison, and exposing himself rashly under the walls
of the castle, received a wound in the foot from an
arrow shot by the constable of the castle, which
speedily proved fetal; for, not observing that the
arrow was barbed, the enraged chief pulled it hastily
out of the wound, by which an artery was severed; and
the medical skill of his followers could devise no means
of checking the effusion of blood which necessarily fol-
1 Books of Adjournal, 16th Dec.. 1589.
13
146 DEATH OF DONALD GORME. [1539.
lowed. They conveyed him to an islet ont of reach of
the castle, where a temporary hut was constructed, in
which this ill-fated representative of the Lords of the
Isles closed his short career. The spot where he died
is still pointed out, and receives from the natives the
name of "Larach tigh Mhic Dhonuill;" or, "The
site of Macdonald's house." Discouraged by this event*
the insurgents returned to Sky, after burning all the
boats belonging to the Kintaill men they could find.1
In the following year the King, who had,
in all probability, been made aware of the
intentions of the Islesmen, determined, although the
insurrection was now apparently at an end, to take steps
that would effectually put a stop to such schemes in
future. Preparations, on a formidable scale, were made
for a voyage by the King in person to the Isles.
Twelve ships, well provided with artillery, were ordered
to be ready by the 1 4th day of May, six of which were
to be occupied by the Royal suite and the soldiers under
the immediate command of the King. Of the remain-
ing ships, three were appointed for the sole purpose of
victualling the armament; whilst the others were
assigned to Cardinal Beaton and the Earls of Huntly
and Arran. The Cardinal commanded five hundred
men of Fife and Angus; Huntly, besides gentlemen,
1 Remission to Archibald His, alias Archibald the Clerk, Alexander
MacConnell Gallich, and many others, for their treasonable fire-raising
and burning of boats at Elandonan, and for the heirship of Kenlochew
and TVouterness, dated 22nd March, 1540-41 (Reg. of Privy Seal,
XV., fo. 47). MS. Genealogies of the Macdonalds of Sleat, of the
Mackenzies, and of the Macras. The constable of Elandonan was of
the last-mentioned tribe. Donald Gorme left an infant son, also named
Donald, who fell under the guardianship of his grand-uncle, the above-
named "Archibald Ilis."
1540.] THE KING'S VOYAGE TO THE ISLES. 147
and thirty of the Royal household, led five hundred
men of the northern shires ; and Arran was followed by
the like number of warriors of the western districts,
exclusive of the gentlemen and twenty-four servants in
his train. To complete the preparations, a skilful pilot,
Alexander Lindsay, was appointed to attend the King,
and report the nautical observations.
It was not till the end of May that this powerful
fleet quitted the Frith of Forth ; and James then sailed
northwards, by the east coast of Scotland, until he came
to the Orkney Isles, where he and his army landed, and
were honourably entertained by Robert Maxwell, at that
time Bishop of Orkney. Here, likewise, their stock of
fresh provisions was renewed. From Orkney the expe-
dition sailed to the coast of Sutherland, for the purpose
of seizing Donald Mackay of Strathnaver, which was
effected without difficulty. Thence the fleet proceeded
to the Isle of Lewis, where Ruari Macleod, with his
principal kinsmen, met the King, and were made to
accompany him in his farther progress. The west coast
of the Isle of Sky was next visited ; and Alexander
Macleod of Dunvegan, lord of that part of the island,
was constrained to embark in the Royal fleet. Coast-
ing round by the north of Sky, the King then came to
the district of Trouterness, so lately desolated by the
chief of Sleat. Here various chieftains, claiming their
descent from the ancient Lords of the Isles, came to
meet their Sovereign — particularly John Moydertach,
captain of the Clanranald, Alexander of Glengarry,
and others of " MacConeyllis kin/' These chieftains
probably hoped to secure the Royal favour by coming
to meet the King before the course of his voyage
led him to their own districts. From Trouterness,
148 MANY OF THE CHIEFS APPREHENDED. [1540.
James proceeded, by the coast of Ross, to Kintaill,
where he was joined by the chief of the Mackenzies ;
and then, sailing southwards by the Sound of Sleat, he
visited, in succession, the Isles of Mull and Isla, and the
districts of Kintyre and Knapdale, taking with him, on
his departure, Hector Maclean of Dowart, and James
Macdonald of Isla, the two principal leaders in the
South Isles. He then landed himself at Dumbarton ;
but sent the fleet, with the captive chiefs on board, back
to Edinburgh, by the route followed in coming to the
Isles. It is not the least remarkable circumstance
connected with this important expedition, that the Earl
of Argyle had no prominent command, if, indeed, he
was employed at all, which is very doubtful.
Having now all these chiefs in his power, James pro-
ceeded to make the necessary regulations for retaining
them and their successors in a more settled obedience ;
and it need scarcely be observed that his projects were
much facilitated by his having to deal with prisoners.
The enactments made on this occasion have not been
preserved ; but it is known that several of the chiefs
were liberated, upon giving hostages for their obedience ;
and the proceedings under the regency of Mary of
Guise, prove that there must have been some general
regulation made at this time for securing the pe&oe of the
Highlands and Isles, by means of taking hostages from
the principal men. Some of the more turbulent chiefs
were detained in confinement until some time after the
King's death, and were then only liberated by a piece
of State policy, on the part of the Regent Arran, as
short-sighted as it proved futile.1
1 The most complete account of this expedition and its immediate
revolts, is to be found in Lesley s History of Scotland, p. 156. It is
1540.] GARRISONS PLACED IN THE ISLES. 149
The detaining some of the chiefs in prison, and the
taking of hostages from the others, were not the only
precautionary measures adopted by the King while the
Highland chiefs were in his power. He placed garrisons,
-commanded by captains of his own appointment, in
several of the most important fortresses. Of this branch
of his policy, one marked instance has come down to us.
Archibald Stewart, of the family of Bute, was made
captain of the Castle of Dunyveg in Isla, belonging
to James Macdonald, the son and successor of that
Alexander of Isla who had formerly stood so high in the
King's favour; and, shortly before the Kings death,
he received a commission as Governor and Sheriff of
Isla.1 As James Macdonald had been educated under
the King's eye, it may be conceived that, when his
castle was made a Royal garrison, those of many of the
other chiefs did not remain in the powers of their owners.
The annexation of the Lordship of the Isles, with North
and South Kintyre, inalienably to the Crown,2 seemed to
give the finishing blow to the hopes so long cherished
by the Islanders ; and everything promised • an assur-
ance of a more lengthened period of repose than the
Isles had hitherto enjoyed.
singular that so important a measure is uniformly misdated, both
by Lesley, Buchanan, Pitscottie, and all our early historians; some
placing it in 1535, others in 1539. The extracts from the Treasurer's
Accounts, printed in Pitcairn's Criminal Trials, I. 308*, give the
true date, 1540, which has been adopted by Mr. Tytler. Pinkerton
was the first to correct this error.
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, XVI., fo. 1. Treasurer's Accounts, ad
tempus. From the last source, it appears that the Castle of Duna-
vertich in Kintyre, likewise belonging to James Macdonald, or at
least commanding a territory occupied by him and his clan, was at this
time held by a Royal garrison.
2 Acts of Parliament, 3rd December, 1540
150 DEATH OF JAMES V. [1542,
But this fair prospect was soon clouded by
A. D 1542.
the untimely death of James V. in the flower
of his age, and the succession of his infant daughter to
the Crown. . This event exposed the kingdom not only
to foreign aggression, but to domestic feuds between the
powerful factions that contended for the government of
the young Queen. In the next chapter we shall see the
effept of these struggles in retarding the civilisation of
the Highlands and Isles.
151
CHAP. in.
DURING THE MINORITY OF QUEEN MARY— 1642-1560.
It is not the province of a work like the present to trace
minutely the proceedings of the great parties which
divided Scotland during the minority of Queen Mary.
A brief outline of these proceedings, and of the extra-
ordinary changes which a very short time produced in the
line of conduct pursued by some of the leading nobility,
will serve to show the position in which the Islanders
and Western Highlanders were placed at this time.
The leading party in Scotland was that of
" " the Catholic clergy, at the head of which
was the able but unprincipled Cardinal Beaton. " Of
this faction," says a recent author, " the guiding princi-
ples were a determined opposition to the progress of the
Reformation, and a devotion to the Papal see ; friend-
ship with France; hostility to England; and a resolution,
which all must applaud, of preserving the ancient inde-
pendence of their country."1 The ranks of the opposite
faction included all the supporters of the Reformation ;
and at their head was the Earl of Arran, whose assump-
tion of this authority was owing more to his high rank,
as next heir to the Crown, than to any natural energy
1 Tytler's Scotland, V., p. 310.
152 INTBIGUES OF HENRY VIII. [1542.
of character he possessed. This party was naturally dis-
posed to a friendly intercourse with the English King ;
and thus increased the influence which late events had
given to that monarch over the affairs of Scotland.
Immediately after the death of James V., King Henry
formed the plan of uniting Scotland to England, by a
marriage between the infant Queen and his own son,
Edward, Prince of Wales. His influence with the Earl
of Angus and the Douglases, who now, after a
lengthened banishment, returned to their native land,
and the opportunity afforded by the capture of so many
Scottish prisoners of rank at Solway, seem to have
offered a temptation too strong to be resisted by so
ambitious a prince. The leading prisoners were allowed
to visit Scotland, after coming under strict engagements
to Henry, in reference to the proposed marriage, not
only disgraceful to them, as men of honour and natives
of Scotland, but calculated to subvert entirely the liber-
ties of their country. The principal opposition to these
schemes, which were conducted with great caution,
proceeded from the Cardinal. This able statesman was
not discouraged by the failure of an attempt to possess
himself of the regency, although the immediate conse-
quence was the ascendancy of the English faction, who
had the Regent Arran completely under their influence.
In order to work upon the fears of Arran, and
A. D. 1KA2. .
make him subservient to his designs, Beaton
had procured the return from abroad of Mathew, Earl
of Lennox, whom he proposed to set up in opposition to
Arran, as a claimant for the regency. The claims of
Lennox, indeed, to this high office, were of such a
nature as, in the hands of an opponent like the Cardinal,
could hardly fail to alarm the present Governor. But
1543.] SINGULAR POLITICAL CHANGES. 153
the violence and impetuosity of the English King, by
rousing the Scottish nation to a sense of its danger, and
of the designs entertained against its independence,
principally contributed to a coalition between Arran and
the Cardinal, which put an end to the treaty for the
marriage of the Queen of Scots.1
Having gained his object of a union with Arran, the
Cardinal began to neglect Lennox, whom he had
hitherto flattered with hopes of the regency and of
the hand of Mary of Guise, the Queen-mother. That
nobleman, who had lately been instrumental in pro-
curing a promise from the French King of assistance
to the Cardinal's party, in the event of a war with Eng-
land, was so deeply offended at Beaton's conduct that
he at once threw himself into the arms of the English
party. Just at this time, the Sieur de la Brosse, a French
ambassador, accompanied by a small fleet, bearing mili-
tary stores, fifty pieces of artillery, and ten thousand
crowns, to be distributed among the friends of the Car-
dinal, arrived in the Ffrfth of Clyde. On hearing of
his arrival, the Earls of Lennox and Glencairn hastened
to receive from the ambassador the gold of which he
was the bearer, which they secured in the Castle of
Dunbarton, leaving De la Brosse, who was ignorant of
the sudden change in the politics of Lennox, to find
out his mistake when too late.2
The Earls of Arran and Lennox, one of whom held,
and the other claimed to hold, the highest office in the
realm to which a subject could aspire, had displayed,
during late events, a disgraceful versatility ; and others
1 Tytler's Scotland, V. 311-346. This remarkable coalition, which
was very suddenly brought about, took place on 3rd Sept., 1543.
2 Ibid, 348-0.
154 PATRIOTISM OF HUNTLY AND ARGYLE. [1543.
of the Scottish nobility, having sold themselves to Eng-
land, were now leagued to destroy the independence of
their country. From such proofs of the want of public
spirit and principle among so many of the great barons,
we turn with pleasure to contemplate the dignified and
patriotic conduct of the two most powerful noblemen in
the Highlands, the Earls of Huntly and Argyle, who,
emulating the example of their gallant ancestors, never
lost sight of their duty to Scotland. They acknowledged
the advantages that might result from the proposed
matrimonial alliance, if made on equal terms; but when
the rashness and violence of Henry disclosed prema-
turely his ambitious views, they did not hesitate to
oppose, to the utmost of their power, the projects of
the English party.1 This conduct procured for Huntly
and Argyle the honour of the enmity, both of Henry
and of his hired partisans in Scotland, but entitled
them, on the other hand, to the respect and confidence
of all their true-hearted countrymen. During the
various struggles which preceded the union of the
Regent and the Cardinal, and when a civil war seemed
inevitable, it became of the greatest importance to
deprive the Cardinal of the assistance of such power-
ful adherents; and for the attainment of this object,
the state of the West Highlands and Isles afforded, at
this time, great facilities. Donald Dubh, the grand-
son of John, last Lord of the Isles, was now once
more at liberty. It will be in the recollection of the
reader, that this unfortunate chief, who seems really
to have been legitimate, was stigmatised as a bastard ;
and that, with the exception of the short period of his
rebellion against James IV., he had been a State pri-
1 Tptier, ubi supra.
1543.] SECOND ESCAPE OF DONALD DUBH. 155
soner from his infancy. In what manner Donald Dubh
effected this, his second escape, is doubtful ; but it is
certain that he owed his liberty to the grace of God,
and not to the goodwill of the Government.1 Haying
come to the Isles, he was received with enthusiasm by
the same clans that had formerly supported his claims;
and, with their assistance, he prepared to expel the Earls
of Argyle and Huntly from their acquisitions in the
Lordship of the Isles. As long, however, as the chiefs
and hostages imprisoned by James V. in 1540, remained
in the power of the Government, the Highlanders were
compelled to proceed with great caution. A truce was
agreed to between the Earl of Argyle and the self-
styled Lord of the Isles, which was to last till May-
day, 1543 ; and, in the meantime, both parties were
active in preparing for war.2 In June of the same
year, wc find that Argyle was occupied in the High-
lands with the " Irishmen," who were rebelling against
him; and, at the same time, the presence of Huntly
was required in the north, probably from the same
cause.3 About this time, too, it was suggested to the
Regent by tha Earl of Glencairn — one of the most
active of the English party, and between whom and
Argyle their existed a violent private feud — that the
Highland chiefs and hostages left in prison by the late
King should be liberated, in order to enable the Lord
of the Isles to act with vigour against Argyle and
Huntly.4 The suggestions of Glencairn were doubt-
less enforced by the arguments of Sadler, the English
1 This appears from a document in the State Paper Office, quoted by
Mr. Tytler, V., p. 232, note.
2 Sadler's State Papers, I. 192, 194.
1 Ibid, 214. * Ibid, 273.
156 DISTURBANCES IN THE WEST [1543.
ambassador, as the attention of the King of England
had been early drawn to the state of the Highlands and
Isles.1 Thus prompted, the feeble and short-sighted
Arran liberated all the Highland prisoners, taking bonds
from them, as we learn from Sadler's correspondence,
" that they should not make any stir or breach in their
country, but at such time as he should appoint them.
But how they will observe these bonds," continues the
ambassador, " now since they be at liberty, it is hard
to say; for they be noted such perilous persons, as it is
thought it shall not ly in the Earl of Argyle's power to
daunt them, nor yet in the Governor's to set that coun-
try in a stay and quietness a great while."2
Immediately upon the return of the liberated chiefe
to their clans, Donald of the Isles assembled a force of
eighteen hundred men, with which he invaded Argyle's
territories, slew many of his vassals, and carried off a
great quantity of cattle, with other plunder. This inroad
had the desired effect of preventing the junction of
Argyle with the Cardinal, by keeping the former at home
in the month of August, when a collision between the
Regent and the Cardinal, and their respective adher-
ents, was daily expected.3 The sudden conversion of
Arran from a supporter to an opponent of the views of
the English King, caused his ill-judged policy in libe-
rating the Highland chiefs, and encouraging them to
attack Argyle and Huntly, to recoil on himself. And
although, in order to repair his fault, he afterwards
made great offers to Donald of the Isles, with the view
1 Letter of "John Elder, Clerk, a Redshank," to King Henry,
in 1542, a most curious and interesting document, printed in the
Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 23.
2 Sadler, I. 2G7. 3 Sadler, I. 266-7, 275.
1544.] AND NORTH HIGHLANDS. 157
of detaching him and his followers from the English
party, his efforts totally failed of success.1 Of all the
vassals of the Isles, James Macdonald of Isla alone
supported the Regent; and future events showed that
the fidelity even of this chief could not altogether be
relied on.
The Earl of Huntly and his vassals proba-
bly suffered, as well as Argyle, from the inroads
of the western clans in 1543; but in the following
year, a feud between the Clanranald of Moydert and
the Frasers, still further interrupted the tranquillity of
those districts of the Highlands placed under the con-
trol of Huntly, as Lieutenant of the North. The
circumstances connected with this feud are as follows: —
Allan MacRuari of Moydert, chief of the Clanranald
from 1481 to 1509, was twice married; first, to a
daughter of Macian of Ardnamurohan, by whom he
had two sons, Ranald Bane and Alexander; secondly,
and late in life, to a daughter of the Lord Lovat,
by whom he had one son, likewise named Ranald,
and known by the clan as Ranald Galda, or the
stranger, from his being fostered by his mother's rela-
tions, the Frasers, at a great distance from Moydert.
Ranald Bane Allanson of Moydert, chief of the Clan-
ranald, being executed, as we have seen, in 1513, was
succeeded by his son, Dougal MacRanald, or Ranaldson.
This chief, having made himself detested in the clan by
his cruelties, was assassinated by them ; and the com-
mand of the tribe, with the large family estates, was,
by their consent, given to Alexander or Allaster Allan-
1 Letter from Commissioners of the Lord of the Isles, to the
English Privy .Council, darted in August, 1545, and preserved in the
State Paper Office,
158 FEUD BETWEEN THE CLANRANALD [1544.
son, the uncle of Dougal, to the exclusion of the sons
of the latter, who were then young.1 • On the death of
Allaster, which took place before 1530, his bastard son,
John Moydertach, a man of uncommon talent and
ability, was acknowledged by the whole clan as their
chief; and he even succeeded in procuring charters to
the estates. These he possessed without interruption,
till, with other chiefs, he was apprehended by James V.
in the course of that King's voyage through the Isles in
1540, and placed in prison. Lord Lovat and the Frasers
then bestirred themselves for the interest of theirkinsman
Ranald Galda, and made such a representation on the
subject, that the charters formerly granted to John Moy-
dertach were revoked, and the lands granted to Ranald
Galda, as the heir of his father, Allan MacRuari.2 The
existence of prior legal heirs (the sons of Dougal) seems
to have been carefully concealed ; and, by the assistance
of the Frasers, Ranald was actually put in possession of
the estate which he held only as long as John Moyder-
tach remained in prison; for, immediately on the return
of that chief to the Highlands, he was joined by the
whole of the Clanranald, including the sons of Dougal,
and again acknowledged as their chief. Ranald, who
had lost favour with the clan by exhibiting a parsimonious
disposition, was expelled from Moydert, and forced to
1 Allan, the eldest son of Dougal, and the undoubted heir-male of
the Clanranald, acquired the estate of Morar, which he transmitted
to his descendants. He and his successors were always styled, in
Gaelic, "MacDhughail Mhorair," i.e., Maodougal of Morar, from
their ancestor, Dougal MacRanald.
•
2 Macvurich's MS. and Hugh Macdonald's MS., compared with
the traditions of the country. Reg. of the Great Seal, XXIV. 151 ;
XXVII. 102. Acta of the Lords of Council, XLI. 79; Lesley's
History of Scotland, 157 : Treasurer's Accounts, A.D. 1542.
1544.] AND THE FRASERS OF LOVAT. 159
take refuge with Lord Lovat, who once more prepared
to assert the rights of his kinsman. The Clanranald,
however, did not wait to be attacked, but, assisted
by Ranald MacDonald Glas of Keppoch and his
tribe, and by the Clanchameron, under their veteran
leader, Ewin Allanson of Lochiel, they carried the war
into the enemy's country. The districts of Abertarf
and Stratherrick, belonging to Lovat, and the lands
of Urquhart and Glenmoriston, the property of the
Grants, were speedily overrun by the insurgents, who
likewise possessed themselves of the Castle of Urquhart
on Lochness. Not content with the usual system of
indiscriminate plunder which characterised a Highland
inroad, they seemed to aim at a permanent occupation
of the invaded territories; and such was their audacity
that the Earl of Huntly was at length constrained to
levy a numerous force in the northern counties, and
proceed to crush this threatening insurrection before it
should spread farther. Among those who attended
Huntly on this expedition, were Lord Lovat and the
Laird of Grant, at the head of their respective clans,
and Ranald Galda, so lately expelled from Moydert,
all of whom were deeply interested in the success of
the enterprise.
At the approach of Huntly, the Highlanders retreated
to their mountain fastnesses, leaving the country open
to the Royal forces; so that, without more delay than
was rendered necessary by the rugged nature of the
country, that nobleman penetrated as far as Inverlochy.
Having, without opposition, put Ranald Galda in pos-
session of Moydert, and restored to their proper owners
the other lands that had been occupied by the rebels,
Huntly set out on his return home, satisfied with what
160 THE FRASEBS INTERCEPTED. [1544.
he had done, although it does not appear that he had
succeeded in apprehending, at this time, any leader of
the insurgents. On arriving at the mouth of Glenspean,
in Lochaber, a separation of Huntly's forces took place.
The Earl himself, the Laird of Grant, and the bulk of
the army, proceeded to Strathspey by the Braes of Locha-
ber and Badenoch, while Lovat, in spite of repeated re-
monstrances on the rashness of his conduct, marched with
his own vassals, amounting to four hundred men, by the
line of the great glen, that being not only the shortest road,
but passing, for a great part of the way, through his own
lands of Abertarf and Stratherrick. He was likewise
accompanied, out of compliment, by Ranald Galda, and
a few followers of the latter. The fears of those who
had remonstrated with Lovat were soon realised. The
insurgent Highlanders, who had drawn together again,
uponreceivingintelligence of Huntly's intention to return
home, and had kept a close watch upon the movements
of the Royal army, no sooner perceived the separation
of Lovat from the main body, than they determined to
intercept and cut him off. Accordingly, Lovat, who
marched by the south side of X«och Lochy, was hardly
out of reach of assistance from Huntly, when he per-
ceived a superior force of Highlanders marching up the
north side, in seven companies, with displayed banners,
and so far advanced as to leave no doubt of their in-
tercepting him at the head of the lake.1 On this,
1 The Diurnal of Occurrents, printed by the Bannatyne Club, p.
34, states that the Earl of BotkweU was riding to a "tryst," or ap-
pointment, made by trim with Lovat and the captain of Clanranald,
in order to settle the differences between these chiefs; bnt that,
before he arrived, the parties had encountered, and the battle was
over. This is nowhere else alluded to, and it is difficult to under-
1544.] THE BATTLE OF KIKLOCH-LOCHY. 101
Lovat, who perceived the danger of his position, de-
tached a portion of his force, under a favourite vassal,
named Bean Clerach, to occupy a pass in the hills at a
little distance, by which, in the event of the day turning
against him, he hoped to secure a retreat. With the
rest of his followers, who now amounted to about three
hundred, a great proportion of whom were gentlemen,
and well armed, he moved forward to meet the enemy.
The Clanranald and their supporters were superior in
number, amounting probably to five hundred; but of
these many were of the inferior sort, and ill supplied
with arms. Just after the commencement of the action,
the Frasers were joined, to the great grief of their
leader, by the Master of Lovat, a youth of great pro-
mise, lately returned from abroad. He had been ex-
pressly charged by his father not to join this expedition,
and he accordingly remained at home for some time after
its departure ; but, roused by the taunts of his step-
mother, who wished to get rid of him, the gallant youth
chose twelve trusty followers, and set out in search of
his father and clan, whom he met at the head of Loch
Lochy, in time to join in the fray.
The contest began with the discharge of arrows at a
distance ; but when their shafts were spent both parties
rushed to close combat, and, attacking each other
furiously with their two-handed swords and axes, a dread-
ful slaughter ensued. Such was the heat of the weather,
it being the month of July, that the combatants threw
off their coats and fought in their shirts ; whence the
battle received the named of " Blar-na-leine," or " The
stand the interference of Bothwell in a matter under fluntly's
immediate jurisdiction. Perhaps for Bothwell we should read
Hunthi.
14
162 DEATH OF LORD LOVAT. [1544.
Field of Shirts." At length the Frasers, after fighting
with the greatest bravery, wer;e obliged to retire ; but,
unfortunately, Bean Clerach and his detachment, having
missed their way, were unable to render any assistance
to their clansmen ; and the pass which they should have
occupied being seized by the Clanranald, the Frasers,
thus hemmed in, were, after a desperate and unavailing
struggle, almost entirely cut to pieces. According to
their own historians, one gentleman alone (James Fraser
of Foyers, who was severely wounded and left for dead),
and four common men of their party, survived this bloody
field, which threatened the annihilation of the name of
Fraser in the north. The loss of the victors is com-
monly represented as much greater, in so far as only
eight of their number are said to have survived the con-
flict. But this is certainly one of those exaggerations
in which traditionary historians are so apt to indulge ;
for none of the leaders of the Clanranald and their
allies fell in the action; and, indeed, in the following year
they were all actively engaged in supporting the preten-
sions of their new Lord, Donald of the Isles. This would
have been impossible had they suffered so severe a loss
as is alleged to have been inflicted on them in this action.
The bodies of Lord Lovat, his son the Master, and
Ranald Galda, who had all fought with the utmost
bravery, and only yielded to superior numbers, were, a
few days after the battle, removed by a train of mourn-
ing relatives, and interred at the Priory of Beauly in
the Aird.1 Such was the famous clan battle of Blar-
1 These particulars regarding the battle of Kinloch-lochy, and
the events which preceded it, have been gathered from a careful
examination of the following sources : — Reg. of Privy Seal, XX, fo.
72 ; XXI., fo. 3 ; XXII, fo. 27 ; XX11L, fo. 45. Reg. of Great Seal,
1544.] HUNTLY INVADES LOCHABER. 163
na-leine, or Kinloch-lochy, by which the Clanranald
maintained in possession of the chiefship and estates of
their tribe an individual of their own choice, in oppo-
sition to one supported by all the influence of the feudal
law. It is not unworthy of notice that John Moydertach,
himself an elected chief, afterwards transmitted to his
descendants, without difficulty, the possessions that had
been so hardly won.
The news of the disaster that had happened to Lord
Lovat and his followers being carried to the Earl of
Huntly, that nobleman appears again to have pene-
trated into Lochaber.1 But, although he laid waste
the lands of some of the rebels, and executed such of
them as came into his power, he had no better success
than formerly in apprehending any of the principal
leaders, who evaded his pursuit by retiring to the most
inaccessible districts. More important national con-
cerns seem now to have occupied Huntly's attention ;
and his withdrawal from Lochaber was the signal for
new insurrections ; nor was it for nearly two years that
he was enabled to check these disturbances, by the exe-
cution of two of the principal chiefs, as will appear in
the sequel.
Among the other methods adopted by the King of
XXX. 263, 314. Lesley's History of Scotland, p. 184. Diurnal of
Occurrents, p. 34. Gordon's History of the Family of Sutherland,
p. 109. MS. History of the Erasers, Adv. Lib. Jac. 5th, 7, 29.
MS. History of the Camerons. Buchanan's History of Scotland, ad
tempus. In the letter, formerly mentioned, as written by the Com-
missioners of the Lord of the Isles, in August 1545, to the English
Privy Council, it is stated that, " the last yeir, the capitane of Clan-
ranald, tit Us defence, slew the Lord Lovat, his son-in-law, his three
brethren, with thirteen scoir of men." — Tytler, V. 238.
1 Lesley, p. 185.
164 LENNOX ENTERS THE CLYDE [1544.
England, in this year, to force the Scottish nation into
a renewal of the marriage treaty, he did not neglect
sending an expedition to harass Scotland on the side of
the Isles. The rupture of the treaty, although solely
caused by his own violent and ungovernable temper, had,
nevertheless, irritated him highly against the Scots, and
his wrath \^as marked by acts, such as the burning of
Edinburgh and Leith, and the laying waste of a great
portion of the southern couaties, which only tended to
widen the breach, and secured no solid advantage to
England. The expedition against the west coast, which
was under the command of the Earl of Lennox, had a
similar result. In the month of August, a well-manned
fleet of ten or twelve sail left Bristol, having on board
Lennox, accompanied by Sir Eise Mansell and Sir
Peter Mewtas, Knights, and several other officers of
experience, naval and military, with two hundred hack-
butteers, two hundred archers, and two hundred pike-
men.1
On his arrival off the coast of Scotland, Lennox first
attacked and plundered the Isle of Arran, and razed
the Castle of Brodick to the ground. He then pro-
ceeded to Bute, of which island, with its Castle of
Rothesay, he made himself master with little difficulty.
These acquisitions, according to agreement, were
delivered to Sir Rise Mansell and Richard Broke, who
accompanied the expedition, and took formal possession
of them in the name of the King of England. Lennox
next sailed towards the Castle of Dumbarton, the seizure
of which, and its delivery to the English, was the prin-
cipal object of the expedition ; but here he met with
1 Tytler, V., p. 371 ; Dr. Patrick Anderson's MS. History of Scotland,
Advocates' Library, IT. 34.
1544.] WITH AN ENGLISH ABMAMENT. 165
an unexpected disappointment. When some months
earlier, upon an open rupture with the Regent, and the
success of the latter at Glasgow Muir, the Earl of Glen-
cairn was forced to seek safety in flight, he joined the
Earl of Lennox, who had for some time been assem-
bling his forces at Dunbarton. The nature of the in-
trigues in which these noblemen were engaged, made it
necessary for Lennox to proceed in person to England.
On his departure, Glencairn, and several gentlemen of
his train, were left in the Castle of Dunbarton, the
governor of which was Stirling of Glorat, a retainer
of Lennox. In the meantime, during the absence of
the latter nobleman, Glencairn was tampered with by
the Queen Dowager, and the result was a plot to entrap
Lennox and make him prisoner when he should appear
to take possession of the fortress. Having landed in
the immediate vicinity of the castle with three hundred
men, Lennox proceeded with a small retinue into the
castle itself in order to receive it from the governor.
But before the preliminary arrangements were com-
pleted, and just after the money was laid down, which
was to bribe the governor to betray his trust, by admit-
ting an English garrison, Lennox became alarmed at
certain symptoms of disaffection which he perceived,
and, leaving the money behind him, hastily quitted the
castle. Joining the English troops that were in waiting
outside, he effected a hurried retreat to his ships, but
not before such a step had become absolutely necessary;
for shortly after Lennox had quitted the town of Dun-
barton, a body of four thousand Scots, sent expressly to
apprehend him, entered it under the command of Sir
George Douglas — this baron, and his brother, the
Earl of Angus, so long the soul of the English faction
166 ' LENNOX ATTACKS ARGYLE AT DUNOON, [1544.
in Scotland, being now, by the reckless proceedings of
Henry, converted into enemies.1
The expedition now returned to Bute, their leader
deeply mortified by his failure at Dumbarton, and still
further irritated from his fleet being fired at in its pas-
sage by the Earl of Argyle, who, with a large body of
his vassals, and some pieces of artillery, had taken post
at the Castle of Dunoon. Before leaving Dumbarton,
Lennox had received an addition to his strength, con-
sisting of seven score Highlanders, from the more
remote districts of his own Earldom, under the com-
mand of Walter Macfarlane of Tarbet. These troops,
we are told, spoke both Irish and English. They were
light footmen, well armed with coats of mail, with bows
and arrows, and with two-handed swords, and were
of much service in the future operations. Being arrived
at Bute, Lennox and his officers, after holding a coun-
cil of war, determined to attack the Earl of Argyle at
Dunoon. The latter with seven hundred men attempted
to oppose the landing of the English troops, which was,
notwithstanding, effected under a heavy fire from the
ships. Argyle was forced to retire after a skirmish in
which he lost eighty men, many of them gentlemen; and
the village of Dunoon was then burnt, and the church,
into which the country people had removed their goods
and ornaments, was plundered of everything it contained.
At nightfall, the invaders returned safely to their ships,
Argyle sustaining further loss in a fruitless effort to
harass their retreat. Four or five days afterwards,
Lennox with five hundred men landed in another part
of Argyle, and remaining on shore for a day, laid waste
1 Tytier, Y. 372 ; Anderson, H. 34, 35.
1544.] AND RAVAGES KINTYRE AND AYRSHIRE. 167
the surrounding country. Such were the dispositions
made on this occasion by the skilful soldiers who accom-
panied Lennox, that Argyle, although at the head of
two thousand men, was obliged to witness these devas-
tations without being able to bring the invaders to an
encounter. After this, Lennox invaded Kintyre, belong-
ing to James Macdonald of Isla (who, at this time,
supported Argyle), and burnt many places in that dis-
trict, carrying off, at the same time, great numbers of
cattle and much property. As he was highly incensed
against the Earl of Glencairn, he did not spare the
lands of that nobleman, but gave them up to fire and
sword. And so great was the terror which this arma-
ment created in Kyle, Carrick, Cunningham, and Gal-
loway, that many gentlemen of these districts, seeing
no other mode of escape, placed themselves under Len-
nox's protection. l
While engaged in this expedition, Lennox, following
his instructions, had entered into communication with
the Islanders, from several of whom he took bonds of
service.2 Their anxiety to destroy the power of the
Earl of Argyle, and to procure for their Lord the resto-
ration of the ancient possessions of his family, disposed
them to enter readily into the views of Lennox and the
English King. Nor did they neglect the present oppor-
tunity of testifying their hostility to the Scots, by extend-
ing their ravages on every side, particularly on the lands
1 Tytler, V. 378 ; Anderson, IL 35, 36.
5 Reg. of Privy Seal, XX., fo. 86. According to Macvurich,
u Donald Dubh, the true heir of Innisgall (the Isles) and Ross,
came, after his release from captivity, to the Isles, and convened the
men thereof, and he and the Earl of Lennox agreed to raise a great
army for the purpose of taking possession.1'
168 LENNOX RETURNS TO ENGLAND. [1545.
of those who supported Argyle and Huntly. Finding,
however, that he could, at present, make no permanent
impression, the Earl of Lennox, with his English troops,
returned to Bristol. He then sent Sir Peter Mewtas,
and Thomas Bishop, a Scottish gentleman, to inform
the King, now occupied with the siege of Boulogne, of
all his proceedings. In his despatches he expressed
much indignation against t\e Earl of Glencairn and his
son ; and the King was, no doubt, deeply chagrined at
the failure of the attempt to secure the Castle of Dun-
barton.1 But, on the whole, the tidings sent to Bou-
logne were well received, probably because the alliance
with the Islesmen, of which Lennox had now laid the
foundation, promised to afford unwonted facilities for a
future invasion of Scotland. Accordingly, as soon
as Henry returned to England, he sent for Lennox
to Court, and the intrigues against Scotland were
resumed.2
Early in the following year was fought the
battle of Ancrum Muir, in which the English,
under Sir Ralph Evre and Sir Brian Latoun, were
defeated by the Scots, under the Earl of Angus. Neill
Macneill of Gigha, one of the Island chiefs, was cer-
tainly present, on the English side, at this battle;8 but
whether he was with the English as an ambassador
from the Lord of the Isles, or fought in their ranks at the
head of a body of auxiliaries, remains for the present
uncertain.
Meantime, the Earl of Lennox — through a confiden-
1 Tytlcr, V. 373 ; Anderson, II. 36.
3 Anderson, ubi supra.
» Reg. of Privy Seal, XXVII., fo. 30;
1545.] PROCLAMATION AGAINST DONALD DUBH. 169
tial vassal, Patrick Colquhoun, whose influence in the
Isles was considerable, from his having held for many
years the office of King's Chamberlain there1 — exerted
himself successfully to confirm the Islanders in their
intention of transferring their alliance from the Scottish
to the English Crown. These treasonable practices,
however secretly conducted, did not escape the notice
of the Scottish Government. In the month of June
this year, a proclamation was issued by the Regent
Arran and his Privy Council, against "Donald, alleg-
ing himself of the Isles, and other Highlandmen, his
part-takers." This document bears that the Council
had been frequently informed of the "invasions" made
by Donald and his supporters upon the Queen s lieges,
both in the Isles and on the mainland; which invasions
were not made by the power of the Islcsmen alone, but
by the assistance of the King of England, with whom
they were leagued; such proceedings showing their
intention, as far as in them lay, to bring the whole Isles
and a great part of the mainland, under the obedience
of the King of England, in contempt of the authority of
the Scottish Crown. Proclamation was therefore made,
charging Donald of the Isles and his followers to
desist in future from their rebellious and treasonable
proceedings; and, in the event of their continuing
obstinate, they were threatened with utter ruin and
destruction, from an invasion by "the whole body of
the realm of Scotland, with the succours lately come from
France."2 As no attention was paid to this proclama-
tion by the Islesmen, and as it served rather to throw
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, IX., fo. 48.
3 Reg. of Privy Council, ad tempus.
170 DONALD DUBH GOES TO IRELAND [1545.
them more decidedly into the arms of England, by
showing that they had no time to lose, the Government
was compelled to resort to measures of greater severity.
Processes of treason were immediately commenced
against the principal rebels, and followed up with as
much rapidity as the forms and sessions of the Parlia-
ment permitted.1 While these were in progress, a
commission was granted, on the 28th of July, by
Donald, Lord of the Isles and Earl of Ross, with the
advice and consent of his Barons and Council of the
Isles, of whom seventeen are named, to two commis-
sioners, or rather plenipotentiaries, for treating, under
the directions of the Earl of Lennox, with the English
King.2 On the 5th of August, the Lords and Barons
of the Isles were at Knockfergus in Ireland, with a force
of four thousand men, and a hundred and eighty galleys;
when, in presence of two commissioners, sent by the
Earl of Lennox, and of the constable, mayor, and
magistrates of that town, they took the oath of allegi-
ance to the King of England, "at the command of the
said Earl of Lennox." In all the documents illustra-
1 Treasurer's Accounts, ad tempos ; Acts of Parliament, IL, 458.
2 The original document is preserved in the State Paper Office, and
is quoted in Tytler, V. 397. The Barons and Council of the Isles
named were, Hector Maclean, Lord of Doward; John MacAllaster,
captain of Clanranald ; Rorie Macleod of Lewis ; Alexander Macleod,
of Dunvegan; Murdoch Maclean of Lochbuy; Angus Macdonald,
. brother-german to James Macdonald; Allan Maclean of Torlosk,
brother-german to the Lord Maclean ; Archibald Macdonald, captain
of Clanhuistein ; Alexander Macian of Ardnamurchan ; John Maclean
of Coll; Gilliganan Macneill of Barray; Ewin Mackinnon of Strag-
huordill; John Macquarrie of Ulva; John Maclean of Ardgour;
Alexander Ranaldson of Glengarry; Angus Itanaldson of Knoydert;
and Donald Maclean of Kengarloch.
1545.] WITH FOUli THOUSAND MEN. 171
tive of these proceedings, we find that Lennox was
acknowledged by the Islesmen as the true Regent and
second person of the realm of Scotland ; and while, at
his command, they gave their allegiance to the English
King, they, at the same time, bound themselves, in
particular, to forward Henry's views in regard to the
marriage of the Princess of Scotland, and, in all other
affairs, to act under the directions of Lennox.1 The
name of James Macdonald of Isla, whose lands of
Kintyre had been so lately ravaged by Lennox, does not
occur among the Barons of the Isles who accompanied
their Lord to Knockfergus. It appears also that, in
the month of April, he had even received a reward from
Arran for his services against the English.2 Yet now,
his brother, Angus Macdonald, yras one of the foremost
in support of Lennox; and his own conduct, in the
course of a few months, justifies the suspicion that
already this powerful chief contemplated joining the rest
of the Islanders.
The troops that accompanied the Lord of the Isles
to Ireland are described, in the original despatches from
the Irish Privy Council, giving Henry notice of their
arrival, as being "three thousand of them very tall men,
clothed, for the most part, in habergeons of mail, armed
with long swords and long bows, but with few guns ;
the other thousand, tall maryners, that rowed in the
galleys." An equal number of warriors had been left
behind, to keep in check the Earls of Huntly and
Argyle, forming a total force of eight thousand men now
in arms, under the command of a leader who had passed
1 Documents preserved in State Paper Office.
2 Reg. of Great Seal, XXIX. 118.
172 DONALD DUBH TREATS WITH [1545.
most of his life in prison, deprived of all power and
influence. It cannot be doubted that many of the
Islanders acted on this occasion from a feeling of attach-
ment to the representative of the family of the Isles, as
well as from a deed-rooted hostility to the house of
Argylc. But it is equally clear — and unfortunately
harmonises too well with the venal conduct of many of
the Scottish nobility of the period, to admit of question
— that English gold must have had a great effect in pro-
ducing unanimity among tribes so many of which were
at deadly feud.1
From Knockfergus, the plenipotentiaries of the Island
Lord proceeded to the English Court, bearing letters of
recommendation from their master, both to the King
and Privy Council.55 By the last of these letters, it
appears that the Lord of the Isles had already received
from Henry the sum of one thousand crowns, and the
promise of an annual pension of two thousand. After
certain articles proposed by the Islesmen, together with
their oath of allegiance, had been given in by the com-
missioners to the Privy Council, and the opinion of the
Earl of Lennox had been taken as to the best mode of
procedure, the following conditions were agreed to on
1 Anderson, in his MS. History of Scotland, says that the Islesmen
elected Donald for their Lord, as being the chicfest and nearest of
blood ; and adds, that, besides a pension from the King of England,
he was to receive ** certaine rich apparel of cloth of gold and silver
from the said Earl'' of Lennox. — II., p. 47.
2 The plenipotentiaries were Ruari MacAllaster (brother to the
captain of the Clanranald), Dean of Morvern, who was supported by
the Islesmen, in opposition to Roderick Maclean, put forward by the
Regent to the vacant Bishopric of the Isles (Keith's Bishops, p. 175) ;
and Patrick Maclean (brother to Maclean of Do wart), Justiciar of the
Isles, and Bailie of Icolmkill.
1545.] THE KING OF ENGLAND. 173
the 4th of September : — The pension of two thousand
crowns was confirmed to the Lord of the Isles by letters
patent; and Henry engaged that that nobleman and
his followers should be included in any treaty made
between England and Scotland. On the other hand,
the Lord of the Isles became bound, with all his adherents,
to serve the King of England truly and faithfully, to
the annoyance of the Regent of Scotland and his par-
tisans. He engaged to make no agreement with the
Earls of Huntly or Argyle, or with any of the Scots, to
the prejudice of the King of England; but, on the
contrary, to continue steadfast in his opposition to them
and in his allegiance to Henry. It was arranged that
the Earl of Lennox, with a body of two thousand Irish,
under the Earl of Ormond and Ossory, should lead an
expedition against Scotland from the west, in which he
was to be assisted by the Lord of the Isles with eight
thousand men. As long as Lennox should remain in
the country of the Earl of Argyle, the whole eight
thousand men were to be placed at his disposal ; but,
in the event of his proceeding to another part of Scot-
land— and a march to Stirling was seriously contem-
plated— it was provided that only six thousand of the
Islanders should follow him, while the remaining two
thousand should be employed in occupying the attention
of the Earl of Argyle. Lastly, three thousand of the
Islesmen were to receive pay from the King of England
for two months.1
In conformity with these arrangements, instructions
were given to the Earl of Ormond to levy two thousand
Irish foot for the expedition against Scotland ; and the
1 Original in State Paper Office.
174 LENNOX AGAIN INVADES SCOTLAND, [1545.
other necessary preparations for an armament of such
importance were actively carried on by the Irish Privy
Council. But at this moment, the Earl of Hertford,
who was about to invade Scotland from the Border,
required the presence of Lennox in his camp ; and the
western invasion was necessarily postponed till the ter-
mination of the campaign.1 This delay caused, in the
end, the total failure of the expedition. The Lord of
the Isles, after waiting for some time in vain, expecting
the arrival of Lennox, and naturally anxious about the
safety of the vassals he had left behind, returned with
his forces to Scotland. Meantime, dissensions had
arisen among his barons as to the division of the Eng-
lish pay received for three thousand of their men;
and their quarrels ran so high that the army seems to
have been broken up, whilst the chiefs retired each to
bis own castle.2 At length, the Earl of Lennox arrived
in Ireland, where he received this mortifying intelli-
gence; but although now uncertain what support he
might receive from the Islanders, he determined on
proceeding to Scotland as soon as the Irish armament
should be ready, in order that the great exertions of the
Privy Council of Ireland might not be rendered alto-
gether useless. Immediately after the arrival of Len-
n ox in Dublin, Patrick Colquhoun had been despatched
1 Tytler, V. 398.
2 Macvurich. His words (translated) are — " A ship came from Eng-
land with a supply of money to carry on the war, which landed at
Mull ; and the money was given to Maclean of Dowart to be distributed
among the commanders of the army; which they not receiving in
proportion as it should have been distributed amongst them, caused
the army to disperse." That Maclean acted a very prominent part in
the intrigues with England is corroborated by the documents in the
State Paper Office.
1545.] AND IS AGAIN UNSUCCESSFUL. 175
with some light vessels to the Isles. The object of his
mission was to ascertain whether the Lord of the Isles
still continued firm in his allegiance to Henry ; and, in
the event of this point being satisfactorily ascertained,
to assist in bringing the forces of the Isles together in
time to co-operate with the expedition from Ireland.1
Having received information that a good opportunity
now offered for possessing himself of Dunbarton Castle,
which was still a favourite object with Henry, Lennox
likewise despatched his brother, the ex-Bishop of Caith-
ness, to practise on the fidelity of the Constable ; and
soon afterwards followed himself, sailing from Dublin
on the 17th of November, with a formidable squadron,
carrying on board two thousand Irish soldiers, under
the command of the Earl of Ormond. So complete an
armament, according to the opinion expressed by the
Irish Privy Council, had not left the shores of Ireland
for the last two hundred years.2
Stirling of Glorat, the Constable of Dunbarton, re-
ceived the Bishop of Caithness with distinction ; yet, as
he had already refused to deliver the fortress to Lennox,
he now declared that he would hold it out against all,
till his mistress, the Queen, should be of age to* demand
it herself. He was closely besieged by Arran, Huntly,
and Argyle, who had been alarmed by the admission of
the Bishop into the castle ; but the strength of the place
defied their utmost efforts. Finding that force would not
succeed, Cardinal Beaton and Huntly began to tamper
both with the Bishop and the Constabte, and succeeded
1 Letter from Irish Privy r Council to the King, dated 19th
November, 1545. Letter Anth. St Leger to the English Privy
Council, 10th October, 1545. State Paper Office.
* Tytler, V. 407.
176 DEATH OF DONALD DUBH. [1545.
in corrupting them. Caithness, bribed by the promise
of his restoration to the see he had lost, proved false to
his brother; and Stirling, for a high reward, was induced
to deliver the fortress, in that age deemed impregnable,
into the hands of the Regent. Lennox and Ormond,
probably informed on their passage both of this disas-
trous event and of further dissensions among the Isles-
men, do not seem even to have attempted a descent ;
at least, their farther proceedings are wrapped in obscu-
rity.1
Donald, Lord of the Isles, appears to have accom-
panied Lennox on his return to Ireland, and to have
died soon after, of a fever, at Drogheda.2 " His fune-
ral in Ireland," says an author, formerly quoted, " to
the honour of the Earl of Lennox, stood the King of
England in four hundred pounds sterling."3 The
honours paid to the remains of their departed chief were
well calculated to gratify the prejudices of the Isles-
men, who have always been, and to this day are, dis-
tinguished by a passion for magnificent interments.
Lennox, who was again projecting an invasion of Scot-
land, lost no time in despatching messengers to the Isles
with tidings of the death and burial of the late Lord ;
but some difficulty appears to have existed regarding
his successor. He had left one bastard son, whom, in
his dying moments, he commended to the care of the
King of England ; but it does not appear that any claim
i Tytler, V. 407-8.
2 4* Macdonald " (after the dispersion of his army and the failure
of Lennox's expedition) " went to Ireland to raise men ; but he died
on his way to Dublin, at Drogheda, of a fever, without issue, either
sons or daughters/' — Macvurich's MS. The documents in the State
Paper Office prove, however, that he left one son, a bastard.
B Anderson, II. 48.
1545.] JAMES MACDONALD OF ISLA. 177
was made on behalf of this individual to the succession.
The family of Sleat, in which the male representation
of the Earls of Ross and Lords of the Isles now centred,
was, at this time, almost deprived of power. Its chief
was a minor, the son of that Donald Gorme killed before
the Castle of Elandonan in 1539 ; and, in addition to
this source of weakness, the title of the family to their
estates was disputed by the Macleods of Harris, who
found this a good opportunity for reviving their former
claims. At length the Islanders chose for their leader
James Macdonald of Isla, whose patriotism seems to
have evaporated on his perceiving a possibility of obtain-
ing the pension of two thousand crowns promised to his
predecessor. His pretensions to the Lordship of the
Isles were certainly inferior to those of the chief of
Sleat; but his power, as an individual, was much greater.
He was, however, from various causes, opposed by many
who had been among the firmest supporters of Donald
Dubh ; particularly the numerous and powerful Clan-
gillean (with the exception of one prominent individual
of that tribe), the Macleods, both of Lewis and Harris,
and the lesser clans of the Macneills of Barra, the Mac*
kinnons, and Macquarries. All these now endeavoured,
and with success, to effect their reconciliation with the
Regent.1
On the 10th of February, the messengers
of Lennox returned to Dublin bearing letters
from James Macdonald — * which now declareth himself
Lord of the Isles, by the consent of the nobility of the
Insulans,as the bearersaffirm" — to the Irish Privy Council.
Along with the messengers came an accredited envoy
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, XIX., fo. 27, 74.
15
178 ISLA INTRIGUES WITH ENGLAND. [1546.
of the new Lord, who was despatched, at the special
request of the latter, to submit certain proposals, on his
part, to the King of England.1 These proposals bore
that the Earl of Lennox, or any other person properly
authorised, should be sent with an army to the Isle of
Sandy, beside Kintyre, on or about St. Patrick's Day.
Here the Lord of the Isles engaged to join him with
the utmost power of his kinsmen and allies — namely,
Allan Maclean of Gigha and Torlusk (brother to Mac-
lean of Dowart, and celebrated in tradition, as a warrior,
by the name of Akin win Sop), the Clanranald, Clan- *
chameron, Clankayn,2 and his own surname, the Clan-
donald north and south. But he required twenty days
notice of the arrival of the expedition* and two or three
ships to assist in bringing his forces together at the place
of rendezvous. In return, he desired from the King a
bond for a yearly pension of the same amount as that
granted to his late " chief and maister, Donald, Lord of
the Tllis, quhom God assoilyie ; the quhilk deit in his
said Grace's service."3 To these offers it does not
appear that Henry made any reply, his attention being
probably engrossed by the events connected with the
1 Letter, Privy Council of Ireland to that of England, 10th February,
1545-46. State Paper Office. James had no claim whatever to tho
Earldom of Koss, nor does he seem to have preferred any.
3 Clankayn is an error for Clanayn or Clan Ian of Ardnamnrohan.
* Letter, James Macdonald of Dunyveg and the Glens, and " ap-
peirand ayr of the Ylis," dated at Ardnamurchan, 24th January, 1545-6,
to the Lord Deputy and Privy Council of Ireland. State Paper Office.
At the same time, Ewin AUanson of Lochiel wrote to the Lord Deputy,
promising his services to the English King, and saying he had marched
to the Lowlands and taken a prey both from Huntly and Axgyle. He
also required support, and recommended James, whom he styles
*' narrest of ayr to the hous of the YUis," as a brave young man, with '
great strength of kinsmen.— Ibid.
1546.] LOCHTEL AND KEPPOCH EXECUTED. 179
progress of the Reformation in Scotland, and the plots
for getting rid of Cardinal Beaton, who was assassinated
in the Castle of St. Andrew's, on the 28th of May.1
About this time the Earl of Huntly, by the instru-
mentality of William Macintosh, captain of the Clan-
chattan, apprehended two of the principal Highland
chiefs — Ewin Allanson of Lochiel, captain of the Clan-
chameron, and Ranald MacDonald Glas of Keppoch.
These chiefs were not only concerned in the slaughter
of Lord Lovat and the Frasers at Kinloch-lochy, but
had supported, to the utmost of their power, all the
rebellions hatched by the Earl of Lennox. They were
imprisoned, for a short time, in the Castle of Ruthven
in Badenoch, and afterwards tried for high treason at
Elgin. Being found guilty by a jury composed of
landed gentlemen, they were beheaded; while several of
their followers, who were apprehended along with them,
were hanged. The heads of the two leaders were then
set over the gates of the town.2 This severity seems
to have had a salutary effect in disposing the rest of the
rebellious Highlanders to submission. In the course of
this year the processes of treason, which, some time
before, had been instituted against the Islesmen, were
dropped, and, by degrees, a general pacification of the
remote Highlands and Isles seems to have been accom-
plished, whilst the authority of the Government was
once more nominally established in these districts.3
1 Tytler, V. 409, 427.
9 Lesley, p. 185. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 110. MS.
History of the Cameron s.
» Acta of Pari. 1L, 469, 4th August, 1646. Reg. of Privy Seal, XX.,
fo. 86, 94 ; XXI., fo. 3, 8. Even John Moydertach succeeded, at length,
in obtaining pardon in 1548. — Ibid, XXII., fo. 27.
180 TRANQUILLITY OF THE ISLES. [1546-
James Macdonald of Isla, whose desertion of the
party he had formerly acted with, and assumption of the
title of Lord of the Isles, may be supposed to have made
him particularly obnoxious to the Regent, was fortunate
enough to escape the punishment he deserved. He had
probably succeeded in concealing the full extent of his
treasonable practices; but he had, nevertheless, com-
mitted himself so far as to incur the hostility of the Earl
of Argyle. Their disputes, however, were settled by
the mediation of the Regent;1 and Macdonald, dropping
his title of Lord of the Isles, seems ever after to have
acted the part of a patriotic Scotsman and obedient
subject. After this time we find no trace in the records
of any attempt on the part of the Islesmen to restore the
ancient dynasty of the Isles. The different branches of
the family of the Isles, and the other tribes inhabiting
the Lordship, became gradually more estranged from
each other, and more desirous each to extend its own
power at the expense of its neighbours. So far, this was
the result contemplated by James IV. and his counsel-
lors in their proceedings after 1493 ; but it is not to be
supposed that they desired, or would have encouraged,
the great increase which was eventually made to the
power of the Earls of Argyle, through the individual
weakness and dissensions of the Islanders.
In the Scottish army which assembled under
A. D. 1547.
the Regent Arran in 1547, to oppose the
progress of the Protector Somerset, and which sustained
so severe a defeat at Pinky, a considerable number of
Highlanders and Islanders werepresent, many of them
1 Record of Privy Council, 18th June, 1546. Treasurers Accounts,
ad tempus.
1547.] BATTLE OF PINKY. 181
being under the Earl of Argyle.1 But although some
of those who had formerly supported the English now
fought on the other side, not a few of the western clans
had failed, on this occasion, to obey the summons of the
Regent. Of these, the most prominent were the tribes
concerned in the slaughter of the Lord Lovat and the
Frasers in 1544; who, being still considered as outlaws,
did not venture to trust themselves out of their moun-
tain fastnesses. The Macleods of Lewis were likewise
absent;2 but, indeed, it is matter of surprise, not that some
of the Islanders failed to attend, but that any of them
should have been trusted to fight against their recent
allies — and that, too, under leadens so obnoxious to them
as the Earls of Huntly and Argyle. The necessity,
after the disastrous result of the battle of Pinky, of pre-
venting divisions among the Scots themselves, seems to
have induced Arran, in the course of the year 1548, to
pardon those Highlanders who still remained outlaws,
on easier terms than they could otherwise have expected.
Although the Regency of Arran contin „d till the
year 1554 — when he resigned his office in favour of Mary
of Guise, the Queen Dowager — yet during the latter
years of his government, he acted, in a great measure,
under the advice of that able and energetic Princess.
She soon perceived the necessity of restoring the con-
trol which the possession of hostages, or the imprison-
ment of the most turbulent of the chiefs themselves/as
in the last years of the reign of James V., was calculated
to give to the Government over the Highlands in general.
All the late insurrections in the Isles, she was aware,
had followed immediately upon the liberation of those
1 Pitecottie's History, ad tempns.
a Reg. of Privy Seal, XXII., fo. 27 ; XXVII., fo. 125.
182 INFLUENCE OF MART OF GUISE. [1552.
hostages and chiefs, to which Arran, in his anxiety to
harass his political opponents, had so unadvisedly
consented. The efforts of the Queen Dowager were
therefore directed to the re-establishment of the policy
of James V.; and, for this purpose, the Regent, by her
advice, summoned all the chiefs of the Highland clans
to meet him in Aberdeen, on the 17th of June,
1552, where he proposed to hold Justice
Courts, in the course of a progress through the kingdom,
undertaken " rather," as Lesley says, " for staying of
troubles in tymes to cum than for rigorous punishment
of any offences by past."1 He held similar courts at
Inverness in the month of July. Most of the clans
appear to have submitted to the conditions imposed upon
them; but the Clanranald, under John Moydertach, and
the Clanchameron, under Ewin Beg Donaldson, held
out. On this a commission was given to the Earls of
Huntly and Argyle against these clans; and we find
that, in the month of August, the latter nobleman was
in the district of Lochaber, in pursuance of his instruc-
tions. In the course of the following month, Argyle
had entered into communication with John Moydertach,
who contrived to excuse his disobedience in such a way
as to procure a cessation of all proceedings against him
till the following February. The Earl undertook that
this chief should make his personal appearance in
presence of the Privy Council before that time; and, in
the event of his failure, was enjoined to make war upon
him, according to his original instructions.2 The pro-
ceedings against the Clanchameron, which were entrusted
1 Lesley's History, p. 243.
3 Record of Privy Council, 17th October, 1552. Treasurer's
Accounts, July and September, 1552.
1
N
1554] SHE ASSUMES THE REGENCY. 183
to Huntly, are wrapped in obscurity. Their leader died
about this time, and was succeeded by his brother,
Donald Dubh;1 but it is uncertain whether he was
executed under Huntly's commission.
The disputes between Arran and the Queen Dowager
regarding the Regency, seem to have allowed the rebel-
lious Highlanders to set the Government at defiance for
some time longer. But, after the latter had assumed
the government, in April 1554, no time was
lost in taking steps to reduce them to obe-
dience. In June of that year, the Earls of Huntly and
Argyle were ordered to proceed, by sea and land, to the
utter extermination of the Clanranald, of Donald
Gonneson (the heir of SI eat), and of Macleod of
Lewis, and their associates, who had failed to present
hostages for their good conduct.2 A ship and artillery
were furnished by the Regent to the Earl of Argyle, for
the service in the Isles;3 and a large force, both of Low-
landers and Highlanders, was assembled under Huntly
with the intention of attacking the captain of the Clan-
ranald.4 Neither of these noblemen met with much
success. The reasons for the failure of Argyle do not
appear ; but the cause of Huntly's want of success is
not so obscure. When that nobleman desired his
troops to march into the Highlands, the Lowlanders
refused, unless they could proceed on horseback, which
the nature of the country rendered impracticable. The
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, XXVI., fo. 57.
3 Notes of Beg. of Privy Council in Haddington's Collections,
MS. Advocates1 Library. Macleod and Donald Gonneson were,
about this time, engaged in a feud with the Mackenzies, for the
origin and history of which see Chapter IV.
3 Treasurer's Accounts,^July, 1554.
4 Lesley's History, p. 251.
184 DISGKACE AND PUNISHMENT OF HUNTLY. [1554.
Highlanders, on the other hand, were so much exas-
perated against Huntly, for his execution of William
Macintosh, captain of the Clanchattan,1 some years
before, that the Earl declined to march with them alone,
and was at length obliged to disband his forces and
return home. The reasons assigned by Huntly for his
failure did not prove satisfactory to the Regent and her
council, by whom he was committed to prison till his
conduct should be further inquired into. This inquiry
terminated so unfavourably for Huntly, that he did not
obtain his enlargement from prison without renouncing
various lucrative grants he had lately acquired; and,
particularly, the Earldoms of Marr and Moray, and
the gift of the ward and marriage of Mary Macleod,
the heiress of Harris, Dun vegan, and Glenelg. It was
understood, too, that he should proceed to France, and
remain there for five years; but he was relieved from
this part of his sentence, on paying to the Regent the
sum of five thousand pounds.2
Early in the year 1555, Mary of Guise re-
newed her efforts to restore order in the Isles.
A process of treason was, in the month of April, com-
1 This chief, having been accused of conspiring against the life of
the Earl of Huntly, then Lieutenant to the Queen over the North, was
convicted by a jury, and sentenced to lose his life and lands, in a
Court held at Aberdeen, by the Earl, 2nd August, 1550. Notwith-
standing a pledge to the contrary, Macintosh was executed soon
after by the Countess of Huntly; and, as was generally believed,
at the instigation of the Earl. By an act of Parliament, 14th Dec.,
1557, the above sentence against Macintosh was reversed as illegal.
Sir Lewis Stewart's MS. Collections, Advocates' Library, pp. 49r
61. Anderson's MS. History, II., fo. 162.
9 Lesley's History, pp. 251-2. Record of Privy Council, Hadd.
ColL, MS. Adv. Lib. Anderson's MS. History, II., fo. 162, 174.
Balfour's Annals, I. p. 302.
1555.] ACTIVITY OF THE QUEEN REGENT. 185
menced against Ruari Macleod of the Lewis.1 In June
following, a commission was given to the Earls of
Argyle and Athole over the Isles; and, soon afterwards,
Macleod gave in to the Privy Council, through the Earl
of Argyle, certain offers, of which, eventually, the
Regent approved so far as, in the month of September,
to grant him a respite.2 Meanwhile, the Earl of
Athole, who had proceeded against John Moydertacb,
the captain of the Clanranald, succeeded so well that
he prevailed upon that restless chief, with two of his
sons, and certain of his kinsmen, to come before the
Regent, and submit themselves to her clemency. Mary
of Guise, pleased with their submission, pardoned them
their past offences; but ordered them, in the meantime,
to remain, some at Perth, and others at the Castle of
Methven, till her will should be further declared to them.
After remaining, however, in these places for a short
time, the Highlanders made their escape to their native
mountains; giving the Regent a lesson, as a Scottish
annalist quaintly observes, "to hold the fox better by
the ear while she had him in her hands." 8 This result
of her mistaken lenity only roused the Regent to greater
exertions, and determined her to proceed next year in
person to the North, to hold Justice Courts for the
punishment of the great offenders, and thus to prevent
misrule in time coming. Accordingly, in the
* month of July, 1556, Mary of Guise arrived at
Inverness, accompanied by the Earls of Huntly, Argyle,
1 Treasurer's Accounts, ad tempus. The nature of the treason is not
specified.
» Record of Privy Council, If add. Coll. ; Reg. of Privy Seal, XXVIL,
fo. 125.
3 Balfour's Annals, I., p. .304 ; Lesley's History, pp. 253-4.
186 JUSTICE COURTS HELD IN THE NORTH. [1556.
Athole, and Marischall, and the Bishops of Ross and
Orkney, with others of the Privy Council Here
courts were held, and offenders were visited with the
most severe punishment — the chiefs of clans being
obliged to apprehend and present to justice the crimi-
nals of their own tribes, according to the wise regulations
laid down by James V., which, during the late wars, had
fallen into desuetude.1 As John Moydertach is not
mentioned at all by Bishop Lesley in his account of
this progress of the Queen Regent to the north, it seems
probable that this arch-rebel had escaped the punishment
which awaited him, by flying to the more remote Isles.
There can, however, be little doubt that the Regent
would soon have made her authority felt, even by those
Islanders most removed from the seat of justice, had not
her attention been, after this time, exclusively occupied by
the progress of the Reformation in Scotland, and the
measures which, unfortunately for herself, that princess
was induced to pursue in opposition to the reformers.
Although the Reformation was undoubtedly one of the
most important events in Scottish history, yet its progress
is to be traced almost exclusively in the history of the
Lowlands ; at least, the history of the Highlands and
Isles presents little that is interesting on this subject.
It is not to be supposed, however, that the great High-
land barons were slow to follow the example of their
Lowland neighbours in seizing the lands and revenues
of the church. On the contrary, the deplorable state
in which the Highlands and Isles were found to be, in a
religious point of view, at the commencement of the
seventeenth century, was evidently owing to this cause.
1 Lesley's History, pp. 256-7.
] 558-9.] EFFECTS OF THE REFORMATION. 187
Bat in such proceedings the bulk of the Highland
population, if we except the vassals of the Earl of
Argyle, seem to have taken little interest; and many of
them long continued to adhere, as a portion still do,
to the worship of their fathers. On the death
of Archibald, fourth Earl of Argyle, who
had all along supported the measures of the Queen
Regent, the weight of this great Highland family was
thrown into the opposite scale, by his son and successor
Archibald, the fifth Earl, who soon distinguished him-
self as one of the most able among the Lords of the
Congregation. To weaken the influence of this power-
ful nobleman, the Regent endeavoured to sow dissen-
sions between him and the Islanders, whose jealousy
of the family of Argyle was well known. To embroil
the Earl with James Macdonald of Isla — at
this time the most powerful of the Islanders,
and who, some years before, had allied himself to the
family of Argyle, by marrying Lady Agnes Campbell,
sister to the late Earl — became now a favourite object
with the Queen Regent. We have seen that Huntly,
when punished by her for his negligence in the pursuit
of John Moydertach, had been compelled to relinquish
a grant he had obtained from the Earl of Arran of the
wardship and marriage of Mary Macleod, the wealthy
heiress of Dunvegan. Huntly had endeavoured, while
in disgrace, to dispose of this grant to the Earl of
Argyle;1 but his plans were frustrated by the vigilance
of the Queen Regent, who now bestowed the disposal of
the heiress upon James Macdonald.2 In his anxiety to
possess himself of this prize, Macdonald did not hesitate
x Gen. Reg. of Deeds, I., fo. 231. » Ibid. IV., fo. 819.
188 DEATH OF MARY OF GUISE. [1560.
to take part against Argyle; but the latter speedily
counteracted the influence of the Regent; and we find
that, in October, 1559, "James Macdonald, whom the
Regent heretofore stirred against the Earl of Argyle,"
was actually on his way to join the Lords of the Con-
gregation, with seven hundred foot soldiers.1
In the following year, the Queen Regent
died in the Castle of Edinburgh, partly of an
old complaint, and partly of grief at the opposition which
she had latterly encountered, and which, on her death-
bed, she had sagacity enough to attribute to the right
cause — namely, her following the counsels of foreigners,
instead of ruling by the advice of the Privy Council of
the realm. This princess was much regretted, and
with reason; for we are informed by Bishop Lesley,
that, " in the time that she was Regent, she kept good
justice, and was well obeyed over all the parts of Scot-
land ; as also in Orkney and the Isles." 2
1 Sir R Sadler's State Papers, I., pp. 431, 517.
2 Lesley's History, p. 289.
LSI)
CHAP. IV.
FROM THE RETURN OP QUEEN MARY TO SCOTLAND, TO THE
ACTUAL ASSUMPTION OP THE GOVERNMENT BY JAMES THE
SIXTH. -1561-1585.
During the space of twenty-four years, which elapsed
between the return of Queen Mary from France, in
1561, and the actual assumption of the Government by
her son, in the nineteenth year of his age, in 1585, the
general history of the Highlands and Isles possesses little
interest. Repeated failures seem to have made the
western clans sensible of the impossibility of re-esta-
blishing, in any shape, the old Lordship of the Isles ;
and they gradually learned to prefer holding their lands
under the sovereign directly, to being the vassals of any
subject, however powerful. Having now no longer a
common object, they became, by degrees, more estranged
from each other, whilst each chief laboured either to
extend his own possessions, or to defend himself from the
aggressions of his more powerful neighbours. It thus
happened that, without any insurrection of a general
nature, there were yet, during the interval of which we
speak, many serious disturbances in the Highlands and
Isles, which called for the interference of Government.
Taking these disturbances in chronological order, the
190 MACLEANS OF DOWART AND COLL. [1561.
first that calls for notice is a dispute between Maclean
of Dowart and Maclean of Coll, which is chiefly remark-
able as indicating the progress of the feudal system in
the Isles. Dowart, who was generally acknowledged
as chief of his clan, insisted that Coll should follow and
serve him in all his private quarrels, like the other gen-
tlemen of the tribe. Coll, however, who held all his
lands direct from the Crown, declined to follow this
haughty chief, claiming the privileges of a free baron,
who owed no service but to the sovereign as his feudal
superior. Irritated at the independent tone assumed
by Coll, and determined to assert what he conceived to
be his just claims, the Lord of Dowart, taking advan-
tage of the other's temporary absence, caused
his lands to be ravaged and his tenants to be
imprisoned. Such, indeed, was the tyranny exercised
by Dowart over his weaker neighbour, that the family
of Coll, from being in a prosperous condition, was
reduced, in a short time, to the brink of ruin. Nor
was it till after the lapse of several years, that the suf-
ferer by these violent and illegal proceedings succeeded
in drawing the attention of the Privy Council to his
situation ; so great was the power and influence of his
oppressor. The decision of that tribunal was, as might
have been expected, adverse to the claims of Dowart ;
who was ordered to make reparation to Coll for the
injuries done to the property and tenants of the latter ;
and, likewise, to refrain from molesting him or his fol-
lowers in future.1 At a later period we shall find that
the feud between these families was only suspended, not
concluded, by this decision of the Privy Council.
The next dispute worthy of notice which occurred in
1 Record of Privy Council, 1563-1567, fo. 46.
15C2-4.] MACDONALDS AND MACLEANS. 191
the Isles, was between the Macleans on the one part,
and the Macdonalds of Isla and Kintyre on the other.
This affair demands our attention, not so much on
account of its origin, which was merely a quarrel as to
the right of occupancy of certain Crown lands in Isla, as
because it was the commencement of a long and bloody
feud between these tribes, in which both suffered severely,
and which led eventually to the utter ruin of that power-
ful branch of the Clandonald. Of the early details of
this feud, which was aggravated by previous disputes
regarding the island of Gigha, little is found in the usual
cir- sources of information. The Isles of Mull,
a. d. 1562. xiree, and Coll, were invaded by the Clan-
donald of Isla, assisted by its kindred tribe, the Clan-
donald of Sleat ;l and it may be supposed that the Mac-
leans and their allies were not backward in similar
hostilities. It is uncertain which tribe was the original
aggressor; but from the tenor of certain
* proceedings before the Privy Council, it
appears probable that the Macleans were to blame — a
fact which, indeed, is distinctly asserted by a historian,
himself a Privy Councillor in the reign of James VI.
According to this writer, the Rinns of Isla (the lands in
dispute) were actually occupied by the Macleans, who
claimed to hold these lands as Crown tenants ; but the
decision of the Privy Council established that James
Macdonald of Isla was really the Crown tenant, and that
the Macleans, if they continued to remain on the lands,
must hold them of Macdonald, under the same condi-
tions of personal and other services as the rest of Mac-
donald's vassals in Isla held their lands.2 Such a
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, XXXI., fo. 48.
' * Sir R. Gordon, p. 188. Record of Privy Council, April, 1564.
192 DEATH OF JAMES OF ISLA. [1565.
decision must have been, no doubt, very galling to a
powerful and high-spirited tribe like the Macleans ; and
we can scarcely be surprised at the deep-rooted hostility
which so long prevailed between them and the Clan-
donald, when we consider the point of honour which was
involved in their dispute. Such was the inveteracy with
which the rival chiefs pursued their quarrel, even after
the matter had been brought before the Privy
Council, that, in 1565, they were compelled
to find sureties each to the amount of ten thousand
pounds, for their abstinence from mutual hostilities.1
It deserves to be remarked, that Archibald, fifth Earl
of Argyle, was one of the sureties for each chief, he
being connected, by marriage, with both ; as it proves
that this nobleman did not contemplate extending his
»
power and influence in the same unscrupulous manner
that some of his successors afterwards did, at the expense
both of the Macdonalds and Macleans.
In this year, the ClandoDald of Isla and Kintyre
suffered a severe blow, by the loss of its chief, James
Macdonald of Dunyveg and the Glens, under whose
guidance the tribe had become the most powerful and
prosperous of any in the Western Isles. As it was in
Ireland that this leader lost his life, the present seems
a proper opportunity for noticing the rise and progress
of a powerful Hebridean colony in Ulster, connected
with and dependent upon the Clandonald of Isla and
Kintyre. It has been mentioned in the Introduction
(supra, p. 61), that John Mor pf Isla, founder of this
branch of the family of the Isles, acquired a footing in
Ulster, by his marriage with Mary or Marjory Bisset,
1 Record of Privy Council, January and March, 1565.
1565.] THE CLANDONALD IK ULSTER. 193
heiress of the Glens, in the county of Antrim, being the
district comprehended between the rivers Inver and
Boyse. The three immediate successors of John Mor
strengthened themselves in their Irish inheritance by
intermarriages with the families of O'Donnell, O'Neill
of Claaeboy, and Savage of the Arde ; and also by set-
tling several cadets of their own house as tenants in the
territory of the Glens.1 In their endeavours to main-
tain and to extend their Irish possessions, the Clandonald
were not only involved in frequent feuds with the Irish
of Ulster, but were occasionally brought into hostile
contact with the English forces. On St. Patrick's day,
in the year 1501, the Irish historians inform us, that
there was fought a battle between the O'Neills and
certain Soots or Albam; in which conflict, the latter
lost a son of the Laird of Aig, of the family of the
MacDonnells, the three sons of Coll MacAlexander,
and about sixty common soldiers.8 In 1521, while the
Earl of Surrey was Lord Lieutenant of Ireland, Hugh
O'Donnell, Lord of Tirconnell, in offering his submis-
sion to that nobleman, engaged, amongst other services,
to join the Lord Lieutenant with his own men of Tir-
connell, and likewise to hire a great number of Scottish
Islanders, or Redshanks, to act against the Irish rebels.5
On these conditions his submission was received ; but,
when called upon soon after to fulfil his engagements,
the Lord of Tirconnell broke his word, and preferred
his followers to attack the territories of O'Neill,
1 Irish Genealogies; Harleian MS., British Mnsewn, No. ^- and
1490
1 Sir James Ware's Annals of Ireland; Edit, (in English) Dublin,
1706, p. 43.
9 Ware's Annals, p. 70.
16
194 HISTORY OF THE [1565.
then exposed by the absence of that chief, who, with a
large body of men, was in the camp of the Lord Lieu-
tenant.1 In the following year, the Earl of Ormond,
who had succeeded Surrey as Viceroy, dreading the
defection of many of the chiefs in the north of Ireland,
and desirous at the same time to repress the rapine
and piracies committed by the Scottish Islanders,
applied to Cardinal Wolsey for five or six vessels to
scour the channel between Scotland and Ireland, and
so prove a check both to Scots and Irish.2 Ten years
later, when Alexander Macdonald of Isla was sent to
Ulster, at the head of seven thousand men, by James
V., for the purpose of harassing the English in that
province (supra, p. 142), he seems to have profited by his
opportunities to add considerably to his Irish estates ;
at least, by some genealogists this chief is styled
Lord of the Glens and Route3 — the latter district lies
between the rivers Boyse and Ban, being the ancient
inheritance of the MacQuillans. In 1545, we have seen
that the self-styled Lord of the Isles led four thousand
of his vassals to Ireland, intended to act in concert with
an English force under the Earl of Lennox, against
the French party in Scotland. At this time, James
Macdonald of Isla alone, of all the islanders, supported
the French party ; but on the death of the Lord of the
Isles, he assumed that title, and entered into friendly
communication with the Irish Privy Council early in
1546 (supra, pp. 157, 177). Three years afterwards,
and when James Macdonald had made his peace with
the Regent of Scotland, a body of Scots was sent into
1 Ware's Annals, p. 170. 2 Ibid, p. 75.
8 Said Irish Genealogies in £rii Mas.
j
1565.] CLANDONALD IN ULSTER. 195
Ulster, to aid the Irish rebels against the English. This
rebellion was quelled by the good conduct of Andrew
Brereton, leader of some English troops, who, with
only thirty-five horse, attacked and cut to pieces two
hundred of the Scots.1 Notwithstanding this check, we
find the Hebrideans again infesting Ulster, and assisting
the Irish rebels, in the year 1551, under the Viceroyalty
of Sir James Crofts. The Viceroy having arrived at
Xnockfergus, sent a detachment, commanded by an
officer named Bagnall, against the Scots, who, under
their leaders, James Macdonald and his brother Coll,
had taken post in the Isle of Rachlin. Bagnall met
with very bad success : one of his ships was wrecked,
whilst many of his men were slain, and himself taken
prisoner by the Macdonalds. He was afterwards liber-
ated in exchange for another brother of the chief of
Isla, who had, on a former occasion, fallen into the
hands of the English.2
Soon after this, the Chancellor of Ireland, in a
letter to the Duke of Northumberland, mentions that
both Hugh Macneill Oig, Captain of Claneboy, find
Shane O'Neill, son of the Earl of Tyrone, were in
league with the Scots. He adds that, "When the
Scots doe come, the most part of Clanneboy, Mac-
Quillans and O'Cahan's countries, must be at their
commandement ; " and, when alluding to the Dufferin
or White's country, he states that John White, the last
proprietor, had been deceitfully murdered by " M'Ranill
Boye, his son, a Scott," who had ever since kept
possession of that territory by force.3 In 1555, the
1 Ware's Annals, p. 120. a Ware's Annals, pf 124.
3 Harleian MS., Brit Mas., No. Y. Letter dated 6th May,
1552.
196 HISTORY OF THE [1565.
Lord Anthony St. Leger being Viceroy, the Ilebridean
Scots attempted to take the town of Knockfergas ; bat
their design having been detected, the garrison was
enabled to frustrate it.1 In the same year, in a dispute
between Manus O'Donnell, Earl of Tirconnell, and
his son Calvagh, the latter went to Scotland and pro-
cured a body of troops from " Gillespick MacCalain "
(Archibald, fourth Earl of Argyle).2 Returning with
these auxiliaries to Ulster, in November, he entered
Tirconnell, and, seizing his father, placed him in prison,
where the old chief lingered till his death, nor were
the Scottish troops dismissed till the subsequent May.
In the meantime, they appear to have had a skirmish
with their former ally, the Captain of Claneboy, in
which the latter, a man much esteemed among his
own kindred, was slain.3 Thomas Radcliff, Earl of
Sussex, being appointed Lord Lieutenant of Ireland,
landed at Dublin on Whitsunday, 1556. He was
accompanied, among others, by Sir Henry Sidney,
as Treasurer of Ireland, who carried with him from
England the sum of* twenty-five thousand pounds, des-
tined to be applied towards the charges of an expedi-
tion against the Scottish Islanders, who invaded the
northern parts of Ulster, and against a few of the Irish
rebels. Early in July, the Lord Lieutenant having
mustered his forces, marched to the north against
the Islanders ; and, on the eighteenth of that month,
1 Ware's Annals, p. 137.
9 Ibid, p. 137. In the accounts of the Lord High Treasurer of
Scotland for October, 1555, there occurs a payment to a messenger
bearing a letter from the Queen Regent, " to charge the Erie of Ergile
nocht to pas in Ireland."
3 Ibid, p. 137.
^
*.
i
1565.] CLANDONALD IN ULSTER. 197
engaged and defeated them. Of the Scots, more than
two thousand were slain, and a great many taken
prisoners.1 Notwithstanding this victory, Sussex was
obliged, in the following year, owing to the continued
incursions of the Scots, to procure an enactment mak-
ing it high treason for any Scots to come into Ireland,
or for any of the natives to receive them. It was
' also declared, that any intermarriage by a native
of Ireland with a Scot, without the Lord Lieutenant's
permission, should be punished as a felony.2 In the
month of August, 1557, Sussex again marched to the
north against the Scots, who were under the command
of James Macdonald of Isla. The Islanders, however,
shunned an encounter with the English forces, who
ravaged the country at their pleasure. In the course
of this expedition, the Lord Lieutenant received under
his protection Richard MacQuillan, who had been ex-
pelled from his country of the Route by the Scots. At
the same time, too, he knighted and adorned with a
golden sword and silver gilt spurs, Alexander Mac-
Ranald Buy, one of the Macdonalds, who had distin-
guished himself by his services against his kinsmen.3
This individual was probably destined by the Viceroy
to become exclusively a subject of England ; and then,
by supplanting James Macdonald in the latter's inheri-
ance of the Glens, to prevent the inconvenience that
had arisen from a powerful Scottish subject having
influence in a province already sufficiently disinclined
1 Ware's Annals, p. 139. 3 Ibid, p. 142.
* Ibid, p. 142. Sir Alexander MacRanald Buy received also the
more substantial favour of a grant of the greater part of the barony
of Dunluce, with the monastery of Glenarm, and the lands belonging
thereto, which, however, he seems to have been unable to retain for
any length of time.
198 HISTORY OF THE [1565.
to the English yoke. In a State paper of some import-
ance, titled, " Opinion touching Ireland," and addressed
to the Lord Lieutenant by Dowdall, Archbishop of
Armagh, in July, 1558, the Primate strongly urges the
expulsion of the Hebridean Scots from Ulster, by pro-
curing their Irish neighbours, O'Donnell, O'Neill,
O'Cahan, and others, to unite against them. He
argues, also, that the power of the Scots in Ireland pro-
ceeded chiefly from the Irish chiefs engaging them as
auxiliaries in their private quarrels — a practice to the
suppression of which the Archbishop earnestly draws
the attention of the Lord Lieutenant.1 Sussex, how-
ever, seems to have decided on a more direct method of
checking the incursions of the Islanders. With this
view, having received reinforcements from England, he
sailed from Dundalk towards the Isle of Rachlin, where
some of the Scots then were. Notwithstanding the loss
of one of his vessels, with some of the citizens of Dublin
on board, which was wrecked on the coast of Rachlin, he
himself, with the rest of his troops, landed, and having
killed all who offered resistance, laid the island waste.
Thence he sailed to Kintyre, where he committed great
ravages, as well as in Arran and the Cumbraes. It
was his intention to have done more mischief to the
Scots at this time, but a storm arising, he was forced
to sail for Ireland, and landed at Knockfergus : before
he returned from that place to Dublin, he plundered
and burnt several villages inhabited by the Scots in the
county of Antrim.2 About this time a body of the
Islanders went from Ulster into Connaught, to assist
some families of the Bourkes against Richard, Earl
of Clanricarde; but that noblemen encountered and
1 narleian MS., Brit Mus., No. V- 2 Ware's Annate, p. 145.
1565.] CLAXDONALD IN ULSTER. 199
routed the confederates with great slaughter.1 In
spite of these reverses, the Macdonalds still maintained
their footing in Ulster ; and we find that in 1560 the
Earl of Sussex entered into an indenture with Sorley
Buy Macdonald, on behalf of his brother James, the
head of the family. The Scot demanded to have, by
lease from the Queen of England, not only the Glens,
which he claimed as his ancient inheritance, but the Route,
from which the MacQuillans had been expelled. Sorley
Buy was offered as a resident substitute for his brother in
these lands, and engaged to pay certain stipulated duties,
as well as to furnish twenty-four horse and sixty foot to
all hosts of the Lord Lieutenant. Sussex, on his part,
undertook to bring these demands favourably under the
notice of Queen Elizabeth.2 The demands of the
Scots regarding the possession of the Route having
apparently been rejected, they soon relapsed into their
former state of hostility against the Irish Government ;
and such of their own tribe as had submitted to the
Lord Lieutenant, were encouraged to act against them.3
After the recall of the Earl of Sussex, and while Sir
Henry Sydney was Lord Deputy, Sorley Buy Mac-
donald found himself so hard pressed by his enemies,
that, leaving his men under the command of his brother,
Alexander Oig, he proceeded to Scotland, to hasten
the departure of succours from that country. In the
end of 1565 he returned to Ireland, accompanied by
his brother, James Macdonald of Isla, and a consider-
1 Ware's Annals, p. 145.
a Cotton MS., Brit Mus., Titus B., XIII. 19. State paper, signed
" W. Cecill," dated 2nd April, 1560, and preserved among the Denmylne
MS. Adv. lib.
* See various letters proving this fact, and dated about the year 1562,
among the Cotton MS., Brit. Mus., Veep. F. XIL
200 DEATH OF JAMES MACDONALD. [1565.
able body of men. Soon after landing, they were sur-
prised by a party of the O'Neills, under the celebrated
Shane O'Neill, Earl of Tyrone ; - and • in the conflict
which ensued, the Scots were defeated with considerable
slaughter. James Macdonald was' mortally wounded,
and his brother Angus was slain; while Sorley Buy
fell into the hands of the victor, with many of his fol-
lowers.1 O'Neill had recently, after repeated rebellions,
made his submission to the English Government, and
was thus induced to turn his arms against his former
associates, the Scots of the Glens. But soon afterwards,
becoming once more a rebel, and having sustained a
defeat from the English forces, this powerful chief
became alarmed at the extent of the preparations
against him, and was compelled to take refuge with the
very Islanders he had so lately attacked as enemies.
By liberating Sorley Buy and his other prisoners, he
hoped to secure their good offices with their kinsmen ;
and he then proceeded to Glaneboy, where Alexander
Oig Macdonald, the brother of Sorley Buy, lay, at the
head of six hundred Scots, and threw himself on the
protection of that leader. At first O'Neill was well
received, a great entertainment being prepared for him;
but, in the middle of the feast, a dispute arose in con-
sequence of some rash expressions of .O'Neill's secretary,
which were defended by O'Neill himself. Some of the
Scots, eager to revenge the death of their late chief,
took advantage of this circumstance, and, rushing into
1 Ware's Annals (Reg. Elizab.), pp. 8, 10. Camden's Britannia, by
Gongh, I1L, p. 626. Leland's Ireland, II. , p. 230. Crawford's MS.
Collections, Adv. lib., quoting a deed from the Dunstaffnage Papem,
which shows that the Earl of Argyle proposed to intercede for the
liberation of Sorley Buy.
1565.] DEATH. OF SHANE O'NEILL. 201
the tent with drawn dirks, despatched both O'Neill and
his secretary; and the head of the former, being carried
to Dublin by Captain Piers, an English officer, was set
on the top of the castle, by order of the Lord Deputy.1
O'Neill was succeeded by one of his tribe, named
Torlogh Luineach, who made war upon the Scots, and
killed Alexander Oig Macdonald in the year following
the death of Shane O'Neill.2
From the above sketch of the history of the Gkn-
donald of Isla, with reference to its possessions in Ulster,
it seems evident that the power of the tribe, as compared
with that of the Macleans and other great clans in the
Isles, must have been seriously weakend, owing to its
late losses in Ireland. Indeed, after the death of James
Macdonald, this family never regained its former power;
and the son of that chief lived to see its almost total
destruction.
In the same year in which the chief of Isla made his
last and fatal expedition to Ulster, the Earl of Argyle,
and many of his vassals, were involved in the rebellion
of the Duke of Chatelherault and the Earl of Murray,
arising out of the opposition made by these noblemen to
the marriage of Mary, Queen of Scots, with the Lord
Darnley. Murray retired to Argyleshire in the month
of August, where he was joined by the Earl of Argyle,
and the men of Breadalbane, Lorn, and Argyle Proper.
Commission waa given to the Earl of Athole to proceed
against the rebels; and the Royal forces were summoned
1 Ware's Annals (Keg. Elizab.), p. 11. ClinVs Irish Rebellions, p.
XVII. ; Leland's Ireland, II., p. 243-4. Act of Attainder of O'Neffl's
memory by the Irish Parliament, 11th Eliz. Sess. 3. Captain Piers is
said, by Leland, to have incited the Scots to this assassination.
3 Ware's Annals (Reg Elizab.), p. 11. Leland, IL, p. 244.
202 DISSENSIONS IN THE CLANCHAMERON. [1565.
by proclamation, to meet the Commissioner in Lorn, on
the 20th of September. Among other chiefs specially
required to meet the Earl of Athole in Lorn, we find
Ruari Macleod of the Lewis, Tormod Macleod of
Harris, Donald Gormeson of Sleat, • and Kenneth
Mackenzie of Kintaill. The march of the rebels to the
Lowlands, and the subsequent flight of their leaders to
England, when they found the adherents of the King
and Queen too strong for them, speedily put an end to
this bloodless insurrection, without the necessity of an
invasion of Lorn by the Royal forces. The country
suffered for some time by that stoppage of communica-
tion between the West Highlands and the Lowlands
which was the inevitable consequence of a rebellion in
Argyle. But the insurgent chiefs having made their
peace with the Government early in 1566, a proclama-
tion was soon afterwards issued, removing all restrictions
on the trade in cattle and other commodities.1
Towards the end of Queen Mary's reign, a violent
dispute broke out among the Camerons, in which
Donald Dubh (patronymically styled MacDonald Vic
Ewin), the chief of that clan, was put to death by some
of his own kinsmen.2 He had for some time been at
feud with the family of Glcnnevis; but the chief instru-
ments of his death seem to have been his uncles, Ewin,
founder of the house of Erracht, and John, founder of
that of Kmlochiel, younger sons of Ewin Allanson, the
1 Sir Walter Scott's History of Scotland, II., p. 99. Record of Privy
Council, July, 1565, to April, 1566. Treasurer's Accounts, 27th August,
1565. Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 151.
8 Reg. of Privy Seal, XXXVI. 32. Record of Privy Council,
November, 1564, February, 1576-7. Pitcairn's Criminal Trials, Vol. L,
83. MS. History of Camerons.
1567.] POLICY OF THE EARL OF AEGYLE. 203
captain of the Clanchameron, who, along
* '" with Macdonald of Keppoch, was executed
by the Earl of Huntly in 1547 (supra, p. 179). On
the death of Donald Dubh, the estate of Lochiel seems
to have devolved upon his infant nephew, Allan, son
and heir of Donald's younger brother, John Dubh ; but
Allan being a minor, his granduncles usurped the estate,
under pretence of acting as his guardians. The friends
of the young chief appear, however, to have considered
his life in danger if he should remain in Lochaber; and,
accordingly, provided for his safety by removing him
to the care of his maternal relations, the Macleans of
Dowart.1 In the meantime, the government of the
Clanchameron remained in the hands of Erracht and
Kinlochiel, of whom we shall have further occasion to
speak in a future part of this work.
In this reign the Earl of Argyle contrived to extend
his influence into the North Isles, and over two of the
most powerful tribes in that quarter, the Clandonald of
Sky and North Uist, and the Clanleod of Harris, Dun-
vegan, and Glcnelg. The mode in which this object was
attained is so characteristic of the policy of the house of
Argyle that it seems to merit some detail, in reference
to the rapid increase of the power of that noble family.
William Macleod of Harris, chief of the " Siol Tor-
mod," was the undisputed proprietor of the estates of
Harris, Dunvegan, and Glenelg, under a particular
destination, which, on his death in 1553, caused these
1 MS. History of the Camerons. This authority errs in calling Allan
the son of Donald, for the contemporary records style him, in numerous
instances, Maclandtty. Occasionally, no doubt, he appears as Mac-
Connellduy; but this is evidently the well-known style of the chief of
the Camerons, derived from a remote ancestor.
204 INFLUENCE OF ABGYLE OVER THE [1567.
extensive possessions to descend to his daughter and
heiress, Mary.1 He was, at the same time, nominal
proprietor of Sleat, Trouterness, and North Uist, the
possession of which, we have seen, the Siol Tormod
had unsuccessfully disputed with the Clandonald. On
the death of William Macleod, his claim to the last
mentioned estates was inherited by his brother and heir
male, Donald.2 The Siol Tormod was now placed in
a position which, though quite intelligible on the prin-
ciples of feudal law, was totally opposed to the Celtic
customs that still prevailed, to a great extent, throughout
the Highlands and Isles. A female and a minor was
the legal proprietrix of the ancient possessions of the
tribe, which, by her marriage, might be conveyed to
another and a hostile family; whilst her uncle, the
natural leader of the clan according to ancient custom,,
was left without any means to keep up the dignity of a
chief, or to support the clan against its enemies. His
claims on the estates possessed by the Clandonald were
worse than nugatory, as they threatened to involve him
in a feud with that powerful and warlike tribe, in case
he should take any steps to enforce them. In these
circumstances, Donald Macleod seized, apparently with
the consent of his clan, the estates which legally be-
longed to his niece, the heiress ; and thus, in practice,
the feudal law was made to yield to ancient and inve-
terate custom. Donald did not enjoy these estates long,
being murdered in Trouterness by a relation of his
own, John Oig Macleod, who, failing Tormod, the only
remaining brother of Donald, would have become the
1 Reg. of Great Seal, XIIL, No. 305; XXVL 446.
8 Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 445.
1567.] MACLEODS AND MACDONALDS IN SKY. 205
heir male of the family.1 John Oig next plotted the
destruction of Tormod, who was at the time a student
in the University of Glasgow; but in this he was foiled
by the interposition of the Earl of Argyle. He con-
trived, notwithstanding, to retain possession of the estates
of the heiress, and of the command of the clan, till his
death in 1559.2 In the meantime, the fendal rights of
the wardship, relief, and marriage of the heiress of Harris,
were eagerly sought after by various powerful individuals.
They were first bestowed, in 1553, by the Regent Arran,
upon the Earl of Huntly, who afterwards proposed to sell
his interest in the heiress and her property, to the fourth
Earl of Argyle, for a large sum of money.8 But Huntly,
having fallen into disgrace with the Queen Regent, as
formerly mentioned,, was compelled to relinquish his
bargain with Argyle, and to resign into her hands the
claims he had acquired from Arran to the guardianship
of Mary Macleod.4 The Regent, while endeavouring,
in 1559, to secure the assistance of James Macdonald
of Isla against the Protestants, of whom the fifth Earl
of Argyle was one of the principal leaders, committed
the feudal guardianship of the young heiress to that
chief.5 In 1562, we find that the person of the young
lady had, by some accident, come into the custody of
Kenneth Mackenzie of Kintaill, who, having refused to
give her up to her lawful guardian, James Macdonald,
was at length compelled to deliver her to Queen Mary,
with whom she remained for some years as a maid of
, 1 MS. History of Macleod*. * Ibid.
> Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, 1. 187, 188.
« Ibid, 141 ; Anderson's History of Scotland, MS. Adv. lib., II.
174.
' Sadler's State Papers, II. 481.
206 INFLUENCE OF ARGTLE OVER THE [1567.
honour, being, no doubt, one of the Queen's celebrated
Maries.1 Macdonald seems now to have made over
his claims to Argyle, who finally exercised the right of
guardianship, by giving Mary Macleod in marriage to
his kinsman, Duncan Campbell, younger of Auchin-
breck.2 But, previous to the marriage, the Earl, sensi-
ble of the difficulty which would attend any attempt to
put an individual of his clan in possession of the territo-
ries of the Siol Tormod, even although he had the law
in his favour, entered into the following arrangements,
the most judicious that could be devised for making
the most of his position at the time. His first agree-
ment was with Tormod Macleod, who had been for
some years in actual possession of Harris and the other
estates of the heiress, and had already given to the
Earl (for the good offices of the latter) his bond of
service for himself and his clan.3 It was arranged that
Macleod should renounce, in favour of Argyle, all claim
he had to the lands of the Clandonald; that he should
likewise pay the sum of one thousand merks towards the
do wery of his niece. Argyle, on the other hand, engaged
to procure from Mary Macleod, and any husband she
might marry, a complete surrender of her title to the
lands of Harris, Dunvegan, and Glenelgj and to obtain
for Tormod a Crown charter of that estate.4 His
next agreement was with Donald MacDonald Gorme
of Sleat: and in consideration of that chief paying five
hundred merks towards the dowery of Mary Macleod,
1 Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 143-4.
2 Ibid, p. 151, and Histories of both families.
3 A contract to this effect, dated in 1559, will be found in the
Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 91.
4 Ibid, L 145. The contract is dated 24th February, 1566-7.
1567.] MACLEODS AND MACDOXALDS IX SKY. 207
and of his likewise giving his bond of service for him-
self and his clan to Argyle, the latter engaged to make
him his vassal in the lands of Trouterness, Sleat, and
North TJist, to which the Macdonalds had at present no
legal claim.1 Argyle's agreement with Tormod Macleod
was actually carried into effect;2 but circumstances
seem to have interfered with the final completion of
his contract with Macdonald. It is evident, however,
that, although in the case of the Siol Tormod, at this
time, ancient custom prevented the feudal law of suc-
cession from being carried into effect in its full extent,
yet the Earl of Argyle did not surrender his legal claims
without indemnifying himself amply for the sacrifice.
The important events which marked the close of the
reign of Queen Mary and the commencement of that
of her son, must, in a great measure, have withdrawn
the attention of the Scottish government from the
administration of justice throughout the realm. This
neglect was soon followed by its necessary consequence —
an increase in the number of private feuds as well as
in the rancour with which these disputes were con-
ducted.3 As soon, however, as the Regent Murray
found himself firmly seated in the government, he pro-
1 Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 147. The contract is dated
4th March, 1560-7.
9 Reg. of Great Seal, XXXIII. 9. MS. History of Macleods, quoting
a Royal charter to Tormod, dated 4th August, 1579.
8 On 28th April, 1567, Queen Mary (then at the Castle of Dun-
bar) granted a commission of Iieutenandry to the Earl of Argyle
against Hector Maclean of Dowart and his clan, who had, since the
death of James Macdonald of Dunyveg, ravaged with fire and sword
the Isle of Gigha, being part of the jointure lands of Lady Agnes
Campbell, Macdonald's widow. Analecta Scotica, p. 893. Reg. of
Great Seal, XXXI. 47.
208 MACINTOSH AND KEPPOCH. [1569.
ceeded to check all such disorders with that vigour
which distinguished his character.1 In June,
. 15 9- jgg9? tbe Regent and his Privy Council sat
at Inverness, and laboured to put an end to the feuds
of the Highlanders. Among other feuds which attracted
Murray's notice at this time, was one between the Clan-
chattan and the Macdonalds of Keppoch, the origin of
which has been traced in the Introduction, and which
had been aggravated, in the early part of the last reign,
by the apprehension and execution of Ranald Mac-
Donald Glas of Keppoch. It will be recollected that
this chief, having been concerned in the attack upon
Lord Lovat, and the slaughter of the Frasers, was, along
with Ewin Allanson of Lochiel, apprehended in 1547,
by William Macintosh, captain of the Clanchattan, an»
delivered to the Earl of Huntly, by whom both these
leaders were executed (supra, p. 179), Notwithstand-
ing the great obstacle thus thrown in the way of an
accommodation between the Clanchattan and the Mac-
donalds, the Regent succeeded in procuring from Launch-
Ian Macintosh, now the head of the former tribe, a
promise that he would grant to Ranald MacRanald of
Keppoch such titles to the lands occupied by the latter
and his clan, as to the Regent should seem fair and
equitable.2 This long-protracted feud was now in a
fair way of being brought to an amicable conclusion,
but for the assassination of the Earl of Murray, which
1 In a Parliament, held at Edinburgh, in 1516, the Lords of the
Articles were required to report, "by what meane all Scotland be
brocht to universal obedience, and how John Moydari and Machay
may be dantonit." Vol III. p. 48-4. The particulars of the rebel-
lious conduct of these chiefs do not appear.
3 Record of Privy Council, ad tempos.
1569.] DONALD GOBMESON AND MACKENZIE. 209
had the effect of throwing the country into still greater
confusion than that from which he had already succeeded
in rescuing it.
In August of this year, Donald Gormeson or Mac-
donald of Sky, and Colin Mackenzie of Kintaill, were
forced, in the presence of the Regent and Privy Council
at Perth, to settle, under Murray's mediation, certain
quarrels in which they and their clans had been for some
time involved. The principal argument used by the
Regent to force these chiefs to an accommodation, was
a threat that the whole influence of Government would
instantly be employed to crush the party who should
refuse his mediation, or, having accepted it, should fail
to implement the conditions imposed upon him.1 One
cause of feud between the Clandonald of Sky and
the Clankenzie, was the death of Donald Gormeson's
father, in his abortive attempt to seize Mackenzie's
Castle of Elandonan in Kintaill, in the latter part of the
reign of James V. (supra, p. 146). But the dissen-
sions of these powerful tribes had of late been aggra-
vated by their connection in different ways with the
Siol Torquil, or Macleods of Lewis. To understand
the respective positions of the clans alluded to, it will
be necessary to glance briefly at the later history of
that last mentioned — viz., the Siol Torquil. Roderick
or Euari Macleod, the Baron of Lewis, and heir
male of his ancient house, was first married to Janet,
daughter of John Mackenzie of Kintaill. The alleged
issue of this marriage was a son, Torquil — afterwards,
from his residence among his mother's relations in
Strathconnan, surnamed Conmnach. The Lady of
1 Record of Privy Council, ad iempus.
17
210 DISSENSIONS AMONG THE [1569.
Lewis, however, haying eloped with John Macgille-
challum of Rasay, chieftain of a powerful branch of the
Siol Torquil, was divorced by her husband, who, at the
same time, disowned and disinherited Torquil Connanach,
alleging that the latter was not his son, but the son of the
Breve or Celtic Judge of the Lewis.1 Ruari Macleod
married, secondly, in 1541, Barbara Stewart, daughter of
Andrew, Lord Avandale ; and by this lady had a son,
likewise named Torquil, and surnamed Oighre, or the
Heir, to distinguish him from Torquil Connanach.2 The
latter being supported by the Mackenzies, a feud
between the two clans was the result. Nor did the
quarrel, thus begun, end but with the total destruction
of the family of Lewis. Some time in or before the year
1566, Torquil Oighre, a young chief of great promise,
was, with many of his attendants, drowned in a tempest,
when sailing from Lewis to Sky. As he left no male
issue, this event gave fresh spirit to the supporters of
1 MS. History of the Mackenzies, in the possession of L. Mackin-
non of Letterfearn, Esq. Dr. George Mackenzie's MS. History of the
Mackenzies. Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 267. That
Ruari Macleod's wife, contrary to the MS. Histories above cited,
was a daughter, instead of a sister, of John Mackenzie of Kintaill, is
proved by a decreet arbitral in 1554, in which Torquil Connanach is
called the oy of John Mackenzie. — Acts and Decreets of Session, X., fo.
201.
•
* Reg. of Privy Seal, XV., fo. 77. Sir R. Gordon, p. 267. MS.
Histories above cited. As Barbara Stewart is found to have been
alive and styled Lady Lewis, in 1566 — and Torquil Connanach is
mentioned as engaged in active life prior to 1554 (Acts and Decreets
of Session, X., fo. 201), and had a son grown up in 1585 (Privy
Seal, LIU., fo. 40) — it is clear, contrary to the assertion of Sir
Robert Gordon and the other writers above quoted, that Barbara
Stewart must have been the second, and not the first wife of Ruari
Macleod.
1569.] MACLEODS OF LEWIS. 211
Torquil Connanach, and to that individual himself, who
had now married a daughter of the Laird of Glen-
garry.
A recent massacre of the Macleods of Rasay contri-
buted, at this time, to weaken the Siol Torquil, and to
irritate the Mackenzies more against them. The fol-
lowing are the circumstances under which tradition
states the massacre to have taken place. It has been
mentioned that John Macgillechallum of Rasay, called
" Ian na Tuaidh" or John with the Axe, carried off the
first wife of his chief, Ruari Macleod of Lewis. By this
lady, who was a daughter of John Mackenzie of Kin-
taill (and whom, after her divorce from her first husband,
he appears to have married), Rasay had issue several
sons and a daughter. The latter was married to Allaster
Roy, a grandson of Hector or Eachan Roy, the first of
the Mackenzies of Gerloch.1 On the death of his first
wife, Rasay married a relation of his own, being the sister
of Ruari MacAUan Macleod — surnamed u Nimhneach,"
i.e., venomous, or bitterly hostile — head of that portion
of the Siol Vic Gillechallum which dwelt in Gerloch. Of
this marriage there was likewise issue. Rasay had given
offence to his clan by marrying his daughter to a Mac-
kenzie of the house of Gerloch, with which the Siol Vic
Gillechallum had been long at deadly feud. Taking
advantage of the discontent of the tribe, Ruari MacAUan
plotted the destruction of his ceantighe, and of the sons
of the latter's first marriage; so that the lands of Rasay
might come to the eldest son of the second marriage,
who was his own nephew. Having contrived to assemble
the Laird of Rasay, his sons by the first marriage, and
1 MS. History of Mackenzies of Gerloch, and Letterfearn MS.
212 DISSENSIONS AMONG THE [1569.
several of his nearest relations, at the Island of Isay in
Waterness, as if to consult on matters of importance,
the relentless MacAllan proceeded to carry his blood-
thirsty design into execution. After a feast, which
concluded the business of the day, he left the apart-
ment ; and, causing Rasay and the others to be sent for
singly, he had each of them assassinated on coming to
his presence. Not one of the party escaped; but
although Ruari MacAllan's nephew was now nearest
heir, he did not succeed in retaining possession of
Rasay. That estate, by the assistance of the Mac-
kenzies, became the property of Malcolm or Gillecallum
Garve MacAllaster Macleod, who was residing with his
fosterfather at the time of the massacre of his relations;
and was, during his minority, placed by that faithful
guardian under the protection of Campbell of Calder.
Meantime, the Mackenzies of Gerloch pursued Ruari
MacAllan, in revenge for the murder of the sons of
Rasay 's first marriage, whose mother was a Mackenzie,
and whose sister had married into that family, as above
mentioned.1 This occurred about the time that the
disputes of Ruari Macleod of Lewis and Colin Mac-
kenzie of Kintaill, who supported Torquil Connanach,
had run very high, and must, of course, have had the
effect of aggravating the feud. Ruari Macleod now
sought the assistance of Donald Gormeson, a chief
whose previous quarrel with the Mackenzies made
him more ready to oppose them upon this occa-
sion; and who appears, with the sanction of the
chief of the Siol Torquil, to have taken steps to procure
1 Letterfeam MS. I have nowhere else seen this massacre alluded
to.
1570-2.] MACLEODS OF LEWIS. 213
his own recognition as heir of the line of Lewis.1 In
all these disputes, Neill Angusson Macleod of Assint,
and the blood-stained Ruari MacAllan, were among the
leading partisans of the chiefs of Lewis and Sleat;
whilst Torquil Connanach Macleod, and John Mackenzie
of Gerloch, were the most active on the other side.2 Such
was the feud which was now quelled by the influence of
the Regent Murray so effectually a£ to prevent its
renewal at any future time, so far as the Macdonalds of
Sky and the Mackenzies were concerned.
A- d. 1570- After the assassination of Murray, the Earls
I572- of Lennox and Mar were successively Regents
of Scotland. These noblemen, however, held the
sovereign power for so short a space, and were so much
occupied in defending themselves and their supporters
against the Queen's party, which was still very strong,
that neither of them had leisure or opportunity to
follow out any particular system with regard to the
administration of justice, or the maintenance of internal
tranquillity. The Earl of Mar was succeeded by the
celebrated James, Earl of Morton; who, although an
unprincipled man, and avaricious to excess, ruled with
much vigour and an appearance of justice.
During the feud between the Clandonald and other
supporters of Ruari Macleod, and the Clankenzie, as
supporters of Torquil Connanach, which we have lately
noticed, the old chief of Lewis had been seized by his
1 Protest in Ch. Chest of Dunvegan, dated 22nd August, 1566,
taken by Donald MacDonald Gorme, claiming to be heir of Lewis,
on the ground of an alleged confession of Hucheoun, the Breve of
the Lewis, that Torquil Connanach was son to the said Breve.
3 Acts and Decreets of Session, X., fo. 201 ; Record of Privy Council,
August, 1569.
214 REGENCY OF MORTON. [1576.
alleged son, who detained him four years in captivity.
Being brought, while a prisoner, before the Earl of
Mar, then Regent, and his Privy Council, he was com-
pelled to resign his estate into the hands of the Crown,
taking a new destination of it to himself in liferent, and,
after his death, to Torquil Connanach, as his son and
heir-apparent. On his liberation, the first act of Ruari
Macleod was to revoke all that he had done when a
captive, on the ground of coercion, and of the undutiful
conduct of Torquil.1 Fresh dissensions followed this
revocation; and, at length, both father and son were
summoned to Edinburgh, where, in presence
'of the Regent Morton and the Privy Council,
they agreed to bury in oblivion their mutual animosities.
Torquil Oonnanach was again recognised as heir-
apparent of the Lewis; and, in that character, received
from his father the district of Cogeache, and various
other lands, for his support during the life of the latter.2
It will afterwards appear that this reconciliation did not
endure for any great length of time.
About the same time, a petty quarrel arose between
the Earls of Argyle and Athole, which might have been
attended with very serious consequences, from the
manner in which these noblemen took it up. The
circumstances connected with this dispute were as
follow. Colin, sixth Earl of Argyle, who had suc-
ceeded his brother in 1575, claimed, in virtue of his
heritable office of Justice-General, that a Commission
of Justiciary, formerly given by Queen Mary to the
Earl of Athole, over his own territory of Athole,
1 Reg. of Great Seal, XXXIH 82. Instrument of Revocation by
Kuari Macleod, dated 2nd June, 1572, in Ch. Chest of Dunvegan.
8 Gen. Reg. of Deeds, XV., fo. 186.
1576-8.] FEUD BETWEEN ABGTLE AND ATHOLE. 215
should be annulled.1 This was opposed by the latter,
who not only refused to give up for trial two of the
Athole Stewarts, against whom Argyle alleged various
crimes, but took an opportunity of seizing two of the
Camerons, charged with the murder of the late chief of
that clan. These men he committed to prison, and
detained there, although claimed by Argyle as his
dependants.2 Disdaining to yield to each other, the
rival Earls summoned together their vassals in arms,
and prepared to decide this ignoble dispute by the
sword. The Regent, before the parties could come to
blows, interfered ; and, by a very judicious exercise of
the Royal authority, compelled them to disband their
forces.3 But Argyle and Athole, having secret infor-
mation that Morton meditated a charge of treason
against them, so as to make their late discord profitable
to himself, forgot their private animosities, and united
against the common enemy. The Regent, who feared
their joint power, was forced unwillingly to abandon
his project; and a blow was thus struck at his influence,
which from this time gradually waned, until, at length,
he was deprived of the Regency.* The
Government was now nominally assumed by
the King, who was in the twelfth year of his age ; but,
for the next seven years, the chief power of the State
was engrossed by the profligate Captain James Stewart,
upon whom, in 1581, the Earldom of Arran was con-
ferred.
1 Beoord of Privy Council, Feb., 1576-6.
* Ibid, Slet July, 1576 ; 2nd and 26th February, and 1st Marck,
1576-7.
» Ibid., 23rd June, 1576, to 20th January, 1576-7.
4 Robertson's History of Scotland, II. 225 ; Historic of King James
the Sext, p. 159-60.
216 ABGYLE MENACES GLENGABBY. [1578.
Early in 1578, we find the Earl of Argyje — who,
since his rupture with the Regent Morton, had avoided
the Court, and dwelt in his own country — accused of
levying his vassals, nominally with a view to punish
some disturbers of the public peace, but really, as was
alleged, to wreak his vengeance upon the Laird of
Glengarry. How the latter chief came to offend the
powerful Earl of Argyle does not appear; but upon
his petition to the Privy Council, proclamation was
made, prohibiting the Earl from assembling any of the
lieges in arms, and from attacking Glengarry, under
the pain of treason. At the same time, the tutor of
Lovat, Colin Mackenzie of Kintaill, and several other
powerful chiefs, were directed to assist Glengarry with
all their force against the Earl. A similar direction was
given generally to the inhabitants of the Earldoms of
Ross and Murray, and the Lordships of Badenoch and
Balquhidder; and Maclean of Dowart and Mackinnon
of Strathordell were prohibited from giving assistance
to the Earl of Argyle.1 These decided measures seem
to have checked the Earl's proceedings, for the matter
is not again alluded to in the record.
About this time various other complaints were made
against Argyle for oppressive and illegal conduct; par-
ticularly by John, son and heir to James Macdonald of
Castle Camus in Sky, and John Maclean, uncle to
Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart, who were both kept
prisoners in Argyle's Castle of Inchconnell in Lochow,
without warrant; and by Lauchlan Maclean, the young
chief of Dowart, whose Isle of Loyng was invaded and
plundered by a party of Campbells sent by Argyle,
1 Record of Privy Council, ad tempus.
1578.] LAUCHLAN MOR 31ACLEAN. 217
under the command of Dougal Macconachy of Inveraw.1
It is difficult to account for this Earl of Argyle pursuing
a line of conduct so opposed to the policy of his prede-
cessors. After his being made Lord High Chancellor
of Scotland, in August, 1579, he seems to have paid
more regard to the laws.
The powerful family of the Macleans had now for
their chief a young man of an active and energetic
spirit, under whom this tribe exercised a great influence
in the Isles. Circumstances had early familiarised
Lauchlan Mor (as this young chief, from his great
stature, was styled) with scenes of blood and rapine.
During his minority, the family estates had been held
by Hector Maclean, son of Alein na'n Sop (supra,
p. 178), who pretended to administer them as guardian
for his kinsman, Lauchlan, but, in reality, plotted the
destruction of the latter, intending to seize the estates
afterwards for himself. Even after Lauchlan Maclean,
who is said to have received a good education in the
Lowlands, had attained majority and taken possession
of his estates, his quondam guardian was suspected of a
design upon his life. This was, however, frustrated by
the activity of Lauchlan, who apprehended Hector, and
imprisoned him for a considerable time in the Castle of
Dowart. Thence he transported him to the Isle of
Coll (the Macleans of that island having, on a renewal
of the old feud, been expelled by the young Lord of
Dowart), where the unfortunate Hector was beheaded,
by order of his nephew, without trial or warrant.2
Under a chief disposed to act in so violent and illegal
1 Record of Privy Council, 1576 to 1579.
3 Record of Privy Council, 10th and 12th April, 1579.
218 FEUD BETWEEN THE CHIEFS [1579-81.
a manner the Macleans could not long avoid a collision
with the Macdonalds of Isla regarding the disputed
district in that island. We find, accordingly, that the
King and Council, upon information of mutual hostili-
ties already committed by the followers of these chiefs,
commanded Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart,
and Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg, to sub-
scribe, within a certain limited period, assurances of
indemnity to each other, under^ the penalty of treason.1
This led to a temporary suspension of hostilities between
the two clans, and to the marriage of Macdonald with
the sister of Maclean; but their friendship, although
thus cemented, was not destined to be of long duration.
Some time after these disturbances in the
South Isles, a serious feud broke out between
Donald MacAngus of Glengarry $nd Colin Mackenzie
of Kintaill. The former chief had inherited one half
of the districts of Lochalsh, Lochcarron, and Loch-
broom, from his grandmother, Margaret, one of the
sisters and co-heiresses of Sir Donald Macdonald of
Lochalsh, who, as formerly mentioned, died about the
year 15 18.2 The predecessors of Kintaill had acquired
the other half of these districts by purchase, from Ding-
wall of Kildun, the son of the other co-heiress of Sir
Donald.3 The vicinity of these lands to the other
possessions of the Mackenzies had probably tempted
some of that tribe to make aggressions upon Glengarry's
portion. Their intrusion was fiercely resented by that
chief, who, in order the better to maintain his rights,
1 Record of Privy Council, 12th January, 1578-9.
9 Supra, p. 126. Vindication of the Clanranald of Glengarry, pp.
9-12.
8 Reg. of Privy Seal, XVIL, fo. 92.
1582-5.] OF GLENGARRY AND KINTAILL. 219
took up his residence, for a time, in Lochcarron, and
placed a garrison of his followers in the Castle of Strone,
in that district. The breach between the two clans
gradually became wider; and, in the course of their
dissensions, Glengarry himself, and many of his fol-
lowers, fell into the hands of a party of the Mackenzies,
headed by Ruari Mackenzie of Redcastle, brother to
the Lord of Kintaill. Glengarry's life was spared;
but he was detained in captivity for a considerable time,
and only procured his release by yielding the Castle of
Lochcarron to the Mackenzies. The other prisoners,
however, including several of Glengarry's near relations,
were put to death, with many circumstances
of cruelty and indignity. After his liberation
Glengarry complained to the Privy Council, who, in-
vestigating the matter, caused the Castle of Strone to
be placed under the temporary custody of the Earl of
Argyle, and detained Mackenzie of Kintaill at Edin-
burgh, in what was called open ward, to answer to such
charges as might be brought against him.1
The dissensions among the Macleods of
Lewis, which had been quieted under the
Regency of Morton, were now again renewed with
greater violence than before. The old chief had
recently married, for his third wife, a sister of Lauchlan
Maclean of Dowart, and, by that lady, was father of
two sons — the elder named Torquil Dubh, and the
younger, Tormod. He had likewise five bastard sons,
1 Record of Privy Council, 10th August and 2nd December, 1582 ;
11th January and 8th March, 1582-3. In connection with this feud,
Colin Mackenzie of Kintaill was confined in the Castle of Blackness
in May, 1586. Ibid, ad tempos ; and Treasurer's Accounts in June,
1566.
220 RENEWED DISSENSIONS AMONG [1585.
all come to man's estate; three of whom, Donald, Ruari
Oig, and Neill, joined with their father when that chief
once more disinherited Torquil Connanach, and named
Torquil Dubh as his heir. The other bastards, Tor-
mod Uigach and Murdoch, attached themselves to
Torquil Connanach ; and these elements of discord in
the tribe soon produced their natural results. Tormod
Uigach was slain by his brother Donald, who, again, was
seized by Murdoch, and delivered to Torquil Connanach
with a view to his punishment. Donald, however, con-
trived to escape his threatened doom, and, in his turn,
seized Murdoch, who was then imprisoned by old Ruari
in his Castle of Stornoway in the Lewis. Torquil Con-
nanach took arms to relieve Murdoch from durance,
and justified himself for his hostility to his father, by
alleging that his own life was in danger from the latter.
Having besieged the Castle of Stornoway, and taken it,
after a short siege, he not only liberated his bastard
brother, Murdoch, but again made his father a prisoner,
after killing a number of his men. He likewise carried
off all the charters and writings of the family, which, on
a future occasion, he delivered to Mackenzie of Kintaill.
Before leaving the Lewis, Torquil Connanach sent for
his eldest son, John, a youth who had been brought
up under the charge of the Earl of Huntly, and made
him keeper of the Castle of Stornoway, in which the
old chief, his grandfather, was left as a prisoner. John
Macleod continued in possession of the castle and of
the island for some time, until he was attacked and
killed by his bastard uncle, Ruari Oig. The old man
was once more liberated and restored to his estate,
" which," says our authority, " he did possesse during
the rest of his troublesome days.99 On hearing of the
1585.] THE MACLEODS OF LEWIS. 221
death of his son, Torquil Connanach, by the advice of
the Mackenzies, apprehended and executed, at Ding-
wall, his bastard brother, Donald, who was believed to
have been privy to the designs of Ruari Oig.1 Thus
was the Siol Torquil weakened by private dissensions,
and exposed to fall a prey, as it did soon afterwards, to
the growing power of the Mackenzies.
As the Scottish Islanders still continued to exercise
a considerable influence in the North of Ireland, it will
be proper, before concluding the present chapter, to
take a retrospective view of the events in Ulster in which
they were chiefly concerned since the death of James
Macdonald and Shane O'Neill. The children of James
Macdonald being young at his death, the Irish estates
of the family were seized by their uncle, Sorley Buy,
who, during his brother's life, had merely been manager
under the latter. Sorley Buy was a man of conduct
and courage, and speedily extended his influence over
the adjacent territories of the Route and Claneboy —
being generally successful in his enterprises, whether
against the native Irish or the forces of the English
Government.2 In September, 1575, while Sir Henry
Sidney, then Lord Deputy of Ireland, was at Drogheda,
in the course of a progress from Dublin to the north,
he received intelligence of a desperate attack made by
Sorley Buy upon the garrison of Knockfergus. The
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 268 ; Reg. of Privy Seal,
Lin. 40 ; Letterfearn MS.
3 A full and interesting account of Sorley Buy's wars with the Mac-
Quillans and O'Neills in the year 1569, is given in an ancient MS.,
cited by the Rev. Dr. Drummond in the notes to his poem called " The
Giant's Causeway." See also Hamilton's Letters on Antrim, for feuds
between the Clandonald and the MacQuillans.
222 POWER OF SORLEY BUY. [1585.
principal object of this attempt was to carry off the
cattle which had been collected there, to be under the
protection of the garrison ; and although the Scot was
repulsed without effecting his object, the garrison suffered
severely in the conflict. In the following month Sidney
set out on his journey towards Knockfergus. In his
report of the state of Ulster, he describes the districts
of Duffreyn and Claneboy as totally waste and void of
inhabitants, whilst the Glens and Route, possessed by
the Scots under Sorley Buy, were fall of corn and
cattle; and that leader is represented as being then
very haughty, owing to his late victories. The Lord
Deputy not being in a condition to reduce Sorley Buy,
at this time, by force of arms, arranged with him that
he should abstain from hostilities until certain petitions
given in by him should be considered by the English
Queen. In these petitions, Sorley Buy not only claimed
to be recognised as proprietor of the Glens, but also
desired to be confirmed in his possession of the Route.
As it was now evident that Sorley Buy totally disre-
garded the claims of his nephew, Angus, the son of
James Macdonald,1 to the Glens, and was labouring
exclusively for his own advancement, James' widow,
who, since his death, had married the celebrated Torlogh
Luineach O'Neill, afterwards Earl of Tyrone, addressed
herself to the Lord Deputy, with a view to counteract
the intrigues of Sorley Buy. This lady came to
1 This Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg and the Glens, is first mentioned
in a Scottish Chronicle, A.D. 1573, as tinder: — "Upoun the 23d. day
of April©, the great O'Neill (Torlogh Luineach, step-father of Angus)
come in to Edinburgh, and gave in ane complent aganis Angus MacConeill,
becaus he wald not be subdewit to the Erie of Ergyle." Diurnal of
Oc currents, printed by Ban. Club, p. 330.
1585.] THE CLANDONALD IN ULSTER. 223
Armagh to wait upon Sir Henry Sidney, by whom she
is described as u one very well spoken, of great modesty,
good nurture, parentage, and disposition, being aunt to
the Earl of Argyle." Knowing the aversion of the
English Queen to have Scottish subjects as proprietors
in Ireland, she passed over the claims of her eldest son,
but desired to have the Glens granted to her second
son, who would swear to be her Majesty's liegeman
and a dutiful subject. She engaged, also, that her son
would dwell upon the property himself, and yield what
rent and service her Majesty could reasonably demand;
and that he would defend it against Sorley Buy and
his followers. Her offers, as well as those of Sorley Buy,
were transmitted by Sidney to the English Privy Coun-
cil ; and he, at the same time, expressed his opinion
that the Route should be restored to its former proprie-
tors, the MacQuillans. He recommended, also, that
the Queen should write to the Regent of Scotland,
effectually to keep the Scots at home; "who, from
that region, and, namely, the oute Isles, dayly swarm
hither, to the great annoyance of the north part of this
realme." x
In the following year Sidney received offers from Tor-
logh Luineach, bearing, that if the Lord Deputy would
make war upon the Scots, - 1 do but one day's service
upon them, Torlogh would k ^diate his wife, and do
his best to expel her countrymen ut of Ireland. Being
aware that O'Neill's principal streu/th consisted in the
Scots, as he was hated by his Irish followers, Sidney
distrusted the promises of this crafty chief, and con-
1 Letters of Sir Henry Sidney to the English Government, 28th
September, and 15th November, 1575. Cotton MS., Brit Mus.,
Titus, B. X.
224 EFFORTS OF THE ENGLISH MINISTERS [1585.
tented himself with recommending a new application to
the Scottish Regent, to check the incursions, of the
Islanders into Ireland.1 In 1579, we find it reported
that O'Neill had invited over great numbers of Scots,
with evil intentions, on his part, against the Government.2
The English ministers were now forced to turn their
serious attention to the progress of the Scots in Ulster;
and, being informed that the Earl of Desmond, then in
rebellion, had applied to O'Neill for assistance, they
immediately despatched Captain Piers, an officer of
experience, to treat with Torlogh Luineach and prevent
his joining the rebels. The secret instructions given to
this envoy, and signed by Burleigh and Walsingham,
two of the ablest ministers of the English Queen, afford
the strongest proof of the power to which the intruding
Islanders had attained. After conferring with O'Neill
as to the rebellion of Desmond, Piers was instructed to
ascertain, with caution, how far the former was inclined
to break with the Scots, or, at least, to agree to their
being both limited in number, and confined to their
inheritance of the Glens. He was to pretend that his
sole motive in this proposition was to benefit "the
ancient lords and captains of the land of Ireland,"
several of whom were expelled from their possessions
and deprived of their wealth by the Scots, who grew
rich " by spoiling of the land of Ireland." The envoy
was then directed to explain to the Irish families who
suffered most from the Scots and were pressing for
their expulsion, the reasons which prevented the Queen
from following that course ; and he was charged, at the
1 Letters of Sir Henry Sidney to the English Government, 17th
March, 1576-7.
2 Harleian MS., 7«*.
1585.] TO LIMIT THE SCOTS IN ULSTER. 225
same time, to obtain their approval of a limitation of
the number of the Soots to four hundred. Finally, he
was to sound the Soots themselves, to ascertain how
they felt disposed towards the projected limitation of
their numbers, and diminution of their territories.1
The effect of the mission of Captain Piers, in so far as
regards the Scots, is uncertain. We find that, in 1585,
Angus Maodonald, his brother Donald Gorme, and
his mother, the Lady Tyrone, were engaged in a nego-
tiation with Sir John Perrot, then Lord Deputy of
Ireland, on the basis of certain conditions proposed by
the latter. Before, however, this treaty was concluded,
Macdonald and his mother were summoned to the
Scottish court ; s and the increasing difficulties in which
this chief was soon after involved, threw his Irish estates
entirely into the hands of Sorley Buy, from whom Angus
never was able to recover them.
The history of Sorley Buy and his sons — who, from
this time, became Irish subjects, and threw off, for many
years, any connection with Scotland — may here be
summed up in a few words, as fer as regards their pos-
sessions in Ulster. In 1585, Sir John Perrot took
Sorley Buy's fortress of Dunluce, and expelled him and
his followers from the Route. In the following year,
however, Sorley Buy recovered the castle, and slew the
Governor, Cary, who made a gallant defence ; but the
Lord Deputy having sent against him an officer of
1 Instructions, dated at Westminster, 26th May, 15S0. Harleian
MS., V&*. " Plot for the better inhabiting of Clandeboy, the Route,
mud the Glens, upon an offer made by certain inhabitants of the said
countries."— Ibid, VW.
* Letter, Sir John Perrot to Lord Bnrghley, 24th April, 1985.
Harleian MS., ?ff|.
18
226 HISTORY OF SORLEY BUY AXD HIS SONS. [1585.
experience, named Merry man, the Scot was defeated with
great loss — two of his brothers and his son, Alexander,
being among the slain. Merryman then plundered the
lands possessed by Sorley Buy, from which he carried
off no less than fifty thousand head of cattle, in which
the wealth of that chief consisted. To such distress
was Sorley Buy reduced by this blow, that he surren-
dered Dunluce, went to Dublin, and made his public
submission in the cathedral of that city, offering, at the
same time, an humble petition for mercy. Being after-
wards admitted into the Deputy's apartment, as soon
as he saw the picture of Queen Elizabeth which hung
there, the wily Scot threw away his sword, and more
than once prostrated himself before it, and devoted
himself to her Majesty's service. He was then received
into favour, and obtained letters of naturalisation ; and,
on his abjuring all allegiance to any foreign prince, was
rewarded by considerable grants of land. He had a
grant of four districts, called Tuoghes — viz. : the dis-
trict between the rivers Boyse and Ban, and the terri-
tories of Dunseverig, Loghill, and Ballamonyn, with the
government of Dunluce Castle, to be held by him and
the heirs male of his body under the Kings of Eng-
land. He was bound to restrain his followers from
ravaging, and to furnish, in time of war, twelve horse-
men and forty footmen to the Royal army; paying, also, a
certain number of cattle and hawks annually to the King.
His eldest son, Sir James MacSorley Buy or Macdon-
nell of Dunluce, joined in the Earl of Tyrone's rebellioa
in the year 1597, and was present at the battle of the
Blackwater. In the same year, by means of an ambus-
cade, he took prisoner the Governor of Carrickfergus,
whom he caused to be beheaded on a stone at the head
1585.] ANGUS MACDONALD OF ISLA. 227
of the glen. In 1599 he was still in rebellion, and
had four hundred foot and a hundred horse under arms ;
hut on the accession of King James to the throne of
England, he cheerfully submitted to and became a
strenuous supporter of the government of that monarch.
Sorley Buy's second son, Sir Ranald MacSorley, or
Macdonnell, had considerable grants of land in the
county of Antrim from James VI., after the year 1603.
He is described as having been " a singular promoter
and patron of civility in the north of Ireland." In
1618 he was created Viscount of Dunluce, and after-
wards advanced to the dignity of Earl of Antrim.
Ranald, his son, succeeded as second Earl, and for
his services against the Irish rebels in 1641, was
created in 1643 Marquis of Antrim.1
To return to Angus Macdonald of Isla. Soon after
his arrival in Scotland, an act of Privy Council was
passed, bearing that he having declared himself the
King's obedient subject, was on that account, and
through some pretended quarrels, menaced with invasion
by his neighbours. All the lieges, therefore, were, by
proclamation, strictly charged to assist him against his
enemies, under high penalties. At the same time,
Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart, Donald Gormeson of
Sleat, Ruari Macleod of the Lewis, and Tormod Mac-
leod of Harris, were summoned to appear before the
King and Council, to give their advice regarding the
good rule and quietness of the Highlands and Isles.2
There is reason to believe that the quarrels alluded to
1 Camden's Britannia (by Uough), III., pp. 626, 627 ; Playfair's Brit.
Fam. Antiq., IV., p. 39 ; O'Sullivan, p. 147 ; Hamilton's Letters on
Antrim.
2 Record of Privy Council, ad tenipus.
228 DISSENSIONS AMONG THE [1585^
arose out of the old feud between, the Macdonalds and
Macleans, aggravated in all probability by some im-
prudent grant conferred by the influence of Arran
upon Angus Macdonald, of lands disputed between the
two clans. The Privy Council might have succeeded,
as on former occasions, in quelling this feud, but a
concurrence of unfortunate events tended to plunge
these clans and their supporters into scenes of blood
and strife, which retarded for a length of time the
civilisation and improvement of the Isles.
About this tiqae, Allan Maclan Duy, the young
chief of the Camerons, who, on the murder of his uncle,
had been carried for safety when an infant to the
Isle of Mull (supra, p. 203), returned to take the com-
mand of his tribe. During his minority and absence,
the clan had been ruled by his granduncles, Ewin
Cameron of Erracht, and John Cameron of Kinlochiel ;
but they having made themselves obnoxious by their in-
solence and tyranny, Donald MacEwin Beg, bastard son
of a former chief, was brought forward by a party in the
clan to oppose them. The Laird of Macintosh, taking
advantage of these dissensions, invaded the lands of the
Clanchameron, and forced Erracht and Kinlochiel to
agree to a treaty regarding the disputed lands of Glen-
luy and Locharkaig, which was considered very disad-
vantageous to the Camerons. So strong was the feel-
ing displayed by the clan when the terms of this treaty
became known, that Erracht and Kinlochiel were forced
to repudiate it, and to prepare for an immediate attack
upon the Clanchattan. To strengthen themselves in.
the proposed expedition, they sought a reconciliation
with the bastard, Donald MacEwin, with whom and his
party they had a meeting at the Castle of Inverlochy-
1585.] CAMERONS IN LOCHABER. 229
Here, Ewin of Erracht was barbarously murdered by
some of his opponents, and John of Kinlochiel was
forced to leave Lochaber. He was afterwards, at the
instigation of the bastard, apprehended by the Earl of
Argyle, and executed at the Castle of Dunstaffnage.
Allan Maclan Duy was now recalled to Lochaber,
where, by false reports of the evil intentions entertained
against him by the bastard, he was induced to consent
to the death of the latter. This was so much resented
by the clan, with whom Donald MacEwin h^d been a
great favourite, that Lochiel was under the necessity of
quitting Lochaber for a time until the affair should be
forgotten. Having, while resident in Appin, nearly
lost his life through an unlucky broil, in which a son of
Campbell of Glenurchy was killed, the Clanchameron
became impatient for his return ; and, accordingly, about
the year 1585, Allan Maclan Duy of Lochiel again
entered upon the command of his clan.1
The fall of the odious favourite, the Earl of Arran —
brought about, at length, by the united efforts of the
nobility — opened a new era in the reign of James VI.
That prince was now in his nineteenth year ; and from
this time he took upon himself more of the cares of
Government than could have been expected at his age.
His mode of governing, and his efforts to improve the
Highlands and Isles, will be fully illustrated in the
succeeding chapters.
1 MS. History of Camerons.
230
CHAP. V.
FROM THE ASSUMPTION OF THE GOVERNMENT BY JAMES
VI. TO THE SUPPRESSION OF THE REBELLION OF THE
CATHOLIC EARLS.— 1585-1595.
After the young King had taken the govern-
ment into his own hands, he was soon called
upon to interfere in the feud between the Macdonalds
and Macleans, which owing to an unfortunate accident,
now raged with greater fury than ever. The immediate
cause of these renewed disorders, which speedily involved
several other clans, was as follows. Donald Gorme
Mor of Sleat, being on a voyage from Sky, with a retinue
befitting his rank, to visit his kinsman, Angus Macdonald
of Duny veg, in the island of Isla, was forced by stress
of weather to take shelter in that part of Jura belong-
ing to Maclean of Dowart. At the same time, two
gentlemen of Donald Gorme's clan,1 with whom he had
lately quarrelled, were by the same storm driven into
a neighbouring harbour. On learning that their chief
1 Their names were Huistein MacGillespick Clerach, and Macdonald
Terreagh. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 187. Donald Gorme
Mor was the son of Donald Gormeson, and the fifth in descent from
Hugh of Sleat,
1586.] MACDONALDS AND MACLEANS. 231
lay so near them, these vassals secretly carried off by
night a number of cattle from Maclean's lands, and
took to sea, in the expectation that Donald Gorme and
his party would be blamed by the Macleans for the
robbery and suffer accordingly. Their malicious design,
unfortunately, took effect, for in the course of the fol-
lowing night the men of Sky were attacked by a superior
body of the Macleans, and, as they apprehended no
danger, fell an easy prey to the assailants. Sixty of
the Macdonalds were slain, and their chief only escaped
the same fate from the circumstance of his accidentally
sleeping on board his galley on the night of the attack.
He immediately returned to Sky, much exasperated at
what he had every reason to believe such an unprovoked
attack, and vowing vengeance against the Macleans;
feelings which quickly spread amongst all the branches
of the Macdonalds and their allies. Violent measures
of retaliation were immediately resorted to, and carried
to such an extent that, in the month of September, we
find the King himself writing to Macleod of Harris, and
earnestly requesting that chief to assist Maclean of
Dowart against the Clandonald, who had already done
much injury to Maclean and his followers, and threatened
to do more.1 Meantime, Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg,
having gone to Sky to consult with Donald Gorme,
determined on his return, against the advice of his
followers, to visit Maclean at his Castle of Dowart, and
endeavour to effect an amicable arrangement of all their
disputes. In taking this step, Macdonald calculated on
his private influence with Maclean, whose sister he had
married some years before ; but he was doomed to be
1 Original Letter in Charter Chest of Dunvegan, dated 18th
September, 1585.
232 TREACHERY OF THE MACLEANS AND [1586.
disappointed. His brothers, Ranald and Coll, stroHgly
dissuaded him from, his purpose, and finding him
obstinate, refused to accompany him. Their fears were
justified by the result. Angus and his followers were
at first well received by Maclean ; but the present wag
too good an opportunity of personal aggran-
disement to be lost by the latter, whose violent
character has already been noticed. On the day after
their arrival, Macdonald and his train — with the excep-
tion of Ranald MacColl, Angus' cousin, who was left at
liberty— were perfidiously seized and thrown into prison
by their host.1 Here Macdonald was detained in close
captivity, until, to preserve his life, he agreed to renounce,
in favour of Maclean, the lands of the Einns of Isla, so
long disputed between, the two families. For the per-
formance of this agreement he was obliged to give his
son James, then a boy, and his brother Ranald, as
hostages; whereupon he was set ' at liberty with his
attendants. He then returned to his own Castle of
Dunyveg, more than ever exasperated against his
brother-in-law, and determined to obtain full revenge for
the injuries inflicted both on himself and on his kinsman,
Donald Gorme.
i "Trew it is, that thir Handish men ar of nature verie pxowd,
suspicious, avaricious, full of decept and evill inventioun each aganis
his nychtbour, be what way soever he may circumvin him. Besydis
all this, thay ar sa crewall in taking of revenge that nather have they
regard to person, eage, tyme, or cans; sa ar they generallie all sa
far addictit to thair awin tyrannicall opinions that, in all respects,
they exceid in creweltie the maist barbarous people that ever hes
bene sen the begynning of the warld." — Historie of King James tbt
Sext, p. 217. The author of the work in which the above severe
reflections on the character and disposition of the Islanders occur,
seems, from a passage in Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 188,
to have been one "John Colwin."
1586.] MACDONALDS TO EACH CTSER. 233
Some time afterwards, Maclean came to Isla to
receive performance of the promises made by Mac-
donald regarding tbe Rinns of Isla, bringing with him
his nephew, James Macdonald, one of the hostages, the
other being left behind in the Castle of Dowart. Mae-
lean took post at the ruinous fort of Elan Loch Gorme
in the Rinns of Isla, and had not been long in this
place when he received an invitation from Macdonald
to come to the latter's house at Mnllintrea, which was
more convenient and better stored with provisions than
the fort of Loch Gorme. Such, however, was the dis-
trust felt by Maclean of this invitation, that it was only
after solemn and repeated protestations by Macdonald
that no hostility was meditated, that he was at length
prevailed upon to comply with the request. Maclean
accordingly came to Mullintrea, with eighty-six of his
clan and servants, in the month of July, 1586, and was
sumptuously entertained on his aiyival. In the mean-
time, the Macdonalds being secretly collected together
to the number of three or four hundred men, surrounded
the houses in which Maclean and his followers were
lodged, and made them all prisoners, with the exception
of two, to whom they refused quarter. One of these
was a Maclean of rank and influence in the tribe,
renowned for his valour and manhood ; the other was
Macdonald Terreagh, one of those vassals of Donald
Gorme who were the original cause of the slaughter in
Jura, and who, since that time, had attached himself to
the Macleans. The house in which these two men
were was burned to the ground, with its inmates, by the
Macdonalds.
When the report of the seizure of Maclean and his
followers came to Mull, Allan Maclean, a near relation
234 BARBABITY OF THE MACDONALDS. [1586.
of the chief, caused a false rumour to be spread abroad
that Ranald MacJames, the hostage left behind at
Do wart, had been put to death. His object in this was
to induce Angus Macdonald to kill Maclean and his
clansmen ; in which event, Allan would have succeeded
to the management of the estate, as guardian to Mac-
lean's children, who were then very young. And
although this device did not succeed, as was intended,
in procuring the death of Maclean, yet it had this effect,
that Coll MacJames, under the impression that his
brother Ranald had really been executed, let loose his
vengeance against the rest of the unfortunate prisoners.
Two of these were executed every day, until at last
Maclean himself alone survived of all those who had
been seized by the Macdonalds at Mullintrea; and Mac-
lean's life was only saved by an accident that happened
to Angus Macdonald as he was mounting his horse to
witness the execution of his rival. These atrocities at
length reached the ears of the King, who employed the
chiefs of the Campbells who governed the Earldom of
Argyle during the minority of the seventh Earl, to
mediate between the contending clans. By their in-
fluence, Macdonald agreed — on receiving a promise of
pardon for his crimes,1 and on eight hostages
'of rank2 being placed in his hands by Mac-
lean, for the performance of certain conditions, which
1 A remission was granted to him accordingly. — Record of Privy
Council, 16th April, 1587.
2 These hostages were — Hector Maclean, Dowart's eldest son;
Alexander, brother of William Macleod of Dunvegan ; Lanchlan and
Neill, sons of Lauchlan Mackinnon of Strathordell ; John and Mordo,
sons of Ruari MacNeill of Barra; Allan, son of Ewin Maclean of
Ardgour; and Donald, son of Hector Maclean, Constable of
Carneburg.— Record of Privy Council, 16th April, 1587.
1587.] MUTUAL RAVAGES OF THESE CLANS. 233
the latter was forced to subscribe — to consent to the
liberation of his opponent. After this, Macdonald went
to Ireland to attend to his affairs in that country, when
Dowart, regardless of the safety of his hostages and of
his own promises, roused his clan to arms, and invaded
Isla, a great part of which he wasted with fire and
sword. On Macdonald's return to the Isles, he dis-
dained to punish the hostages; but collected a large
force of his vassals and friends, with which he invaded
the Isles of Mull and Tiree, and put to death all the
inhabitants that fell into his hands, as well as the
domestic animals of every description. "Finally," says
Sir Robert Gordon, "he came to the very Benmore in
Mull, and there killed and chased the Clanlean at his
pleasure, and so revenged himself fully of the injuries
done to him and his tribe." While Macdonald was
thus employed, Maclean ravaged and plundered a great
part of Kintyre ; and "thus for a while they did con-
tinually vex one another with slaughters and out-
rages, to the destruction almost of their countries and
people."1
It may easily be conceived that the effects of this
deadly feud were not confined to the Clandonald of Isla
and the Clanlean. Besides the Macdonalds of Isla and
Sky, who were more particularly involved, there were
numbered, among the opponents of the Macleans, the
Glanranald, the Clanian of Ardnamurchan, the Clanleod
of Lewis, the Macneills of Gigha, the Macallasters of
i Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 186, ct sequen. —
Historie of King James the Sext (printed for the Bannatyne Club), p.
221. The latter authority is more favourable to the Macleans than Sir
R. Gordon, but is not so well supported by the evidence preserved in
the records.
236 MEASURES FOR SUPPRESSING THIS FEUD. [1587.
Loup, the Macfies of Colonsay, and other tribes of
lesser note. On the other hand, among the partisans
of the Macleans we find the Clanleod of Harris, the
Macneills of Barra, the Mackinnons, and Macquarries.1
The disastrous consequences of a dispute between two
powerful clans in the South Isles came thus to be felt
throughout the whole extent of the Hebrides ; and it
became necessary for the Government to take immediate
steps for the suppression of such alarming disorders.
After having sanctioned the delivery of hostages by
Maclean to Macdonald, and promised the latter a par-
don for the atrocities of which he had been guilty, the
King and Council now turned round and issued a
proclamation, ordering the hostages to be given up to
the young Earl of Argyle, or his guardians, to be con-
veyed by them to his Majesty, and kept where he should
appoint, till the final settlement of the matters in dispute
between the Clandonald and Clanlean. The heads of
both these tribes, and their principal supporters and
allies, were charged to remain quiet, and abstain from
all conventions or gathering in arms, and from all
attacks upon each other ; so as not to hinder or disturb
his Majesty in his attempts to bring about a settlement
of their various disputes.2
The King, at the same time, wrote with his own hand
a pressing letter to the Earl of Huntly, desiring that
nobleman to exert himself to prevent the north Islanders
i Ibid, LVIL, fo. 75 ; LIX., fo. §7. Record of Privy Council, ad
tempua. In May, 1587, Angus MacJames, Lord of Kintyre (Mac-
donald of Isla), and Donald Gorme of Skat, entered into an alliance,
offensive and defensive, with Lauchlan Macintosh, captain of the
Clanchattan. — Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, L, p. 97.
2 Record of Privy Council, 16th April, 1587.
1587.] THE GENERAL BOND. 237
from gathering in arms, or committing acts of hostility
against each other; and stating that it was his Majesty's
intention to take "some speciall paines" in the affairs
of the Isles, as he had lately done in those of the Bor-
ders.1 In pursuance of this policy, a very important
Act of Parliament was passed, for maintaining good
order both on the Borders and in the Highlands and
Isles. The plan on which this Act, commonly called
the "General Band," or "Bond," chiefly proceeded,
was, to make it imperative on all landlords, bailies,
and chiefs of clans, to find sureties to a large amount,
proportioned to their wealth and the number of their
vassals or clansmen, for the peaceable and orderly be-
haviour of those under them. It was provided that, if
a superior, after having found the required sureties,
should fail to make immediate reparation of any injuries
committed by persons for whom he was bound to answer,
the injured party might proceed at law against the
sureties for the amount of the damage sustained.
Besides being compelled in such cases to reimburse his
sureties, the superior was to incur a heavy fine to the
Crown. This important statute likewise contained
many useful provisions for facilitating the administra-
tion of justice in these rude districts.2
To return to the disturbances in the South Isles.
Macdonald having failed to liberate the hostages ac-
cording to the proclamation above mentioned, was
outlawed; whilst Maclean, having declared himself an
obedient subject, was received into favour.3 So -innate,
1 History of the Gordon*, by W. B. (MS. Adv. Lib.), in which the
letter, dated 20th April, 1587, is quoted verbatim, p. 229.
• * Acta of Scottish Parliament, latest edition, III. 461-467.
* Beg of Privy Seal, LVL, fo. 75 ; LVIL 35.
238 VIOLENT CONDUCT OF DOWART. [1588.
however, was the disposition of this chief to violence
and rapine, that in a very short time he lost the advan-
tages he had gained, and subjected himself to a process
of forfeiture. It has been mentioned that the Clanian
of Ardnamurchan supported their relations, the Clan-
donald, in the feud with the Macleans, by which they
naturally incurred the resentment of the chief of Do wart.
An opportunity now presented itself to Mac-
A. I). 1^88.
lean to be revenged on the Macians, of which
he did not hesitate to avail himself. John Macian of
Ardnamurchan, the chief of his tribe, had, before the
breaking out of the late feud, been a suitor for the
hand of Maclean's mother. This lady was a daughter
of one of the Earls of Argyle, and her high birth and
connections, together with a large jointure, made the
alliance a very desirable one for Macian. Dowart, who
had hitherto opposed the match, now changed his policy,
and gave his consent to the proposed alliance, in order
to get Macian into his power. That chief was easily
persuaded to proceed to the Isle of Mull, with a retinue
of the principal gentlemen of his tribe, in order that his
marriage with the mother of Maclean might be cele-
brated with becoming splendour. The ceremony having
been performed at Torlusk, one of Maclean's houses in
Mull, with the usual forms observed on like occasions
in the Isles, Macian and his bride retired to their own
chamber; whilst the gentlemen of the Clanian and
their servants, after receiving all the rites of hospitality
from the Macleans, were lodged by themselves in a
barn near to the principal mansion. Here, in the dead
of the night, they were assaulted by a large armed party
of those who had so lately entertained them in friend-*
ship, and massacred without compassion. Not satisfied
1588.] HIS TREACHERY TO THE MACIANS. 239
with this barbarity, the chief of Dowart, and some of
his followers, proceeded to the nuptial chamber, in order
to complete their bloody purpose, by the murder of the
bridegroom. Macian having been roused by the shrieks
and groans of his unfortunate kinsmen, stood upon his
defence, but would inevitably have fallen a sacrifice
to the fury of his enemies, had it not been for the
lamentable cries and earnest entreaties of his wife, for
whose sake his life was spared. He, and two of his
clan, who, by some fortunate accident, had escaped the
fate of their companions, were then thrown into a dun-
geon, where, it is said, that Macian himself was put to
daily torture by the Macleans.1
Soon after this occurrence, the Florida, one of the large
vessels of the Spanish Armada, was driven by a storm into
the harbour of Tobermory in Mull.2 On hearing of the
arrival of this vessel, Maclean of Dowart repaired to the
spot, and, as the price of such assistance as the Spaniards
required and he could give, in refitting and victualling
the ship, he procured the temporary assistance of a hun-
dred Spanish soldiers in his private feuds. With this
force, and a number of his own clan, Dowart first pro-
ceeded to ravage and plunder the Isles of Rum and
Eig — then occupied, particularly the latter, by the Clan-
ranald — and the Isles of Cauna and Muck, belonging to
the Glanian. In this expedition he is said to have
burned the whole inhabitants of these Isles, sparing
neither sex nor age. He then, with his foreign auxili-
1 Sir E. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 191 ; Record of Privy
Council, 18th June, 1578.
2 Here the Florida was afterwards blown up by a plot of Maclean ;
for which offence he took but a remission, 20th March, 1588-9. — Reg.
of Privy Seal.
240 DOWABT BESIEGES MINGABRY. [1689.
aries, proceeded to the mainland, and laid close siege
to Macian s Castle of Mingarry, in Ardnamurchan, for
three days, laying waste all the lands in the vicinity with
fire and sword. At length he was forced to return to
Mull, without obtaining possession of the castle, by the
approach of a superior force, composed probably of
some of the neighbouring clans, ordered by the Privy
Council to proceed against him.1 Meantime, the Mac-
donalds, in the prosecution of this feud, ravaged the
lands of the Macleans with fire and sword, being assisted,
it is said, by a band of English mercenaries.2 Tired
at last of these fruitless barbarities, the hostile clans
came to an agreement, by which the eight hostages for-
merly placed by Maclean in the hands of the chief of
Isla, were exchanged for Macian and the other prisoners
taken by the Macleans.3
It seems now to have been determined on
9' by the King and Council, to take effectual
measures for reducing to obedience the unruly chiefs
whose contentions had caused so much bloodshed in the
Isles. Instead, however, of resorting to force, and thus
compelling them and their followers to submission, a
less manly course, although one, perhaps, more suited to
the disposition of the sovereign, was followed on this
occasion. Remissions, under the Privy Seal, were
granted to the Macleans and Macdonalds, and their prin-
cipal adherents, for all the crimes committed by them
during their late feud;4 and, by these and similar means,
1 Record of Privy Council, 3rd January, 1588-9 ; Pitcairn's Criminal
Trials, L 228-9.
3 Criminal Trials, I. 226-7.
* Sir K. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 192.
4 Reg. of Privy Seal, LVJX, fo. 75 ; LDL, fo. 87.
1590.] THE king's breach of faith. 241
Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart, Angus Macdonald of
Isla, and Donald Gorme Macdonald of Sleat, were at
length induced to come to Edinburgh, on the pretence
of consulting with the King and Council for the good
rule of the country. While there, by a breach of faith
on the part of the Government which no circumstances
can excuse, and which only proves the weakness of the
executive at this period, the three island chiefs were
seized and imprisoned in the castle. After some time,
Maclean and Angus Macdonald were brought
'"to trial for the crimes already pardoned by
the remissions under the Privy Seal; one of the princi-
pal charges against them being their treasonable
hiring of Spanish and English soldiers to fight in their
private quarrels. Both these chiefs, however, refused
to plead or to go to a jury; but submitted themselves
absolutely to the King's mercy, placing their lives and
lands at his disposal.1
In considering the measures pursued by the King,
after this time, towards the chiefs who had been
guilty of such barbarities, and were now so completely
in his power, we must always keep in view the pecu-
niary embarrassments of James VI., which were now,
and continued afterwards to be, very great. The
Crown revenues from land had been much impaired
by the improvident grants made to grasping and avari-
cious courtiers during the minorities of James and his
mother; whilst the carelessness and extravagance of the
young King, after he had assumed the government,
soon involved him in the greatest difficulties. In such
1 History of the Family of Sutherland, 'p. 192. Historie of King
James the Sext, p. 222. Criminal Trials, I. 224, et sequen.
19
242 POLICY OF JAMES THE SIXTH. [1591.
circumstances the irregular payment, or rather the
withholding altogether of the Crown rents in the Isles,
the inevitable result of the desolating feuds which we
have noticed, must have occupied much of the attention
of the King and his advisers. The cupidity of the
monarch seems also to have been excited by exagge-
rated reports of the value of the fisheries on the west
coast, and of the facility with which this branch of the
national industry might be prosecuted. Hence, during
the whole of his reign, the measures adopted for the
improvement of the Highlands and Isles, although
praiseworthy in themselves, and apparently well calcu-
lated to attain the object in view, were impeded by the
eagerness of the King to fill his coffers from the new
sources of wealth which he persuaded himself he had
discovered. In his anxiety to realise these golden
visions he frequently overlooked the just claims of the
natives of the Highlands, and was too eager to enforce
against them the penalty of forfeiture, which, under
various severe acts of Parliament, they frequently
incurred. At other times he acted with more apparent
lenity; but, in these cases, the offenders generally paid
a large sum for pardon; so that they who by their
crimes had justly deserved death, were frequently per-
mitted to return to their own estates, with but feeble
security for their future peaceable behaviour.
Under such a system of Government, it cannot sur-
prise us to find that Macdonald and Maclean were,
upon paying each a fine to the King, and subscribing
and finding surety for their performance of certain con-
ditions imposed upon them, permitted to return home
with new pardons for all their offences. These par-
dons, however, were only to remain in force in the event
159].] LIBERATION OF MACDONALD AND MACLEAN. 243
of their fulfilling the stipulated conditions in every point;
the King reserving to himself the power of pronouncing
sentence of death and forfeiture in the event of their
disobedience. The terms granted to Maclean were
more favourable than those granted to his rival, a dif-
ference arising, in all probability, from the influence of
the Earl of Glencairn, whose daughter Maclean had
married; for before Macdonald was liberated, he had
to place in the hands of the Council his two sons and
one of his nearest relations, as hostages for his appear-
ance before the Council on a certain fixed day; and
even if he should then appear his hostages were to be
detained until Donald Gorme of Sleat (who was libe-
rated at the same time) should give hostages from
amongst his own kinsmen for the performance of the
conditions prescribed to him. Maclean, on the other
hand, was not burdened with giving hostages before his
liberation, but merely promised to present them within
a certain time after his release. In order to enable the
Council better to ascertain their obedience, these three
chiefs were further bound to return to their confinement
in the Castle of Edinburgh whenever they should be
summoned, upon twenty days' warning.1 The amount
of the fines imposed upon Macdonald of Isla and Mac-
lean, in the shape of arrears of their feu-duties and
Crown rents in the Isles, and for which they had to find
security, cannot be easily ascertained. One author
calls it "a small pecuniall sum,"2 whilst another main-
tains that each of them was fined in the sum of twenty
thousand pounds.3 The fine imposed upon Mac-
1 Record of Privy Council, 8th June, 1592.
2 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 192.
3 Johnston's Hist, of Scotland, MS., Advocates1 library, fo. 600.
244 MURDER OF THE BONNY EARL OF MURRAY, [1592.
donald of Sleat, likewise under the denomination of
arrears of Crown rents and feudal casualties for his
lands, was four thousand pounds.1 Finally, John Camp-
bell of Calder,, guardian to the young Earl of Argyle,
bound himself as surety for the Macdonalds; and John
Campbell of Ardkinlass promised to answer for the
obedience of Maclean. These arrangements were
concluded, and the Islanders liberated in consequence,
in the summer of 1591. It deserves to be noticed
that, before their liberation, the Macdonalds were
compelled, on the application of Bowes, the English
ambassador, to find sureties for their good behaviour
towards the Government of Ireland; whilst Maclean
offered, through Bowes, to the Queen of England his
services in Ireland against the chiefs of Isla and Sleat,
as well as against O'Rourk, an Irish rebel.2
In the month of February following, the
A D. 1592.
Earl of Murray, commonly called "The Bonny
Earl," was murdered at his own house of Donibirsel, in
Fife, by a party of the Gordons, under the command of
his deadly foe, the Earl of Huntly, who had received a
commission to apprehend Murray as being concerned
in some of the numerous treasonable attempts of Francis
Stuart, Earl of Bothwell, to seize the Bang's person.
There is no doubt that, in putting this nobleman to
death, Huntly exceeded the powers contained in his
commission; and the lenity with which he was treated
by the Government afterwards caused many complaints
and murmurs all over Scotland, particularly among the
relations of the murdered Earl, of whom Lord Ochil-
tree and the Earl of Athole were the most active.3
1 Harleian MS., No. 4648, p. 37. 2 Ibid.
8 Moysie's Memoirs, pp. 88-92.
1502.] AND OF CAMPBELL OF CALDER. 245
These murmurs gradually assumed the shape of suspi-
cious that the Chancellor Maitland, aud perhaps the
King himself,1 had plotted the death of " The Bonny
Earl ;" suspicions which were justified, in some measure,
by their having employed, on such a delicate service, a
declared enemy of Murray, instead of a neutral person
who had no private revenge to gratify. In the same
month John Campbell of Calder was assassinated in
Lorn.2 It has not. hitherto been remarked by any of
the historians of the period, that the murder of Calder
was in any way connected with that of the Earl of
Murray ; but a late discovery has made it appear that
both crimes were the result of the same conspiracy. It
is now certain that the Chancellor Maitland did actu-
ally join in this conspiracy, which likewise involved
many of the barons and chiefs in the West Highlands,
In order, however, to trace the origin and ramifications
of this extraordinary plot, which was only partially
carried into effect by the slaughter of Murray and
Calder, it is necessary to glance at the history of the
house of Argyle since the death of Colin, the sixth
Earl, Chancellor and Justice-General of Scotland.
This powerful nobleman died in the month of Sep-
tember, 1584. By his last will and testament he com-
mended his eldest son, Archibald, then a minor, with
his whole kin and friends, to the maintenance and
protection of the King, in consideration of the faithful
services of his predecessors and of his own loyalty.
The principal charge of the young Earl and his vast
»
1 Moysie's Memoirs, p. 91 ; Anderson's MS. History of Scotland,
Advocates1 Library, III., fo. 246.
* Anderson's History of Scotland, III., fo. 246; Pitcaim's Criminal
Trials, I. 391.
246 ORIGIN OF THE CONSPIRACY [1592.
estates was left to his mother, the Countess of Argyle,
who was to have the advice and assistance of the
six following persons — viz., Duncan Campbell of
Glenurchy; Dougal Campbell of Auchinbreck; John
Campbell of Calder ; Sir James Campbell of Ardkinlass,
Comptroller to the King ; Archibald Campbell of Loch-
nell; and Neill Campbell, Bishop of Argyle. As the
will provided that no matter of importance, such as the
granting of leases, could be carried into effect without
the signatures of Calder, Ardkinlass, and the Bishop,
their influence in the" affairs of the Earldom speedily
eclipsed that of the other counsellors.1 Ardkinlass,
too, procured, through his interest at Court, a grant of
the valuable feudal right of the ward and marriage of
the young Earl;2 and the King having, in compliance
with the request of the late Earl, promised to maintain
and protect his family and clan, and signified his approval
of the arrangements made for the management of the
Earldom of Argyle,3 the whole power of tho Earldom
was thrown into the hands of Ardkinlass and his asso-
ciates, Calder and the Bishop. Lochnell, conceiving
himself entitled to the principal guardianship as nearest
heir, took offence at his exclusion from power ; and his
hostile feelings against those who had usurped the
place he thought himself entitled to hold were secretly
fostered by Duncan Campbell of Glenurchy, a man
whose ambition and grasping character would not
allow him to be satisfied with anything less than
the entire control of the clan during the minority
of his chief. After a time, it became necessary that
1 Commissary Register of Edinburgh, Lib. XV. Will, dated 5th
and 8th September, 1584.
2 Reg. of Privy Seal, LI., fo. 64. 3 Ibid. LI., fo. 77.
1592.] WfilCH LED TO THESE MURDERS. 247
the young Earl, on attaining the age of pupilarity,
should nominate his own guardians, when a new
struggle took place between the two factions of
the Campbells. Lochnell .and Glenurchy proposed to
associate with themselves, as guardians, the Earl of
Montrose, Campbell of Loudoun, heritable Sheriff of
Ayr, and Mr. John Graham, advocate. Ardkinlass and
Calder, on the other hand, proposed, and succeeded in
procuring, their own appointment, together with the
Earl of Mar, the Master of Glammis, and Mr. George
Erskine, advocate, Mar's brother. Jealousies now
arose between Ardkinlass and Calder, which led to
each of these barons attempting, without success, to
procure the assassination of the other ; and upon the
death of the former in 1591, his feelings of hostility to
Calder were transmitted to his son and successor. John
Campbell, the new laird of Ardkinlass, was a man of a
weak and vacillating disposition, who was very soon
deprived by Calder of the influence which, as heir to
his father, he had hoped to exercise in the Earldom of
Argyle — a serious addition to the causes of enmity
already subsisting between these barons.1 All the
real power of the Earldom now centred in the person
of Calder, who was supported by many of the nobility
connected with the family of Argyle, and particularly
by the Earl of Murray.
A feud had, for a considerable period, subsisted be-
tween the families of Huntly and Murray, originating
in their rival claims to the rich and fertile Earldom of
Murray, of which one of the Earls of Huntly had been
1 Confessions of Margaret Campbell, widow of John Oig Campbell
of Cabrachan, dated 5th October, 1595, corroborated by the Confes-
sions of John Campbell of Ardkinlass, dated 21st May, 1594.
248 NAMES OF THE FIRST CONSPIRATORS. [1592.
deprived, when it was bestowed, by Queen Mary, upon
her brother, the Lord James Stuart, afterwards Regent
of Scotland. In these disputes the Earls of Argyle
had uniformly supported the claims of the Regent
Murray and his heirs, and had thus incurred the enmity
of Huntly and the Gordons.1 In the year 1590,
various circumstances concurred to embitter this heredi-
tary feud ; and it became an important object with the
Earl of Huntly to deprive his adversary of the support
which he received from John Campbell of Calder, the
administrator of the Earldom of Argyle.2 Huntly
was thus drawn into communication with Lochnell
and Glenurchy, whose animosity against Calder has
been already noticed; and the result of this com-
munication was a conspiracy, by which it was con-
templated, through the most atrocious acts, to gratify
the revenge both of Huntly and of the discontented
barons of Argyle. The conspirators were bound, in the
most solemn manner, to compass, by every means in
1 Dame Annas Keyth, Countess of Murray, widow of the Regent, was
second wife of Colin the sixth, and mother of Archibald the seventh
Earl of Argyle.
r On 1st November, 1590, the Earls of Athole and Murray, Lord
Lovat, John Grant of Freuchio, John Campbell of Calder, Thomas
Stewart of Grantullie, Patrick Grant of Rothicmurchus,
Sutherland of Duffus, and Archibald Grant of Bellintone, entered
into an alliance, offensive and defensive, evidently directed against
the Earl of Huntly. — Contract in Charter Chest of Grant of Mony-
muak. On the other hand, Huntly, on 6th March, 1590-1, entered
into an indenture with Allan Cameron of Lochiel, by which the
latter became bound to assist Huntly against all his enemies, and
particularly against the Clanchattan and the Grants; whilst the
Earl agreed to reward Lochiel to his entire satisfaction, and promised
to make no agreement with his opponents without including Lochiel.
MS. History of Camerons.
i
1592.] THE CHANCELLOR AND OTHERS JOIN THEM. 249
»
their power, the destruction of James, Earl of Murray ;
Archibald, Earl of Argyle ; Colin Campbell of Lundy,
his only brother and heir apparent ; and John Campbell
of Calder. In order to strengthen themselves against
the enemies whom the execution of their criminal pro-
jects would certainly raise in every part of the nation,
they drew into the plot John, Lord Thirlestane, Chan-
cellor of Scotland, at that time a great supporter of the
Earl of Huntly ; and John, Lord Maxwell, who claimed
the title of Earl of Morton. Lauchlan Maclean of
Dowart — whose ancestor had been assassinated by Cal-
der's grandfather, and who was likewise hostile to Cal-
der from the latter having taken up the cause of the
Macdonalds of Isla — was easily induced to join the con-
spiracy;1 as were likewise John Stewart of Appin, who
was connected by marriage with the house of Lochnell,
and Duncan Macdougall of Dunolly, with others of
lesser note. The burden of putting to death the indi-
viduals whose lives were aimed at, was laid upon the
Highlanders ; and, in return for their services, Huntly,
the Chancellor, and Maxwell, were to defend them from
the consequences. Besides this, Huntly and the Low-
land conspirators were to exert their utmost endeavours
to procure for Lochnell the peaceable possession of the
Earldom of Argyle ; which being accomplished, Loch-
nell agreed to reward certain of his associates in the fol-
lowing manner. To the Chancellor, he was to give the
lands of Pincarton in Stirlingshire belonging to the
Earl of Argyle ; to Glenurchy, the barony of Lochow
1 It will be recollected that, in 1591, Ardkinlass became surety for
the payment of the arrears due by Maclean to the Crown. Supra,
p. 244.
250 MURRAY AND CALDER ASSASSINATED. % [1592.
and the lands of Benderaloch ; to Stewart of Appin, the
Earl of Argyle's part of the Lordship of Lorn ; and to
Macdougall, the lands of Loyng.
The manner in which the Earl of Murray's death was
brought about has been already noticed. It cannot
now be doubted that the Chancellor and Huntly pro-
cured the employment of the latter to apprehend Murray,
with the express design of cutting off that unfortunate
nobleman. This plan likewise afforded a greater chance
of attaining the object in view, and with less risk than
if the original device of employing Highland assassins
to shoot him while hunting in his woods of Doune had -
been followed. It now remains to point out the pro-
gress of the unhallowed conspiracy we have described,
in another important point — the death of Campbell of
Calder. Glenurchy, knowing the feelings of personal
animosity cherished by Ardkinlass against Calder, 'easily
prevailed upon the former to agree to the assassination
of their common enemy, with whom Glenurchy himself
had now an additional cause of quarrel, arising from the
protection given by Calder to some of the Clangregor,
who were at feud with Glenurchy. But although him-
self the principal mover in this branch of the plot,
Glenurchy contrived to shift the execution of it op, his
associate, who was, as yet, ignorant of the intentions of
the conspirators against the Earl of Argyle, and only
sought to gratify his own revenge against Calder.1
After various unsuccessful attempts, Ardkinlass pro-
cured, through the agency of John Oig Campbell of
Cabrachan, a brother of Lochnell, the services of a man
named MacEUar, by whom Calder was assassinated.
1 Confessions of Margaret Campbell and of Ardkinlass, above cited —
copies of which are in the author's possession.
1592.] ATTEMPTS ON THE LIFE OF ARGYLE. 251
The deed was committed with a hackbut supplied by
Ardkinlass; and the fatal shot was fired at night,
through one of the windows of the house of Knepoch
in Lorn, at the unsuspecting Calder, who fell pierced
through the heart with three bullets.1 The assassin
eluded pursuit for a season by the connivance of Mac-
dougall of Dunolly, one of the conspirators. Although
some time elapsed after the perpetration of this murder
before the share which iVrdkinlass had in it was cer-
tainly known, yet he was generally suspected, owing
to his hereditary feud with Calder ; and he was, in con-
sequence, threatened with the vengeance of the young
Earl of Argyle, who already began to display a spirit
beyond his years.2 In these circumstances Glenurchy
ventured to communicate to Ardkinlass the plan for
getting rid of the Earl and his brother, and for assisting
Lochnell to seize the Earldom of Argyle. For his
assistance in carrying into effect this part of the con-
spiracy, there was promised to Ardkinlass, when the
plot should be brought to a successful issue, a grant of
the lands of Boquhan and part of Kosencath. Be-
coming terrified as to the consequences of the crime
already committed, Ardkinlass refused, although re-
peatedly urged, to become a party to any designs against
the life of the Earl, proposing to make his peace with
Argyle by disclosing the full extent of the plot. There
is reason to believe that the conspirators, notwithstand-
ing the refusal of Ardkinlass to join them, continued
for some time their machinations for the murder of the
1 Letters of Treason against Ardkinlass, dated 6th April ; and Com-
mission for his Trial, to the Bishop of Dunkeld and other special
Justices, dated 29th March, 1596.
2 Record of Privy Seal, June 9, 1592.
252 PARTIAL DISCOVERY OF THE PLOT. [1592.
Earl ; and that, during a severe illness with which he
was attacked at Stirling, soon after his marriage, in the
year 1594, some of his household were bribed to poison
him — if indeed the disease itself was not caused in the
first instance by poison. Argyle, however, escaped all-
the attempts of his enemies, and lived to exercise, for
many years, an overpowering influence in the affairs of
the Highlands and Isles. As a curious specimen of
the manners of the times, it deserves to be noticed,
that Ardkinlass endeavoured, and seriously expected,
to convert, by means of witchcraft, the hostility of his
chief into friendship ; and that he seems to have been
much disappointed when this miserable resource failed
him. It does not appear by what accident or indis-
cretion the discovery was first made ; but at length,
John Oig Campbell and MacEllar, the subordinate
instruments in the murder of Calder, being charged
with the crime, were apprehended and thrown into
prison. John Oig being put to the torture by the boots,
confessed his own share and that of Ardkinlass and
Macdougall in the affair. These two chiefs
were in consequence apprehended and de-
tained in prison for some time ; but by the same power-
ful agency which smothered inquiry into the Earl of
Huntly's conduct with regard to the slaughter of "Murray,
they were at length liberated without punishment;
although, at one time, a special commission had actually
been issued for the trial of Ardkinlass. The inferior
agents, John Oig Campbell and MacEllar, were both
executed ; nor could all the influence of Calders rela-
• tions or friends obtain the punishment of any of the
higher parties.1 In the month of May, 1594, Ardkin-
1 Confessions above cited. MS. History of Campbells of Calder.
1593.] CONFESSIONS OF AKDKINLASS. 253
lass, despairing otherwise of procuring a reconciliation
with Argyle, and moved, as he affirmed, in conscienoe,
made a confession of all that he knew, not only of the
plots against Calder's life, but of the great contract, as
it was called, which contemplated the destruction like-
wise of the Earls of Murray and Argyle. This confes-
sion was afterwards corroborated by the evidence of
Margaret Campbell (the widow of John Oig), through
whom Ardkinlass had consulted the witches. The
many minute particulars in the statements of Ardkinlass
and this woman leave no doubt of the existence of that
remarkable conspiracy, the history of which we have
endeavoured to elucidate. The general impression, and
the outcry against Lord Chancellor Thirlestane at the
time, for his accession to the Earl of Murray's death,
may serve as a corroboration of the statements made
by Ardkinlass and others. Lastly, an additional proof
of the undue influence used on this occasion to impede
the course of justice, may be found in the fact, that
Glenurchy was allowed to clear himself of all concern
in the plots attributed to him by his own unsupported
and extrajudicial denial.1 It seems to have been con-
sidered proper to keep the Earl of Argyle in ignorance
of the designs entertained against his life, in so far, at
least, as Lochnell and Glenurchy were concerned. This
concealment, as we shall presently see, gave Lochnell
Moysie's Memoirs, p. 162. Criminal Trials, I., pp. 3G3, 391 ; IT., p. 129.
II is tone of King James the Sext, p. 248.
1 A copy of this singular writing, dated and signed at the Castle
of Carrick, in Cowal, before the Earl of Mar, Hew Campbell of
Loudoun, and Mr. George Erskine, 28th June, 1594, is in the author's
possession. Glenurchy offered to abide his trial, which he well
knew the Chancellor and Huntly were deeply interested in pre-
venting.
254 COMMOTIONS IN THE HIGHLANDS. [1593.
another opportunity of attempting to advance himself
to the Earldom.
The murder of the Earl of Murray was the cause of
serious commotions in many parts of the North Highlands,
whilst that of Calder had a similar effect in the west
In the north, the Macintoshes and Grants, who were of
Murray's faction, eagerly endeavoured to revenge his
death by hostile inroads into various parts of Huntly's
estates. Huntly retaliated, by causing the Clanchameron
to invade and plunder Badenoch, where the principal
part of the Clanchattan's lands lay; and by sending the
Clanranald of Lochaber, under Keppoch, their chief,
to waste and spoil the lands of Strathspey belonging
to the Grants.1 In this way a great portion of the
Highlands was thrown into confusion by the instigation
of those who should have been the foremost to preserve
order. Alexander MacRanald of Keppoch seized the
Castle of Inverness for Huntly; but was afterwards
forced by Macintosh to evacuate it for want of pro-
visions before September, 1593, with the loss of one of
his sons, and of an officer named Gothred or Gorrie
Dubh, who were taken and hung ; and Macintosh then
concluded an agreement with the Magistrates of Inver-
ness for holding the town against Huntly.2 He like-
wise entered into a league with Argyle in this year ; 3
and Huntly, fearful of losing all the influence which, as
Lords of Badenoch, he and his predecessors exercised
over the Clanchattan, began now to court the Mac-
phersons, and to sow jealousies between them and the
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 217 ; MS. History of
Camerons ; Latin History of Macintoshes ; MS. History of Gordons, by
W. R, p. 183.
3 Latin History of Macintoshes. 8 Ibid.
1593.] COMMOTIONS IN THE HIGHLANDS. 255
Macintoshes. The Macphersons readily entered into
Huntly's views; and, under his protection, became in
time powerful enough to disclaim any dependence upon
Macintosh as captain and chief of the Clanchattan,
and even to dispute, although without success, the right
of that chief to the high station which his family had
held for centuries. In Argyle, besides the dissensions
in tile clan Campbell, the assassination of Calder caused
a feud between the Stewarts of Appin and the Camp-
bells of Calder's house, the effects of which were long
felt. Nor was it only on the mainland that the conse-
quences of the events we have narrated were perceived.
The three island chiefs who had been liberated on security
for their performance of certain conditions, and for their
future good behaviour, by the efforts of the Barons
of Calder and Ardkinlass, felt themselves in a great
measure freed by late events from the reponsibility under
which they lay. They not only failed to perform the
conditions imposed upon them; but, on the contrary,
distinguished themselves by open and avowed dis-
obedience to the Government. They were, therefore,
summoned to appear before the Privy Council on the
14th day of July, in order to fulfil these conditions; and,
in the event of their non-appearance on that day, the
pardons granted to them were to be declared null, and
immediate steps threatened to be taken for the for-
feiture of their lands and goods, and the execution of
the hostages given by Angus Macdonald — Maclean
never having presented hostages, according to his
promise.1 These proceedings of the Privy Council
were ratified by the Parliament held in June, 1592,
1 Record of Privy Council, 8th June, 1592.
256 PROCEEDINGS OF THE GOVERNMENT. [1593.
when the three estates promised to assist his Majesty
with their " bodies, counsel, and whole force to make
his authority be obeyed by his subjects, and to cause
the treasonable and barbarous rebels of the Hielandis
and His to be punished and repressed, as they have
worthily deserved."1 In pursuance of this engage-
ment, there were produced in Parliament, a year after-
wards, summonses of treason duly executed agpinst
Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg and the Glens, Donald
Gorme of Sleat, John Marfan of Ardnamurchan, and
others their associates, for certain crimes of treason and
lese-majesty committed by them.2 For the present,
however, the proceedings against the Earls of Huntly,
Angus, and Erroll, and the other Catholics who were
accused of plotting with Philip of Spain for the resto-
ration of the Catholic religion in Scotland, prevented
the King from prosecuting his plans for the improve-
ment of the Isles with the necessary vigour.
In June, 1594, the three Catholic Earls,
" ' 94" along with Sir Patrick Gordon of Auchin-
doun, were forfeited by Parliament; and a similar
sentence was, at the same time, pronounced against
Maclean of Dowart and Macdonald of Dunyveg, who
still remained contumacious.3 Huntly and his asso-
ciates having drawn together in arms, and forcibly
liberated some Catholics imprisoned by the magistrates
of Aberdeen, commission was given by the King to the
1 Acts of Pari, of Scotland, III. 561.
2 Ibid, IV. 4.
3 Johnston's MS. History of Scotland, fo. 620. Binel's Diary.
Moysie's Memoirs, p. 118. Historic of King James the Sext, p.
330. The forfeiture of -Macdonald of Sleat is asserted by some
writers, whilst others are silent regarding it.
1594.] REBELLION OF HUNTLY AND ERROLL. 257
young Earl of Argyle (now in his eighteenth year), the
Earl of Athole, and the Lord Forbes, to march against
the rebels, and reduce them to obedience. It may be
remarked that both Argyle and Athole had Huntly at
feud for the slaughter of the Earl of Murray, for which
cause it is probable they were selected on this occasion.
Argyle having raised an army of six or seven thousand
men, partly among his own vassals, and partly among
other clans — particularly the Macleans, Macneills, Mac-
gregors, Macintoshes, and Grants — marched into Bade-
noch, and laid siege to the Castle of Ruthven, which
was gallantly held out for Huntly by the Macphersons.
Failing in his endeavours to possess himself of this
strength, he then proceeded through the hills towards
Strathbogie, with the intention of carrying fire and
sword through Huntly's lands in that quarter. On his
arrival near Glenlivat, Argyle found that Huntly and
Enroll were in the vicinity with fourteen or fifteen hun-
dred men.1 This force was principally cavalry; but
there were also Highlanders in Huntly's army, particu-
larly of the Clanchameron and Clanranald of Lochaber,
and the Macphersons. Trusting to the superiority of
his numbers, the Earl of Argyle did not avoid a combat,
although advised to do so until joined by Lord Forbes,
who was at no great distance with eleven hundred men.
But he acted upon the defensive, and took up a strong
position, which he thought his opponents would find it
impracticable to force. Huntly and Enroll, however,
* Argyle himself "had in his company to the number of sax
thowsand men, weill provided with muscatis, bo wis, arrowis, and
twa-handit swordis; of the quhilk nomber there ware fyftene hun-
dreth mnscateirs and hagbutters."— - Historic of King James the
Sext, p. 338.
20
258 TREACHERY AND DEATH OF LOCHNELL. .[1594.
were followed by a number of gallant gentlemen, well
mounted and armed, and not to be deterred by the
mere strength of a position from attacking even a
superior force of comparatively undisciplined High-
landers. They were further encouraged to make the
attempt by a communication received from Archibald
Campbell of Lochnell, commander of one of the divi-
sions of Argyle's army. This ambitious baron — whose
previous machinations for the destruction of his chief
and his own advancement to the Earldom had not yet
come to the knowledge of Argyle — thought the present
an excellent opportunity of accomplishing his long-
cherished views. He therefore sent a private message
to Huntly, desiring him to attack the Highlanders, and
promising, in the course of the engagement, to aid him
with the division under his command. He likewise
suggested that some pieces of artillery which accompanied
Huntly's army should be fired at Argyle's banner;
hoping thus both to get rid of that nobleman by an
apparent chance shot, and to discourage the faithful
Highlanders, who were many of them unacquainted with,
the use of artillery.1 The advice of Lochnell was
followed ; but the result was unexpected. As Huntly
approached to the attack of the position occupied by
the Highlanders, the guns were fired with fatal effect at
the yellow standard of Argyle. The Earl himself
escaped, in a miraculous manner, without hurt, whilst
the deadly missiles struck down in their progress his
treacherous kinsman Lochnell (who, by an extraordi-
nary chance, thus fell a sacrifice to his own villanous
stratagem), a brother of the latter, and a gallant war-
rior of the Macneills, son of the chief of Barra.
* Calderwood's MS. Church History, Advocates' lib., XI. 422. <
1594.]. DEFEAT OF ABGTLE AT GLENLIVAT. 259
During the confusion caused by this incident Huntly
commenced the attack, and, after a severe conflict, and
sustaining a heavy loss, succeeded in routing Argyle's
forces, who, from the strength of their position, and the
mountainous nature of the country, which impeded
pursuit, escaped with a loss comparatively trifling.
The conduct of Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart, who
was one of Argyle's officers in this action, would, if
imitated by the other leaders, have converted the defeat
into a victory. That chief acted the part of a brave
and skilful soldier, keeping his men in their ranks, and
employing with good effect all the advantages of his
position. It was his division which inflicted the prin-
cipal loss on the rebels ; and, at the close of the action,
he retired in good order with those under his com-
mand.1 It is said that, after the battle, he offered, if
Argyle would give him five hundred men in addition
to his own clan, to bring the Earl of Huntly prisoner
into Argyle's camp. This proposal was rejected ; but
having come to the ears of Huntly incensed him greatly
against Maclean, whose son afterwards, according to
tradition, lost a large estate in Lochaber through the
animosity of that powerful nobleman.2
The triumph of the Popish Earls for their success at
Glenlivat was but of short duration. The King, who
was at Dundee when the Earl of Argyle himself brought
intelligence of his discomfiture, lost no time in proceed-
ing to the disturbed districts with a force sufficient to
1For various accounts of the battle of Glenlivat, and the cir-
cumstances connected with it, see Sir R. Gordon's History of Suther-
land, p. 226 ; Anderson's MS. History of Scotland, III., fo. 265 ;
MS. History of Gordons, by W. R.; Moysie's Memoirs, pp. 119, 120;
Historic of King James the Sext, p. 338 ; Calderwood, ubi supra.
2 MS. History of Macleans.
260 HUNTLY AND ERROLL BANISHED. [1594.
awe the malcontents, who did not venture to appear
in the field against the Royal banner. The Castles of
Strathbogie and Slaines, belonging to Huntly and
Enroll, and other fortresses belonging to the insurgents,
were demolished ; whilst the barons and gentlemen who
followed the banners of these noblemen were forfeited,
and their estates divided among the royalists. In order
to escape the penalties of treason loudly
denounced against them by the Presbyterians,
who now formed the bulk of the nation, Huntly and
Enroll were compelled to fly abroad, whilst Angus lurked
as a fugitive in the wilds of Douglasdale.1 Indeed,
■
were it not that James wished to avoid irritating the
English Catholics, and thus impeding his ascent to the
throne of England on the death of Queen Elizabeth,
the Scottish Catholic Earls would, in the excited state of
the nation at that time, have been brought to the block.
But the King was noways anxious himself to proceed
to such extremities. In the meantime, the Duke of
Lennox and the Earl of Argyle were employed to
reduce Huntly's vassals to obedience; and, in pursuance
of his commission, the latter sent deputies to Huntly's
lands. These deputies were at the Castle of Auchin-
doun in November, 1595, when, among others, Alex-
ander MacBanald of Keppoch, an old vassal of the
Earl of Huntly in Lochaber, gave his bond of service
to the Earl of Argyle, and delivered to the deputies
one of his sons as a hostage for his obedience ; in return
for which he claimed protection and maintenance from
Argyle in all the lands and possessions to which he
laid claim.2 It is probable that similar steps were taken
1 Moyiie's Memoirs, p. 120-122.
8 Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, L9 p. 200.
1595.] REBELLION IN ULSTER. 261
with Allan Cameron of Lochiel and the other western
Highlanders who had assisted Huntly at the battle of
Glenlivat.
During the brief rebellion we have just noticed, two
powerful chiefs in the Isles, Donald Gorme Macdonald
of Sleat, and Roderick Macleod of Harris (the well
known Ruari Mor of tradition), employed themselves
in another direction. They led, each of them, five
hundred Hebridean warriors to the shores of Ulster, to
assist Red Hugh O'Donnell, the chief of his ancient
race, who was at this time in rebellion against the Queen
of England. Landing in Lough Foyle, between Kinel
Conel and Kinel Owen, and being informed that
O'Donnell was then besieging Enniskillen, they sent a
messenger to him to notify their arrival, and to announce
that, if he did not come to meet them as he had promised,
they would instantly return to their own country. On
receiving this intelligence, O'Donnell immediately left
Enniskillen with a few attendants, in order to welcome
his allies, the bulk of his army being left to continue
the siege. He met the Islanders accordingly, and
entertained them for three days and three nights ; after
which, Donald Gorme bade him farewell and returned
to the Isles, leaving his brother in command of his clans-
men. Macleod of Harris remained in person with his
followers.1 Before the Scots had been long in Ireland,
we find Hugh, Earl of Tyrone, promising to the Lord
Lieutenant to do his best to cause O'Donnell dismiss
immediately the Scottish auxiliaries.2 In the following
year, however, Tyrone himself was joined with O'Don-
aLife of Red Hugh O'Donnell, written in Irish, by Peregrine
O'Clery, and translated by the late Edward O'Reilly, Esq.
2 Harleain M.S., *tft ; Leland's Ireland, II. 329.
262
ACT OF SCOTTISH PRIVY COUNCIL.
[1595.
nell ; and, on the application of the English ambassador
in Scotland, Macdonald of Sleat and Macdonald of
Dunyveg were charged by the Privy Council not to
assist the Irish rebels.1
1 Kecord of Privy Council, 18th Jane, 1595.
263
CHAP. VI.
FROM THE SUPPRESSION OP THE REBELLION OF THE
CATHOLIC EARLS, TO THE DEPARTURE OF KING JAMES
VL FOR ENGLAND.— 1595— 1G03.
The rebellion of the Catholic noblemen
being now suppressed, the King found himself
more at leisure to attend to the improvement of the Isles,
and the expected increase to the Royal revenue from that
portion of his dominions. Early in 1596, James
Macdonald — who had remained as a hostage
for his father, Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg, during the
last four years — received a licence to visit his father and
his clan, in the hope that he might prevail on the former
to make his submission and fulfil the conditions formerly
prescribed to him.1 That chief, and others of similar
rank in the Isles, still delayed to enter into the views
of their sovereign and his councillors, although some of
them were in treaty with the Lords of Exchequer. In
order, therefore, to compel their submission, and avoid
further delay in a matter of such importance to the
revenue, the King, by the advice both of the Privy
Council and of the Estates of Parliament then sitting,
1 Notes from Exchequer Rolls, in Haddington's MS. Collections,
Advocates' Library.
264 PROJECTED EXPEDITION TO THE ISLES. [1596-
resolved to proceed against the Islanders in person.
A proclamation to this effect was accordingly issued
in the month of May, by which all Earls, Lords, Barons,
and freeholders, worth above three hundred merks of
yearly rent, and the whole burgesses of the realm, were
summoned to meet his Majesty at Dunbarton, on the
first day of August, well armed, and with forty days'
provisions, and likewise provided with vessels to carry
them to the Isles. Disobedience to this summons was
to infer loss of life, lands, and goods.1 The effects of
this proclamation were soon evident. Maclean and
Macdonald of Sleat immediately repaired to Court,
and, upon making their submission, and satisfying the
demands of the Exchequer, by agreeing to augment their
rents, and to make certain other concessions required of
them, were received into favour, and restored against
the acts of forfeiture under which they had lain for two
years.2 Roderick Macleod of Harris, and Donald
(MacAngus) Macranald of Glengarry, made their sub-
mission about the same time.8 The Lewis was now
held by Torquil Dubh Macleod, whose title was dis-
puted by his elder brother, Torquil Connanach. The
origin of this dispute has been traced in a former
chapter ; and it seems about this time to have broken
1 Record of Privy Council, 22nd May, 1596 ; Acts of Parliament,
IV. 97.
* Record of Privy Council, 15th June, 1596; Reg. of Privy
Seal, LXIX., fo. 17, 152; Original Papers in General Register
House, connected with the submission of Donald Gorme. . At this
time the Lords of Exchequer recognised Donald Gorme as the heir
of Hugh of Sleat, his grandfather's great-grandfather. Ibid, and MS.
Advocates1 Library, M. 6, 15.
* Balcarras Papers, Advocates' Library, Vol. VI., No. 70; Reg. of
Privy Seal, LXVHI., fo. 127.
1596.J OBSTINACY OF THE CLAN IAN V0R. 265
out with renewed violence. As each of the claimants,
however, professed his willingness to agree to the terms
proposed by the Exchequer — hoping thus to obtain a
recognition of his right as heir of the estate — the
Siol Torquil was withdrawn from the list of disobedient
clans.1 Of all the great chiefs in the Isles, Angus
Macdonald of Dunyveg alone remained contumacious.
The displeasure of the King was marked, in the first
instance, by his granting to Maclean a lease of the
Rinns of Isla, so long disputed between that chief and
the Macdonalds.2 At the same time preparations con-
tinued to be made for the expedition to the Isles, which,
through the submission of most of the other tribes,
dwindled down into an expedition against the Clandonald
of Kintyre and Isla. As the time for proceeding to the
Isles drew near, the King found that it would be more
convenient and less dangerous for him to remain at some
place near the Highland coasts, until it should be reported
bv his Lieutenant and Commissioner, whether or not his
Majesty's presence was necessary. The person chosen
to lead the expedition on this occasion was Sir William
Stewart of Houston, Knight, Commendator of Pitten-
weem, who received, accordingly, in the month of June,
a commission of lieutenandry and justiciary, with the
fullest powers.3 One of the principal points to which
his attention was directed, was to obtain possession of
and garrison the principal castles in the West Highlands
and Isles ;4 a step the necessity for which seems in most
cases to have been obviated by the submission of the
chiefs previous to the setting out of the expedition. A
V Balcarras Papers, obi supra.
3 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 237.
3 Record of Privy Council, 30th June, 159G.
* Balcarras Papers, ubi supra.
266 PREPARATIONS AGAINST THAT TRIBE [1596.
difficulty in procuring the necessary funds seems to have
delayed the expedition much beyond the day originally
fixed. Early in August, we find that the necessary
forces for accompanying the Lieutenant were not yet
raised. A proclamation was now issued, which, in
consideration of the near approach of harvest, and other
weighty causes, allowed those called out by the first
proclamation to compound for their personal service in
the following manner. Each county might escape the
burden of personal service, by sending twenty horsemen
and thirty footmen to meet the King at Dunbarton, on
the 20th August, or else pay the King £24 for every
horseman and £12 for every footman that might be
wanting of these numbers. The whole burghs of the
realm were allowed to compound, by sending 500 men,
one-third armed with muskets, one-third with pikes and
corselets, and the remaining third with hackbuts and
headpieces ; or by paying £12 for every man of the
500 that should fail to appear. The burghs were like-
wise charged to furnish three ships of middling size, well
supplied with ammunition. The inhabitants of the
shires of Berwick, Roxburgh, and Selkirk, and the
burghs in these shires, were specially exempted from this
service against the Isles, so that they might attend to
the peace of the Borders. The inhabitants of Inver-
ness-shire, and the town of Inverness, were licensed to
remain at home on this occasion ; but were directed to
hold themselves in readiness for similar service in the
spring of the following year. Finally, the whole inha-
bitants of the sheriffdoms of Tarbert and Bute were
peremptorily ordered to give their personal service, and
were not permitted to compound either in men or money.
1 Record of Privy Council, 2nd August, 1596.
1596.] UNDER A ROYAL LIEUTENANT. 267
Another proclamation authorised the Commendator of
Pittenween to levy soldiers for the service in the Isles
to the amount of one thousand men, and to appoint
officers over them.1 A third proclamation charged the
Islesmcn to remain quiet at home ; assuring them, not-
withstanding false reports to the contrary, that his
Majesty did not intend to proceed to extremities against
any of them, except such as continued in open and
avowed rebellion. They were further assured that such
sinister reports of his Majesty's intentions could only
proceed from wicked persons, who envied their future
" happie estate and felicitie, as the success " (of his
Majesty's experiments), "with God's grace, sail evi-
dentlie declare, in sic sorte, as, within few yeirs, they sail
be able to compare their estate to the maist happie
estate that has occurrit in man's memorie."2
Want of money, however, and a growing dislike, on
the part of the people, to these harassing raids, as they
were called, to which every slight disturbance in the
kingdom made them liable, and of which an unusual
number had occurred during the present reign, still fur-
ther delayed this long talked of expedition. Towards
the end of September, among other measures for rais-
ing money, it was proposed to borrow four thousand
pounds from the Duke of Lennox. That nobleman
was farther requested to go in person to the Lennox,
and cause two hundred of his* vassals to accompany the
Lieutenant to Kintyre. The Earl of Argyle likewise
was earnestly required to give his concurrence to the
Lieutenant, and to send two hundred men to Kintyre,
under his kinsman, Campbell of Auchinbreck. A let-
1 Record of Privy Council, 3rd August, 159G. s ibid.
268 FURTHER PREPARATIONS. [1596.
ter was also written by the King to James Macdonald of
Dunluce (son of Sorley Buy Macdonald, and conse-
quently cousin of Angus Macdonald, against whom all
these preparations were directed), promising him high
reward if he gave such assistance to the Lieutenant in
this service as should be required of him.* Early in
October, Lord Blantyre, High Treasurer, was in the
west, superintending the progress made by the Commen-
dator of Pittenweem in the preparations for the expedi-
tion to Kintyre ; and, from a letter addressed by the
Treasurer to the Secretary of State, it appears that the
sum of seven thousand merks was still wanting to ena-
ble the expedition to sail.2 On the 22nd of October, the
Lieutenant was still in Glasgow, from which, however,
he had despatched some of his forces to Kintyre, to
ascertain whether Angus Macdonald meant to oppose
the Royal troops.8 In the meantime, James Macdonald
had returned to Edinburgh ; and, appearing before the
Privy Council, in the name and by the authority of his
father, made submission both for his father and himself
to the King's will, promising that they would fulfil what-
ever conditions should be prescribed to them by his
Majesty, to the uttermost of their power. For himself
he likewise promised to remain with the King, and on
no account to proceed to the Isles without licence.*
This submission came too late to prevent the Lieutenant,
who had heard a report that the Clandonald were
gathering in arms, from proceeding to Kintyre, where
he held a court on the first of November. Here Angus
Macdonald and his followers came to make their per-
1 Balcarras Papers, No. V- ' Jbid, No. y.
3 Ibid, No. 74.
* Record of Privy Council, 8th October, 1596.
1596.] SUBMISSION OF THE CLAN, IAN VOR. 26S>
sonal submission to the King's representative. A roll
was made of the tenants of Kintyre, of the lands occu-
pied by them individually, and of the waste and unoc-
cupied lands; and, on his departure, the Lieutenant took
with him hostages from the principal chieftains in the
district.1 These he presented to the Privy Council, by
which all his proceedings were approved.2 It appears,
by a letter from James Macdonald of Dunluce to the
King, that Angus Macdonald had made to him, before
the Lieutenant's arrival in person, great promises if
he would aid in expelling the King's troops from Kin-
tyre.3 All these offers were, however, refused by the
wary Lord of Dunluce; and Angus Macdonald, de-
prived of support, was obliged to submit as the other
chiefs had done. While Macdonald of Isla thus found
his life and fortunes once more at the disposal of the
King, his former antagonist, Maclean of Dowart, was
nearly losing the advantages he had gained by a more
timely submission. Taking advantage of the death of
Hector Maclean of Coll, and the minority of Lauchlan,
the son and successor of that baron, he had renewed
the ancient feud between the families of Dowart and
Coll, by seizing, without any just cause, the castle and
island of Coll, and the other estates of that family, from
which he expelled all their adherents. Lauchlan Mac-
lean of Coll having now reached majority, appealed to
the Privy Council against this oppression and injustice
1 Original Record of this Court, preserved in General Register
House. From this document, it appears that, out of 139 merk lands
in North Kintyre, 36£ were waste ; and out of 205 merk lands in South
Kintyre, 45 were waste.
2 Record of Privy Council, 11th November, 1596.
* Original Letter in Balcarras Papers, dated 26th October, 1596.
270 DISSENSIONS OF THE SIOL TORQUIL. [1596.
on the part of Dowart ; and the result was an order on
the latter to deliver up, not only the Castle of Brekach
in Coll, but all his own castles and fortalices, to Sir
William Stewart, King's Lieutenant of the Isles, or such
as he should appoint to receive them, upon twenty-four
hours' warning. He was further required to restore to
Coll, within thirty days, all the lands of which he had
so unjustly deprived him, and to abstain from molesting
him or his tenants ; a penalty of ten thousand merks
being imposed upon Dowart if he should fail in any of
these particulars, i
In the North Isles, the Macleods of Lewis were once
more involved in those dissensions which eventually
ruined this ancient clan. The Isle of Lewis was still
held by Torquil Dubh, while the mainland estates of
the family remained with Torquil Connanach, whose
claim to the whole, however, had been recently acknow-
ledged by Government.2 The latter had lost both his
sons ; and, having married his eldest daughter to Ruari
Mackenzie, brother of the Lord of Kintaill, now threw
himself entirely into the hands of the Mackenzies, to
whom, in the end, he conveyed the barony of Lewis,
as far as writings could accomplish this object.3 His
competitor, Torquil Dubh, had married a sister of
Macleod of Harris, and, strengthened by this alliance,
proceeded to ravage the lands of Cogeache and Loch-
broom ; and openly announced his intention of keeping
by force what he had hitherto possessed. As this young
chief was very popular with his clan, and was followed
by seven or eight hundred men, he was enabled to set
1 Record of Privy Council, 11th November, 1596.
2 Reg. of Privy Seal, LXVHL, fo. 298.
8 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 274.
1597.] MTTKDER OF TORQUIL DUBH. 271
his rival for some time at defiance in spite of the
power of the Mackenzies. At length his enemies,
who seem to have been taken by surprise by the
vigorous measures of Torquil Dubh, made
'a complaint against him to the Privy Council,
of which body, unfortunately for him, the Lord of
Kintaill was a member. In this complaint the " Usur-
per of the Lewis" was represented as having been
guilty of barbarous and unheard of cruelty, sparing
neither man, woman, nor child, in his destructive pro-
gress, and recklessly slaying all the cattle he could
find, so as to lay the lands in question absolutely waste.1
Being summoned to answer to this charge, Torquil
Dubh naturally enough hesitated to trust himself in
the power of a court where one of his enemies had so
much influence. He was therefore denounced a rebel ;
and being soon afterwards treacherously seized, along
with several of his followers, in the Lewis, by the Breve
or Celtic judge of the island (who acted at the instigation
of Mackenzie and Torquil Connanach), they were
delivered into the hands of Mackenzie, by whom, without
further ceremony, they were beheaded in the month of July,
1597, Instead of benefiting the conspirators, by smooth-
ing the way for the succession of Torquil Connanach
to the Lewis, this severity only irritated the remaining
adherents of Torquil Dubh, amongst whom the most
conspicuous was" his bastard brother NeilL As Tor-
quil Dubh had left three young sons — whose cause was
supported not only by their uncle, Neill, who now took
1 Record of Privy Council, 11th February, 1596-7. Letter, Ken-
neth Mackenzie of Kintaill to the King, dated 3rd January, 1596-7 ;
copied by Dr. George Mackenzie into his MS. History of the
family.
272 ANGUS MACDONALD COMES TO COURT. [1597-
the command of the Isle of Lewis, but by the Mac-
leans and Macleods of Harris — the final success of the
Mackenzie^ and of the competitor whose claims they
supported, appeared nearly as distant as before.1 At
this time, too, the Mackenzies attempted to Seize the
whole lands of Gerloch, which led to a renewal of the
ancient feud between them and the Siol Vic GillechaUum
of Rasay and Gerloch.2 The chief effect of these
perpetual dissensions was to hurry the adoption of the
crude but well meant plans of the King for the improve-
ment of the Highlands and Isles.
Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg, whose late submission
to the King's Lieutenant has been noticed, came to
Edinburgh early in this year to hear the King's will
declared as to the particular terms on which he was to
receive a pardon. Two plans seem to have been sug-
gested for curbing the power of this restless chief.
One was to deprive him, by his own consent, of all
his possessions in Isla, and to confine him and his tribe
within Kintyre, making provision at the same time for
a Royal garrison, or some equivalent check, in the latter
district.8 The other proposal, which was that attempted
to be carried into effect, was to deprive him of his
lands in Kintyre and of any claim he might have to
the Rinns of Isla, thus confining him and his clan to
the other parts of Isla.4 In order to test his sincerity,
Macdonald was required, before anything could be
done in his favour — First, To find security for the
arrears of his Crown rents, which had been allowed to
i Sir R Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 270. 3 Ibid, p. 277.
3 Balcarras Papers, No. 77.
4 Letter, Mr. John Skene to Secretary Lindsay, 28th April, 1597.—
Balcarras Papers.
1597.] INTRIGUES OF MAC DONALD OF DUNLUCE. 273
accumulate to a serious amount; Next, To remove his
clan and dependers from Kintyre and the Rinns of
Isla; and, Lastly, To deliver his Castle of Dunyveg in
Isla, before the 20th of May, to the person whom the
King should send to receive it.1 These preliminary
conditions he subscribed and promised to observe, and
was thereupon liberated, to give him an opportunity of
fulfilling them.2 His son, Sir James Macdonald of
Knockrinsay (who had lately received the honour of
knighthood), remained at Court, as a sort of hostage
for his father; soon after whose departure a claim of
an unexpected nature was made by James Macdonald
of Dunluce to all the estates formerly held by Angus
Macdonald. In the letter which, as we have seen, the
Lord of Dunluce addressed to the King at the time of
Sir William Stewart's expedition to Kintyre, after
magnifying his own services, and indulging in much
of that fulsome flattery to the monarch which charac-
terised this reign, he hinted at his own claims as heir
to the lands of Kintyre and Isla, held by his cousin
Angus, on the ground, as he alleged, of the illegitimacy
of the latter (supra, p. 269). Having received from the
King answers of a favourable tenor, Dunluce readily
accepted an invitation to visit the Court of Scotland;
and he and his train, on their arrival at Edinburgh, were
received with great distinction. Dunluce himself is
described by several Scottish writers of the period as a
man of handsome appearance and dignified manners; and,
although ignorant of the Lowland tongue, he speedily
became a great favourite at the Scottish Court. While
1 fialcarras Papers, VI., No. 77.
8 Letter to Secretary Lindsay above quoted. Haddington's Col-
lections.
21
274 OFFERS OF MACLEAN AND MACDONALD [1697.
in Edinburgh, his claim to the estates of Kintyre and
Isla was formally brought before the Privy Council;
but as it was founded on an erroneous allegation —
namely, the bastardy of Angus Macdonald — it was
speedily dismissed by the advisers of the Grown. At
the very moment when Dunluce's claim was read in
council, the Earl of Argyle, who professed to espouse
the cause of Angus Macdonald, happened to enter the
council chamber and take his seat; and it was remarked
that Dunluce made no sign of respect to that powerful
nobleman. To make up in some measure for his dis-
appointment, he received from the King the honour of
knighthood, as an eques auratus, by the style of Sir
James Macdonald of Dunluce, together with a grant
of thirty merk lands in Kintyre; and on his departure
from Edinburgh, he was saluted with a volley from the
Castle guns.1
Towards the end of this year, Maclean of Dowart
and Macdonald of Isla, having patched up a hollow
truce, made preparations for proceeding together, with
a force of two or three thousand of their vassals, into
Ulster, under pretence of assisting the Queen of England
against Hugh Earl of Tyrone, whose rebellion at this
time presented a formidable appearance. The Irish
Privy Council viewed this union between two chiefs of
such power, whose enmity had so lately borne the most
implacable character, as proceeding either from the
intrigues of the Earl of Huntly, who, as a Catholic,
bore no good will to Queen Elizabeth, or from a plot
1 Said Letter to Secretary Lindsay. Reg. of Privy Seal, LXDL,
fo. 101. Birrers Diary, ad tempos. MS. History of Scotland,
(Anon.), Advocates' Library. Anderson's MS. History of Scotland,
III., fo. 282.
1597.] TO SERVE AGAINST TYRONE. 275
laid by Tyrone himself, who, they conceived, calculated
on the Islanders as his friends from the moment they
should arrive in Ulster.1 "When we consider, however,
the position in which Macdonald now stood at home,
and that Dunluce, who had so lately attempted a grievous
injury, and one not to be forgiven, against him, was one
■of Tyrone's supporters at this time — while we may feel
unable to account for the alliance between Macdonald
and Maclean, we can have no difficulty in believing
that the former was sincere in his intention of supporting
the Queen in this struggle; for his services, if really
useful, would not only conduce to forward his interests
with King James, at whose mercy he now lay, but
would also give him a title, on the suppression of Tyrone's
rebellion, and the expected forfeiture of his adherents,
to claim restoration to those Irish estates formerly
wrested from him by his uncle, Sorley Buy, the father
of Sir James Macdonald of Dunluce. It is probable
that the representations of the English ambassador at
the Scottish Court caused the projected expedition of
the Islanders to be given up; for we do not find, from
the writers on Irish history, that the warriors whose
arrival the Privy Council of Ireland seemed to expect
with so much alarm, ever quitted their native shores.
In the Parliament held at Edinburgh in December,
1597, an act was passed of a most important nature,
in reference to the Highlands and Isles; and the effects
of it were soon apparent. The preamble of this act
bears, that the inhabitants of the Highlands and Isles
fiad not only neglected to pay the yearly rents, and to
perform the services due from their lands to the Crown,
1 Summary Report of the State of Ireland, 5th November, 1597.
€otton MS., Titot, R XIIL
\
276 IMPORTANT ACT OF PARLIAMENT. [1597.
But that they had likewise, through their " barbarous
inhumanity," made the Highlands and Isles, naturally
so valuable from the fertility of the soil and the rich-
ness of the fisheries, altogether unprofitable either to
themselves or to their fellow-countrymen. The natives
of these districts are further described as neither culti-
vating any "civil or honest society " among themselves,
nor admitting others to traffic with them in safety. It
was, therefore, by this act, made imperative upon all
landlords, chieftains, leaders of clans, principal house-
holders, heritors, and others possessing, or pretending
right to, any lands in the Highlands and Isles, to pro-
duce their various title-deeds before the Lords of Ex-
chequer upon the 15th day of May, 1598. They were
further enjoined, at the same time, to find security for
the regular payment of their rents to the Crown, and
for the peaceable and orderly behaviour of themselves
and of those for whom, by the law, they were bound
to answer, particularly in regard to those individuals
desirous of trading in the Highlands and Isles. The
penal part of this act, however, was the most important.
Disobedience to any of the injunctions above detailed
was made, by a very harsh exercise of the highest
powers of Parliament, to infer absolute forfeiture of all
the titles, real or pretended, which any of the recusants
might possess to lands in the Highlands and Isles.1
Taking into consideration both the loss of title-deeds —
which, in the unsettled state of the country, must have
been a very common occurrence — and the difficulty
which many even of the most powerful chiefs could not
fail to experience in finding the requisite bail for their
peaceable and orderly behaviour, as well as that of
1 Acts of Parliament, IV. 138 ; Collect, de Rebus Albanicis, L 158.
1597.] REAL CAUSES OF THIS ACT. 277
their vassals and tenants — it is evident that this act
was prepared with a view to place at the disposal of
the Crown, in a summary manner, many large tracts
of land; affording thus an immediate opportunity to
the King to commence his favourite plans for the
improvement of the Highlands and Isles. It is not
much to the credit of James that the State papers
relating to these projects show clearly that they sprung,
as has been already hinted at, not from the higher
motives which have made some monarchs the bene-
factors of mankind, but from the necessity of replen-
ishing an exchequer which had been drained chiefly
by his private extravagance, and by his excessive liber-
ality to unworthy favourites. Another act of Parlia-
ment for the erection of three Royal burghs — one of
them in Kintyre, the second in Lochaber, and the third
in the Lewis — received, at this time, the sanction of
the legislature.1 The state of the country for many
years did not permit this design to be carried into full
effect; but the suggestions now made seem eventually
to have led to the erection of Campbellton, Fortwilliam,
and Stomoway, the first only of which was made a
Royal burgh. In order to secure good advice to the
King, in regard to the establishment of these burghs
and his other projected improvements, a council of ten
was appointed, whose special attention was to be directed
to the affairs of the Highlands and Isles, and without
the advice of five of whom nothing could be done
therein. The chief of these counsellors were, Mr. John
Lindsay of Balcarras, Secretary of State, and Sir William
Stewart, Commendator of Pittenweem.2 Some mem-
1 Acts of Parliament, IV. 139 ; Collect, de Rebus Albanicis, I. 159.
3 Record of Privy Council, 4th May, 1398.
278 ESTATES FORFEITED IN CONSEQUENCE. [1598.
bers of this council came soon to have a deep personal
interest in the improvement of the Isles; but their
united exertions failed, after a great loss both of men
and means, to produce any permanent advantage.
The first mentioned of these acts was not
suffered to remain a dead letter. The record
of the proceedings in Exchequer, on the 15th of May,
1598, has not come down to us; so that it is by no means
easy to ascertain how many chiefs or proprietors failed
to appear. This much is certain, that the Isles of Lewis
and Harris, and the lands of Dun vegan and Glenelg,
were declared to be at the King's disposal. The three
last estates belonged to Ruari Macleod of Harris by
unexceptionable titles; but it is probable that he in-
curred the penalties of the act, from thinking it unneces-
sary to appear. The abilities of this chief enabled him,
although with much difficulty, and after the lapse of
many years, to ward off the effects of this summary pro-
cess of forfeiture. The Macleods of Lewis were less
fortunate. Their island, the largest of the Hebrides,
and the district of Trouterness in Sky, in which Mac-
donald of Sleat had but lately been received as King's
tenant, were granted to a company of Lowland adven-
turers— the object of whose association was to colonise
and improve their acquisitions in the Hebrides accord-
ing to the plans suggested by the King. The principal
adventurers were — the Duke of Lennox; Patrick," Com-
mendator of Lindores; William, Commendator of Pit-
ten weem; Sir James Anstruther, younger, of that Ilk;
Sir James Sandilands of Slamanno; James Leirmonth
of Balcolmy; James Spens of Wormestoun; John For-
ret of Fingask; David Home, younger, of Wedder-
burne; and Captain William Murray. By the terms of
1598.J] PLAN FOB COLONISING THE LEWIS. 279
a contract between these individuals and the Govern-
■tent, ratified by Parliament, they were, in consideration
of the great expenses to be incurred by them, and the
improvements which they were expected to make, freed
from any payment of rent for seven years. At the end
of this time, an annual grain-rent of one hundred and
forty chalders of bear, for the lands and Isles of. .Lewis,
Rona-Lewis, and Ilanshand, was to commence; whilst,
for the lands of Trouterness, they wer# to pay yearly a
money rent of four hundred merks, being twenty merks
more than the rent stipulated to be -paid by Macdonald
of Sleat when he procured a lease of Trouterneas in
1596. x About the same time the lands of Harris, Dun-
yegan, and Glenelg, were granted to the same parties;2
but as the efforts of the Lowlanders were first directed
to the colonising of the Lewis, and were ultimately un-
successful even in that island, all the other lands seem
to have escaped the experiments to which the Lewis was
subjected, and, on the final discomfiture of the adven-
turers, to have returned to the old proprietors.
The proceedings of the Government in this matter,
it must be allowed, were too precipitate. Had the Lewis
alone been granted to a Lowland company, the dissen-
sions of the natives made success very probable; and
the only serious opposition to be calculated upon was
that which the Lord of Kintaill might be expected to
offer. But when grants were likewise made to these
» Acts of Parliament, IV. 160. The contract was dated 28th June,
1698.
* Reg. of Privy Seal, LXXIX., fo. 252. Allan Cameron of
Lochiel appears also to have incurred forfeiture of his lands at this
time, which afterwards gave him much trouble. MS. History of
Gamerons.
280 ERROR OF THE GOVERNMENT. [1598-
Lowlandcrs of the estates belonging to Macleod of Har-
ris, and of a large district occupied, under a very recent
lease, by Macdonald of Sleat, a powerful party was at
once created in the North Isles, whose interest it clearly
was to frustrate and discourage the adventurers by every
means in their power. These chiefs could not fail to
perceive that the success of the adventurers in the Lewis
would enable the latter to seize, with greater facility, all
the other lands to which Parliament had given them a
claim. That they should deprecate such an event, was
perfectly natural; and it will appear, accordingly, that
the enterprise of the Lowlanders at length failed, owing
to the obstacles secretly but perseveringly thrown in their
way by the three great northern chiefs, Macleod of Harris,
Macdonald of Sleat, and Mackenzie of Kintaill. Mean-
time, however, the preparations of the adventurers for
their settlement in the Lewis were carried on with great
spirit and at no small expense.1
Whilst such measures were in progress for the civili-
sation of the North Isles, the state of the South Isles
again called loudly for the interference of Government.
Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg had been liberated
early in 1597, as we have seen, in order to test his sin-
cerity, by his performance of certain conditions (supra,
p. 273). A considerable time having elapsed without
the fulfilment of these conditions, his son, Sir James
Macdonald, was permitted to go from Court to visit
him in Kintyre — it being supposed that the influence
of Sir James ' would insure his father's obedience.
The result of this step did not, however, answer the
expectations of those who advised it. The reader will
1 Anderson's MS. History of Scotland, III, fo. 295.
1598.] STATE OP THE SOUTH ISLES. 281
remember that, when Sir William Stewart was preparing
to invade Kintyre, in November, 1596, Angus Macdonald
had sent his son to make his submission to the King
and Council. At that time, under the impression that
his son might obtain better terms than himself, Angus
had made over to the latter all his estates, stipulating
only for a proper maintenance for himself and his wife
during their lives.1 This, as being the act of a man
already deprived by forfeiture of all his former rights,
was of course not recognised by the Privy Council;
and it is probable that Angus soon repented the facility
with which he had stripped himself of his possessions,
when he found that this act was productive of no direct
benefit to himself or his tribe. The transaction, how-
ever, was not forgot by Sir James, who, led away by
evil advisers, as well as by the natural violence of his
temper, and presuming on the favour with which he had
been treated at Court, now endeavoured to take the
estate into his own hands, and deprive his father of
all influence. A quarrel among the Macallasters of
Loupe favoured his designs, and seems to have suggested
to him the idea of procuring his father's death, as if by
accident. The young Laird of Loupe, Gorrie Mac-
allaster, who had succeeded to the estate when a minor,
had lately, since he was come of age, a serious dispute
with his tutor or guardian, in the course of which he
killed the latter. The sons of the tutor took refuge
with their chief, Angus Macdonald of Duny veg ; whilst
the Laird of Loupe, who eagerly sought their lives, pro-
cured the support of Sir James Macdonald on the
arrival of the latter in Kintyre. Understanding that the
1 Record of Privy Council, 8th October, 1596.
282 VIOLENCE OF SIR JAMES MACDONALD. [1598.
tutor's sons were with Angus Macdonald, at his house
of Askomull in Kin tyre, Sir James and his associates,
to the number of two or three hundred armed men,
surrounded the house in the d&ad of night, and on the
refusal of the Macallasters to surrender themselves
prisoners, the house was immediately set on fire.
Although perfectly aware that his father and mother
were in the house, Sir James savagely refused to let
the fire be extinguished ; and at length his father,
endeavouring to make his escape, was made prisoner,
after being severely burnt and suffering many indigni-
ties from Sir James' servants. He was then carried
to Smerbie in Kintyre, and confined there in irons for
several months. The other inmates of the house like-
wise fell into the hands of Sir James, and were treated
with various degrees of severity; but he does not appear
to have caused any of them to be put to death.1 Sir
James now took the command of his clan, and neglect-
ing his promises to the King, conducted himself with
such violence in his new capacity, that in the month of
June, 1598, it became necessary to issue a proclamation
for another lloj'al expedition or raid to Kintyre. The
burden of this expedition was placed on the shires of
Dunbarton, Bute, and Renfrew; the bailliaries of Carrick
and Cunningham, the Lower Ward of Clydesdale, and
the burghs of Dunbarton, Glasgow, Ayr, Irvine, Ren-
frew, Rothesay, and Paisley. The King was to meet
the array of these shires and burghs at Dunbarton on
the 20th of August, and to proceed in person at their
head to Kintyre.2 Early in August, Sir James Mac-
donald had contrived to procure from the King a letter
1 Pitcairn'8 Criminal Trials, III., p. 5.
2 Record of Privy Council, 30th June, 1598.
1698.] COMMISSION TO THE DUKE OF LENNOX. 283
approving of his late proceedings in Kintyre, and parti-
cularly of his apprehension of his father;1 but it was
not, therefore, thought advisable to give up the expedi-
tion to Kintyre. On the contrary, a new proclamation
was issued at this time, the chief object 4>f which was to
remove the doubts generally entertained as to the King's
intention of going in person on this expedition ; and his
Majesty even went so far as to name th§ particular
vessel in which he was to sail, and to give directions
for its being properly manned and furnished for the
voyage.2 When the time came, however, for the
departure of the expedition, the doubts of the lieges
were justified, by the appointment of the Duke of
Lennox as Lieutenant over the Isles. In the Duke's
commission it was specially provided that it should not
be in his power to show favour to any of the Islanders,
unless by the advice of his Majesty, and of the coun-
cillors formerly named for the affairs of the Isles.3 This
change in his Majesty's intentions seems to have been
caused by news received, in the course of the month of
August, of a 6onflict between the Macdonalds and Mac-
leans, in which the chief of the latter was slain. Even
after all the preparations which were made, and the nomi-
nation of the Duke of Lennox to be Lieutenant of the
Isles, it is doubtful if the expedition ever left Dunbarton ;
and, indeed, the approach of harvest had probably pre-
vented a sufficient force from assembling at that town.
The immediate cause of the conflict between the Mac-
donalds and Macleans was as follows.
Sir Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart had succeeded in
1 Criminal Trials, III., p. 9.
3 Record of Privy Council, 5th and 6th August.
1 Ibid, 25th AuguBt.
284 BATTLE OF LOCHGRUINABT IN ISLA. [1598.
procuring from the King a grant of part of the island
of Isla, forfeited by his old rival Angus Macdonald.
Taking advantage of the dissensions of the Clandonald,
and calculating on the youth and inexperience of his
nephew, Sir James, he levied hid vassals and proceeded
to Isla, in order to expel the Macdonalds, and put
himself in possession of his new acquisitions in the
island. Sir James Macdonald was not, however, dis-
posed to yield to the pretensions of Maclean, and had
already collected a number of his clan in Isla to oppose
his uncle's proceedings. The mutual friends of both
parties, desiring to spare the effusion of blood, laboured
to effect a mediation between them. A meeting was
accordingly agreed to be held at Lochgruinart, in Isla,
to arrange their differences, to which place the rival
chiefs repaired, each with a considerable number of
their followers, but the Macdonalds were inferior in
force. To the pressing entreaties of the mediators, Sir
James Macdonald yielded so far as to offer his uncle
the half of the island for his life (denying at the same
time the validity of the title on which Maclean founded
his pretensions), provided he would agree to hold it,
as his predecessors had held the Rinns of Isla, for their
personal service to the Clandonald. Moreover, Sir
James offered to refer their disputes to the decision of
any impartial persons Maclean might choose to name ;
and, in case of their differing, to the decision of the
King. But Maclean, much against the opinion of his
friends, who advised him to accept these offers, would
hear of nothing but an absolute surrender, on the part
of Sir James, of all title or claim to the island. Upon
this, both parties resolved to settle the dispute by the
sword. They encountered at the head of Lochgruinart,
1598.] DEATH OF LAUCHLAN MOR MACLEAN. 285
and a desperate conflict ensued. Sir James in the
beginning of the action caused his vanguard to make
a detour, as if they intended a retreat, but really with
the object of gaining the top of an eminence near at
hand9 which Sir Lauchlan was also desirous to possess.
By this stratagem Sir James succeeded in gaining the
height first, from which he charged the Macleans with
great vigour, and, forcing their van back upon their
main body, threw the whole into confusion, and finally
routed them. Sir Lauchlan Maclean, with fourscore
of his kinsmen and two hundred common soldiers, were
killed ; and his son, Lauchlan Barrach Maclean, being
dangerously wounded, made bis escape with difficulty,
with the survivors, to their boats. Sir James Macdonald
was himself severely wounded, and, for a time, his
recovery was doubtful ; whilst thirty of his followers
were killed and sixty wounded.1 According to the
family history of the Macleans, Hector, the son and
successor of Sir Lauchlan, obtained a commission of
fire and sword, as it was called, against Sir James
Macdonald and his tribe. He and his clan then invaded
Isla, accompanied by Macleod of Dunvegan, Cameron
of Lochiel, Mackinnon and Macneill of Barra, with
their followers. They encountered the Macdonalds
at a place called Bern Bige, attacked and defeated
them, and afterwards ravaged the whole island, in
i Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 237. The MS. His-
tory of the Macleans gives a somewhat different account of this
affair, throwing the chief blame upon the Macdonalds. Anderson's
History of Scotland and BirreFs Diary agree in the censure of Sir
James Macdonald ; but the information of Sir R. Gordon seems to
have been more minute, and probably therefore more correct than
that of the other authorities. The battle of Lochgruinart was fought
on the 5th August, 1598.
286 COMMISSION TO LENNOX AND HUNTLY. [1598.
revenge for the slaughter of the Macleans at Loch-
gruinart. As, however, no commission appears in any of
the records of the time, it would rather seem that the
revenge taken by the Clanlean and their confederates
proceeded from their own private councils, and bad not
the sanction of the Government in any shape.1 It is
not a little remarkable that, a year after the battle of
Lochgruinart, we find Sir James Macdonald treating
with the King's Comptroller regarding the lands of Isla
and Kintyre, and making offers which were approved
of by the Privy Council. When along with this, we
consider the still more remarkable fact that the indict-
ment on which Sir James was condemned to death in
the year 1609, makes no allusion to the slaughter of Sir
Lauchlan Maclean and his kinsmen, it is impossible to
avoid the conclusion that Maclean was the aggressor,
and that Macdonald was considered by the authorities
as having fought in self-defence.
A new commission of Lieutenandry over the whole
Isles and Highlands of Inverness-shire, was
" I599" in July, 1599, granted to the Duke of
Lennox and the Earl of Huntly, the latter of whom
had lately been restored to favour. A special charge
was given to both Lieutenants to assist, by every
means, and with all their forces and power, the " gentle-
men venturers and enterprisers of the conquest of the
Lewis, towards the perfect settling and establishing
of that island under their obedience/' The preamble
of this commission gives a shocking picture of the
state of the Islanders at this time, charging them with
the grossest impiety and the most atrocious barbarities.
1 This is corroborated by the MS. History of the Cameroao.
1599.] OBJECTS OF THIS COMMISSION. 287
One clause, however, points out, although unintention-
ally, the offence which appeared most heinous in the
eyes of a needy monarch and his grasping courtiers, and
leaves some room to suppose that the rest of the pre-
amble may have been exaggerated, to give more colour
to the harsh measures now in progress. The words of
this clause are — " And besides all their other crimes,
they rebelliously withhold from his Majesty a great part
of the patrimony and proper rent of the Crown, deprive
the country of the benefit which might redound thereto,
by the trade of fishing, and of other commodities which
these bounds render. And now, at last, a great part of
them have banded, conspired, and daily practise, by
forfce and policy, in their barbarous and rebellious form,
to disappoint his Majesty's service in the Lewis/' A
council of northern Earls and Barons was appointed by
the Commission, by whose advice the Lieutenants were
to be guided in the execution of their office. This
Commission was plainly intended to assist the Lowland
adventurers in their enterprise against the Lewis ; and
it deserves to be noticed, that it gave express power to
the Lieutenants to punish with military execution, not
only the avowed opponents of the enterprise, but those
who should be found to impede it indirectly. It is
uncertain to what extent this Commission was acted
upon.1
In the month of August, Sir James Macdonald
appeared in presence of the King's Comptroller at
Falkland, and made certain offers, embracing, as he
affirmed, the most certain method of establishing the
Royal authority within the bounds of Kintyre and Isla.
1 Kecord of Privy Council, 9th July, 1599.
288 OFFERS OF SIR JAMES MACDONALD. [1599.
He offered to cause his whole tribe and dependers eva-
cuate Kintyre, leaving those lands wholly at the King's
disposal ; and he, at the same time, engaged for him-
self and his clan, not only to refrain from molesting the
new tenants who should be placed in that district, but,
on the contrary, to support and defend them to the
utmost of his power. He also agreed that the Castle
of Duny veg in Isla should be placed in the hands of a
governor and garrison appointed by the King, and that
' sixty merk lands in its vicinity (from which he offered
to remove the present tenants) should be assigned for
the maintenance of the garrison. Sir James then
required the remaining lands of Isla (estimated to extend
to three hundred merk lands) to be granted to him in
heritage for the annual feu-duty of £2 for every merk
land, or £600 in all, the title-deeds to contain the same
clauses as those granted to the Islesmen by James IV.
Besides this rent, he offered to pay to his father, where-
ever the King should appoint the residence of the latter,
a yearly pension of one thousand merks, or about six
hundred and seventy pounds. For the performance
of all these offers he proposed to give his brother as a
hostage, and to support him in a becoming manner as
long as he should continue in captivity. These offers
being submitted by the Comptroller to the Privy Coun-
cil, received the approbation of that tribunal ; and the
Comptroller was authorised to treat with Sir James
Macdonald for his performance of them in every point,
and regarding the heritable grant of the lands of Isla
sought by the latter.1 Much obscurity rests upon the
causes which prevented this matter from being brought
1 Record of Privy Council, 6th September, 1599.
1899.] HE IS THWABTED BY A>LE. 289
to a satisfactory conclusion. There is reason to believe
that the influence of the Earl of Argyle and John Camp-
bell of Calder was already, if not earlier, secretly used
in thwarting the endeavours of Sir James Macdonald to
reconcile himself and his clan to the Government. It
is not to be supposed that this chief, unless under the in-
fluence of interested advisers, would have abandoned, as
he seems very soon to have done, the favourable position
in which he was now placed. That Argyle and Calder
were deeply interested will afterwards appear ; and the
marriage of Sir James Macdonald to Calder's sister, which
took place about this time, must have, at first* disposed
him to receive with unsuspecting confidence the coun-
sels of that crafty baron. It would appear that Argyle
took the part of Angus Macdonald, Sir James's father,
in order to embarrass Sir James as much as possible in
his arrangements with the Government. Calder, on the
other hand, by professing to support his brother-in-law,
seems to have urged the young chief to acts of violence
which led to his ruin. Certain it is, that, in after life,
Sir James blamed Argyle and Calder as the prime
movers of all the severities exercised against him and
his clan. It was the opinion, too, of one of the con-
temporary officers of state for Scotland — a man of much
sagacity and experience — that the frequent insurrections
in the South Isles which occurred in the first fifteen
years of the seventeenth century were encouraged, if
not originated, by Argyle and the Campbells for their
own purposes.1 In the following pages undoubted
evidence will be found of such underhand proceedings,
1 Letter, Sir Alexander Hay to Mr. John Murray of Loehmaben, then
in London, dated 21st December, 1616 ; Denroylne MS., Adtocates'
Library.
22
290 THE LOWLANDERS COLONISE LEWIS, [1599.
on the part of the Earl of Argyle, in one of the most
prominent of these insurrections.
Leaving for a while the affairs of the South Isles,
which gradually become more interesting, we proceed
to trace the progress of the Lowland adventurers who
proposed to colonise the Lewis. Their contract
with Government was ratified, as we have seen, by
Parliament in June, 1598, and their preparations were
commenced without loss of time. It seems probable
that they went no further in that year than merely
preparing for their expedition ; but, in October of the
following year, fortified, in some measure, by the com-
mission granted in July to the Duke of Lennox and
the Earl of Huntly, they actually proceeded to the
Lewis with a force of five or six hundred hired soldiers,
besides gentlemen volunteers, and artificers of all sorts.
The late season of the year at which the adventurers
arrived in the island was very injurious to them ; for
the cold weather, and want of proper shelter and pro-
visions, caused many, soon after their arrival, to die of
the flux.1 None of the authorities of the period men-
tion why the expedition should not have sailed at least
six months earlier than it did ; and we are, therefore,
led to conclude that the delay was caused either by actual
opposition of a formidable nature being threatened,
or by reports circulated by Mackenzie and the other
hostile chiefs that such opposition was intended.2 Under
all these disadvantages the colonists commenced build-
ing in a convenient place, and at length completed
what Sir Robert Gordon calls " a pretty town," where
1 Moysie's Memoirs, p. 166.
a This is confirmed by a passage in Anderson's MS. History of Scot*
land, LLI., f o. 295.
1600.] BUT ARE OPPOSED BY THE NATIVES. 291
they encamped. The natives of the island, under Neill
and Murdoch, the two surviving bastard sons of Ruari
Macleod, the last undisputed Lord of Lewis, made
considerable opposition, to which they were probably
incited by Mackenzie. Leirmonth of Balcolmy, being
on his way from the Lewis to Fife with his own vessel,
was intercepted near the Orkneys by Murdoch Macleod,
who is said to have received his instructions from the
Lord of KintailL Many of his crew were slain, and he
himself was detained a prisoner in the Lewis for six
months, after which he was liberated by his captor on
promise of a ransom. This, however, the
unfortunate Laird of Balcolmy never lived to
pay, having died in the Orkneys on his way home of
disease brought on by the harsh treatment he had
suffered in his captivity. About this time, luckily for
the adventurers, Neill Macleod quarrelled with his
brother, who had not only a principal share in the exe-
cution of Torquil Dubh Macleod a few years before,
but continued to support the treacherous Breve and his
kin, the Clan Vic Gilvore, as they were called, by whom
Torquil Dubh had been apprehended and delivered to
Mackenzie. In following up this dispute, Neill appre-
hended his brother and several of the Breve's kindred,
and immediately put all his prisoners, his brother
excepted, to death. The adventurers, hearing of this,
offered to Neill Macleod that, if he would deliver his
brother up to them, as one of the chief obstructors of
their enterprise, they would both give to himself a por-
tion of the island, and assist him further to revenge the
death of Torquil Dubh. The Islander accepted these
terms, delivered up his brother Murdoch to the colonists,
and went with them to Edinburgh, taking along with
292 PREPARATIONS FOR A THIRD [1600
him the heads, ten or twelve in number, of those of the
Clan Vic Gilvore, whom he had lately put to death.
On this occasion Neill received a pardon for his
offences; and the colonists returned to the Lewis, their
prospects much improved by their alliance with the most
powerful man in the island. In the meantime, Murdoch
>
Macleod was executed at St. Andrews; and, in conse-
quence of some confessions made by him, and of com-
plaints by the adventurers, the Lord of Eintaill was
apprehended, and committed prisoner to Edinburgh
Castle. This artful chief, however, contrived to escape
without a trial by the help of bis friend the Lord
Chancellor ; nor did the risk he had run cause him at
all to relax in his endeavours to frustrate the colonisa-
tion of the Lewis, as we shall presently have occasion
to see.*
The commission of lieutenandry lately granted to the
Duke of Lennox and the Earl, now Marquis, of Huntly
over the North Highlands and Isles, had failed to pro-
duce any effect, owing, no doubt, to the difficulty of
bringing a feudal army from the rest of Scotland together
in the harvest months. It is evident, too, that the
Lowland militia were becoming impatient of the fre-
quent calls upon them to suppress petty insurrections
in the Isles. These difficulties suggested to the King,
for the third time, the project of going in person to the
Isles, as experience had shown that this was the best
way to overcome the growing dislike, on the part of the
people, to so oppressive a feature of the feudal system.
The fighting men of a great part of Scotland were
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 270-1. Moysie's
Memoirs, p. 165. Dr. George Mackenzie's History of the Mackenzie^
Letterf earn MS.
1601.] ROYAL EXPEDITION TO THE ISLES. 293
accordingly summoned, by proclamation, dated the 2nd
of April, to meet his Majesty, part of them at Dunbar-
ton, on the 10th of July, and the remainder at Kintyre,
two days later. The boatmen of the Clyde and adja-
cent coasts were ordered to have their vessels ready by
that time, to convey the army, with its Royal leader,
to the scene of operations.1 In the course of two
months, however, it was found out that tho burghs
already ordered to send their quotas to the expedition,
could not furnish a sufficient number of ships or men
to insure his Majesty's safety, and a new proclamation
was issued affecting all the burghs of the realm.2 Even
this last summons failed either to bring together a suf-
ficient force, or to overcome the natural timidity of the
monarch; for a third proclamation, in the month of July,
announced the total abandonment of the intended expe-
dition, on the alleged ground of the inability of the
lieges, from poverty, to equip themselves properly for
the service.8 The ridicule attending this renewed exhi-
bition of his pusillanimity seems effectually to have
deterred James from again proposing an expedition " in
proper person " to the Isles.
The next year witnessed another abortive
attempt to reduce the Isles and adjacent
Highlands to obedience by means of commissions of
lieutenandry. The Lieutenants named were Lennox
and Huntly. The commissions now granted to these
noblemen differed materially from those they had re-
ceived in 1599 ; for, besides that the South or Argyle-
shire Isles were included and placed under the immediate
charge of Lennox, whilst the North Isles (excepting
1 Record of Privy Council, 2nd April, 1600.
2 Ibid, 6th June, 1600. s Ibid, 14th July, 1600.
294 COMMISSIONS TO LENNOX AND HUNTLY. [1601.
the Lewis) were committed to the guardianship of
Huntly, it was provided that the Lieutenants should try
what their own private power and resources could effect
in the first instance. Should it then become necessary
to call out more than their own vassals, they were required,
in doing so, to take the advice of the same counsellors
nominated in their former commissions. The Lieutenants
were also enjoined, as before, to assist the colonists, so
that the latter might be the better able to pay their
rent to the King, which would greatly augment his
Majesty's rents. The powers given to the Lieutenants
were very ample, enabling them to summon, and, in
case of resistance, to take by force all such castles and
fortalices as they should consider necessary to the suc-
cess of their proceedings ; and to pursue the rebellious
Islesmen, and the Highlanders of the mainland who
should take part with them, with fire and sword. Par-
dons were, at the same time, promised for all slaughters
that might happen to be committed by them or their
followers in carrying their commissions into effect.
To encourage these powerful noblemen to enter with
energy on the duties imposed upon them, it was declared
that, if they accomplished the pacification of the Isles,
taking proper security for the payment of his Majesty's
rents, they should be deemed worthy of a great reward.
And if all this were effected by their own power and
resources, without any military service or other burden
upon the country at large, an immediate recompense
was promised to them.1 Notwithstanding the induce-
ments held out, there appears no trace of any active
steps taken by Lennox or Huntly towards the subjec-
tion of the rebellious Islesmen.
1 Record of Privy Council, 16th June, 1601 .
1601.] FEUD IN SKY. 295
The attention of the Government was at this time
occupied, apart from the civilisation of the Lewis and
Kin tyre and the general measures proposed for the
improvement of the Isles, by a sudden quarrel, followed
by much bloodshed and various desolating inroads,
between the two great chiefs in the Isle of Sky, Donald
Gorme Macdonald of Sleat, and Ruari Macleod of
Dun vegan. Donald Gorme had married Macleod's
sister ; but, owing to some jealousy, or other cause of
displeasure conceived against her, he repudiated that
lady. Macleod, being informed of this, was highly
offended, and sent a message to Donald Gorme, desir-
ing him to take back his wife. This the latter refused;
and, on the contrary, set about procuring a legal divorce,
in which he succeeded, and immediately afterwards mar-
ried a sister of Kenneth Mackenzie of Kintaill. Mac-
leod, in the first transports of his resentment at this
indignity, assembled his clan and carried fire and sword
through Macdonald "s district of Trouterness, in Sky.
The Clandonald, in revenge, invaded Harris, which
island they laid waste in a similar manner, killing many
of the inhabitants, and carrying off the cattle. This
retaliation roused the Macleods to make a foray upon
Macdonald's estate of North Uist; and, accordingly,
they sailed from Sky towards that Island ; and, on arriv-
ing there, the chief sent his kinsman, Donald Glas
Macleod, with forty men, to lay waste the island, and to
bring off from the church of Kiltrynad the cattle and
effects of the country people, which, on the alarm being
given, had been placed there for safety. In the execu-
tion of these orders Donald Glas was encountered by
a celebrated warrior of the Clandonald, nearly related
to their chief, called Donald Maclan Vic James, who
296 MACDONALDS AND MACLEODS. [1601.
had only twelve men with him. The Macdonalds
behaved with so much gallantry on this occasion, that
they routed their opponents, and rescued the cattle,
Donald Glas and many of his men being killed. The
chief of Dunvegan, seeing the ill success of this detach-
ment, and suspecting that a larger force was at hand,
returned home, meditating future vengeance. These
spoliations and incursions were carried on with so much
inveteracy, that both clans were brought to the brink of
ruin; and many of the natives of the districts thus devas-
tated were forced to sustain themselves by killing and
eating their horses, dogs, and cats.
At length, in the year 1601, while Ruari Macleod
was absent, seeking assistance from the Earl of Argyle
against his enemies, the Macdonalds invaded Macleod's
lands in Sky in considerable numbers, wishing to force
on a battle. The Macleods, under Alexander, the
brother of their chief, took post on the shoulder of
Benquhillin (a very high and rugged mountain or ridge
of hills in Sky), and did not decline the contest. After
a fierce and obstinate combat, in which both parties
fought with great bravery, the Macleods were over-
thrown. Their leader, with thirty of their choicest
warriors, fell into the hands of the victors ; and two of
the chief's immediate relations, and many others, were
slain.1 The Privy Council now interfered to prevent
further mischief. The Marquis of Huntly, and the Earl
of Argyle, and all others, were prohibited from giving
assistance to either of the contending parties ; whilst
the chiefs themselves were ordered to disband their
forces and to quit the island in the meantime. Mac-
leod was enjoined to give himself up to the Earl of
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 244.
1C01.] THE COLONISTS OF THE LEWJS. 297
Argyle, and Macdonald to surrender himself to Huntly;
and both were strictly charged, under the penalty of
treason, to remain with these noblemen till the contro-
versy between them should be settled by the King and
Council.1 A reconciliation was at length effected
between these chiefs, by the mediation of Angus Mac-
donald of Ida, Maclean of Coll, and other friends;
after which, the prisoners taken at the battle of Ben-
quhillin were released, and ever after these clans re-
frained from open hostility, and submitted their disputes
to the decision of the law.2 There is great reason to
believe that this reconciliation was hastened by their
dread of the progress of the colonists of the Lewis,
after the latter had strengthened themselves by their
alliance with Neill Macleod, the bastard.
The settlement of the Lewis now met with a severe
and unexpected check. The leaders of the adventurers
who returned to the island with Neill Macleod, after
procuring his pardon, and delivering up his brother
Murdoch to justice, were the Commendator of Pitten-
weem, the lairds of Wormestoun, Fingask, Balcolmy, and
Airdrie. Their situation at this time was so promising,
that they were induced to limit the exemption from rent,
which by their contract was to last for seven years, to
two years from the commencement of their undertak-
ing.3 Soon after their return, however, some injury
done by Spens of Wormestoun to Neill Macleod em-
broiled them once more with the latter. Wormestoun
laid a plot to entrap Macleod, but that leader having
* Record of Privy Council, 29fch June, 11th and 22nd August,
1601.
2 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 245.
3 Record of Privy Council, 26th March, 1607.
298 THE COLONISTS OF THE LEWIS EXPELLED. [1601.
a similar design against Wormestoun, was upon his
guard, and as soon as a party sent to apprehend him
were at a sufficient distance from their camp, he at-
tacked and routed them, with the loss of sixty of their
number.1 Mackenzie of Kintaill, who, since the agree-
ment made between Neill Macleod and the colonists,
had almost despaired of frustrating the enterprise, was
no sooner informed of this quarrel than he hastened to
profit by it. He had detained in captivity, for several
years, Tormod, the younger brother of Torquil Dubh,
and only surviving legitimate son of old Ruari Macleod
of the Lewis. Although ordered by the Privy Council,
in April, 1600, to produce his prisoner before them, he
had evaded compliance, and still detained Tormod
Macleod in custody without a warrant. Suddenly
changing his plan, on hearing of the quarrel between
Neill and the adventurers, Mackenzie restored this
young man to liberty, and sent him into the Lewis,
promising him, secretly, great assistance if he would
attack the settlers in concert with his uncle. On his
arrival in the island, Tormod was received with open
arms bv Neill Macleod and all the old followers of the
family of Lewis, by whom he was at once acknowledged
as their lord and master. Encouraged by the support
he received from his clan and the other natives of
Lewis, and guided by the advice and experience of
Neill Macleod, who had so long been their leader, the
young chief attacked the camp of the adventurers,
forced it, burned the fort, killed many of their men, and
at length forced the principal gentlemen to capitulate
with him on the following conditions: — First, They were
* Sir It. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 271 ; Letterfearn MS.
160L] TERMS OF THEIR CAPITULATION. 299
to obtain from the King a remission to the Macleods for
all their bypast offences; Secondly, They promised never
to return to the Lewis, and agreed to give up their title
to that island to Tormod Macleod; Lastly, For the per-
formance of these conditions they were obliged to leave
Sir James Spens, and his son-in-law, Thomas Mony-
penny of Kinkell, as hostages.1 In order to obtain the
liberation of the hostages, who were detained
A. D 1602
'for eight months by the Islanders, a remis-
sion was readily granted,2 and it is probable that the
adventurers pretended to surrender their legal rights
by a formal deed ; but when their object was attained
by the release of these gentlemen, no further attention
was paid to the capitulation. Notwithstanding their
promise never to return, they seem only to have waited
till their hostages were out of danger before taking
immediate steps for a reconquest of the island and its
restless inhabitants. Accordingly, in the month of July
proclamation was made, summoning the fighting men
in most of the northern counties to meet a Royal lieu-
tenant, probably the Marquis of Huntly, at Inverness,
on the 20th of September, then to proceed against the
rebels of the Lewis.3 On the approach of harvest,
however, this proclamation was recalled, and " the raid
of the Lewis was delayed till the spring of the follow-
ing year."4
The feud between the Mackenzies and the Clan-
ranald of Glengarry, regarding their lands in Wester
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 272; Dr. George
Mackenzie's MS. History of the Mackenzies ; Letterfearn MS.
2 Dr. George Mackenzie's MS.
3 Record of Privy Council, 17th July, 1602.
* Ibid, 15th September, 1602.
300 RENEWAL OF THE FEUD BETWEEN [1602.
Ross, was now renewed with great violence. On this
occasion Glengarry appears to have been the aggressor ;
a position in which he was placed, partly by the craft of
his opponents, partly by his own ignorance of the laws.
The result was, that the Lord of Kintaill procured
a commission of fire and sword against Glengarry and
his men, by virtue of which he invaded the district of
North Morar, belonging to Glengarry, which he devas-
tated in the cruel manner then practised, and carried
off all the cattle.1 The Macdonalds did not fail to reta-
liate by predatory excursions, in one of which they plun-
dered the district of Applecross, which had always before
been considered as a sanctuary. On another occasion,
a large body of Macdonalds had landed on the coast
of Lochalsh, vowing to burn and destroy all Mackenzie's
lands as far as Easter Ross ; but their leader, Allaster
MacGorrie, in whom they had great confidence, having
separated himself with but few attendants from his main
body, was surprised by some of Mackenzie's followers
and killed.
This loss so disheartened the Macdonalds that they
returned home without performing any action of conse-
quence. Meantime, the Lord of Kintaill went to Mull
to visit Maclean, by whose means he hoped to prevent
the Macdonalds of Isla from giving assistance to their
relations in the north. In his absence, Angus Mac-
do nald, the young chief of Glengarry, desirous to
revenge the death of his kinsman, MacGorrie, had col-
lected all his followers, and proceeding northwards to
Lochcarron (in which the Macdonalds now only held
the Castle of Strone, with a small garrison), he loaded
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 248 ; Record of Privy
Council, 9th September, 1602.
1602.] GLENGARRY AND THE MACKENZIES. 301
his boats with the plunder of that district, after burning
all the houses within reach, and killing many of the
inhabitants. The inhabitants of Kintaill and Loch-
alsh having been drawn together in the absence of
their chief, and encouraged by the example of his
lady, posted themselves at the narrow strait or kyle
which separates Sky from the mainland, intending to
annoy the Macdonalds as much as possible on their
return. Night had fallen before the Macdonalds
made their appearance; and some of Mackenzie's
vassals, taking advantage of the darkness, rowed out
in two boats towards a large galley of the enemy,
which was then passing the kyle. Being allowed to
approach within a very short distance, they suddenly
attacked the Macdonalds with a volley of musketry
and arrows. The latter, in their alarm crowding to
one side of the galley, already heavily laden with their
plunder, it overset, and the whole crew were precipitated
into the water. Such of them as contrived to reach the
shore were immediately despatched by the Kintaill men;
and among the slain was the young chief of Glengarry
himself, whose boat it was that the Mackenzies had
happened to attack. The rest of the Macdonalds,
hearing the alarm, and discovering their loss, returned
on their own route as far as Strathordell in Sky, where
they left their boats; and, proceeding on foot through
the island to Bleat, they crossed from that district to
Morar. Finding that Mackenzie was not yet returned
from Mull, they sent a large party to take post in an
island near which he must pass, so that they might
have an opportunity of intercepting him, and thus re-
venging the death of their young chief. This party
was only one night in the island when the chief of
302 THE RAID Otf KILCHB1ST. [1002.
Kintaill came past in Maclean's great galle)r, com-
manded by the captain of Carneburg. At this time
it was low ebb, and the boats of the Macdonalds were
aground; but in order to detain them as long as pos-
sible, the captain, suspecting whose vessels they were,
pretended that he was going to land on the island.
The stratagem took effect; for the Macdonalds, not to
deter him from landing, retired from the shore and
concealed themselves among the rocks; when suddenly
he hoisted his sails, and bore away from the island, and
was soon out of reach of pursuit. When Mackenzie
came to Kintaill, he observed a number of dead bodies
lying on the shore, and was feoon informed of the suc-
cess which his vassals had met with. He then collected
his men, and laid siege to the Castle of Strone, which
was in a short time surrendered to him, on which he
caused it to be blown up, that it might no longer be a
stronghold against him and his successors. After this,
the Clanranald of Glengarry, under Allan
Macranald of Lundie, made an irruption into
'Brae Ross, and plundered the lands of Kilchrist and
other adjacent lands belonging to the Mackenzies.
This foray was signalised by the merciless burning of a
whole congregation in the church of Kilchrist, while
Glengarry's piper marched round the building, mocking
the cries of the unfortunate inmates with the well-known
pibroch, *hich has been knowni ever since, under the
name of Kilchrist, as the family tune of the Clanranald
of Glengarry.1 Some of the Macdonalds chiefly con-
cerned in this outrage were afterwards killed by the
Mackenzies; but it is somewhat startling to reflect that
1 Letterfearn MS. ; Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 248 ;
Reg. of Privy Seal, XCIV. 142.
1603.] UNION OF THE CROWNS. 303
this terrible instance of private vengeance should have
occurred in the commencement of the seventeenth
century without, so far as we can trace, any public
notice being taken of such an enormity. Eventually,
the disputes between the chiefs of Glengarry and Kin-
taill were amicably settled by an arrangement which
gave the Ross-shire lands, so long the subject of dis-
pute, entirely to Mackenzie; and the hard terms to
which Glengarry was obliged to submit in this private
quarrel, seem to have formed the only punishment in-
flicted on this clan for the cold-blooded atrocity dis-'
played in the memorable raid of Kilchrist.1
We now approach the time when King James quitted
his native country of Scotland to commence his reign as
Sovereign of Great Britain. His attention was latterly
so much occupied in preparing for his peaceable acces-
sion to the throne of England, that the disorders in
every part of the Highlands and Isles were allowed to
increase to a serious height. This is evident from the
number of complaints made to the Privy Council by the
Lowlanders adjacent to the Highland line, who suffered
severely from predatory bands of Highlanders. The
necessity of quieting the districts nearest to the Low-
lands must have contributed to withdraw the attention
of the Government from the more remote clans. So
feeble, however, were the measures pursued for this
object, that it was not until the Clangregor, already
under the ban of the law, had made an irruption into the
Lennox, and, after defeating the Colquhouns and their
i Sir R. Gordon, ubi supra. The author of the Letterfearn MS.
informs us that, in the discussions before the Privy Council, the Mac-
kenzies proved Glengarry " to have been a worshipper of the Coan,
which image was afterwards brought to Edinburgh and burnt at the
Cross."
304 CONSEQUENCES OF THIS EVENT. [1603.
adherents at Glenfrune with great slaughter, had plun-
dered and ravaged the whole district, and threatened
to burn the town of Dunbarton, that the Government
was roused to adequate exertions. This happened in
February, 1603, two months before the King set out for
London; and, as all the power of the Earl of Argyle
and his clan, and of many other Highland chiefs, was
required to carry into effect the proscription of the Clan-
gregor, it is not surprising that the Islesmen should for
some time have enjoyed a respite from Commissions of
Lieutenandry, and similar acts of the Royal authority,
indicating his Majesty's paternal anxiety for their refor-
mation.1 In particular, the expedition announced to
proceed against the rebels of the Lewis, in order to put
the adventurers again in possession of that island, was,
owing to these causes, delayed for upwards of two years.
James, however, was no sooner firmly seated on the
English throne, than his projects for the improvement
of the Isles, and at the same time, of his Scottish
Crown rents, again occupied his attention, with a better
prospect of success than formerly, from the increased
resources now at his command. The progress which he
made, after becoming King of Great Britain, in reducing
the Isles and adjacent Highlands to peace and obedi-
ence, will be detailed in the succeeding chapters.
1 In the Vindication of the Clanranald of Glengarry, App., p. x.
there is printed, from the Glengarry Ch. Chest, a warrant, dated 11th
May, 1602, to Donald Mac Angus of Glengarry, giving him power to
press any Scottish vessels in the Isles, to assist him in passing " upon
the malefactors and broken men of the Isles, perturbers of the
quietness thairof for thair apprehension, &c," he having previously
received a commission for that purpose. The records, so far at the
author's information extends, do not allude to this commission to
Glengarry ; nor does it appear to have been carried into effect in any
shape.
305
CHAP. VIL
FROM THE DEPARTURE OF JAMES VI. FOR ENGLAND TO
THE ACQUISITION OF THE ISLE OF LEWIS BY THE LORD
OF KINTAILL.— 1603— 1610.
The first event of consequence that occurred
A. D. 160?
in the Isles after the departure of the King for
England, was the apprehension and imprisonment of
Sir James Macdonald. The proceedings of this restless
young chief, from the year 1599 (when he made certain
offers to the King's Comptroller, which were approved of
by the Privy Council) to 1603, are involved in obscurity.
He had before that time liberated his father from the
unnatural bondage in which the latter was held; but he
seems to have been loath to surrender the power which
for some time he had enjoyed in Kintyre and Isla, more
particularly as he was popular with his clan on account of
his victory over the Macleans at Lochgruinart. Some
time in the year 1603, his father having received informa-
tion that Sir James meditated another plot against
him, caused the latter to be apprehended; and after
detaining him some time as a prisoner, delivered him
to Campbell of Auchinbreck, who placed him in the
hands of the Earl of Argyle. Hitherto, the Government
had, from the causes alluded to in the last chapter,
23
306 SIK JAMES MACDONALD IMPRISONED. [1604.
neglected to interfere in this matter; but after Sir
James had been in the private custody of Argyle for
several months, the Earl was ordered to exhibit him
before the Privy Council. This he did early
in 1604, at Perth, when Macdonald was com-
mitted prisoner to the Royal Castle of Blackness. From
this prison, with the assistance of some of his clansmen,
Sir James planned his escape, and would have succeeded
but for the disclosure of his intention by some one in the
secret, whereupon he was removed to Edinburgh Castle.1
Here we shall leave him for a while. About this time,
Hector Maclean of Dowart, who, among other offences,
had failed to pay the Crown rents for his possessions,
was obliged to give security to the Privy Council that
his Castle of Dowart should be delivered up to any
person whom the King and Council should authorise to
receive it; on twenty days' warning.2
In the following summer Lord Scone
(formerly Sir David Murray), Comptroller of
Scotland, was directed to repair to Kintyre to receive
the obedience of the principal men of the clans in the
South Isles, with surety for the payment of his Majesty's
rents and duties. Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg,
Hector Maclean of Dowart, and all the principal chiefs
and gentlemen in the Isles, south of the point of Ardna-
murchan — together with Cameron of Lochiel, Mac-
ranald of Keppoch, Macian of Ardnamurchan, Macian
1 Deposition of Sir James Macdonald, 15th Jan., 1608, and in-
dictment against him, 13th May, 1609, in Pitcairn's Criminal Trials,
IIL, pp. 10, 7. Rental Books of Earldom of Argyle, and High
Treasurer's Accounts, ad tempos.
3 Record of Privy Council (old abstract in library of Skene, the
original Record for the period being lost), 26th August, 1604.
1605.] COMMISSION TO LORD SCONE. 307
of Glenco, Stewart of Appin, Macdonald of Largie,
and Macallaster of Loupe on the mainland — were sum-
moned to appear personally before Lord Scone at Loch-
kilkerran (now Campbellton), in Kintyre, on the 20th
day of July, to give their obedience, to find sureties
for the payment of his Majesty's rents, and to bring with
them and exhibit the title-deeds to all lands claimed by
them in the Highlands and Isles. If any of them should
fail to obey the proclamation, their title-deeds were at
once to be declared null and void, and power was given
to the Comptroller to pursue them with fire and sword
as rebels to the King. That this might not be considered
merely as an empty threat, the fighting men of the
western shires and burghs were summoned to attend at
Lochkilkerran, well armed, and with forty days' pro-
visions, to support the authority of the Comptroller.
Robert Hepburn, Lieutenant of the King's Guard, was
sent to the Isles to receive from their respective owners
the Castles of Dunyveg in Isla, and Dowart in Mull ;
and in order to prevent the escape of the Islanders, the
inhabitants of Kintyre and the West Isles were ordered,
by proclamation, to deliver all their boats to this officer,
being at the same time prohibited from using boats
without his special licence.1
The Council sat at Glasgow while these acts were
passed ; but the increasing unwillingness of the Low-
landers to be burdened with such expeditions operated
on this, as on former occasions, to retard, if not to frus-
trate the plans of the Government. Angus Macdonald
met the Comptroller in Glasgow, and presented to him*
certain offers (now lost) to be forwarded to the King ;
1 Record of Privy Council (Skene Abstract), June, 1605. Had-
dington's Collections.
308 SCONE HOLDS A COURT IN KINTYRE. [1605.
but nothing more was accomplished at this time.1 A
new commission, with most ample powers, was given to
Lord Scone early in August, to enable him to ctfrry
his former commission into effect.2 It was not, how-
ever, till the month of September that this nobleman
reached Kintyre, when he held a court similar to that
held in the same place by the Commendator of Pitten-
weem in 1596. This court, after all these preparations,
was only attended by Angus Macdonald and his relations
and vassals in Kintyre, particularly the Macallasters,
Macneills, Mackays, and Maceacherns; nor does it
appear that Lord Scone was able either to compel the
attendance of the more distant chiefs or to punish
them for their contumacy. He made a roll of the
King's lands in Kintyre, and of the occupiers of such
of the lands as were not waste ; and it is worthy of
remark, that, in the nine years which had elapsed
since a like roll was made by the Commendator of Pit-
tenweem, the waste lands had considerably increased.3
He succeeded also in procuring from Angus Macdonald
payment of all the arrears of rent due by that chief, both
for his lands in Kintyre and in Isla; and, on his departure,
he took with him as a hostage for the future obedience of
Angus, Archibald Macdonald of Gigha, a natural son of
the latter, who was confined in the Castle of Dumbarton.4
1 Offers and Letter of Angus Macdonald in 1606, which mention
the former offers alluded to in the text. — See Pitcairn's Criminal
Trials, III. 365-6.
3 Record of Privy Council (Skene Abstract), 8th August, 1605.
8 Out of one hundred and fifty-one and a half merk lands in
North Kintyre, sixty-two were now waste ; and out of two hundred
and three merk lands in South Kintyre, fifty-one were waste. — See
supra, p. 269.
4 Original Record of Lord Scone's proceedings preserved in
1605.] PROGRESS OF THE LEWIS COLONISTS. 309
In the summer of this year, the Lewis adventurers,
armed with commissions of fire and sword and other
high powers, and assisted by some of his Majesty's
ships, made another attempt to possess themselves of
that island, from which they had been excluded by
Tormod Macleod and his followers since the year 1601.
The chiefs of the North Isles were ordered to deliver
up their castles to such heralds or officers as should be
sent to receive them, that they might be garrisoned in
his Majesty's name; and in the event of their refusal,
warrant was given to the colonists to besiege and take
the castles by force. All proprietors of galleys and
other vessels in the North Isles and adjacent mainland,
were ordered to deliver them up at Lochbroom to the
adventurers, who were empowered to seize the boats of
such as should disobey. Lastly, the other Highlanders
and Islanders were strictly forbidden to hold communi-
cation of any kind with the rebels of the Lewis.1
Having in virtue of their commission summoned
together a considerable force from the neighbouring
districts, the adventurers landed in the Lewis, and im-
mediately sent a message to Tormod Macleod, offering,
if he would submit to them, to convey him to London,
where they would not only obtain his pardon from the
King, but suffer him, through his friends, to sue for his
Majesty's favour, and for some means of subsistence.
Much against the advice of his brother Neill, Tormod
declined to risk a battle against the colonists and their
forces, and yielded to the terms proposed. His brother,
however, with those who adhered to him, still held out.
Gen. Reg. House. Letter, Privy Council to the King, 16th March,
1607 ; Denmylne MS., Advocates' Library.
1 Record of Privy Council (Skene Abstract), July, 1605.
310 INTRIGUES OF THE EARL OF ARGYLE. [1C06.
According to their promise the adventurers sent Mac-
leod to London, where, after a time, he made such
progress in convincing his Majesty of the injustice of
the grant to the Lowlanders of what was properly the
inheritance of his nephews, that the colonists began to
take alarm lest he should procure its recall. They there-
fore used all their influence against him; and some of
them being members of the Royal household, they pre-
vailed so far that he was sent down to Edinburgh and
imprisoned in the castle, where he lay for ten years.
Meantime the colonists settled in the Lewis for a time,
but were continually annoyed by the attacks of Neill
Macleod and those who supported him.1
In July, 1606,the Privy Council appointed a
• committee of its members to meet Lord Scone
and hear the oflFers made through him by the Southern
Islanders for their obedience, and for the more sure
payment of his Majesty's rents.2 The result of this
conference seems to have been unfavourable to the
Islanders; for we find that Angus Macdonald could neither
obtain from the Council any answers to his repeated
petitions, nor wTas he permitted to go to Court to lay his
case before the King.* It was undoubtedly the influ-
ence of the Earl of Argyle that guided the Council in
slighting these offers, and in the measures afterwards
pursued with regard to the South Isles, as it had now
been, for some time, his principal aim to procure for
himself the King's lands of Kintyre. Accordingly,
having proposed himself as a tenant for these lands, he
1 Sir K. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 274. Letterfeara A! S.
History of Mackenzies.
a Record of Privy Council (Skene Abstract), 31st July, 1606.
* Offers and Letter of Angus Macdonald, dated 8th Sept., 1606.
Criminal Trials, HI. 865-6.
1606.] HE ACQUIRES KINTYRE AND JURA. 311
had various conferences with Lord Scone on the subject
In the month of November matters were so far ar-
ranged between these noblemen, that Argyle agreed
to take in feu, besides the lands of Kintyre, as many of
the Kings lands in the Isles as Lord Scone should
require him to accept, paying the same yearly rent as
was fixed in the reign of King James V.; and bound
himself to let none of these lands to persons of the
name of Macdonald or Maclean, without his Majesty's
licence.1 About this time, Sir James Macdonald,
being informed of Argyle's proceedings, made an
attempt to escape from Edinburgh Castle; but being un-
successful, he was put in irons to prevent any future
attempt of that kind.2 Soon afterwards Archibald Mac-
donald of Gigha, the hostage for the obedience of Angus
Macdonald of Dunyveg, made his escape from Dun-
barton,3 an occurrence which was eagerly laid hold of
by the enemies of the Clandonald of Kintyre and Isla
to increase the general odium against that unfortunate
tribe. The King having signified his appro-
val of the agreement between the Comptroller
and the Earl of Argyle, a charter was now granted to the
latter of the lands in North and South Kintyre, and in
the Isle of Jura, which had formerly belonged to, and
were forfeited by, Angus Macdonald;4 and thus did
1 Original Conditions required of Argyle, with his Answers, dated
in Nov., 1606, and preserved in the Gen. Keg. House,
a Pitcairn's Criminal Trials, III. 7.
3 Letter, Privy Council to the King, 16th March, 1607 ; Denmylne
MS., Advocates' Library.
4 Reg. of Privy Seal, LXXVI., fo. 88. The feu-duty, payable
chiefly in kind, for this grant was very considerable ; but a large por-
tion of it was permanently remitted to Argyle by Parliament in this
year, for his services against the Clangregor. — Acts of Par., IV. 879.
312 DISCONTENT OF THE CLAN IAN VOR. [1607.
the legal right to the lands of Kintyre pass from a tribe
which had held them for many hundred years. The
danger which was threatened to the Clandonald by the
terms on which the Earl of Argyle had acquired their
ancient inheritance, caused the tribe to draw together
in arms under their chief, Angus Macdonald, who now
began to despair of obtaining any favourable terms
from the Government. Information was brought to the
Council, in July, 1607, that the Clandonald and their
rebellious associates had lately assembled a number of
men in galleys, intending to " invade and pursue his
Majesty's good subjects by sea and land, wherever they
might find an advantage." If such an intention was
really announced, the object was evidently to prevent
the men of the western Lowland shires from leaving
those districts to follow a Royal commissioner to the
Isles; and this object was so far attained, that the
inhabitants of Galloway and Carrick were ordered to
keep themselves in readiness to defend their own shores
from the Islanders; and the Earl of Argyle, who was
soon after appointed Justiciar and Lieutenant over the
South Isles, was only empowered to call out the militia
of Argyle and Tarbert to assist him.1 As the sheriff-
dom of Tarbert, now merged in that of Argyle, was
composed of Kintyre and the South Isles, the effect of
this limitation was, that the Earl undertook this service
with the assistance of his own vassals and friends on the
mainland of Argyle alone, since he could not look for
much assistance among the very people whom he was
sent to reduce to obedience. As the governor, for the
time, of the Castle of Dunyveg disobeyed a mandate
1 Record of Privy Council, 31st July and 12th Aug., 1607.
1607.] COMMISSION TO HUNTLY. 313
of the Privy Council, ordering him to deliver that fort-
ress to Argyle,1 it would appear that that nobleman was
not prepared, with such slender means, to attempt a
task so formidable as a siege of that place, more parti-
cularly as his commission was only to endure for six
months. This, therefore, forms another to be added to
the list of abortive attempts at the improvement of the
Isles, which characterise so great a portion of the reign
of James VI.
At the same time that the Earl of Argyle received
this commission over the South Isles, it was directed by
the King that the Marquis of Huntly should be
employed to reduce all the North Isles, except Sky and
the Lewis ; and, in consequence, there ensued various
conferences on the subject between that powerful noble-
man and the Scottish Privy Council. The King's
intention was that the Marquis on succeeding in the
duty imposed upon him, should receive a grant of the
Isles in question/ to be held of the Crown in fee farm,
for the payment of a certain rent. It was supposed,
and justly, that the service would be followed out with
more alacrity on this principle, than if Huntly were
employed as a mere officer of the Crown, with no pro-
spect of individual advantage. At first, however, the
Privy Council could not come to terms with the Mar-
quis, but submitted his offers with their remarks to the
consideration of his Majesty. In a short time the
King's pleasure was signified to the Council, that certain
conditions, sent direct from the Court, should be proposed
for the Marquis' acceptance. It is scarcely credible that
such conditions should have emanated from a King of
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, LXXVHI, fo. 31.
314 THE KING AND HUNTLT PROJECT THE [1607.
Great Britain in the seventeenth century ; and yet there
seems no reason to doubt that, if not originally suggested
by James himself, they certainly received his approval.
They were as follow: — That the Marquis should under-
take the service upon his own private means alone —
that he should conclude it within a year, and have no
exemption from paying rent but for that space — that
he should end the service, not by agreement with the
country people, but by extirpating them — that he
should take all the North Isles, except Sky and the
Lewis, in feu from the King, as being in his Majesty's
hands by forfeiture of the present possession, or other-
wise—and that he should pay for these Isles such a
tent as should be fixed by the Comptroller of Scotland,
according to the principles observed in the rental of the
South Isles. The Marquis of Huntly, to his shame be
it recorded, accepted nearly all these conditions, under-
taking to end. the service, by extirpation of the bar-
barous people of the Isles, within a year. He declined,
however, to leave the fixing of the rent or feu-duty to
the Comptroller, but offered to pay four hundred pounds
a-year, of which three hundred were to be for Uist, and
the remaining hundred for the other isles specified.
This rent the Council refused to accept, as being " a
very mean dewtie" for the isles which were to be
granted to Huntly, but left this point to the decision of
the King as the party chiefly concerned.1 Before,
however, this difference was finally settled, and the
vassals of Huntly let loose to massacre the barbarous
1 Record of Privy Council from 26th March to 30th April, 1607.
Letter, Huntly to the King, dated 26th March ; and Letters, the Privy
Council to the King, dated 26th March, 1st May, and 19th June, 1607;
in Denmylne MS., Advocates1 Library.
1607.] EXTIRPATION OF THE ISLANDERS. 315
Islesmen, the jealousy entertained by the Presbyterians
of any increase to the power of the Marquis, who was
an adherent of the Church of Rome, caused this enter-
prise to be abandoned altogether. When Huntly
appeared before the Privy Council on the 23rd of June,
to hear the final determination of the King regarding
the amount of rent to be paid for his grants in the
Isles, he was, on a complaint by the more violent of the
Presbyterians, ordered by the Council to confine himself
within the burgh of Elgin, and a circuit of eighteen
miles round it; and while in this durance he was enjoined
to hear the sermons of certain Presbyterian divines, that
so he might be reclaimed from his errors.1 This acci-
dent— for it does not bear the appearance of a scheme
concerted to save the Islanders — seems alone to have
prevented the reign of James VI. from being stained
by a massacre which, for atrocity and the deliberation
with which it was planned, would have left that of
Glenco far in the shade. But whether the interference
of the Presbyterians was accidental or intentional, the
Islanders of that day owed nothing to their prince,
whose character must for ever bear the stain of having,
for the most sordid motives, consigned to destruction
thousands of his subjects.
About this time the Lewis adventurers, having sus-
tained many annoyances from the persevering hostility
of Neill Macleod, who seems to have been assisted by
Macneill of Barra, the captain of Clanranald, and
Macleod of Harris,2 began to weary of their undertaking.
1 Record of Privy Council, 23rd June, 1607.
2 Record of Privy Council (Skene Abstract), 13th March, 31st July
(original), 30th Sept., 1606, and 13th August, 1607. Acts of Parlia-
ment, IV. 278-281.
316 INTRIGUES OF KINTAILL. [1607.
Of the original partners, many had for some time
withdrawn, some had died, others had spent all their
property, and of the remainder, some had more impor-
tant affairs to call them elsewhere. Thus reduced, and
dispirited by the constant attacks made upon them,
they forsook the island and returned to their homes.
The Lord of Kintaill, who had all along wrought to this
end, now began to stir in the matter. By means of his
friend the Lord Chancellor, he passed under the great
seal a gift of the Lewis to himself, in virtue of the
resignation made formerly in his favour by Torquil
Connanach Macleod. The surviving adventurers, how-
ever, were not so unmindful of their own interests as
to suffer this transaction to pass unchallenged. They
complained to the King, who ^Yas highly incensed at
the conduct of Mackenzie, and foreed him to resign
his right thus surreptitiously obtained. The island
being once more, by this step and the consent of the
adventurers, at the disposal of his Majesty, he granted
it anew to three persons only — viz., James, Lord Bal-
merino, Sir George Hay of Netherliff, and Sir James
Spcns of Wormestoun.1 We shall afterwards have
occasion to see the result of an attempt made by these
gentlemen to effect the settlement of the Lewis.
After Sir James Macdonald had been put in irons,
on his unsuccessful attempt to escape from the Castle
of Edinburgh, he made many fruitless applications to
the Privy Council for his enlargement. To these
applications no answer was returned; nor would the
Council even take them into consideration, unless by
a special warrant from the King, which they well knew
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 273-4 ; Letterfearn MS. ;
History of Mackcnzies.
1607.] SIR JAMES MACDONALD TRIES TO ESCAPE. 317
Sir James, in his present situation, had no prospect of
obtaining. Failing in making any impression on those
at the head of affairs in Scotland, he attempted to open
a correspondence with the Duke of Lennox and the
King; but his letters were, in all probability, intercepted
— at least, no notice was taken of them.1 In this state
of uncertainty, and anxious to counteract as soon as
possible the projects of the Earl of Argyle, Macdonald,
in December, 1607, readily joined in a scheme set on
foot by the Lord Maxwell, then his fellow prisoner, for
escaping from their present durance. The plan was
ably conceived and boldly executed. Maxwell made
his escape ; but Sir James, having injured his ancle by
leaping from the wall while encumbered with his fetters,
was retaken near the West Port of Edinburgh, and
consigned to his former dungeon. 2 The " treasonable
breaking of ward/' as this very natural attempt to escape
was styled by the Crown lawyers, was represented in
such a light to the King, that instructions were imme-
diately issued for the trial of the unfortunate
chief. As a preliminary step, rendered neces-
sary by the forms of the Scottish criminal law, Sir James
Macdonald was examined by the Lord Advocate regard-
ing the crimes for which he was to be brought to trial.
At this examination he justified his imprisonment of his
father by producing a letter from the King approving of
that act as good service ; but he denied that he had set
fire to the house of Askomull. As to the breaking out
of Edinburgh Castle, he avowed that he had done so j
* The Letters are preserved among the Denmylne MS., Advocates'
library.
9 Pitcairn's Criminal Trials, III., pp. 7, 11.
* Record of Privy Council, 11th Jan., 1608.
318 PREPARATIONS FOR A NEW [1G08.
but denied having hurt with his own hand any of the
keepers, some of whom were severely wounded.1 For
some reason which does not appear in any of the State
papers of the time, the trial of Sir James Macdonald
was now postponed until the month of May, 1609.
The King, having experienced the inutility of trusting
to the Scottish militia alone for the furtherance of his
projects in the Isles, now determined to employ, in.
addition, some regular troops and ships of war from
Ireland. In the month of March, 1608, this intention
was announced to the lieges in Scotland by a proclama-
tion, which (as a sufficient number of troops could not
be spared from the Irish garrisons) summoned, to the
aid of those intended to be sent, the militia of the shires
of Dunbarton, Argyle, Tarbert, Ayr, Renfrew, and
Galloway, directing them to meet at Isla, on the first
of June, with the forces from Ireland. No lieu-
tenant was yet named to have the chief authority over
the expedition ; but it was contemplated, at this time,
that there should be two of these officers — one for the
South, another for the North Isles. Another proclama-
tion was made at the same time, forbidding the chiefs on
the mainland opposite the Isles to harbour or give
supplies to any of the Islesmen, under the highest
penalties. The Scottish Privy Council seem to have
neglected nothing which might tend to facilitate the
execution of an enterprise implying so much cost
and such lengthened preparations. They granted a
commission to Andrew, Lord Stewart of Ochiltree,
and Andrew Knox, Bishop of the Isles, to meet and
confer with Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg and Hector
Maclean of Dowart, and to receive offers from these
1 Criminal Trials, HI. 11.
1608.] EXPEDITION TO THE ISLES. 319
chiefs. A month later, this commission was renewed,
with the addition of Sir James Hay of Beauly,
Comptroller to the Commissioners, who were required
to report the result of their conference on or before the
20th of May. Very minute instructions were given by
the Council as to the terms to be demanded from the
Islanders by the Commissioners. These terms compre-
hended— First, Security for his Majesty's rents; Secondly,
Obedience to the laws by the chiefs and all their fol-
lowers; Thirdly, Delivery by the chiefs of all "houses of
defence, strongholds, and crannaks," to be placed at the
King's disposal; Fourthly, Renunciation by the chiefs of
all jurisdictions which they claimed, heritably or other-
wise, and submission to the jurisdiction of sheriffs,
bailies, justices, or other officers appointed by the
Crown ; Fifthly, That they should be satisfied with such
lands and possessions, and under such conditions as the
King might appoint; Sixthly, That their whole birlings,
lymphads, and galleys should be destroyed, save those
required for carrying to the mainland his Majesty's rents
paid in kind, and other necessary purposes ; Seventhly,
That they, and such of their kinsmen as could afford it,
should put their children to school, under the directions
of the Privy Council ; Lastly, That they should abstain
from using guns, bows, and two-handed swords, and
should confine themselves to single-handed swords and
targes. A mandate was issued to Angus Macdonald,
his son, Angus Oig, and all others, keepers of the Castle
of Dunyveg, charging them to surrender that fortress
to the officer bearer of the mandate, within twenty-four
hours after his arrival. At the same time, a new pro-
clamation was made, adding to the militia formerly
summoned to meet at Isla on the 1st of June the
320 FURTHER PREPARATIONS. [1608.
array of Edinburgh and the other southern counties,
and of Stirling, Fife, Kinross, Perth, Clackmannan,
and Forfarshires. This proclamation proceeded oa
the ground that the service in the Isles would be a
great burden on those formerly charged to undertake
it ; and that, a$ the whole country would benefit equally
by the success of the enterprise, every county should
bear its portion of the burden. This change having
rendered delay necessary, the day of meeting at Isla
was now postponed from the 1st of June to the 1st of
July.1
The above proclamations of the Privy Council were,
in the month of May, approved of by Parliament ; after
an attempt, on the part of the Government, to procure a
sum of money from the estates in lieu of their personal
service had failed. The Parliament declared they
were ready to serve his Majesty according to the
proclamation j but refused to tax themselves.2 The
preparations for the service in the Isles seemed now
to proceed with great vigour. Vessels were ordered to
be in readiness to transport the Lowland militia to the
Isles ; the enlisting of soldier for foreign service was
forbidden during the continuance of the present service ;
and the burghers of the west were ordered to prepare a
number of boats, well furnished with biscuit, ale, wine,
beer, and other victuals, for the support of the army, to
whom these provisions were to be sold at a reasonable
rate for ready money. The Bishop of the Isles was. sent by
the Council to the King to ascertain finally his Majesty's
resolutions on certain important points, and particu-
larly in regard to a recommendation of the Council,
i Record of Privy Council, from 8th March to 14th April, 1608.
3 Acts of Parliament, IV. 404.
1608.] LORD OCHILTREE NAMED A3 LIEUTENANT. 321
that only one lieutenant should be employed against
all the Isles. A body of five hundred soldiers was
ordered to be levied as a guard to the Lieutenant, and
the sum of ten thousand merks was allotted for their
monthly pay and transports
Upon the return of the Bishop from Court, it appeared
that Lord Ochiltree was the person chosen by the King
to act as Lieutenant over the Isles, as being a noble-
man of whose "fidelity, courage, and magnanimity,"
his Majesty had had sufficient proof. The King wrote
very fully in answer to the queries proposed to him,
enjoining particularly the appointment of a council to
assist Lord Ochiltree, and that the Bishop should be at
the head of this body; the other members of which, with
one exception, were to be chosen from among the
gentlemen summoned to attend the Lieutenant on the
service. The remaining counsellor was to be named by
the Comptroller, " the better to attend to all matters
concerning the augmentation or more sure payment of
the King's rents in the Isles." Full power was conferred
upon Ochiltree to treat with all or any of the Islanders,
and encourage them to obedience, according to certain
directions laid down, by which the King's opinion was
to be taken in each case. Such castles and strengths
in the Isles as the Lieutenant and his council should
think fit, were to be garrisoned by him — all the others
were to be demolished. Provision was made for a body-
guard of thirty men to the Bishop at the public cost,
on account of the poverty of his see ; and while the
King remitted to the consideration of the Privy Council
the most proper course to be taken with regard to Sir
1 Record of Privy Council, 21st May to 9th June, 1608; various
Letters among Denmylne MS., Advocates' Library, ad tempus.
24
322 OCHILTREE PROCEEDS TO THE ISLES. [1608.
James Macdonald, he gave at the same time strict in-
junctions for the safe custody of this restless and daring
chief.1 The further preparations for this insular expe-
dition were not completed till early in the month of
August, when Lord Ochiltree, with the Scottish division
of the forces, was joined off the island of Isla by some
yessels and troops from Ireland under Sir William St.
John, and the armament was, at a later period, still
further increased by the arrival of an English galley
and another vessel, the latter of which carried a batter-
ing train with its necessary ammunition. The Castle
of Dunyveg, in Isla, was delivered to the Lieutenant by
Angus Macdonald without hesitation, along with the
Fort of Lochgorme in the same island. The latter was
instantly demolished ; but a garrison of twenty-four men
was placed in the former. On the 14th of August the
armament sailed from Isla, and on the 15th, after a
very tempestuous voyage, reached the Castle of Dowart
in the Sound of Mull. This fortress having been sum-
moned in the regular manner, was surrendered by its
proprietor, Hector Maclean of Dowart, to Lord OchUk
tree, by whom it was garrisoned and furnished on the
17th. Ochiltree had previously proclaimed, that as
Royal Lieutenant he would hold a court at the Castle
of Aros in Mull, to which all the chiefs in the Isles were
, summoned, and at which he proposed, among other
things, to carry into effect in Mull that part of his com-
mission relating to the destruction of the lymphads,
birlings, and Highland galleys. But in the meantime,
having ascertained that this would be attended with great
injustice to the Islanders, unless the galleys and other
1 Record of Privy Council, 14th Jane to 9th July, 1608.
1608.] SUBMISSION OF THE ISLANDEBS. 323
vessels on the adjacent coasts of the mainland were
likewise destroyed, so as to secure the Isles from moles-
tation on the part of their neighbours, he wrote to the
Council for further instructions on this point, requesting
also permission to deal with the mainland castles as he
should think proper.1 The powers he requested were
immediately granted to him, under a reservation which
saved from destruction the boats and vessels belonging
to u obedient subjects/' 2 At Aros the following Isles*
men assembled to attend the Lieutenant's court — viz.,
Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg; Hector Maclean of
Dowart; Lauchlan, his brother; Donald Gorme Mac-
donald of SI eat; Donald Mac Allan, captain of the
Clanranald; Ruari Macleod of Harris; Allaster, his
brother; and Neill MacHduy, and Neill MacRuari, two
gentlemen in Mull, followers of Maclean of Dowart;
who all, if we may believe the report of Lord Ochiltree,
placed themselves at his disposal without condition or
promise.3 It appears, however, from a contemporary
author, that this report cannot altogether be depended
on. According to this writer, Ochiltree conferred at
length with the Islanders, "giving them fair words,
promising to be their friend, and to deal with the King
in their favour." Having taken very strict order with
Angus Macdonald for his future obedience, he suffered
that chief to depart home. But not finding the others
so ready to accede to all his proposals, the Lieutenant,
by the advice of his chief counsellor, the Bishop of the
1 Letter from Lord Ochiltree to the Privy Council, dated at
Dowart, in Mull, 18th August, 1608 ; Denmylne MS., Advocates'
Library.
2 Record of Privy Council, lBt September, 1608.
8 Ibid, 5th October, 1608.
324 OCHILTREE KIDNAPS THE CHIEFS. [1608.
Isles, invited them to hear a sermon preached by that
prelate on board the King's ship, called the Moon, and
afterwards prevailed .upon them to dine with him on
board. Buari Macleod of Harris alone refused to enter
the vessel, suspecting some sinister design. When
dinner was ended, Ochiltree told the astonished chiefs
that they were his prisoners by the King's order, and
weighing anchor, he sailed direct to Ayr, whence he
shortly proceeded with his prisoners to Edinburgh, and
presented them before the Privy Council,1 by whose
orders they were placed in the several Castles of Dun-
barton, Blackness, and Stirling. In the report of his
proceedings which Ochiltree on this occasion gave in to
the Privy Council, he assigned the lateness of the season
as an excuse for his not having proceeded against Mac-
neill of Barra and Macleod of Lewis, intimating at the
same time that the former of these chiefs was a depender
upon Maclean of Dowart, who would answer for his
obedience. He stated, likewise, that he had, in com-
pliance with a letter from the Comptroller, restored to
Maclean the Castles of Dowart and Aros, upon the
promise of that chief to surrender them when required j
that he had taken surety for the delivery of the Castle
of Mingarry in Ardnamurchan ; and that he had broken
and destroyed all the galleys and other vessels he could
find in those parts of the Isles which he visited.2
The imprisonment of so many powerful chiefs at one
time afforded to the King a fairer opportunity than he
had yet enjoyed of improving the condition of the Isles,
in conformity with his long cherished projects ; nor was
1 Chronicle of the Kings of Scotland, printed by the Maitland
Club, p. 176 ; Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, 1. 113, 114.
* Record of Privy Council, 5th October, 1608.
1608.] PLANS FOR IMPROVING THE ISLtiS. 325
he backward in availing himself of it. The Islanders,
also, finding themselves in his power, presented most
humble petitions, submitting themselves entirely to his
pleasure, making many offers in order to procure their
liberation, and taking credit for having come willingly
with the Lieutenant to give their obedience before the
Privy Council.1 A number of Commissioners, selected
from the nobility, the prelates, and the officers of state,
were appointed to receive the offers of the Islesmen,
and to consult and deliberate upon all matters connected
with the civilisation of the Isles and the increase of his
Majesty's rents. The chief of these Commissioners
were, the Archbishop of Glasgow, the Bishop of the
Isles, Lord Ochiltree, and Sir James Hay of Kingask,
Comptroller; and they entered upon the discharge of
their duties under very minute instructions from the
King, which expressly provided that, in every case, the
result of their deliberations should be submitted for the
approval of his Majesty. From these instructions we
find that, although James was actively engaged in expel-
ling most of the Irish inhabitants from Ulster, and in
granting their lands to settlers from England and Scot-
land, yet he now hesitated to treat, with like severity,
the same Scottish Islanders whom in the preceding year
he had actually proposed to extirpate. His chief
object now seems to have been to curtail the power of
the great proprietors, by procuring from them the
voluntary surrender of considerable portions of the
estates which they claimed as their inheritance.2 In
1 Original Petition of Donald Gorme, Maclean of Dowart, and
the captain of Clanranald (MS., Adv. Lib., A. 2, 4, No. 17), dated
10th November, 1608. Record of Privy Council, February, 1609.
3 Royal Commission and Instructions for settling the affairs of
326 DELIBERATIONS AS TO THE ISLES. [1603.
this, as in many of his projects, which sounded well in
theory, James was disappointed; but other suggestions
made by him at this time, favoured as they were by
circumstances, and followed up with zeal by the Com-
missioners, were productive of so much benefit, that
from this time we may trace a gradual and permanent
improvement of the Isles and adjacent Highlands.
In the early part of the year 1609, many
communications took place between the Com-
missioners for the Isles and the chiefs of the Islanders,
as well those who remained in prison as those who
were still at large. The offers made by the chiefs were
carefully considered by the Commissioners; and the
result of the deliberations of the latter was submitted
to the King by the Bishop of the Isles, who went to Court
as their representative. In case of resistance on the
part of any of the Islanders to such measures as might
be finally determined on by the Government, the most
effectual means were taken to deprive them of shelter or
support from the proprietors on the mainland, by bind-
ing the latter, under heavy penalties, to oppose the
rebels.1 At the same time, in order probably to strike
terror into those chiefs who were supposed to meditate
resistance, Sir James Macdonald, who had lain so long
in prison, was brought to trial, and condemned to death.
The crimes charged against him were, first, his setting
fire to the house of Askomull, and making prisoner of
the Isles, dated 6th December, 1608, and recorded in the Books of
Privy Council, 6th February, 1609.
1 Record of Privy Council, 6th February to 12th May, 1609. On
the latter day, Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg, having presented
himself before the Privy Council, was committed to ward in the
Castle of Blackness.
1609.] TRIAL OF SIS JAMES MAGDONALD. 327
bis father, which was alleged to be " maist high and
manifest treasoun;" and, secondly, the treasonable
attempts made by him, at different times, to " break
ward/' or escape from prison. In regard to the first
charge, he denied the fire-raising, and produced a war-
rant from the King approving of his conduct in appre-
hending his father. This warrant, however, Sir James
afterwards withdrew, and declined to use. He then
protested that no evidence taken against him by the
Earl of Argyle should be admitted at this trial, on the
ground that the Earl had seized his estate, and was
his enemy, and the enemy of his clan. Nevertheless,
Sir James was convicted, on the evidence of his father
and mother, not delivered in court, but transmitted in
writing to the Lord Advocate by the Earl of Argyle,
himself the supreme criminal judge in Scotland, from
whom the Justice Depute who tried the case held his
commission. The second charge — that of breaking
ward — Macdonald admitted, with the exception of the
allegation, that, in his last attempt to escape, he had
wounded severely some of his keepers ; but the evidence
of the latter clearly established his guilt in this particu-
lar. A verdict of guilty was returned, by a jury com-
posed of Lowland gentlemen of landed property,
through their chancellor or foreman, Lord Ochiltree ;
and after an imprisonment of nearly six years, Sir
James was sentenced to be beheaded as a traitor, and
all his lands and possessions were declared forfeited to
the Crown.1 He was then conveyed back to his former
dungeon in the Castle of Edinburgh, where, instead of
suffering the penalty of his treason, he was allowed to
i Criminal Trials, IR, p. 5-10.
328 HE IS CONVICTED BUT NOT EXECUTED. [1609.
linger under sentence of death for six years longer,
until, at length, his escape put it out of the power of
the Government to bring him to execution. It is not
difficult to account for the lenity thus shown towards an
individual described in the indictment against him as
a monster of barbarity from his youth upwards, and
actually convicted of many treasonable crimes. Allu-
sion has been made to a warrant or letter from the
King, approving of Sir James Macdonald's conduct in
regard to the apprehension and imprisonment of his
father, Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg (supra, p. 282).
That such a warrant existed, there can be no doubt; and
that it would not have represented his Majesty in the
most favourable point of view, is very probable ; but the
precise terms of it are* now unknown. It seems
clear, however, that the King and his advisers dreaded
the publication of it. Hence, in return for the com-
plaisance of the prisoner in withholding from the jury
a document of this delicate nature, Macdonald, ia
all probability, received an assurance that it was not
intended to carry into effect the capital part of his
sentence. Hopes of an ultimate pardon, too, may
have been held out; and, on the other hand, Sir
James must have been well aware, that, to persist in
exposing the King, would necessarily take away the
only chance of life yet left to him, by preventing the
exercise of the Royal prerogative of mercy. But in
whatever manner we may account for the fact, certain
it is that Macdonald was not executed according to his
sentence, and that he lay in prison until he effected his
escape in 1615, when he once more exerted, although
for a short time, a powerful influence over the Islanders,
as will appear more fully in the course of the present work.
1609.] PROJECTED SURVEY OF THE ISLES. 329
The Bishop of the Isles, who had, early in the present
year, been sent by the Commissioners of the Isles to
Court, in order to communicate the result of their
deliberations to the King, returned in the end of June,
bearing instructions as to the course which, after a
review of the whole subject, his Majesty considered the
most proper to be followed. This was, that the Bishop
of the Isles and the Comptroller should, in the present
summer, visit and survey the Isles, being accompanied,
both 'in their voyage thither and in their return, by
Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg and Hector Maclean
of Dowart, who were to be liberated for this purpose.
The other chiefs and gentlemen already in prison were
to remain in prison till the return of the Commissioners
from their survey ; and to procure the attendance of as
many of the remaining chiefs as possible before the
Privy Council, the Bishop and Comptroller were to be
empowered to give letters of safe conduct to such as
would promise to come to Edinburgh. The Commis-
sioners for the Isles, however, availed themselves of a
discretionary power given to them by the King, in
regard to the proposed survey, so as to alter materially
the plan suggested by his Majesty. The Bishop of the
Isles was deputed to proceed as sole Commissioner on
this service ; and all the chiefs and gentlemen now in
prison were liberated, on finding security to a large
amount, not only for their return to Edinburgh by a
certain fixed day, but for their active concurrence, in
the meantime/with the Bishop in making the projected
survey. Three thousand pounds were allowed to the
latter for his expenses ; and in case any of the Islanders
should, after the* offer of a safe conduct, still refuse to
come before the Privy Council, the Bishop was armed
330 IMPORTANT MEETING AT ICOLMKILL. [1609.
with fall power to compel their obedience by the assist-
ance of the well-disposed chiefs and their followers.1
The Bishop set sail on his mission about the middle of
July, and so complete were the arrangements made,
that, before the end of that month, almost all the prin-
cipal Islesmen met him in the celebrated Island of
Icolmkill or Iona, and submitted themselves to him, as
the Royal representative, in the most unreserved manner.2
Determined to take advantage of this unanimity, the
Bishop held a court, in which, with the consent of the
assembled chiefs, nine statutes of the utmost importance
for the improvement of the Isles were enacted ; and the
obedience of the natives to these statutes insured, as far
as this could be done, by the bonds and solemn oaths
of their superiors. The " Statutes of Icolmkill " deserve
the particular attention of the lover of Highland history.
The first statute proceeded upon the narrative of the
gross ignorance and barbarity of the Islanders, alleged
to have arisen partly from the small number of their
clergy, and partly from the contempt in which this small
number of pastors was held. To remedy this state of
things, it was agreed that proper obedience should be
given to the clergy — (whose number, much diminished
by the Reformation, it was proposed to increase) — that
1 Record of Privy Council, June, 1609.
rr 9 The chiefs and gentlemen who met the Bishop at this time
were— Angus Macdonald of Dunyveg; Hector Maclean of Dowart;
Donald Gorme of Sleat ; Euari Macleod of Harris ; Donald MacAllau
Vic Ian of Banteram (captain of the Clanranald) ; Lauchlan Maclean
of Coll ; Lauchlan Mackinnon of that Hk ; Hector Maclean of Loch-
buy; Lauchlan and Allan Macleans, brothers-gennan to Dowart;
Gillespick Macquarrie of Ulva; and Donald Macfie in Colonsay.
— Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, 1. 119. Record of Privy Council,
27th July, 1610.
1609.] STATUTES OF ICOLMKILL. 331
their stipends should be regularly paid — that ruinous
churches should be rebuilt — that the Sabbaths should
be solemnly kept ; and that in all respects they should
observe the discipline of the Reformed Kirk, as esta-
blished by Act of Parliament. By one of the clauses of
this statute marriages contracted far certain years were
declared illegal; a proof that the ancient practice of
handfasting still prevailed to a certain extent. The
second statute ordained the establishment of inns at the
most convenient places in the several Isles ; and this
not only for the convenience of travellers, but to relieve
the tenants and labourers of the ground from the
great burden and expense caused to them through the
want of houses of public entertainment. The third
statute was intended to diminish the number of idle
persons, whether masterless vagabonds or belonging to
the households of the chiefs and landlords; for experience
had shown that the expense of supporting these idlers
fell chiefly upon the tenantry in addition to their usual
rents. It was therefore enacted that no man should
be suffered to reside within the Isles who had not a
sufficient revenue of his own ; or who, at least, did not
follow some trade by which he might live. With
regard to the great households hitherto kept by the
chiefs, a limit was put to the number of individuals of
which each household was to consist in future, according
to the rank and estate of the master ; and it was further
provided that each chief should support his household
from his own means, not by a tax upon his tenantry.
The fourth statute provided that all persons, not natives
of the Isles, who should be found sorning, or living at
free quarters upon the poor inhabitants (an evil which
seems to have reached a great height), should be tried
332 STATUTES OF ICOLMKILL. [1609.
and punished by the Judge Ordinary as thieves and
oppressors. The fifth statute proceeded upon the nar-
rative that one of the chief causes of the great poverty
of the Isles, and of the cruelty and inhuman barbarity
practised in their feuds, was their inordinate love of
strong wines and aquavite, which they purchased partly
from dealers among themselves, partly from merchants
belonging to the mainland. Power was, therefore,
given to any person whatever to seize, without payment,
any wine or aquavite imported for sale by a native
merchant ; and if an Islander should buy any of the
prohibited articles from a mainland trader, he was to
incur the penalty of forty pounds for the first offence;
one hundred pounds for the second ; and for the third,
the loss of his whole possessions and movable goods.
It was, however, declared to be lawful for an individual
to brew as much aquavite as his own family might
require ; and the barons and wealthy gentlemen were
permitted to purchase in the Lowlands the wine and
other liquors required for their private consumption.
The sixth statute attributed the "ignorance and in-
civilitie " of the Islanders to the neglect of good educa-
tion among the youth; and to remedy this fault, enacted
that every gentleman or yeoman possessed of sixty
cattle should send his eldest son, or, if he had no male
children, his eldest daughter, to school in the Lowlands,
and maintain his child there till it had learned to speak,
read, and write English. The seventh statute forbade
the use of any description of fire arms, even for the
destruction of game, under the penalties contained in
an Act of Parliament passed in the present reign, which
had never yet received obedience from the Islanders,
" owing to their monstrous deadly feuds." The eighth
1609.] EFFECTS OF THESE STATUTES. 333
statute was directed against bards and other idlers of
that class. The gentry were forbidden to encourage
them ; and the bards themselves were threatened, first
with the stocks and then with banishment. The ninth
statute contained some necessary enactments for en-
forcing obedience to the preceding acts. Such were the
statutes of Icolmkill; for the better observance of which,
and of the laws of the realm and Acts of Parliament
in general, the Bishop took from the assembled chiefs
a very strict bond.1 This bond, moreover, contained
a sort of confession of faith on the part of the sub-
scribers, and an unconditional acknowledgment of his
Majesty's supreme authority in all matters both spiritual
and temporal, according to his "most lovable act of
supremacy." It is a fact which may appear startling
to many, but it is not the less evident on that account,
that the first traces of that overflowing loyalty to the
house of Stewart for which the Highlanders have been
so highly lauded, are to be found in that generation of
their chiefs whose education was conducted on the high
church and state principles of the British Solomon.
There is no room to doubt that the chiefs who followed
Montrose in the great civil war were actuated by a very
different spirit from their fathers ; and it is well worthy
of notice that this difference was produced in the course
of a single generation, by the operation of measures
which first began to take effect after the year 1609.
. In the month of September the Bishop appeared
before the Lords Commissioners for the Isles in Edin-
burgh, and presented a report of his proceedings ; but,
i Record of Privy Council, 27th July, 1610. The statutes and bond
were dated the 23rd and 24th August, 1609. See also Collectanea de
Rebus Albanicis, I., p. 115-120.
334 ACT AS TO THE TRADE IN CATTLE. [1609.
as he proposed immediately going to Court to wait upon
his Majesty, the Report was returned to him in order to
be shown to the King. In the meantime, until his
Majesty's pleasure should be signified, the necessary
measures were taken by the Lords Commissioners for
securing a general attendance of the Islanders before
them in the month of February following. This term
was afterwards prolonged till the end of June, on the
ground that the King had not as yet resolved what course
to take for settling the affairs of the Isles. At the time
the Bishop of the Isles returned from his survey a
complaint was made to the Lords Commissioners by
Maclean of Dowart, Macdonald of Isla, and other chiefs,
against an oppressive proclamation, by which the inhabit-
ants of the mainland of Argyle were prohibited from
purchasing cattle, horses, or other goods, within any of
the Western Isles. It does not appear by whom this pro-
clamation was issued ; but as it was calculated to hurt
his Majesty's revenue from the Isles, which the tenants
could only pay by disposing of their produce to dealers
from the mainland, it was immediately annulled by the
Lords Commissioners as unlawful, and all the lieges
were strictly prohibited from interfering with the trade
of the Isles.1
We have seen that about the year 1608 the Isle of
Lewis had been granted anew to three persons — Lord
Balmerino, Sir George Hay, and Sir James Spens. The
trial and conviction of Balmerino for high treason in
March, 1609, effectually precluded that nobleman from
taking any active share in the enterprise of colonising
1 Record of Privy Council, 28th September, 1609, to 15th Much9
1610. Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, 1. 153.
1609.] FAILURE OF THE LEWIS COLONISTS. 335
the island; but Hay and Spens made very extensive
preparations for availing themselves of the Royal grant.
With their own forces, and assisted by many of the
neighbouring Highlanders, they invaded the Lewis, not
only to set on foot their colony, but to apprehend, if
possible, Neill Macleod, who still held out and opposed
their designs. Neill was secretly encouraged by Mac-
kenzie of Kintaill, who, however, escaped suspicion by
sending his brother (afterwards the Tutor of Kintaill)
to aid the colonists. Having shipped some victuals
in Ross for the supply of the colonists, Mackenzie
secretly procured the vessel to be seized, on her
passage to the Lewis, by Neill Macleod; expecting
that the adventurers, trusting to these provisions
and disappointed, would be forced to abandon the
island. This expectation was fulfilled ; for Sir George
Hay and Sir James Spens being unsuccessful in appre-
hending Neill, and lacking victuals for their followers,
were forced to quit the island and disband their forces,
leaving, however, a small garrison in the fort of Stor-
noway, until they should send a supply of men and
provisions. The fort was very soon after their departure
surprised and burned by Neill Macleod, and the garrison
taken prisoners. These he sent home safely to Fife :
and thus ended the last attempt made by the Low-
landers to colonise the Lewis. Disgusted
with their want of success, Sir George Hay
and Sir James Spens were easily prevailed on to sell
their title to the Lord of Kintaill, who likewise suc-
ceeded in obtaining from the King a grant of the share
in the island forfeited by Lord Balmerino.1 Having
i Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 274 ; Beg. of Privy Seal,
LXXIX., fo. 91 ; Letterfearn MS.
336 KINTAILL ACQUIRES THE LEWIS. [1610.
now at length acquired a legal right to the Lewis,
Mackenzie lost no time in asserting his claims. He
procured from the Government a commission of fire
and sword against the Lewismen ; 1 and, landing in the
island with a large force of his clan and followers,
speedily reduced the Islanders to obedience, with the
exception of Neill Macleod and a few of his followers.
As the Siol Torquil never after this succeeded in
making head in the Lewis, it may be proper here to
notice briefly the fate of such of the leaders of that
unfortunate tribe as still survived.
Neill Macleod, the bastard, with his nephews, Mal-
colm, William, and Ruari (sons of Ruari Oig), and
about thirty others, retired to an insulated rock, called
Berrisay, on the west coast of Lewis, where they main-
tained themselves for nearly three years.2 Being then
forced to evacuate this strength by the Mackenzies,
Neill retired to Harris, where he remained for a while
in secret, but at length surrendered himself to Ruari
Macleod of Harris, whom he entreated to take him to
the King in England. This the chief of Harris under-
took to do; but when at Glasgow with his prisoner,
preparing to embark for England, he was charged,
under pain of treason, to deliver Neill Macleod to the
Privy Council at Edinburgh, which he accordingly did ;
and, at the same time, gave up Neill's son, Donald.
Neill was brought to trial, convicted, and executed, and
1 Becord of Privy Council, 19th July, 1610.
9 While dwelling on this rock, Neill Macleod, hoping to make his
peace with the Government, captured a pirate vessel, commanded by
a Captain Love, who with his crew was afterwards hanged. — Criminal
Trials, III. 100. Collectanea de Rebus Albanicis, I. 48, 49. Letter-
fearn MS.
1610.] BUD* OF THE SIOL TORQUUL 337
died "very christianlie " in April, 1613. Donald, his
son, being banished out of Scotland, went to England
and remained there three years, under the protection of
Sir Robert Gordon, Tutor of Sutherland. From Eng-
land he afterwards went to Holland, where he died.
After the death of Neill Macleod, the Tutor of Kintaill
apprehended and executed Ruari and William, two of
the sons of Ruari Oig Macleod. Malcolm, the third
son, was apprehended at the same time, but made his
escape, and continued to harass the Mackenzies with
frequent incursions, having allied himself to the Clan-
donald of Isla and Kintyre, in whose rebellion under
Sir James Macdonald, in 1615, Malcolm MacRuari
Macleod took a prominent part. On the suppression
of this rebellion, he retired to Flanders, whence, in 1616,
he made a visit to the Lewis, and there killed two
gentlemen of the Clankenzie. He then joined Sir
James Macdonald in Spain, and remained there till the
return of that chief to Britain in 1620. On this occa-
sion, Malcolm Macleod accompanied Sir James; and
of his further history we only know that, in 1622 and
in 1626, commissions of fire and sword were granted to
Lord Kintaill and his clan, against " Malcolm Mac-
Ruari Macleod."1 Tormod Macleod, the last surviving
legitimate son of old Ruari Macleod of the Lewis, was
imprisoned, as we have seen, in Edinburgh Castle, in
1605 (supra, p. 310). Here he remained for ten years,
when the King gave him liberty to go to Holland, to the
service of Maurice, Prince of Orange ; and he died in
that country. His elder brother-german, Torquil Dubh,
executed by the Mackenzies in 1597 (supra, p. 271), left
1 Record of Privy Council, 14th November, 1622 ; 28th November,
1626.
25
338 RtJIN OF THE SIOL TORQUIL. [1610.
issue by his wife, a sister of Ruari Macleod of Harris,
three sons, Ruari, William, and Torquil. The second of
these seems to have died soon; and although the others
are mentioned by Sir Robert Gordon as youths of great
promise at the time he wrote his account of the Siol
Torquil, they appear to have both died without lawful
issue to inherit their claims to the Lewis, which has ,
now remained for upwards of two centuries, without
challenge, in the possession of the Mackenzies.1 The
representation of the ancient and powerful family of
Macleod of Lewis devolved, on the extinction of the
main stem, on Gillechallum Oig Macleod, or MacGille-
challum of Rasay, whose father, Gillechallum Garve, is
mentioned, in a charter dated 1572, as heir-male of the
family of Lewis, failing issue male of the body of Ruari
Macleod, then chief of the Siol Torquil.2
* Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, pp. 270-6. Criminal
Trials, III. 244-7. Record of Privy Council, 19th July, 1610, 2nd
March, 1613, and 9th February, 1615. Lettcrfearn MS.
* Reg. of Great Seal, Lib. XXXIII., No. 31. This Gillechallum
Garve it was, who, when a child, escaped by accident, when many of
his family were massacred. — Supra, p. 212.
339
CHAP. VIIL
FROM THE ACQUISITION OP THE LEWIS BY THE LORD OF KIN-
TAILL, TO THE SUPPRESSION OF THE GREAT REBELLION OF
THE CLANDONALD OF ISLA.— 1610-1615.
»
The King having signified to the Scottish
Privy Council his approval of the Bishop's
proceedings, and given certain general instructions for
the furtherance of the work so well begun, six of the
principal Islanders assembled in Edinburgh, on the
28th of June, to hear his Majesty's pleasure declared
to them. Maclean of Dowart, Macdonald of Sleat,
Macdonald of Dunyveg, Macleod of Harris, the cap-
tain of Clanranald, and Mackinnon of Strathordell,
were those who now presented themselves before the
Council ; and to them was joined Cameron of Lochiel,
or (as he is styled in the record) Allan Cameron Mao
Ianduy of Lochaber. The first step taken by the
Government was to compel these chiefs to give sureties
to a large amount for their reappearance before the
Council in May, 1611. The next, was to cause them
to give their solemn promise that they should concur
with and assist the King's Lieutenants, Justices, and
Commissioners, in all matters connected with the Isles ;
that they should all live together in future in peace,
love, and amity ; and that they should follow out any
questions that might arise among them according to
340 PROCEEDINGS OF THE PRIVY COUNCIL. [1611.
the ordinary course of law and justice. At the same
time a particular feud between the captain of Clan-
ranald and Lochiel,1 was composed by these chiefs
" heartily embracing one another, and chopping hands
together," in the presence of the Council, and promis-
ing to submit their disputes to the decision of the law.
A month later, in conformity with his Majesty's instruc-
tions, the Bishop of the Isles received a commission for
life, as Steward and Justice of all the North and West
Isles of Scotland (except Orkney and Shetland), with
the homage and service of the King's tenants in these
bounds, and all fees and casualties pertaining to the
offices conferred upon him. All former commissions
of Lieutenandry over the Isles were recalled, and jill
heritable jurisdictions, real or pretended, which might
interfere with the Exercise of the Bishop's commission,
were suspended. This prelate was likewise made con-
stable of the Castle of Dunyveg in Isla, which it was
arranged should be delivered over to him, or those
having his warrant, on the 10 th of August, by the gar-
rison which Lord Ochiltree had placed in it two years
before.2
The immediate result of all these pro-
ceedings was, that, during the year 1611, the
West Highlands and Isles were almost entirely free
from disorders or rebellions. The struggle between the
Mackenzies and Macleods for the Island of Lewis was
not yet at an end ; but it was evident that the force of
the latter clan was now broken, and that Ruari Mac-
kenzie of Cogeach, the Tutor of Kintaill (on whom, by
1 This fend seems to have regarded the lands of Knoydert
* Record of Privy Council, 8th May to 27& July, 1610; Beg. of
Privy Seal, LXXIX., fo. 78.
i
1612.] TEMPORARY TRANQUILLITY. 341
the death of his elder brother and the minority of his
nephew, the command of the Mackenzies had lately
devolved), had little difficulty in keeping the island
under subjection. The ancient feud between the Mac-
leods of Rasay and the Mackenzies of Gerloch, regard-
ing the lands of Gerloch, which, in the last year, had
displayed itself by mutual incursions, was brought to a
sudden close by a skirmish, in which Gillechallum Oig,
Laird of Kasay, and Murdoch Mackenzie, a younger
son of the Laird of Gerloch, were slain, in the month
of August, 1611. From this time the Mackenzies seem
to have possessed Gerloch without interruption from
the Macleods.1 The Clanchameron and the Qan-
ranald of Lochaber, under their respective chiefs, Allan
Cameron of Lochiel and Alexander MacRanald of
Keppoch, instead of waging war with each other, or
with the captain of the Clanchattan, were employed to
assist the Earl of Argyle in suppressing a serious
insurrection of the Clangregor.2 Several gentlemen
of the families of Lochiel and Keppoch refused, how-
ever, to engage on this service;8 which, indeed, if
carried into effect with good will by the Highland clans
employed, would have speedily ended in the utter ruin
of the name of Macgregor. The year 1612
A D 1612 o<-» */
was likewise a year of comparative tranquil-
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, pp. 276-278. Letter-
fearn MS.
3 Record of Privy Council, and Treasurer's Accounts, ad tempua.
MS. History of Camerons, which narrates fully the means employed
by Argyle to procure the assistance of Lochiel in this service.
8 Record of Privy Council, 25th February, 1612. Many of the
Clanchattan also, particularly the Macphersons, assisted to protect
•the Clangregor at this time. Ibid., 27th September, 1611.
342 CLAIMS OF ABGYLE TO LOCHIEL. [1613.
lity in the West Highlands; but the following year was
marked by several commotions.
The most important of these was caused
A "D i6i>.
'by dissensions among the Camerons, which
originated in the following manner. The Earl of
Argyle, in examining, about the year 1608, his charter
chest, discovered the title-deeds which, in the reign of
James V., Colin, third Earl of Argyle, had acquired to
the lands of Lochiel, through Sir John Campbell of
Calder, who had purchased the claim which Maclean
of Lochbuy possessed to these lands (supra, p. 126),
The successors of the third Earl had hitherto allowed
this claim to lie dormant, and it had in fact been for-
gotten until the evidence of it was accidentally dis-
covered as above-mentioned. The seventh Earl of
Argyle, eager to extend the influence of his family,
more particularly where this could be done at the
expense of his rival, the Marquis of Huntly, to whose
party the Clanchameron were attached, proceeded at
once to avail himself of his recently discovered claim to
the superiority of the lands of Lochiel. Having, in
order to obviate any difficulties that might arise, pro-
cured from Hector Maclean of Lochbuy, for a small
sum of money, a surrender of any title that chief might
be found to have to the lands in question, Argyle easily
succeeded in obtaining a new charter from the King in
his own favour.1 He then instituted the usual legal
process for removing Allan Cameron of Lochiel and
his clan from that part of their possessions, much to
the astonishment of Allan, who had never been led
to suspect any defect in the title-deeds under which
1 Reg. of Priyy Seal, LXXVIL, fo. 65.
1613.] HE IS OPPOSED BY HUNTLY, 343
he and his immediate predecessors had occupied the
lands. Hastening to Edinburgh to take advice touch*
ing this unexpected suit, Lochiel there met with the
Earl of Argyle, who prevailed on him to submit the
question to the decision of the lawyers of both parties.
That decision was in favour of the Earl, from whom
by agreement Lochiel then took a charter of the lands
in dispute, to be held by him as a vassal of Argyle.
The Marquis of Huntly, who was then superior of a
great part of Lochaber, and from whom Lochiel held
Mamore and other lands, was highly offended that
Argyle should so easily have obtained a footing in that
district ; and he endeavoured, by all means, to prevail
on Lochiel to violate the agreement he had lately
entered into. To this demand, Lochiel would on no
account consent; qualifying his refusal, however, by
many protestations that, although he now held that por-
tion of his estates under the Earl of Argyle, yet that his
so doing should not affect his obedience and service to the
Marquis of Huntly, but that he should continue as loyal
to that nobleman's family as he and his predecessors
had formerly been. This answer was far from satisfac-
tory to the Marquis, who secretly resolved upon Lochiel's
ruin; and as the easiest way to accomplish his object,
he sought to renew the dissensions which had, in the
minority of the present chief, caused so much bloodshed
in the Clanchameron (supra, p. 228). The Camerons
of Erracht, Kinlochiel, and Glennevis, and their sup-
porters, were easily induced to embrace an offer of the
Marquis to become his immediate vassals in those
lands which Lochiel had hitherto held from the family
of Huntly. Accordingly, the Marquis' eldest son, the
Earl of Enzie, proceeding to Lochaber with a body of
344 DISSENSIONS IN THE CLANCHAMERON. [1613.
his vassals, put his adherents among the Clanchameron
in possession of the lands of which, by the mere will of
the Marquis, Lochiel was now deprived. On the de-
parture of the Earl of Enzie, Lochiel appointed a
meeting with his hostile kinsmen, at which he pretended
that he was perfectly aware that they had been com-
pelled by force to enter into the Marquis' plans; and
he therefore requested them to restore the lands to him,
* when he doubted not he would be able to satisfy the
Marquis. At first they made a verbal promise to agree
to Lochiel's demands; but when he desired them to
subscribe a writing to that 'effect, they declined, and
pressed him to go with them to the Marquis, with whom
they engaged to reconcile him ; after which they were
to restore his lands. "Lochiel," says our authority,
" like ane auld subtile fox, perceiving their drift, and
being as careful to preserve his head as they were to
twine (separate) him from it/' promised to take the
matter into consideration, and parted from his refrac-
tory clansmen on apparently good terms. He then made
another journey to Edinburgh, to consult with his legal
advisers as to the most proper course he should pursue
to recover his lands again. While in that town he
received intelligence that his enemies in the clan had
appointed a meeting, to resolve by what means they
might have his life, and so secure themselves in their
new possessions. Upon this he hastened to Lochaber,
sending private notice to such as still adhered to him,
to meet him at a certain place, on the day appointed
for the assembling of the opposite faction, and within
a short distance of the spot selected for the meeting of
the latter. The chief supporters of Lochiel on this
occasion seem to have been the Gamerons of Callart,
*\
1613.] LOCHIEL CHASTISES HIS OPPONENTS. 345
Strone, and Letterfinlay. Placing the most of his
followers in ambush, Lochiel approached the rendezvous
of his opponents with six attendants only, and sent to
-demand a conference with a like number of the other
party. His enemies seeing Lochiel with so small a
force, and thinking he had only just arrived in the
•country, and had had no time to collect his adherents,
thought this a favourable opportunity for getting rid of
him, and accordingly made towards their chief and his
attendants, resolving to take the lives of the whole
party. The wary Lochiel retreated, so as to lead his
pursuers past the wood where the ambush lay, and then,
on a given signal, they were attacked both in front and
rear, and routed, with the loss of twenty of their prin-
cipal men killed (of whom Allaster Cameron of Glen-
nevis was one), and eight taken prisoners. The rest
were suffered to escape; and Lochiel then replaced
himself in possession of the disputed lands, teaching, as
our authority quaintly observes, "ane lessone to the
rest of his kin that are alyve, in what forme they shall
carrye themselves to their chief hereafter."1 On the
news of this proceeding — which even the historian of the
family allows was more necessary than justifiable —
reaching the Privy Council, Lochiel and his followers
were proclaimed rebels, a price was set upon the heads
of the leaders, and a commission of fire and sword
was given to the Marquis of Huntly and the Gordons
1 Original State Paper in Gen. Reg. House, titled " James
Primrois' Information anent the His and Hielandis, Sept., 1613."
(Primrose was then Clerk to the Privy Council.) Record of Privy
Council, December, 1613 ; July, 1617. Reg. of Privy Seal, LXXXIL,
f o. 285.
s
346 FEUD IN THE ISLE OF BARRA. [1613.
for their pursuit and apprehension.1 The Clancham-
eron, or at least that division of it which had followed
Lochiel in the late quarrel, continued for several years
in a state of outlawry ; but through the influence of the
Earl of Argyle, it seems to have suffered less than the
Clangregor in circumstances nearly similar.2
The next commotion, in point of importance, which
occurred in the west in this year, proceeded from a
dispute among the Macneills of Barra. Ruari Mac-
neill, the chief of that clan, had several sons by a lady
of the family of Maclean, with whom, according to an
ancient practice not then altogether disused in the Isles,
he had kandfasted, instead of marrying her. Having
afterwards married a sister of the captain of the Clan-
ranald, his nearest neighbour, his sons by that lady
were generally considered as his only legitimate sons, to
the exclusion of the senior family. The latter, how-
ever maintained their prior claims, until forced, by the
influence of the captain of the Clanranald, to yield to
their younger brothers. The eldest son of the senior
family having been concerned in an act of piracy com-
mitted on . a ship of Bourdeaux, was apprehended by
Clanranald in the Isle of Barra and conveyed to Edin-
burgh, where he died before being brought to trial. In
revenge of this, his brothers-german, assisted by Maclean
of Dowart, seized Neill Macneill, the eldest son of the
junior family, and nephew of Clanranald, and sent him
to Edinburgh to be tried as an actor in the piracy of
the Bourdeaux ship above mentioned. Of this, however,
1 Record of Privy Council, December, 1613 ; and Denmylne MS.,
Advocates1 Library, ad tempus,
3 MS. History of the Camerons.
1C13.] STATE OF THE SOUTH ISLES, 347
he was found innocent, and liberated through the influ-
ence of his uncle. Meantime, the surviving sons of the
first family, thinking that their father was too partial to
their brothers, seized the old chief and placed him in irons.
Being charged, by the usual legal process, to exhibit
their father before the Privy Council, theyrefused, where-
upon, being proclaimed rebels, commission was given
to the captain of Clanranald against them. They are
described as great " lymmars," who never professed his
Majesty's obedience, which induced the Council the more
readily to arm Clanranald (who, indeed, was the only chief
who could conveniently undertake the service) with this
commission.1 Clanranald seems to have used the powers
committed to him in such a way as to secure the peace-
able succession of his nephew to the estate of Barra on
the death of the old chief, which happened soon after.2
The South Jsles still continued tranquil. Angus
Macdonald of Dunyveg, the old chief of Isla, was now
dead, and a lease of that island, or the greater part of
it, had been granted to Sir Ranald Macdonald (after-
wards first Earl of Antrim), son of the well-known
Sorley Buy, and brother of Sir James Macdonald of
Dunluce. It is worthy of remark, that Sir Ranald, hav-
ing endeavoured to introduce various Irish laws and
customs among his tenants in Isla, met with such oppo-
sition from the natives, on the ground of these laws
being "foreign and strange," that he was at length
.
, i "James Primrois' Information anent the Ilis and Ilielandis,
September, 1G13," above quoted. Record of Privy Council, 27th
July, 1610, 5th December, 1611, 14th January, 1613. Gen. Reg. of
Homing*, Vol. LIIL, 15th July, 1629.
2 Gen. Reg. of Deeds, Vol. CCCCXXVIL, 1st June, 1630. Reg.
of Privy Seal, LXXXI., fo. 283. Charter in Ch. Chest of Barra,
dated 16th May, 1622.
348 STATE OF THE SOUTH ISLES. [1613.
compelled, by an order of the Privy Council, to forego
all such projects.1 The difference existing at this
period between the Irish customs and those of the
Hebrides, while the language of the people was almost
identical, must have arisen from the greater progress
made by the feudal system in the Highlands and Isles
than in Ireland. Some months later, Sir Ranald
MacSorley (as he was generally styled) was in treaty
with the Scottish Privy Council,2 probably for an heri-
table grant of Isla ; but the renewal of the disorders in
that island, which we shall speedily have to narrate, cut
short this negotiation.
Donald Gorme of Sleat, Ruari (now Sir Ruari)
Macleod of Harris, Hector Maclean of Dowart, and
Donald MacAllau, captain of the Clanranald, are
mentioned as having settled with the Exchequer in this
year, and as continuing in their obedience to the laws.s
It was feared, however, that a contemplated grant, by
the King, to Sir James Campbell of Lawers, of the
lands of Morvern, claimed by the Macleans, would force
that clan into rebellion. But, in that event, provision
was made that Lawers and his chief, the Earl of Argyle,
should reduce the Macleans to obedience at their own
charge, or else that the lands should be given up, to be
again at the disposal of his Majesty.4 This transac-
tion appears never to have been completed.
1 "James Primrois' Information," above quoted. Collectanea de
Rebus Albanicis, L, p. 160.
2 Denmylne MS., Advocates' Library, 8th Jane, 1613.
* " James Primrois' Information." Record of Privy Council,
January to July, 1613.
4 Orig. Memorial concerning the Highlands, in the handwriting of
Sir Thomas Hamilton, preserved in the General Register House, and
dated 13th April, 1613.
1614.] DUNYVEG SEIZED BT THE MACDONALDS. 349
In the spring of the year 1614, the Castle of
Dunyveg — which, for upwards of three years,
had been held by a small garrison placed in it by the
Bishop of the Isles, and which, from over security, was
carelessly guarded — was surprised and taken by a bastard
son of the late Angus Macdonald, named Ranald Oig,
and three or four of his associates. The report of this
event being carried to Angus Oig, the younger brother
of Sir James Macdonald of Isla, who was then living
within six miles of the castle, he immediately sent
round the fiery' cross to collect the country people to
assist him to recover the castle for the King. He then
gave it in charge to his kinsman, Coll MacGillespick,
commonly called Coll Keitache, or Left-handed, to besiege
Ranald Oig, who, with his party, evacuated the castle
and escaped by sea, after a siege of six days, when the
place was immediately occupied by Coll Macgille-
spick.1 Ranald was afterwards apprehended in Isla by
Angus Oig ; and when pressed to say who had advised
him to the enterprise of taking the castle from the
Bishop's garrison, told a very improbable story, by
which he endeavoured to lay the blame upon one Donald
Gorme, a bastard son of Sir James Macdonald. But
it was observed that he destroyed a letter which he had
previously kept concealed in his sleeve, and which,
although he declared it to be of no importance, he yet
at the same time admitted was a letter not to be seen.
For some time the castle remained in the hands of
Angus Oig, who professed his readiness to restore it to
the Bishop on receiving a remission for any offences
1 Information given to the Privy Council by Sir James Macdonald,
29th April, 1614, compared with the declarations of Angus Oig and
others ; Denmylne MS., Advocates9 Library.
350 DUNYVEG HELD AGAINST THE BISHOP. [1614.
committed by him and his supporters. It was said that
at this time he actually offered the castle to the former
garrison, who refused to receive it.1
Sir James Macdonald of Isla now presented a
petition to the Privy Council, showing the distress and
misery he had endured for many years past, and desir-
ing to be liberated, and to be allowed to reside in any
place the King might appoint, until an opportunity
should occur of employing him in his Majesty's service.
He offered surety for his appearance before the Council
whenever summoned, and for his not going to Kin tyre
or Isla without licence. As Sir James was still under
sentence of death, never having received a pardon, the
Privy Council declined interfering, until they had
ascertained his Majesty's pleasure.2 Before an answer
could have been received from Court, circumstances
occurred which must have influenced many of the Privy
Counsellors in Sir James9 favour. Information was
received from the Bishop of the Isles, who had gone
to Isla to procure the surrender of Dunyveg from the
Clandonald, that Angus Oig not only refused to deliver
up the castle, but had provided it for a siege. Suspi-
cion was thus excited that both Angus and his brother,
Sir James, were privy to the original design of surpris-
ing the castle. All the papers of the latter were seized
suddenly by a warrant from the Council, and Sir James
himself placed in strict confinement ; but on examining
these papers, it appeared that ever since the surprise of
the castle, Sir James had been advising his brother to
give it up. A letter from Angus Oig to the Council,
1 " Information " above cited, Denmylne MS., Adv. Lib.
9 Letter, Council to the King, 2nd Jane, 1614 ; Denmylne MS.
1614.] BISHOP KNOX AGAIN VISITS ISLA. 351
-which Sir James had not yet had time to forward, was also
found, offering to restore Dunyveg to the Bishop, provided
his own conduct in apprehending his bastard brother were
approved of. On a consideration of all these circum-
stances, the Privy Council, in order to test the loyalty of
Angus Oig, issued a mandate for his immediate delivery
of the castle to the Bishop. The latter was armed at
the same time with a commission of fire and sword,
and a proclamation for the concurrence of the lieges, if
he should find it necessary to attempt the recovery of
the place by force.1 The Clandonald, however, still
remained in possession of Dunyveg in the month of
August, when the Bishop, who had come to Edinburgh
to consult with the CouncD, set out on another journey
to Isla, carrying with him a conditional pardon to Angus
Oig and his adherents, provided they gave up the for-
tress at once. Such was the backwardness of those
appointed to assist the Bishop, owing to the fast
approach of harvest, that he was not able to land in
Isla till the 1 9th September, He had previously, while
in Arran making his preparations, sent messengers to
Tsla with the pardon ; but the Clandonald refused to
surrender the castle, unless to himself personally, and
upon receiving in writing a promise of his friendship
to them in future. As the Bishop had formerly incurred
much blame for keeping so insufficient a garrison in this
important place, he was now anxious to redeem his fault,
and, against his better judgment, he proceeded to Isla
with a very insufficient force. He had with him only
seventy men, of whom fifty were soldiers hired at his own
expense, and the remaining twenty were vassals of Sir
* Minutes of Council Proceedings, Denmylne MS., Advocates
Library, 9th June, 1614.
352 THE BISHOP FAILS TO BECOVER DUNYVEG, [1614.
Aulay MacAulay of Ardincaple. Of the great chiefs
in the Isles, Donald Gorme of Sleat was the only one
who gave the Bishop any support ; but as he was on his
way home from Edinburgh, after transacting business
with the Privy Council, he had with him only a small
personal escort. It was thought, however, that his
influence with the Clandonald of Isla would facilitate
the surrender of Dunyveg, and prevent further incon-
venience. Before leaving Arran, the Bishop despatched
the chief of Sleat and Sir Aulay MacAulay to warn
Angus Oig of his approach ; and, on his way to Isla,
he was joined by many of the Clandonald, who professed
their readiness to support him. On the morning of the
21st of September, however, the Bishop was suddenly
deserted by his new allies ; and at the same time the
chiefs of Sleat and Ardincaple returned from Dunyveg,
bearing an absolute refusal on the part of the garrison
to surrender the place. The Bishop was now placed
in a situation of peculiar difficulty. His force was too
small to attempt anything against the Clandonald, who
were hourly increasing in numbers; and he dreaded
the bad effects that might arise from his quitting the
island without effecting his purpose, and as if driven
from it. But his deliberations were cut short by the
promptitude of his opponents, who contrived to seize
and destroy his boats, four in number, and thus made
it impossible for him to quit the island without their
assistance. In these circumstances, the Bishop was
compelled to enter into a treaty with Angus Oig, by
which he promised to use his utmost endeavours to pro-
cure for that individual a seven years' lease of the Crown
lands of Isla (then possessed by Sir Ranald Mac-
Sorley), for the rent of eight thousand merks. He
1614.] AND IS COMPELLED TO GIVE HOSTAGES. S53
also engaged to procure his Majesty's licence for trans-
ferring the Castle of Dunyveg, in property, to Angus
Oig; and to do his best to obtain a pardon to the
Glandonald for all crimes committed prior to the date
of this treaty. To secure the performance of these
conditions, the Bishop was forced to leave in the hands
of Angus Oig his son, Mr. Thomas Knox, and his
nephew, John Knox of Ranfurlie, as hostages. The
Clandonald, on their part, promised to preserve the
hostages from danger; and although the Bishop might
happen to fail in procuring performance of the above
conditions, yet if they should be satisfied that he had
exerted himself to the utmost, they agreed to liberate
the hostages on payment of a ransom. They likewise
engaged to repay such sums of money as the Bishop
should be found to have expended in procuring the
above-mentioned lease and pardon, in the event of his
ultimate success.1 Matters being thus arranged for the
time, the Bishop was left at liberty to depart; but, before
doing so, he wrote to the Council, representing the
danger his relatives were in, and how treacherously he
had been deceived by the "pestiferous" Clandonald.
He added, that he proposed remaining in Isla till some-
thing could be done for the relief of his son and nephew.
The conclusion of his letter deserves particular notice,
as it serves to throw light on the secret history of the
late events in Isla. "The Clandonald/' says the
» Record of Privy Council, 11th August and 26th October, 1614 {
Letters, Bishop of the Isles to Lord Binning, 4th August and 23rd
September ; and Letters, Lord Binning to the Bishop and the Court,
8th, 6th, and 28th September ; also, Contract between the Bishop and
the Clandonald, dated at Dunyveg, 22nd September, 1614 ; all preserved
among the Denmylne MS., Advocates1 Library.
26
354 DOUBLE DEALING OF AKGYLE. [1614.
Bishop, " have built a new fort in a loch, which they
have manned and victualled. Angus Oig, their captain,
affirms, in the hearing of many witnesses, that he got
directions from the Earl of Argyle not to surrender
the castle ^ and that he (the Earl) should procure for
Angus the whole lands of Isla, and the house of Duny-
veg." i When Angus Oig was afterwards examined in
Edinburgh, by the Lord Advocate and other officers of
state, preparatory to his trial for high treason, he was
asked, " upon his great oath, if he knew that any great
man in the kingdom had anything to do with the busi-
ness of Isla, in any shape?" To this question, Angus
replied, that, soon after the taking of the castle, he had
received a message from a gentleman named Malcolm
Macneill, uncle to. the Laird of Taynish, bearing that
Macneill, being lately in company with the Earl of
Argyle when the taking of Dunyveg was the subject
of conversation, heard the Earl say, "that he was afraid
Angus Oig and his friends would give up the castle ;
and that, if they did so, it would turn to their utter wreck."
Macneill then asked the Earl if he might acquaint Angus
Oig with what had passed; to which Argyle replied, that
he might do so without danger, and that he (the Earl)
had spoken as he did on purpose that his words might
be repeated to Angus.8 A person of the name of
Graham, who was afterwards employed by the Lord
Chancellor to procure the liberation of the Bishop's
hostages, stated that, in conversation with Angus Oig,
the latter declared that he never meddled with the Castle
1 Letter, the Bishop to Lord Binning, dated 23rd September, 1614.—
Denmylne MS.
* Third Declaration of Angus Oig, dated 28rd May, lolfc—Deanyhie
MS.
1614] DOUBLE DEALING OP ARGYLE. 355
of Dunyveg of his own accord, "but that he was induced
thereto by the Earl of Argyle, and that he would justify
this with his sword against the Earl/' * It would hence
appear that Argyle, afraid of the Clandonald at last
coming to terms with the Government and procuring a
new grant of Isla, had, by various artful representations,
induced that unfortunate tribe to rush into a new rebellion.
This view of Argyle's policy is further corroborated by
a passage in a letter written by an acute Scottish states-
man to Court, in which he says, "By many it is thought
that if good will did second the duty which they (Argyle
and others employed in the Isles) are bound to do,
these frequent Island employments would not occur so
often. For when these employments are so profitable
in present pay, and a preparative for making suit at
Court for service done, how easy a matter it is to have
some of these unhallowed people, with that unchristian
tongue, ready to furnish fresh work for the tinker; and
the matter so carryed as that it is impossible to depre-
hend (detect) the plot." 2
Far from assisting the Bishop of the Isles in obtain-
ing performance of the conditions he had promised to
the Clandonald, the Privy Council lost no time in pre-
paring to reduce the rebels by force. Having received
from John Campbell of Calder an offer of a feu-duty
or perpetual rent fox. Isla, far beyond what any substan-
tial person of his rank had ever offered before, they
prevailed on him to accept of a commission against
Angus Oig and his followers. This commission Calder
undertook to prosecute at his own expense, provided
1 Declaration of George Graham, 16th June, 1615. — Denmylne MS.
3 Letter, Sir Alexander Hay, Clerk Register, to Mr. John Murray,
dated 21st December, 1615. — Denmylne MS.
35G THE CAMPBELLS SEEK A GIFT OF ISLA. [1614.
the artillery and ammunition necessary for battering the
Castle of Dunyveg were furnished at the public cost.1
The project of bestowing Isla on the Campbells was
very ill received by the Clandonald, who began, in con-
sequence, to treat the hostages with great severity. It
was the opinion of the Bishop that the proposed grant,
if carried into effect, would be the source of much
trouble and great expense; more than all the Crown
rents of the Isles, for many years, would suffice to pay.
In the course of the Prelate's remonstrance against the
grant to Calder, he observes — "Neither can I, nor any
man who knows the estate of that country (the South
Isles), think it either good or profitable to his Majesty,
or this realm, to make the name of Campbell greater
in the Isles than they are already; nor yet to root out
one pestiferous clan, and plant in another little better."
Instead of this, the Bishop advised a new plantation of
honest men to be made in Isla, similar to what was then
in progress in the forfeited lands of Ulster ; and recom-
mended that this colony should be protected by a strong
force, to be drawn from the North of Ireland and West
of Scotland. In his anxiety to procure the liberation
of his relatives, he openly counselled the employment of
deceit in the dealings of the Government with the rebels
of Isla, whom he characterised as a "false generation
and bloody people ;" and whom he appears to have
thought it perfectly allowable to fight with their own
weapons.2
1 Letter, the Privy Council to the King, dated 1st October, 1614. —
Denmylne MS. Archibald Campbell, brother to Lawers, and a confi-
dential agent of the Earl of Argyle, was very active in pressing Calder's
suit for a grant of Isla.
3 Letters from the Bishop to Court, 11th and 23rd October, 1614. —
Denmylne MS.
1614.] OFFERS OF SIR JAMES MACDONALD. 357
Roused by the intrigues of the Campbells, Sir James
Macdonald once more sent from his prison in Edinburgh
Castle to the Privy Council offers, for the performance of
which he named as sureties (each under the penalty of five
thousand merks) the Earl of Tullibardine, Lord Burley,
Sir Ranald MacSorley, the Lairds of Macintosh and
Grant, and John Campbell of Calder. The appearance of
the latter as one of the proposed sureties is not a little
singular ; but it is to be considered that he was brother-
in-law to Sir James Macdonald, and had probably
succeeded up to this period in deceiving the latter as
to his real views. Macdonald's offers were as follow: —
First, He offered a yearly rent of eight thousand merks
for the Crown lands of Isla, and desired only a seven
years' lease to try his obedience and that of his clan.
But if the King should prefer keeping Isla in his own
hands Sir James engaged, Secondly, To make the
island worth ten thousand merks a-year, and to transport
himself, his brother, and his clan, to Ireland, or wherever
the King should appoint, on receiving a year's rent of
Isla to buy land with. He made other offers relative
to the recovery of Dunyveg without expense, and the
apprehension of those concerned in the taking of that
place from the Bishop, which need not here be more
particularly detailed. Lastly, He engaged, in the event
of all his other offers being rejected, that if his Majesty
would liberate him upon finding such sureties or giving
such hostages as he might be able to do, he would
remove himself, his brother, and all his clan out of
the King's dominions, seeking no conditions of lands
or money; all that he required being a free par-
don for past offences, a letter of recommendation to
the States of Holland, and liberty to raise men in
358 COMMISSION TO CAMPBELL OF CALDER. [1614.
Scotland for the service of the States if employed by
them.1
No attention was paid to these offers ; but, on the
contrary, the preparations for despatching Campbell of
Calder to the Isles were hastened. Towards the end
of October he received, after many communications
between the King and Council, a commission of Lieu-
tenandry against Angus Oig Macdonald, Coll Mac-
Gillespick, and the other rebels of Isla. At the same
time arrangements were made for bringing from the
north of Ireland two hundred veteran soldiers and six
cannon to meet Calder and his forces at Isla, so as to
insure the taking of the Castle of Dunyveg. Very
minute instructions were given to the Royal Lieutenant,
particularly for the proper victualling of his own men
and the forces from Ireland ; but he was urged, if pos-
sible, to complete the service before the arrival of the
latter, so as to save expense. He was also instructed
to use all possible care and dexterity to get the Bishop's
hostages out of the hands of the rebels. The usual
proclamations enjoining the lieges to assist the Lieu-
tenant, and forbidding them to harbour or supply the
rebels, were issued at the same time. A free pardon
was offered to all of the Clandonald who were not con-
cerned in the taking of the castle, on their quitting
Angus Oig within twenty-four hours after the procla-
mation being Aiade. Pardon was also offered to any
of the rebels who should either set one or both of the
hostages at liberty, or give up to the Lieutenant an
associate of equal rank with himself. A remission was
even offered to Angus Oig, provided he gave up the
1 Original offers, cir. October, 1614. — Denmylne MS.
1614.] INTRIGUES OF THE CHANCELLOR. 359
castle, the hostages, and two of his associates of his
own rank.1
Whilst Calder was collecting his forces, and the
troops of Ireland were preparing to embark, the Earl of
Dunfermline, Chancellor of Scotland, set on foot an
intrigue for procuring the release of the son and
nephew of the Bishop of the Isles, who still remained
in the hands of the Clandonald. This he did, by his
own admission, without consulting with his colleagues of
the Privy Council. The individual employed by the
Chancellor was a Ross-shire man named George
Graham of Eryne, familiar with the Gaelic language,
and who had, besides, some acquaintance with the
leader of the rebels. Having received his instructions,
Graham set off for Isla ; and on his arrival there in the
month of November, had an interview with Angus Oig
Macdonald, whom he prevailed on, by producing his
instructions, and by making free use of the Chancellor's
name, and giving many promises on his behalf to the
rebels, to deliver up to him both the castle and the
hostages. Angus Oig was by similar trickery induced
to believe that if he obeyed the wishes of the Chan-
cellor, Graham had power to stop all proceedings on
the part of the King's Lieutenant, whose arrival in Isla
was daily looked for. Having gained his object, the
liberation of the hostages, Graham, by way of assurance
1 Record of Privy Council and Denmylne MS., 21st to 26th October,
1614. At this time Archibald Campbell, brother to Lawers, was
appointed Freferrer of Suits to his Majesty from such rebels in the
Isles and Highlands as were desirous to obtain remissions, but con-
ceived themselves precluded by legal causes from doing so, in order
that such persons might not be forced to continue in rebellion. — Ibid.
This Archibald Campbell was Prior of Strathfillan and Bailie, under
Argyle, of the district of Kintyre.
360 DECEITFUL CONDUCT OF THE [1614,
that the Chancellor would perform the promises made
in his name, and in virtue of his alleged instructions
redelivered the castle to Angus Oig, to be held by him
as the regular constable until he should receive further
orders from the Chancellor. Angus was very unwilling
to have more to do with the castle, but was at last
persuaded by the Chancellor's subtle emissary to un-
dertake the charge. On his asking what course he
should pursue if, contrary to Graham's assurances, he
should be summoned by the " Royal Lieutenant to sur-
render the place, he received from Graham strict in-
junctions to hold it out at all hazards, till he should
hear from the Lord Chancellor. At this time a herald
was expected to summon the castle in form, previous to
the commencement of the Lieutenant's operations. So
anxious was Graham (and we may therefore presume
his employer also) that the rebels should commit them-
selves by violent measures, that he advised them to put
the herald to death rather than suffer him to approach
the castle. This crime he well knew would have
authorised the Lieutenant to put all the garrison to the
sword: On the approach of the herald, Graham, de-
sirous of preventing any conference between him and
the Clandonald, tried to persuade that official to turn
back; but failing in this, he returned to the castle
before the herald could reach it, and prevailed upoa
Angus Oig to disobey the summons. Not content
with this, he caused Coll MacGillespick to treat the
herald very roughly, and conducted himself throughout
in a very violent and abusive manner, particularly
towards the herald and the Prior of Ardchattan, by whom
the latter was accompanied. Graham then took his
departure along with the hostages, leaving the deluded
1614.] chancellor's emissary, graham. 361
Islanders to their fate. Hearing, on his journey, of
the near approach of Calder's forces, he sent a written
order to Angus Oig, renewing, as if in the Chancellor's
name, the injunctions formerly given to retain the castle
at all hazards. These injunctions his dupes, prejudiced
as they were at this time against the Campbells, too
readily followed.1 There can be no doubt whatever
that the Chancellor was the author of this notable plan
to procure the liberation of the hostages, and at the
same time to deprive the Clandonald of the benefit of
the pardon promised to them on this account. There
are grounds for a suspicion that the Chancellor himself
desired to obtain Isla,2 although it is probable that he
wished to avoid the odium attendant on the more vio-
lent measures required to render such an acquisition
available. He therefore contrived so as to leave the
punishment of the Clandonald to the Campbells, who
were already sufficiently obnoxious to the western
clans, whilst he himself had the credit of procuring the
liberation of the hostages.
About the end of November,3 Campbell of Calder
1 This account of Graham's proceedings is drawn from the origi-
nal minutes of the evidence taken on the subject in the months of
May and June, 1015 ; from letters of the Chancellor to Court, dated
9th December, 1614 ; 16th March and 30th April, 1615 ; all preserved
among the Denmylne MS.
1 Graham certainly talked in this way. See particularly the evi-
dence taken regarding Graham's conduct, 14th and 15th June, 1615.
— Denmylne MS.
* On the 21st of this month, a charter passed the Great Seal,
granting to John Campbell of Calder, and his heirs male, heritably,
in feu farm, uthe yle and landis of Ylay and Rynnis, and middle
waird of Ylay, Uyntassan, as weill rentallit of befoir as unrentallit"
This charter was ratified by Parliament in 1621. Acts of Parlia-
ment, IV., p. 675.
362 APPROACH OF THE ROYAL FORCES, [1614.
arrived with his forces in the neighbourhood of Dunyveg,
and remained for fourteen days encamped on two small
islands, waiting for the arrival of the troops and cannon
from Ireland. Finding his provisions considerably
diminished, while nothing had as yet been done towards
the reduction of the island, he returned to Duntroon
on the mainland, to procure a further supply, and to be
in readiness to join the armament from Ireland as soon
as he should hear of its arrival. In the middle of
December, two days after Calder had sailed for Dun-
troon, Sir Oliver Lambert, commander of the Irish
forces, accompanied by Archibald Campbell, bailie of
Kintyre (who had gone to Ireland to expedite the
sailing of the Irish division of the expedition), cast
anchor in the Sound of Isla. He had with him his
Majesty's ship called the Phoenix, a pinnace called
the Moon, a hoy to carry the ordnance, and a Scottish
bark with provisions ; and these vessels carried a con-
siderable number of soldiers. It was not till the 16th
of December that Sir Oliver Lambert heard where
Calder was, and he then despatched a messenger to
inform the latter of his arrival. Meantime, having
heard something of Graham's proceedings, and being
uncertain what Calder had done in consequence, Sir
Oliver, by the advice of Archibald Campbell, sum-
moned the Castle of Dunyveg. This being done, Sir
Oliver received a letter from Angus Oig Macdonald,
bearing that had he not received a warrant from the
Lord Chancellor and Council of Scotland to keep the
castle for them, he would have obeyed Sir Oliver's
summons. He offered to show his warrant to any
person authorised by the General, and protested that
if he were attacked by the forces under Lambert's com-
1614-15.] THE CASTLE OF DUNZVEO SUMMONED. 363
mand, he would complain to the Privy Council. To
this Sir Oliver replied, that he could not believe that
the King would have sent such an expedition at that
season of the year to reduce a place already in his
subjection; but in order to ascertain the truth of Mac-
donald's assertions, he sent for a copy of the warrant
referred to by the latter. In return he received a copy
of Graham's alleged instructions, which seemed fully
to authorise the detention of the castle; but being
satisfied that Graham had no proper authority for what
he had done,1 Sir Oliver resolved to proceed with the
siege as soon as he should be joined by Calder. This
junction, however, was not effected, owing to violent
tempests and contrary winds, until the 5 th of January.
On the 6 th of that month, Calder landed
in Isia with two hundred men, and the next
day his force was augmented by one hundred and forty
more. On the 9th and succeeding days, he proceeded
to invest the castle and land the ordnance. The rebels
now began to be alarmed, and several deserted from
the castle, and were pardoned on condition of their doing
service against those who still held out. Ranald Mac-
James (uncle of Angus Oig), who commanded the fort
and island of Lochgorme, surrendered his post to the
Lieutenant on the 21st, and, along with his son, received
a conditional assurance of his Majesty's favour. On
the 27th of January the cannon were all landed, and
the battery was prepared to open on the morning of the
1st of February. During the landing of the cannon
and erecting of the battery, the Royal forces were fired
1 Graham's proceedings gave great offence both to Calder and
Sir Oliver Lambert; particularly the former. Denmylne MS., ad
tempus.
364 DUNYYEG BESIEGED AND TAKEN. [1615.
upon several times by the rebels, but owing to the fire
being ill directed, the loss inflicted was trifling. Captain
Crawford, one of Sir Oliver Lambert's officers, was
wounded in the leg, and died in consequence soon after-
wards; and one of Calder's men was killed on the
spot. Soon after the battery opened its fire on the
castle, a perceptible effect was produced on the garrison.
They sent, in the course of the day, various messages to
the Lieutenant; but their propositions not being satis-
factory, the firing was kept up all that day. On the
next day, the battery still playing, Angus Oig had an
interview with the Lieutenant, when it was explained to
him that he had been deceived by Graham; and he
then promised to surrender with as many as chose to
follow him. But he had no sooner returned to the
castle than, persuaded, as there is reason to believe, by
Coll MacGKUespick, he again absolutely refused to
surrender. The battery was again opened, and at
length, after many fruitless attempts to. procure better
terms, Angus and a certain number of his principal
followers surrendered without conditions. Coll Mac-
Gillespick and others contrived to escape, by night,
in a boat with some difficulty; but their vessel turning
leaky, they were obliged to run ashore in Isla, where
six of them were afterwards apprehended and executed,
Coll himself making his escape. On the third of
February, Calder, having taken possession of the castle,
held a justice court, in which fourteen of the rebels
were tried and condemned to death, execution follow-
ing instantly upon the sentence. Six of those who had %
held the fort of Lochgorme were also condemned.
Angus Oig himself, and a few who were supposed to
be privy to all his proceedings since the first seizure of
1615.] INVESTIGATION BY THE PRIVY COUNCIL. 365
the castle, were reserved for examination by the Privy
Council. The forces of the rebels were entirely dis-
persed ; and many images connected with the Catholic
form of worship were destroyed by the zeal of Archi-
bald Campbell, who describes the island, at this time,
as having no religious instructors but one poor man
that had been left by the Sishop. It appears that
Calder received but little assistance from the country
people, who should, in terms of the proclamation, have
joined him; and that neither boat nor bark came from
the western burghs with provisions, notwithstanding the
directions of the Council on that head.1
The service being thus concluded, Angus Oig and
the other prisoners were brought before the Privy Coun-
cil to be examined, not only regarding the original pro-
moter of the first seizure of the castle, but as to the
treaty between them and Graham. On the first pdint,
the declarations of the prisoners went, as has been for-
merly noticed, to fix the blame upon Argyle ;2 whilst
their evidence on the second created a strong feeling
against the Chancellor. Both charges, however, seem
to have been smothered. The Chancellor denied most
solemnly having given Graham any other instructions
than merely to procure the release of the hostages. He
1 Report made to the Earl of Somerset, by Archibald Campbell, of
the progress of this expedition. — Denmylne MS., 8th February, 1616.
Said MS., 14th and 16th December, 1614.
* Supra, p. 354. About this time, the King, writing to Secretary
Binning regarding George Graham, who had been sent to England
for examination, on a complaint against him by Campbell of Calder,
says — u Whereas the said Angus Oig hath promised to rereale an
important secrete upon some great man, if he may have assurance of
his life ; " and urges the Secretary to ascertain the secret, if possible,
without giving any promise or condition to Angus Oig.
366 THE CLANDONALD BECOME PIRATES. [1615.
denied also having authorised him to offer any condi-
tions to the rebels ; but a careful perusal of all the doc-
uments connected with this affair leaves no doubt that
the Chancellor was much more deeply implicated in
Graham's dishonourable practices than he chose to con-
fess. As for Graham himself, he prevaricated so grossly,
and his statements were so much at variance, not only
with the evidence of the rebels, but with that of Gamp-
bell of Calder and many other gentlemen of honour
and credit, that no belief was given to his account of
what had taken place.1
During the months of February, March, April, and
May, Coll MacGillespick and others of the Clandonald
who had escaped from Isla, together with Malcolm Mac-
Ruari Macleod, one of the last survivors of the Siol
Torquil, infested the western coasts, and committed
various acts of piracy. In April, a commission of fire
and sword against Coll MacGillespick and his asso-
ciates was given to eight of the principal chiefs in the
Isles ; and one of his Majesty's ships, with a pinnace,
seem to have been employed to assist in this service.2
But while the Lords of the Privy Council were occu-
pied in giving directions for the suppression of these
pirates, and in tracing the origin of the late rebellion in
Isla, they were astounded by the intelligence that Sir
James Macdonald had made his escape from prison, and
was on his way to the Isles, where his appearance could
1 Denmylne MS., May and June, 1615. Graham actually received
from the Chancellor 1000 merka for his services; which sum was
repaid to his Lordship by a Royal warranty before the nature of the
transaction had become public.
a Record of Privy Council, February to April, 1516. Denmylne
MS., ad tempus.
1615.] ESCAPE OF SIR JAMES MACDONALD. 367
not fail to prove the signal for fresh disturbances. It
was alleged, on this occasion, by the Council, that Sir
James dreaded the result of the inquiry in which they
were then engaged ; and that his flight proved that he
was really the instigator of the late rebellion.1 But
Sir James, in various letters written about this time,
denied the imputation, and gave, as a reason for his
flight, that he had heard, from the best authority, that
Calder, when at Court making a report of his proceed-
ings in Isla, had obtained a secret warrant, charging the
Council, on sight of it, to order Sir James to instant
execution on his old sentence. Sir James also stated,
that he learned this from relations and friends of the
Laird of Calder, and he mentioned the names of his
informants. Knowing, as he then did, the inveteracy
of Calder, who had so lately executed many of the
Clandonald, he resolved once more to attempt an escape,
as the only chance for his life.2
In his escape, Sir James Macdonald was assisted by
Allaster MacRanald of Keppoch, by the eldest son of the
latter, and the eldest son of the captain of Clanranald.
The enterprise appears to have been very skilfully con-
ducted. The fugitives crossed the Frith of Forth in a
small boat, from Newhaven to Burntisland, and directed
their course thence to the Highlands of Perthshire.
On the 24th of May, a commission was given to the
Marquis of Huntly and the Earl of Tullibardine for the
apprehension of Sir James and his companions; and
letters were sent with great despatch to these noblemen,
urging them to intercept the fugitives in their passage
through Athole or Lochaber. A reward of two thousand
1 Record of Privy Council, 23rd and 24th May, 1616.
9 Numerous Letters preserved in Denmylne MS., ad tempus.
368 HE BEACHES THE ISLES IN SAFETY. [1615.
pounds was, at the same time, offered for Sir James,
dead or alive.1 Archibald Campbell, whom we have
seen exerting himself so much against the Clandonald
in Isla, was ordered to track and pursue Sir James and
his party ; and he followed them so closely, by the wood
of Methven and by Murthlie, to Athole, that, had he
been certain of their route, he might have intercepted
them at the east end of Loch Rannoch. At this time,
the Earls of Athole and Tullibardine, coming from
another direction, were actually in sight of Sir James ;
but that chief having been warned, of their approach,
escaped with the gentlemen of his party on foot to the
woods, leaving their horses and clothes behind. Some
of their servants were apprehended, but were after-
wards liberated by Tullibardine. A company of Kep-
poch's clan now met their chief and Sir James Mac-
donald, and conducted them from Rannoch through
Lochaber free of all risk of immediate apprehension.
From Lochaber, Sir James and Keppoch proceeded to
Morar and Knoydert, and thence to Sleat in Sky, where
they had a lengthened conference with Donald Gtorme.
This chief did not join them openly himself, but a number
of his men of Sleat followed Sir James, who sailed to
the south in a large boat which he procured in that
district. ' At the Isle of Eigg he met with Coll Mac-
Gillespick, and such of the Clandonald as followed that
pirate leader. The reception given to Sir James by
his clansmen 'was very enthusiastic. He and those
who had come with him stood in a place by themselves,
1 Record of Privy Council, 24th May, 1615. Calderwood in his
MS. Church History (Advocates1 Library), says, "It was thought
Sir James Macdonald escaped not without the privity of those who
had credit.11
1615.] PROCEEDINGS OF THE PRIVY COUNCIL. 369
whilst Coll MacGillespick's men marched round them,
firing volleys of small arms for half an hour ; and after-
wards every individual came forward and shook hands
with the chief. From Eigg, being now about three
hundred strong, Sir James and his followers sailed in
the direction of Isla, having previously slaughtered a
great number of cattle in the former island, to insure
themselves a good supply of provisions. About this
time many of the Clanian of Ardnamurohan are said
to have joined Sir James ; and the rebellion assumed
every day a more formidable appearance.1
Meantime the Privy Council were not idle in taking
steps to repress this insurrection, before the rebels could
have time to do much mischief; but various causes
contributed to thwart their intentions. Of these the
most important was the absence of the Earl of Argyle,
who, being much pressed by his numerous creditors,
had lately gone to England without any prospect of an
immediate return. His brother, Colin Campbell of
Lundy, declined, without a special warrant from the
Earl, to undertake the responsibility of keeping the
Earldom of Argyle clear of the rebels, or of preventing
such of the vassals as were friendly to the Macdonalds
from joining Sir James. The Lairds of Calder and
Auchinbreck,2 two of the principal gentlemen of the
name of Campbell, were so involved in the embarrass-
ments of their Chief, that at this time they dared not
1 These particulars regarding the escape of Sir James Macdonald,
and his progress towards Isla, have been drawn from letters of the
Earl of Tullibardine, Sir Ruari Macleod, Archibald Campbell, and
Sir James himself, all preserved in that valuable collection, the Dun-
xnylne MS., Advocates1 Library. See also Criminal Trials, III., pp.
12-22.
9 Sir Dougal Campbell of Auchinbreck.
370 PROCEEDINGS OP THE MIVY COUNCIL [1615.
repair to Argyleshire. Indeed, Auchinbreck was actually
imprisoned in Edinburgh on account of his engage-
ments for Argyle. In these circumstances, the Privy
Council wrote to the King, requesting that his Majesty
would either order the Earl of Argyle to return instantly
to Scotland, to take the command of his clan and
vassals, "as being the special person of power and
friendship in the Highlands ;" Or to authorise one of
his principal kinsmen to act for him. Calder undertook
to keep the island of Isla and the Castle of Dunyveg
out of the hands of Sir James Macdonald and his fol-
lowers; and in the event of their coming to Isla,
engaged to use his own force against them, before
applying to thfc King for assistance. A reward of five
thousand pounds was now offered for the apprehension
of Sir James ; • whilst five thousand merks each were
offered for Keppoch and his son, and Coll MacGillespick;
and three thousand merks each for Malcolm Macleod
and Ranald Oig, the bastard brother of Sir James.
All harbouring of, or dealing with the rebels, or giving
them information, was strictly prohibited. Having
received an answer from Court to their application regard-
ing the Earl of Argyle, the Privy Council conferred
for several days with the principal gentlemen of the
Campbells, who had been summoned to Edinburgh. *
As they were still ignorant of Sir James Macdonald's
motions since he quitted the Isle of Eigg, and never
suspected that he would venture into Isla — where there
were a number of Calder's men, besides the garrison of
Dunyveg — the Council and their advisers were chiefly
1 These wen the Lairdi of Lundy, Calder, Awftdnbreok,
Lawers; the captain of Craignish, and Colin Campbell (of
ruchill), brother to Lawers.
1615.] FOR THE SUPPKESSION OF THE BEBELS. 371
occupied by their efforts to place the whole of the Isles
and adjacent mainland/from Sky southwards to Kintyre,
in a posture of defence, so as to deter the rebels from
landing. Instructions were accordingly given to the
Lairds of Auchinbreck and Ardkinlass for the defence
of Argyle Proper, Knapdale, and Kintyre, with three
hundred men; to the Laird of Lochnell and Mr. Don-
ald Campbell of Barbreck-Lochow, for the defence of
Lorn, with all Calder's vassals not employed in Isla,
and one hundred and fifty men out of Lorn and Glen-
urchy; to the Lairds of Dowart, Lochbuy, Coll, and
Mackinnon, for the defence of the coasts from Lorn to
the point of Ardnamurchan, with two hundred men ;
to the Earl of Enzie, for the defence of the coast of
Lochaber, with one hundred men; and, finally, to the
captain of the Clanranald, Macleod of Harris, and
Macdonald of Sleat, for the defence of their own estates,
each with two hundred men. The ship and pinnace
formerly prepared to act against Coll MacGillespick,
were now ordered to pursue the rebels by sea; and the
chiefs above mentioned were ordered to communicate
with the commander of these vessels as frequently as
possible. All the forces called out were enjoined to be
at their appointed stations by the 6th of July, furnished
with forty days' provisions, and with a sufficient number
of boats, to enable them to act by sea if necessary.
The Marquis of Hamilton, and the Sheriff of Bute,
were, at the same time, ordered to keep the Isles of
Arran and Bute clear of the rebels, and to concur with
the Argyleshire forces when required.1
Scarcely had these orders and instructions been
» Record of Privy Council, 8th to 22nd June, 1616. Denmylne
MS., 20th to 22nd June. At this time, Colin Campbell of Ltmdy,
372 DUNYVEG SEIZED BY SIB JAMES. [1615.
issued, when intelligence arrived from Isla which dis-
concerted all the arrangements that had been made.
Sir James Macdonald and his followers, after leaving
the Isle of Eigg, proceeded to the south, their destina-
tion and intentions being equally unknown to the Privy
Council. About the 18th of June, Sir James arrived
at the Isle of Colonsay with several hundred men, and
there killed a number of cattle for provisions. While
here, he built a fort on a small island in a fresh-water
loch. Four or five days later he landed in Isla, and
having placed a body of men in ambush about the
Castle of Dunyveg, he contrived, by the assistance of a
crafty native of the island, to draw the constable of the
castle,1 with twelve of the garrison, out of the fortress,
and into the ambuscade. Macdonald's men made their
appearance sooner than was intended; and, upon seeing
his danger, the constable attempted to gain the castle.
About one-half of his escort succeeded in reaching the
inner gate, and closing it against the Clandonald; but
the constable and the rest were overtaken and slain, and
Sir James established himself in the outer court. Hay-
ing soon afterwards made himself master of the gar-
rison's supply of water, and taken one of the interior
fortifications, the place was surrendered to him next
morning.2 It does not appear that Sir James com-
and Sir John Campbell of Calder, received a licence to go to Court,
to consult 'with Argyle regarding his debts, and their liabilities for
him ; but they were bound, under a penalty of £1,000 each, to return
to Scotland on or before the 25th of July.
1 The Constable was Alexander Macdougall, brother to the Laird
ofRaray.
2 In a letter to the Earl of Crawford, dated 3rd July, Denmylne M&,
Sir James states his loss in this affair to have been ono man and a boy
killed, and two men slightly wounded.
1615.] ARGYLE BECALLED FROM COURT. 373
mitted any excesses on this occasion. On the contrary
he liberated the Prior of Ardchattan and his two sons,
although near kinsmen of the Laird of Calder, who
were in the castle when it was taken; and he seems to
have been satisfied with causing all Calder's followers
to quit the island and return to Lorn. After placing a
garrison in Dunyveg, Sir James Macdonald divided his
force into two bodies; one of which, under himself, was
intended to proceed to the Isle of Jura., and the other,
under Coll MacGillespick, to Kintyre, for the purpose
of encouraging the ancient followers of his family to
rise in arms and assist him. At this time the rebels
were about four hundred strong, chiefly North Islesmen.1
Immediately on receiving this intelligence, the Privy
Council wrote to the King, strongly urging him to send
the Earl of Argyle home with all haste, to act as
Lieutenant against the rebels. It was argued that this
was more particularly incumbent on Argyle and his
clan, seeing that the principal cause of the present
disturbances, as alleged by the Clandonald, was the
giving of Kintyre and Isla to the Earl and his relation,
Calder. Besides when they received these grants, it
had been settled that they were to keep their new
acquisitions in subjection without more expense to
Government. As artillery could not be conveniently
carried from Edinburgh to the Isles, the King was
requested to give directions for cannon and ammunition
to be shipped on board the vessels already destined to
act against the rebels, and which were at present under
1 Letter, Hector Macneill of Tayniah to Lord Binning, 26th Jane,
and Letter, Sir James Macdonald to the Earl of Crawford, 3rd July,
1615; DenmylneMS.
374 COMMISSION TO AUCHINBRECK. [1615.
the orders of the Deputy of Ireland.1 All the lieges
within the sheriffdoms of Argyle and Tarbert, were
charged by proclamation to join the forces formerly
appointed to be in readiness under Campbell of Auchin-
breck. That baron being liberated from prison, received
a commission as Lieutenant against the Clandonald,.
with the chief command over the other gentlemen
employed; but the duration of his commission was
limited to the arrival of Argyle, which was expected by
the 6th of August.2 Angus Oig Macdonald, and
several of his followers, were tried and condemned for
high treason on the 3rd of July, and executed on the
8th of that month. Their fate excited great com-
miseration, which was mingled with a feeling of indig-
nation that no steps were taken to punish the villanous
conduct of the Chancellor's emissary, Graham.3
Soon after his escape, Sir James Macdonald addressed
a number of letters, exculpatory of himself, to various
persons of rank, with whom, when at Court as a hostage
for his father, and afterwards during his long imprison-
ment at Edinburgh, he had formed an acquaintance.
Among his correspondents, with several of whom he
appears to have been on intimate and even affectionate
terms, we find the Marquis of Hamilton, the Earls of
Crawford, Caithness, and Tullibardine, and the Bishop
of the Isles. His letters are not those of a barbarian,
such as his indictment describes him; but, on the con-
1 Letter, the Council to the King, and Minutes of Council proceed-
ings, 30th June, 1615; Denmylne MS.
9 Record of Privy Council, 30th June, 1615, and Minutes of Council
proceedings, same date, in Denmylne MS.
' Pitcairn's Criminal Trials, 111. 364. Calderwood's Ma Church
History, Advocates1 Library.
1615.] SIB JAMES' MACDONALD'S LETTERS. 375
trary, indicated a mind well cultivated for the period.
He seems to have had very good natural abilities, and,
daring his long confinement, to have become somewhat
of a student. Even in his flight to the Highlands,
when his mind must have been occupied with matters of
more pressing interest, Sir James Macdonald contrived
to carry with him a small library ; the loss of which,
when he was so nearly surprised in Athole, caused him
great vexation. Most of his letters breathe a spirit of
implacable hostility against the Campbells, whom he
characterises as a race that "craves ever to fish in drumlie
(muddy) waters;'7 and he repeatedly declares that he
will die sooner than see them possess Isla. At the same
time, he wrote an humble petition to the Council, soli-
citing their favourable intercession on his behalf with
the King — offering all the duty of the most loyal sub-
ject— and beseeching them not to drive him to despe-
ration by any hasty or violent measures. It appears
that all Sir James7 letters were sent by him to the Earl
of Tullibardine, to be forwarded to their respective
destinations. That nobleman, however, conceived him-
self bound to forward the whole to the Privy Council,
who declined, so long as Sir James continued in the
Isles along with avowed rebels, to communicate his
petitions to the King, or to hold any communication
whatever with him.1 This resolution was come to
before the Council had heard of the taking of Dunyveg
from Calder's garrison, and was, of course, persevered
in after that event ; so that various letters, written by
Sir James to explain his conduct in seizing the castle,
* Letter, Lord Binning to the Earl of Tullibardine, 18th June, 1615;
Denmylne MS.
376 PROGRESS OF THE REBELLION. [1615.
failed to produce any relaxation of the severe measures
in progress against him.1
After the Castle of Dunyveg had fallen into the hands
of the Clandonald, Sir James added to the fortifications
of the island of Lochgorme a lawn of turf of great
breadth, at which one hundred and twenty men laboured
every day till it was completed. At this time the rebels
made many unsuccessful attempts to seize Hector Mac-
neill of Taynish, chief of the southern Clanneill ; who,
although he and his ancestors followed the Macdonalds
while the latter were Lords of Kintyre,had, since the year
1607, become a vassal of the Earl of Argyle, to whom,
on the present occasion, he faithfully adhered. Malcolm
Macduphie or Macfie of Colonsay, who had likewise, of
late years, been compelled to hold his lands of Aigyle,
followed a different course, and joined Sir James Mac-
donald, as the individual to whom, from the old connec-
tion -between their families, his service was properly due.
Donald Gigach Maclan, the principal man in Jura, like-
wise joined the Clandonald ; and the accession of these
two chieftains augmented the force of the rebels by sixty-
four men. From communications made by the Prior of
Ardchattan and Archibald Campbell, his son, to the
Secretary of State, it appears that the people of Argyle
and Lorn refused to proceed against the rebels till the
arrival of a Royal lieutenant ; and that, in the middle of
July, there were only forty men in arms for the protection,
of that part of the country against the Clandonald and
their abettors. Sir James, deeming the Castle of Dunyveg
untenable, was directing all his attention to the fortifi-
1 The letters referred to in the text, written by Sir James Macdonald
in June and July, 1615, are preserved in the Denmylne MS. See also
Criminal Trials, HI., pp. 12-21.
1615.] PROGRESS OF THE REBELLION. 377
*
cation of the isle of Lochgorme, and another strength
called Dunand, whilst his forces were increasing every
day, and the men of Kintyre were now rising in arms to
join him. Various reports were in circulation, which, in
the absence of their chief, tended much to diminish the
zeal of Argyle's vassals. For instance, it was confidently
said that Sir James Macdonald had entered into a
special bond of friendship with Donald Gorme of Sleat,
the captain of the Clanranald, and Ruari Macleod of
Harris; and that Hector Maclean of Dowart, if not
actually engaged in the rebellion, had announced that,
if he was desired to proceed against the Clandonald, he
'would not be very earnest in the service. These dis-
heartening reports were confirmed to a certain extent
by Ardchattan's spies, who declared to him that vassals
of the three first mentioned chiefs formed a considerable
part of Sir James' force ; whilst Maclean's brother had
already taken part with the rebels in expelling Calder's
men from Isla. *
A proclamation was hereupon issued by the Council,
calling out the militia of the shires of Ayr, Renfrew,
Dunbarton, Bute, and Inverness, in addition to those of
Argyle and Tarbert formerly summoned ; and commis-
sion was given to the Marquis of Hamilton and Paul
Hamilton, captain of Arran, for keeping the Clandonald
out of that island. The King had now determined to
send the Earl of Argyle down as Lieutenant, not only
to suppress the insurrection of Sir James Macdonald,
but also to take order for the final pacification of all the
Western Isles. His Majesty, after giving various
1 Letters, Hector Macneill of Taynish to Lord Binning, 4th and 29th
July ; and Letters, the Prior of Ardchattan and his son to the same,
15th, ictli, and 29th July, 1615 ; Denmylne MS.
373 COMMUNICATIONS FEOM THE KING. [1615.
necessary directions, declared it to be his will that the
forfeitures of all those in Argyle and Kintyre, who should
be proved to have intercommuned with or assisted the
rebels, should belong to the Earl. The number of men,
and the amount of stores and money to be allowed to
the Lieutenant, and the prices to be paid by the army
for provisions, were left to the discretion of the Council.
Four days later, the King wrote again to the Council, to
say that the Earl of Argyle was on his way to undertake
the service in the Isles, and directing them to require
of him that, as far as possible, the spoiling of the
country might be avoided ; and that, in the pursuit of
the rebels, no cattle, or other goods, should be taken
forcibly by the Earl or his forces, unless from those who
had actually taken part with the Clandonald. Such of
the rebels as might be taken alive were to be tried by a
jury ; and such of the tenants of Isla as had fled for fear
of the Clandonald were to be restored to their posses-
sions. Generally, the Earl was to be instructed so to
proceed, "that civil manners and customs might be
established in these Isles, and all their old barbarous
customs utterly abolished."1
Having finished his fortifications in Isla, and placed
his bastard son, Donald Gorme, as keeper of Dunyveg
in the meantime, and until a siege should be threatened,
Sir James Macdonald and his followers proceeded to
Eintyre, where the Bang's castle at Kinloch (Campbel-
ton) had previously been taken possession of by a
detachment of twenty-four men, sent from Isla for that
purpose. The rebels landed in Kintyre, four hundred
strong, including all the " special men " of Isla, Macfie
1 Letters, the King to the Privy Council, dated 24th and 28th July,
and recorded in the Books of Council, 4th August, 1615.
1615.] THE CLANDONALD ENTER KINTYRE. 37J)
of Colonsay, Donald Gigach of Jura, Allaster Mac-
Ranald of Keppoch, and a body of North Islesmen.
Sir James now sent the fiery cross through the district
of Kintyre, summoning all Argyle's vassals to come
and take new charters of their lands from him. He
was " very gladly received v by many of the Kintyre
men; and moving northwards, towards the end of July,
took up a position within a few miles of Tarbert,
announcing his determination to reach that place about
the 30th of that month. Sir Dougal Campbell of
Auchinbreck collected with difficulty three hundred
men to oppose the rebels if they should venture out of
Kintyre ; but his numbers were too few to admit of his
attacking them. He wrote to the Chancellor, repre-
senting the state of the country in alarming terms, and
requesting a renewal of his commission (which was now
about to expire) until the arrival of Argyle, whose
appearance was anxiously expected. He dwelt parti-
cularly on the backwardness of the men of Argyle and
Lorn in joining him. Auchinbreck's commission was
renewed accordingly; and the Privy Council, after
thanking him for his diligence, enjoined him to be
wary in hazarding an action with the rebels, and to
confine his attention, in the meantime, to preventing
them from overrunning Argyleshire. The Council
likewise ordered the Lairds of Ardkinlass and Lochnell
to join Auchinbreck without delay, with the men of
Cowal and Lorn; and the immediate concurrence of
Maclean of Dowart and his clan was ordered, if it
should appear necessary.1 Such good use, however,
1 Letters, Hector MacneiU and the Prior of Ardchattan'fl son to
Lord Binning, 29th July; Letter, Auchinbreck to the Chancellor,
380 ARGYLE BLAMED FOR HIS DELAY. [1615.
did Auchinbreck make of what forces he had, and so
ill-concerted were the plans of his opponents, that,
although unmolested, and allowed to strengthen them-
selves in Kintyre, they were, in fact, cooped up in that
district the whole of August, and until Argyle was
ready to attack them, early in September,
On the 5th of August, Secretary Binning wrote in
strong terms to the Earl of Argyle, censuring the continued
delays of that nobleman in a matter of such vital im-
portance. In this letter, Binning stated that although
the Council were well assured of Auchinbreck's fidelity,
yet they could not but be anxious regarding the charge
committed to that baron, on account of his own sickness,
of the disloyalty of many of the Highlanders, and also
through the " boldness and subtlety of the rebels, too
able to keep their advantage of him." * The King in
his last letter to the Council had, by the advice of
Argyle, named a certain number of the Council to be
directors and advisers to his Lordship in the execution
of his commission of Lieutenandry. The choice of these
directors had been left to the Earl, in order, as his
Majesty elegantly expressed it, that he and his advisers
" might not draw the cat-harrow, and so either hinder
or undoe our said service.*' Lord Binning disapproved
of the appointment of directors at all; and Argyle
afterwards found cause to regret that he had not followed
the Secretary's advice. On the 16th of August, Argyle,
on his way from the south, had an interview with Lord
Binning at Innerwick, and thence proceeded to Edin-
30th July ; and Letter, the Privy Council, to Auchinbreck, 4th August,
1615; Denmylne MS. Record of Privy Council, 4th August; Crimi-
nal Trials, III. 23.
1 Denmylne MS. ; Criminal Trials, III. 24.
1615.] HE IS APPOINTED LIEUTENANT. 381
burgh to consult with the Privy Council. After many
conferences, the following arrangements were made, on
the 22nd of August, for the suppression of the rebellion
in the west. Four hundred hired soldiers were allowed
to Argyle, at the rate of four thousand eight hundred
pounds monthly pay for that force,' including officers.
The Earl engaged that these troops were to muster at
Castle Sweyn, in Knapdale, on the 2nd of September,
from which day their pay was to commence. The
following were the prices fixed upon to be paid by the
Royal forces for provisions : — Twelve pounds Scots for
an ox, two pounds for a stone of butter, one pound for
a sheep, and a like sum for a stone of cheese. It was
also arranged that there should be a daily communica-
tion between the Lieutenant and the Privy Council.
Two hundred pounds weight of gunpowder, with the
usual proportion of lead and lint, were to be furnished
immediately to the soldiers by the Lord Treasurer, that
the service might not suffer by any unforeseen delay in
the arrival of the ships from Ireland. A letter was
written to the Lord Deputy of Ireland, requesting him
to give orders that none of the rebels should be allowed
to land in that country. The great chiefs in the Isles
were enjoined to give their hearty concurrence in the
service, according as they should be required by the
Lieutenant; and the commission of lieutenandry given to
the Earl of Argyle extended over Argyle, Tarbert,
and the whole West and North Isles, and elsewhere in
Scotland, in pursuit of the rebels, if they should fly from
these districts. Among other clauses, it contained one
giving him power " to take some good and solid order
how the whole West Isles of this kingdom may be
retained and holden under obedience/' Finally, the
382 ARGYLE ENCAMPS AT DUNTROON. [1615.
usual proclamations were issued, prohibiting any sort
of intercourse with the rebels — offering pardon, on
certain conditions, to such as should immediately
make their submission — and charging all his Majesty's
true lieges to concur with and assist the Lieutenant.
Matters being thus arranged, Argyle set out from
Edinburgh for his own country, satisfied by the Coun-
cil in all he desired regarding the service he had
undertaken.1
Having made his preparations, the Earl collected his
forces early in September at Duntroon, on Loch
Crinan, with his vessels in two divisions, one upon the
west, the other upon the east side of the continent, and
within a few miles of each other. He first caused the
proclamation of pardon, to such as should desert the
rebels, to be made; and whilst the time prescribed was
passing, he, by his spies, examined Sir James Mac-
donald's camp, which was on the west coast of Kintyre,
near to the Isle of Cara.2 The force of the rebels was
found to be nearly one thousand men, with a number
of vessels, most of which were at anchor in Cara.
Having ascertained these points, and the time for com-
mencing his operations being arrived, Argyle detached
two companies of the hired soldiers, under John Mac-
Dougal of Raray, and Mr. Donald Campbell of Bar-
breck-Lochow, with Sir John Campbell of Calder, the
Lairds of Lochnell and Macdougall, and their followers,
making, in all, a force of seven or eight hundred men,
1 Letters, Lord Binning and Earl of Argyle to the King, 16th
Angnst; and the Chancellor to Mr. John Murray of Lochmaben,
-31st August ; Denmylne MS. Record of Prify Council, 22nd Augwt,
1615.
* This camp was within ten miles of Tarbert by land.
1615.] HE PROCEEDS TOWARDS KUflTYKE. 383
whom he sent by sea on the west coast, with directions
to sail straight for the plaee where Sir James' vessels
lay, and, if possible, surprise them by night. Should
they fail in this, they were directed to encamp at the
point of Ardrissak, to wait the Lieutenant's coming
to the east side of Kintyre with the two other companies
of hired soldiers, under Captain Boswell, and Robert
Campbell, captain of Dunoon, with Colin Campbell of
Kilmichael, the Lairds of Ardkinlass, Lamont, and Mac-
Lauchlan, and their followers, forming in all a similar
force of nearly eight hundred men. Argyle arrived at
Tarbert in the evening of the same day he left Duntroon;
and was then joined by Auchinbreck, with those under
his command.
Sir James Macdonald, at this time, uncertain of
Argyle's movements, had sent his uncle, Ranald, with
three or four hundred men, to stop the passage from
Tarbert on the east; whilst Coll MacGillespick, with
sixty men and three boats, was sent from Cara to West
Tarbert, to reconnoitre. Upon learning the near ap-
proach of the division commanded by Argyle himself, the
rebels retreated as they had advanced ; Coll MacGille-
spick carrying with him Colin Campbell of Kilberry, and
three or four of his followers, whom he made prisoners,
having found them at some distance from their camp.1
On his way to rejoin Keppoch and his son, and Sorley
MacJames (bastard son of the late Sir James Mac-
donald of Dunluce), who had been left in charge of
the vessels at Cara, Coll MacGillespick was informed
that the Laird of Calder and those with him had
1 Kilberry and his followers seem to hare been sent out to recon-
noitre the rebels.
384 RETREAT OF THE REBELS. [1615-
arrived in the Isle of Gigha. Being incredulous on
this point, he pursued his course so near to that island
that it was with difficulty he made his escape, by landing
on the coast of Kintyre, and abandoning his boats, still,
however, carrying his prisoners with him. He was so
hotly pursued, that fifteen or sixteen of his men were
killed. In the meantime, another party of Caldpr's
division set out to attack the rebels in Gara ; but some
of the Laird of Largie's men having given the rebels
warning, by beacons, of the approach of their enemies,
they took to flight with precipitation. Keppoch fled
towards Kintyre, whither he was pursued by Mr. Donald
Campbell and Lochnell, to the very south end of that
peninsula, and escaped very narrowly with the. loss of
his vessels and some of his men ; and Sorley MacJames
towards Isla, who in his retreat was pursued by Calder
to within shot of the Castle of Dunyveg. The opera-
tions on the east side of Kintyre were not less success-
ful ; and Sir James Macdonald perceiving his followers
to be much disordered, forsook his camp and took to
flight. The Laird of Ardkinlass, with four hundred
men, was now directed by Argyle to proceed by land
to the south end of Kintyre., to assist Calder's
division in the pursuit of the rebels, with strict
injunctions to follow them to Isla if they had fled
in that direction. Ardkinlass and his party encamped
for a night on the spot previously occupied by Sir
James; and while there received certain information,
that Sir James had gone to the Isle of Rachlin.
This caused a change in Argyle's plans, who now,
with his entire division, crossed over to Jura, and
encamped on the coast of that island, where he was
soon afterwards joined by the ships of war from Eng-
1615.] SIB JAMES ENDEAVOURS TO TREAT. 385
land.1 About the same time he received intelli-
gence from his spies that Sir James had come oyer
from Eachlin to Isla, and collected his scattered fol-
lowers to the number of five hundred men, with whom
he encamped in the Rinns of Isla, near to a small
Island, called Ouersay. Upon this Argyle, with all
possible diligence, transported his forces to Isla, where
he was joined by the division under Calder, and landed
them at the harbour called the Lodoms, being allowed
to encamp himself strongly without molestation from
the rebels.
Sir James finding it impossible either to resist the
Lieutenant's forces, or to escape with his galleys to the
North Isles, which was then his principal object, sent a
messenger to the Earl, desiring a truce for four days,
promising, before the expiry of that time, to surrender
himself without conditions. To this request, Argyle
yielded conditionally, providing Sir James gave up the
two forts he held within twenty-four hours j otherwise,
the proposal of a truce would be looked upon in no
other light than a scheme for obtaining time, in the
hope of a south wind arising in the meantime, which
would give the rebels an opportunity of escaping as
they intended. Sir James, finding himself now much
straitened, urged Coll MacGillespick, who at this
time had the command of both the forts, to give them
up to Argyle ; but this Coll flatly refused to do.
The Earl having received Sir James' answer, that
he could not give up the forts, and being, at the
same time, secretly assured by Coll MacGillespick
1 These consisted of two vessels under Captains Wood and Monk,
and a hoy which carried a battering train.
28
386 THE REBELS FORCEp TO DISPERSE. [1615.
that the latter was willing to surrender them, sent
Campbell of Calder, Captain Boswell, and other offi-
cers, at night, with a force of one thousand men, by sea,
with orders either to surprise Sir James in his camp,
or to seize his vessels. Sir James, however, through
beacons set by the natives on the 0 of Isla, received
intimation of the intended attack in time to make his
escape, along with Keppoch, Sorley MacJames, and
forty followers, to an island called Inchdaholl, on the
coast of Ireland. It is said that, as the party were
going into their boats, some of the principal tenants of
Isla earnestly besought Sir James to remain, declaring
that, as they had hazarded all for him, and knew there
would be no mercy shown to them, they would all dieat his
feet. Sir James was dissuaded from following this course,
as was reported by Keppoch; and he now left the Hebrides
and his devoted clansmen, never to return. Those of his
men who did not escape with him fled to the hills during the
night. The next day, Coll MacGillespick surrendered
the two forts and his prisoners, upon assurance of his
own life and the lives of some few of his followers;
conditions which Argyle did not hesitate to grant, con-
sidering the lateness of the season, the sickness of
many of the soldiers, and the scarcity of provisions.
Coll, likewise, in order to testify his abhorrence of his
former behaviour, became an active partisan against
his former associates, and crowned his treachery by
apprehending and delivering to Argyle Macfie of Col-
onsay, one of the principal leaders of the rebels, and
eighteen others. This conduct soon had many imi-
tators. Macfie himself, and another leader, named
John Maclan Vor, who had also been taken prisoner,
received a temporary assurance of their lives during
1615.] THE REBELLION IS SUPPRESSED. 387
Argyle's stay in the country, on condition of their
doing his Majesty service against the remaining rebels.
But on his Lordship's departure, not daring to leave
such "remarkable ringleaders'1 behind him without
good assurance of their loyalty, he caused them to be
presented before the Privy Council. After receiving
the Castle of Dunyveg and fort of Lochgorme, Argyle
succeeded in apprehending ten of the principal inha-
bitants of Isla who had taken part with Sir James.
These were instantly brought to trial and executed, in
virtue of his Lordship's commission.
Having delivered the forts in Isla to Sir John Camp-
bell of Calder and executed nine more of the principal
rebels, Argyle proceeded to Kintyre, where there were
still a number of men in arms of those who had joined
Sir James from this district. Some of the chief of these
he apprehended soon after his arrival; and by the
severity of his measures, and the number of persons
he executed, seemed determined effectually to prevent
any chance of a future insurrection in Kintyre. He
left Isla for Kintyre near the end of October, and was
still in Kintyre on the 10th of November, at which time
he dismissed two out of the three King's ships that had
assisted him in his operations, retaining the vessel
called the Bran, under the command of Captain Wood.
In the meantime, he was employed in ascertaining the
movements of such of the rebels as had escaped, and in
sending parties after them. Sir James was ascertained
to be with his son, Donald Gorme, and two followers,
concealed by some Jesuits in Galway in Ireland, by
whose means he effected his escape to Spain, in spite
of parties sent after him both by Argyle and the Lord
Deputy of Ireland. Sorley MacJames, with a small body
388 SIB JAMES ESCAPES TO SPAIN. [1615..
of men — among whom were Malcolm Macleod and
Ranald Oig, Sir James Macdonald s bastard brother —
was sheltered by his relations in the Glens and Route in
the county of Antrim. Keppoch and his sons were
now in Lochaber, haying been sent back to Scotland
by Sir James, with some of the Macallasters and
Mackays of Kintyre, who had accompanied him in his
flight from Isla. The service was not concluded until
the middle of December (at least, the hired soldiers
were not dismissed till that time), having occupied
upwards of three months.1
The escape of so many of the principal rebels seems
to have given the Council great dissatisfaction. Lord
Binning, writing to Archibald Campbell in the month
of October says — " Since Sir James and his son, with
MacRanald (Keppoch) and his son, and Glengarry's son,2
and MacSorley are all escaped, and Coll pardoned, I
know not what ringleaders these are whom ye write ye
are to bring in So long as the heads are all to
the fore, the rebellion will never be thought quenched.
Wherefore, I know my Lord will have such care as
1 The detail of the proceedings has been drawn from two reports
to the Privy Council — one by Argyle himself, the other by his con-
fidential agent, Archibald Campbell — recorded in the books of
Council, 24th November, and 21st December, 1615. Also from
letters, Argyle to Binning, 13th and 29th October, and 7th Novem-
ber; Archibald Campbell to Binning, 20th October; and Captain
Wood to Binning, 2nd November, 1615; Denmylne MS. See also-
Pitcairn's Criminal Trials, III 26.
3 This young man had been made prisoner by Sir James and
Keppoch in their flight from Edinburgh; had been carried along*
with them as a hostage for his father, that the latter should do
nothing against Sir James ; and latterly, being released, had taken open,
part with the rebels.
1615.] ARGYLE REPORTS HIS PROCEEDINGS 389
agreeth with his own honour and his Majesty's expec-
tation."1 In the commencement of November, Argyle
-was directed by the Council to dismiss his hired soldiers,
■as they conceived he had now no further use for them.2
But being of a different opinion, he, at his own risk,
retained them on service a month and a half longer —
his reasons for which he gave in a letter to Lord
Binning, in which he expressed his assurance, that
when he came to make a report of his proceedings, the
Council would approve of what he had done. In this
letter the following remarkable passage occurs: — "My
Lord, I thank God that the suppression of this rebel-
lion was in time; for, on my credit, if it had been
twenty days longer protracted, few of my countrymen,
betwixt Tarbert and Inverary, had proven good subjects :
much less could there have been any good expected
of further remote places, where there was no true obe-
dience to his Majesty at all."3
On the 24th of November, an interim report of
Argyle's proceedings was given in by Archibald Camp-
bell, in name of the Earl of Argyle, at which time
Macfie of Colonsay was presented before the Council.
About a month afterwards, Argyle in person made a
full report to the Council. His conduct generally was
approved of, except in the retaining of the hired soldiers
after the commencement of November; and the Earl
was thus obliged to pay from his own resources upwards
of seven thousand pounds, being the pay of these troops
1 Dated cir. 16th October; Denmylne MS. ; Criminal Trials,
m. 23.
'.Record of Privy Council, 4th November; Letter, Binning to
Argyle, 25th October, 1615.
3 Dated 7th November, Denmylne MS.
390 ARGYLE REPORTS HIS PROCEEDINGS. [1615.
for a month and a half. In making his report, Argyle
warmly recommended Captain Wood to the notice of
the King and Council, for his services in the late
expedition.1
Thus terminated the last great struggle made by the
once powerful Clandonald of Isla and Kintyre, to retain
from the grasp of the Campbells these ancient posses-
sions of their tribe.
1 Record of Privy Council, 24th November, and 21st December,
1615.
391
CHAP. IX.
FROM THE SUPPRESSION OF THE GREAT REBELLION OF THE
CLANDONALD, TO THE DEATH OF JAMES VI.— 1615— 1625.
The insurrection in the South Isles being
now crushed in the manner above described,
the attention of the Privy Council was directed to the
apprehension of such of the leaders as had escaped, and
were still lurking in the Highlands or Isles. The Mar-
quis of Huntly, and Lauchlan Macintosh of Dunnauch-
tane, were summoned to give their advice to the Council
regarding the steps necessary to be pursued. A com-
mission was given in the month of January to Lord
Gordon (Huntly 's eldest son), for the seizure of Mac-
Ranald of Keppoch and his son, now supposed to be in
Lochaber; and proclamation was made, charging the
inhabitants of Perthshire above Dunkeld, of Banffshire
above Garroun, of Inverness-shire (except the vassals
of Lord Kintaill, who were employed in the Lewis), and
of Mull, Morvern, and Tiree, to assist Lord Gordon in
the service committed to his charge. At the same time,
a reward of five thousand merks was offered for Keppoch
or his son, alive or dead.1 In March following, the
Privy Council, in the absence of the Earl of Argyle,
1 Record of Privy Council, 14th and 16th January, 161C.
392 PROCEEDINGS OF THE PRIVY COUNCIL. [1616.
who had again gone to Court, ordered his brother,
Campbell of Lundy, to appear before them in a few
weeks, to receive instructions for the suppression of some
of the rebels (led by Malcolm MacRuari Macleod, and
the bastard son of the late Sir James Macdonald of
Dunluce), who still infested the Isles. A commission
to Lundy, Auchinbreck, and Ardkinlass, for this purpose
was prepared ; but the former refused to undertake it,
and in the month of June he received a licence to go to
Court to confer with Argyle on the subject. It seems to
have been considered by the Council that Lord Gordon was
not very active in the service against Keppoch ; for%a
second commission against the latter was directed to the
Marquis of Huntly, as well as to his son, accompanied
by a charge, in the King's name, to these noblemen to
undertake the execution of it. In the month of July
Lundy returned from England, and still refused the duty
attempted to be imposed upon him, stating that he had
given, both to the King and to the Earl, satisfactory
reasons for his conduct; and adding that his brother
might be expected in Scotland in a short time to dis-
charge the service himself. With this answer the
Council were obliged to remain contented.1
At this time Macleod of Harris, the captain of Clan-
ranald, the Macleans of Dowart, Coll, and Lochbuy,
and the Laird of Mackinnon, made their appearance
before the Privy Council. This formality had been
interrupted by the rebellion in the last year ; and very
strict measures were now taken to insure the obedience
of these chiefs in future. They were obliged to bind
i Record of Privy Council, 29th March, 28th May, 13th June, ahd
Gth July, 1616.
1616.] ANNUAL APPEARANCE OF THE CHIEFS. 393
themselves mutually, as sureties for each other, to the
observance of the following conditions: — First, That
their clans should keep good order, and that they
themselves should appear before the Council, annually,
on the 10th of July, and oftener if required and on
being legally summoned. Secondly, That they should
exhibit annually a certain number of their principal
kinsmen, out of a larger number contained in a list given
by them to the Council. Dowart was to exhibit four;
•Macleod, three; Clanranald, two; and Coll, Lochbuy,
and Mackinnon, one of these chieftains, or heads of
houses, in their clans respectively.1 Tliirdly, That they
were not to maintain in household more than the following
proportions of gentlemen, according to their rank: viz.,
Dowart, eight; Macleod and Clanranald, six; and the
others three each. Fourthly, That they were to free
their countries of sorners and idle men having no lawful
occupation. Fifthly, That none of them were to carry
hackbuts or pistols, unless when employed in the King's
service; and that none but the chiefs and their house-
hold gentlemen were to wear swords, or armour, or any
weapons whatever. Sixthly, That the chiefs were to
reside at the following places respectively: viz., Mac-
leod at Dunvegan, Maclean of Dowart at that place,
Clanranald at Elanterim, Maclean of Coll at Bistache,
Lochbuy at Moy, and Mackinnon at Kilmorie. Such
of them as had not convenient dwelling-houses corre-
sponding to their rank at these places were to build
without delay, "civil and comelie" houses, or repair
1 At this time Clanranald gave up the names of his brothers,
Ranald, John, and Ruari; and Mackinnon gave up those of five of
his clan, as disobedient persons, for whom they disclaimed being
answerable.
394 CONDITIONS IMPOSED UPON THE CHIEFS. [1616.
those that were decayed. They were likewise to make
"policie and planting" about their houses; and to take
mains, or home-farms, into their own hands, which they
were to cultivate, " to the effect they might be thereby
exercised and eschew idleness.'' Clanranald, who had
no mains about his Castle of Elanterim, chose for his
home-farm the lands of Hobeg in Uist. Seventhly,
That at the term of Martinmas next, they were to let
the remainder of their lands to tenants, for a certain
fixed rent, in lieu of all exactions. Eighthly, That no
single chief should keep more than one birling, or galley,
of sixteen or eighteen oars; and that in their voyages
through the Isles they should not oppress the country
people. Ninthly, That they should send all their
children above nine years of age to school in the
Lowlands, to be instructed in reading, writing, and
speaking the English language; and that none of their
children should be served heir to their fathers, or received
as a tenant by the King, who had not received that
education. This provision regarding education was
confirmed by an act of Privy Council, which bore that
" the chief and principal! caus quhilk hes procurit and
procuris the continuance of barbaritie, impietie, and
incivilitie within the Yllis of this kingdome, hes proceidit
from the small cair that the chiftanes and principall
clannitmen of the Yllis hes haid of the educatioun and
upbringing of thair childrene in vertew and leming ;
who, being cairles of thair dewties in that poynte, and
keiping thair childrene still at home with thame, whair
they see nothing in thair tendir yeiris bot the barbarous
and incivile formes of the countrie, thay ar thairby maid
to apprehend that thair is no uther formes of dewtie and
civilitie keept in any uther pairt of the cuntrie ; sua
1
1616.] CONDITIONS IMPOSED UPON THE CHIEFS. 395
that, when thay come to the yeiris of maturitie, hardlie
can thay be reclamed from these barbarous, rude, and
incivile formes, quhilk. for lack of instruction^ war bred
and satled in thame in their youthe : whairas, if thay
had bene sent to the inland (the low country) in thair
youthe, and trainit up in vertew, lerning, and the
Inglische tongue, thay wald haif bene the bettir pre-
pairit to reforme thair countreyis, and to reduce the
same to godliness, obedience, and civilitie." Lastly,
The chiefs were not to use in their houses more than
the following quantities of wine respectively: viz.,Dowart
and Macleod, four tun each; Clanranald, three tun;
and Coll, Lochbuy, and Mackinnon, one tun each; and
they were to take strict order throughout their whole
estates that none of their tenants or vassals should buy
or drink any wine. A very strict act of the Privy
Council against excess of drinking accompanied this
obligation of the chiefs. It proceeded on the narrative
that " the great and extraordinary excesse in drinking
of wyne, commonlie usit among the commonis and
tenantis of the Yllis, is not only ane occasioun of the
beastlie and barbarous cruelties and inhumanities that
fallis oute amangis thame, to the offens and displeasour
of God, and contempt of law and justice; but with that
it drawis nomberis of thame to miserable necessitie and
povartie, sua that they are constraynit, quhen thay want
from their awne, to tak from thair nichtbours." Maclean
of Dowart, and his brother Lauchlan, having delayed to
find the required sureties, were committed to ward in
Edinburgh Castle, whence the former was liberated in
a short time, and allowed to live with Acheson of Gos-
furd, his father-in-law, under his own recognisance of
£40,000, and his father-in-law's for 5000 merks, that
396 CONDITIONS IMPOSED UPON THE CHIEFS. [1616.
be should remain there until permitted by the Council
to return to the Isles. Do wart's brother was not liber-
ated till the following year, when his own bond was
taken for the conformity of himself and his son Hector
to the obligations imposed upon the other Islanders in
July, 1616. His dwelling-place was to be at Ardna-
oross in Mull; and he was allowed to keep two gentle-
men in his household. Donald Gorme of Sleat, having
been prevented, by sickness, from attending the Council
with the other chiefs, ratified all their proceedings, and
found the required sureties, by a bond dated in the
month of August. He named Duntullim, a castle of his
family in Trouterness, as his residence ; and six house-
hold gentlemen, and an annual consumption of four tun
of wine, were allowed to him ; and he was annually to
exhibit to the Council three of his principal kinsmen.1
These proceedings being communicated by the Council
to the King, were approved of by his Majesty; who, at
the suit of the Islanders, ordered that the chiefs, and
some of their immediate relations, might have licence to
use fire-arms for their own sport within a mile of their
dwellings.2
In the following year, Sir Riiari Macleod
of Harris, Sir Donald Gorme of Sleat
(nephew and heir-male of the late Donald Gorme),
Sir Donald MacAUan Vic Ian, captain of the Clan-
ranald, Sir Lauchlan Mackinnon of Strathordell,
Hector Maclean of Lochbuy, Lauchlan Maclean of
Coll, and Lauchlan Maclean, brother to Dowart, made
their appearance before the Council in the month of
1 Record of Privy Council, 11th, 17th, 26th July, 22nd August, 2nd
September, 1616; 22nd March, 1617.
3 Ibid., 18th September, 1616.
1617.] EXACTION OF CALPS ABOLISHED. 397
July.1 About this time, in consequence of great abuses
and oppression, the practice of taking calps in the
Highlands and Isles was abolished in the same way as
it had been suppressed by James IV. in Galloway
upwards of a century before.2 The calp was an ac-
knowledgment of vassalage or dependence on a chief;
and consisted in the best horse, ox, or cow of a vassal,
which, on his decease, was claimed by his superior.
The conflicting claims of different . chiefs and landlords
caused, in many instances, great oppression — four or
five calps being sometimes taken from one family on the
occasion of a single death. This led to the abolition of
the practice.
The chiefs of Eeppoch and Lochiel still continued
outlaws ; the former for his concern in the rebellion of
Sir James Macdonald ; the latter for having, in addition
to his former offences, lately interrupted Macintosh
when the latter was going to hold courts at Inverlochy,
as heritable Steward of Lochaber.3 When Lochiel
was forfeited for not producing his title-deeds in 1598,
the disputed lands of Glenluy and Locharkaig were
claimed by Macintosh ; and Lochiel had, to save him-
self from the consequences, entered into a contract with
the latter, by which he agreed to take from that chief
one-half of the disputed lands in mortgage for the sum
of six thousand merks; and to hold the other half
under Macintosh, for the personal service of himself and
1 Record of Privy Council, ad tempus. Macleod had been
knighted in 1613. The dates of the knighthood of the other chiefs
are more uncertain, although probably all were knighted after
Macleod.
a Acta of Parliament, IV. 548.
3 Record of Privy Council, June 10, July 81, 1617.
398 STATE OF LOCHABER. [1618.
the tenants of the lands. This contract was to endure
for nineteen years j and very severe penalties were im-
posed upon him who should infringe it. This it was
which kept Macintosh from acting against Lochiel
when the latter became an outlaw for the slaughter of
his clansmen in 1613. Now, however, Macintosh
maintained that Lochiel by his late lawless proceedings
had forfeited all benefit from the above-mentioned con-
tract ; and he accordingly prepared to carry into effect
the acts of outlawry against the latter which were in
force.1
Finding himself unable, in present circum-
stances, to make head against the Clanchattan,
Lochiel was forced to make up his quarrel with the
Marquis of Huntly. This he did by surrendering to
the Marquis' eldest son the superiority of many lands
in Lochaber ; in which lands his own eldest son, John
Cameron, and several of his clan were now received as
vassals of the house of Huntly. By this sacrifice
Lochiel obtained the support of Huntly against Macin-
tosh, whom the Marquis cordially hated.2 MacRanald
of Keppoch and his sons still continued outlaws ; and,
in the month of July a commission of fire and sword
against them was granted to Macintosh. In the exe-
cution of this service Macintosh gave offence to Lord
Gordon, who procured the recall of the commission
against Keppoch, and received anthority himself to act
against the latter's eldest son, Ranald — Keppoch him-
self, and his second son, Donald Glas, having by this
time contrived to make their escape and join Sir James
1 MS. History of Camerons.
9 Ibid. Beg. of Great Seal, L. 144.
1618.] ABGYLE BECOMES A CATHOLIC. 399
Macdonald in Spain.1 Here, strange to say, the fugi-
tive Macdonalds were soon after joined by their arch
enemy, the Earl of Argyle, whose personal history after
the year 1615 is a striking instance of the mutability
of human affairs.
In 1616 Argyle had gone to Court to make his per-
sonal report of the expedition led by him against Sir
James Macdonald in the end of the preceding year.
At that time he seems to have been in great favour ;
for an Act of Parliament was soon after passed dissolv-
ing from the Crown the Lordship of Kintyre, granted
to him in 1607, and settling it on James Campbell,
Argyle's son by Dame Anna Cornwallis, his second
wife.2 This lady, whom Argyle married when at Lon-
don in the year 1610, was a Catholic; and she gradu-
ally drew her lord over* to profess the same faith with
herself — although, for 6ome years, his conversion was
kept secret.3 On pretence of going to the Spa for the
benefit of his health, Argyle received from the King
permission to go abroad in 1618 ; his Majesty presum-
ing that the Scottish Privy Council would, before his
departure, have taken order for the good conduct of
all the vassals and tenants of the Earldom of Argyle.
This, however, had been neglected ; and, moreover, it
was reported, and truly, that the Earl instead of going
to the Spa had gone to Spain ; that he had there made
open defection from the true religion ; and that he had
entered into very suspicious dealings with the banished
rebels, Sir James Macdonald and Allaster MacRanald
of Keppoch. The King upon this wrote to the Scottish
i Record of Privy Council, 9th July, 21st October, 1618.
* Acts of Parliament, IV. 559.
• Douglas' Peerage (Edit by Wood), I. 94.
400 STATE OF THE EARLDOM OF ARGYLE. [1618.
Privy Council recalling the licence given to Argyle to
go abroad; and directing that nobleman to be sum-
moned to appear before the Council in the month of
February, 1619, under the pain of treason.1 In the
meantime various efforts were made to make the
"barons and gentlemen of Argyle" answerable for the
good rule of the Earldom. The result was, that in
December, 1618, twenty of these barons and gentlemen
appeared in presence of the Council, and made the
following arrangement for effecting the desired object :
— Campbell of Lundy undertook the principal charge -T
and under him, the Lairds of Lochnell, Auchinbreck,
Ardkinlass, and Kilberry were to answer for the districts
of Lorn, Argyle Proper, Cowal, and Kintyre, respec-
tively. Lochnell, in his district, was to be assisted by
the Macdougalls of Dunolly and Raray, Stewart of
Appin, the captain of Dunstaffnage, Mr. Donald Camp-
bell of Barbreck-Lochow, and Robert Campbell of
GlenfaUoch. Auchinbreck was to have the assistance
of the Lairds of Duntroon, Barbreck-Craignish, and
Craignish — all Campbells. The Lairds of Elangreg
and Otter (likewise Campbells) were to support Ard-
kinlass; and Macdonald of Largie, the Macallasters
of Loupe and Tarbert, Hector Macneill of Taynish,
and Hector Macneill of Carskeay were to assist Kil-
berry. The latter was to be put in possession of
Argyle's Castle of Kinloch (Kilkerran) in Kintyre,
to enable him the better to keep that district under
obedience.2
1 Record of Privy Council, 7th November, 1618. Mem. of Council
proceedings, Denmylne MS., ad tempos.
8 Record of Privy Council, 17th December, 1618.
1619.] ARGYLE DISGRACED AND FORFEITED. 401
The Earl ef Argyle, having failed to make
his appearance on the appointed day, was
declared a traitor, by an act which inveighs bitterly
against his hypocrisy and dissimulation.* He did not
venture to return to Britain during the reign of James
VI., nor, indeed, until the year 1638 ; and he died in
London, soon after his return in that year. While
abroad the Earl of Argyle distinguished himself in
the military service of Philip III. of Spain against
the States of Holland. 2 From the time of his going
abroad, he never exercised any influence over his
great estates in Scotland; the fee of which had,
indeed, been previously conveyed by him to his -eldest
son, Archibald, Lord Lorn, afterwards eighth Earl of
Argyle.8
The fall of Argyle necessarily produced a reaction
in favour of the Macdonalds, whose estates had gone to
benefit him and his clan. Sir James Macdonald and
the chief of Keppoch were recalled from Spain by
King James ; and, on their arrival in London,
the former received a pension of one thousand
merks sterling, and the latter a pension of two hundred
merks of the same money. The Bang wrote
"to the Scottish Privy Council in favour of
both these chiefs, sending, at the same time, ample
remissions for all their offences, to be passed under the
seals of Scotland. To this, however, the Council
made many objections, urging the danger of permitting
chiefs of such note to be at liberty to go to the Higb-
1 Record of Privy Council, 4th February, 1619.
3 Peerage, I. 94.
8 Letter, Council to the King, 2nd February, 1619; Denmylne MS.,
Advocates' Library.
29
402 PARDON OF SIR JAMES MACDONALD. [1621.
lands before proper security had been found for their
obedience. Sir James Macdonald s remission passed
the seals, however, in the month of October ; but some
arrangement seems to have been made by which he
was debarred from visiting Scotland. He died at Lon-
don in the year 1626, without issue to revenge his
wrongs and those of his clan on the Campbells. At
the same time that Sir James Macdonald received his
pardon, Keppoch appeared before the Privy Council,
trusting to a six months' protection he had obtained
from the King. He proposed visiting Lochaber, but was
directed by the Council to remain in Edinburgh until he
found sufficient security for his obedience to the laws.1
He seems at length to have satisfied the Council and
obtained his pardon ; for we find him afterwards settled
in Lqphaber, in peaceable possession of his estate.
Early in this year, Allan Cameron of Lochiel, and
John, his son, were outlawed for not appearing before
the Council, to find security, as the Islanders had done,
for their future obedience. In the month of July, com-
mission was given to Lord Gordon against Lochiel and
his clan, who are described as almost the only persons
in the Highlands and Isles who now remained disobe-
dient; and proclamation was made, charging all the men
of Badenoch and Lochaber, between sixty and sixteen
years of age (except only Sir Lauchlan Macintosh him-
self), to concur with Lord Gordon in the execution of
his commission. The same nobleman was commissioned
to apprehend or slay Ranald Macranald, the eldest sou
1 Sir R. Gordon's History of Sutherland, p. 238. Reg. of Privy
Seal, XCVII. 109. Letters, Council to King, 7th June, 1621 ; 21st
and 28th March, 1622; and Protection to Keppoch, 12th October,
1621 — all in Denrovlne MS.
1621.] PROCEEDINGS AGAINST LOCHIEL. 403
of Keppoch, who had contrived to conceal himself in
Lochaber ever since the year 1615.1 It appears that
these commissions were not vigorously acted upon; and,
indeed, Lochiel and Keppoch being both vassals of Lord
Gordon, it is probable he undertook the service in order
to prevent the interference of Macintosh, or some other
chief who, like him, was disposed to push matters to ex-
tremities against both the Clanchameron and the Clan-
ranald of Lochaber. In the following year,
Macintosh went to Court, and, by his repre-
sentations, procured, in the month of June, a commis-
sion against Lochiel, directed to himself and twenty-
two other chiefs and gentlemen of note throughout the
whole Highlands and Isles. The imminent danger
which now appeared to threaten Lochiel was averted
by the sudden death of Macintosh, which gave an oppor-
tunity to Lochiel's friends, particularly the Laird of
Grant, to interest themselves on his behalf.2 By their
means Lochiel was induced to submit his disputes with
the family of Macintosh, the chief cause of all his trou-
bles, to the decision of mutual friends. The lands of
Glenluy and Locharkaig were, by these arbiters, adjudged
to belong to Macintosh, who was, however, to pay to
Lochiel certain sums of money in compensation of the
claims of the latter. Lochiel, although he pretended
to acquiesce in this decision, yet delayed the completion
of the transaction in such a way that the dispute was
not finally settled till the time of his grandson, the cele-
brated Sir Ewin Cameron of Lochiel. 3 Meantime, he
1 Record of Privy Council, Jan., Feb., March, and July, 1621.
2 Record of Privy Council, 18th June, 30th July, 17th December,
1622. Douglas' Baronage, p. 352.
8 MS. History of Camerons.
404 ACTS FOB CIVILISING THE ISLES. [1622.
obtained a pardon for his offences, and his sentence of
outlawry was recalled.1
Since the year 1617, the Islanders had continued
(with the exception of Hector Maclean of Dowart) to
make their annual appearance before the Privy Council
with tolerable regularity. In July, 1619, the time for
their yearly appearance was, at their own request,
altered from July to February ; but, in 1621, it was
again altered to July, owing to the uncertainty of the
weather in spring.2 In the following year, Sir Ruari
Macleod of Harris, Sir Donald Gorme of Sleat, John
MacDonald, captain of the Clanranald (son of the late
Sir Donald MacAllan), and the lairds of Coll, Lochbuy,
and Mackinnon, made their obedience to the Privy
Council, as usual, when several acts of importance
relating to the Isles were passed. By the first of these
they were bound to build and repair their parish
churches to the satisfaction of the Bishop of the Isles ;
and they promised to meet the Bishop at Icolmkill,
whenever he should appoint, to make the necessary
arrangements in this matter. The Bishop, at this
time, promised to appoint a qualified Commissary for
the Isles — complaints having been made on this head.
By another act, masters of vessels were prohibited,
under the penalty of confiscation of the article, to carry
more wine to the Isles than the quantity allowed to the
chiefs and gentlemen by the act of 1617. The pre-
amble of this act assumes, that one of the chief causes
which retarded the civilisation of the Isles, was the
• i MS. History of Camerons; and Original Bond of Caution for
Locbiel, dated 21st September, 1623, and preserved in General Register
House.
2 Record of Privy Council, ad tempus.
1622.] THE CLAN IAN OF ABDNAHUBCHAN. 405
great quantity of wine imported yearly: — *"With the
insatiable desyre quhairof the saidis Ilanderis ar so far
possest, that, when thair arryvis ony schip or uther
veschell there with wines, thay spend both dayes and
nights in their excesse of drinking sa lang as thair is
anie of the wyne left; sua that, being overcome with
drink, thair fallis oute many inconvenientis amangis
thame, to the breck of his Majestei's peace/' Ac. By
a third act, Macleod, Sir Donald Gorme, Cknranald,
and Mackinnon, were bound not to molest those en-
gaged in the trade of fishing in the Isles, under heavy
penalties.1
The last serious insurrection in the West
A. D. I621*.
Highlands and Isles which occurred in the
reign of James VI., was that of the Clan Ian of Ard-
namurchan, in the year 1625, arising out of the following
circumstances. Archibald, fourth Earl of Argyle, had
acquired the superiority of Ardnamurchan and Sunart*
by resignation of Mariot, daughter and heiress of John
Macian of Ardnamurchan.2 The heirs-male of the
family of Macian continued, however, to possess the
estates, without acknowledging the Earl of Argyle as
their superior for a considerable period. Allaster
MacDonald Vic Ian of Ardnamurchan is mentioned in
the minority of Queen Mary, and John Macian of
Ardnamurchan occurs in the early part of the reign of
her son (supra, pp. 170, 2S8). John Oig Macian, son of
the last mentioned John, when on the point of marry*
ing a daughter of the house of Lochiel, about the year
1 Record of Privy Council, July, 1C22.
3 Inventory of Argyle Write. Reg. of Privy Seal, XVII., fo. 38 ;
XXIV., fo. 29. This lady had married Robert Robertson of Strowan,
who consented to her resignation of Ardnamurchan,
40G HISTORY OF THIS TRIBE. [1G25.
1596, was assassinated by his uncle, who was his next
heir, and wished to obtain possession of the estate.
The murderer did not long escape the punishment due
to his cringe; for, notwithstanding that he was supported
by Sir Lauchlan Maclean of Dowart, he was soon after
killed in a skirmish with the Camerons. This happened
in the district of Morvern; and the grave of Mac Vic
Ian, as tradition calls the murderer, who is said to have
been a warrior of gigantic size and great prowess, is
still shown in the churchyard of Keill in Morvern.1 In
1602, John MacAUaster Vic Ian of Ardnamurchan,
now the heir of the family, entered into a contract with
the Earl of Argyle. By this agreement, Macian be-
came bound to exhibit to the Earl the title-deeds of
Ardnamurchan, and to resign the lands to the Earl.
On this being performed, Argyle engaged to receive
Macian as his vassal in the lands, to be holden for
payment of one merk of feu-duty. This shows that,
hitherto, the Macians had possessed upon their old titles
from the Crown, without regard to the conveyance of the
superiority to the fourth Earl of Argyle by Mariot Macian,
the heiress. Argyle likewise engaged to protect and
defend Macian and his clan in the same way as his other
vassals.2 It does not appear that this contract, so favour-
able to the Macians (for Argyle's claim to the superiority
was legally good, independent of the proposed resigna-
tion), was'ever fulfilled, at least on the part of the EarL
It is clear that the title-deeds were delivered up; but
1 MS. History of Camerons. The author of this MS. calls the
murdered chief erroneously Donald ; but I find John Oig Macian of
Ardnamurchan mentioned in an authentic document, A.D. 1595. —
Collectanea do Rebus Albanicis, I. 200.
3 Inventory of Argyle Writs.
1625.] THEY ARE EMBROILED WITH ARGTLE. 407
the history of the Macians after this period, leads to the
conclusion, either that Argyle had not acted in good
faith, or that the Macians, by some insurrection or simi-
lar lawless proceeding, had forfeited the benefit of the
laws. Dying before 1611, this John Macian of Ard-
namurchan left a son, Allaster, in whose minority the
clan was led by a certain Donald Macian, probably
uncle of the minor, styled Tutor of Ardnamurchan.1 In
1612, a commission was granted by Archibald Earl of
Argyle, to Mr. Donald Campbell of Barbreck-Lochow,
" to take and receive the castle and place of Mingarry
(in Ardnamurchan), and, upon the Earl's expenses, to
put keepers therein ; " with power to the Commissioner
to summon before him all the tenants and inhabitants
of Ardnamurchan, and generally to manage that terri-
tory in fixing and collecting with regularity the rents to
be paid to the Earl, and punishing, by expulsion or
otherwise, the refractory tenants.2 This Mr. Donald
Campbell was a natural son of that Sir John Camp-
bell of Calder, killed in 1592, by an assassin employed
by Ardkinlass and others of the name of Campbell
(supra, p. 251). He was originally bred to the Church,
and became Dean of Lismore ; but he was of too rest-
less a disposition to confine himself to his ecclesiastical
duties. He first distinguished himself by the zeal with
which he endeavoured to bring to justice all those con-
cerned in his father's murder.3 The talents and acti-
vity of Mr. Donald Campbell recommended him to the
notice of his chief, the Earl of Argyle, by whom he was
1 Reg. of Privy Seal, LXXX. 162.
' Original in Charter Chest of Airds.
> This is proved by many documents in the Charter Chest of
Airds.
408 SEVERITIES OF MB. DONALD CAMPBELL. [1625.
commissioned, as above, to reduce the district of Ard-
namurchan to obedience. He afterwards received from
the Earl a lease of Ardnamurchan, and made him-
self very obnoxious to the natives by his severities. In
the end of 1615, or very nearly in the following year,
John Macdonald Vic Ian, a son probably of the Tutor
of Ardnamurchan, and a principal tenant in the district,
went to Edinburgh to seek, on behalf of the Clan
Ian, an audience of the Earl of Argyle, or his brother,
Campbell of Lundy. Having failed in his object,
through the absence of the Earl and his brother, he
returned to the Highlands bearing with him a strong
letter of recommendation from William Stirling of
Auchyle, a confidential agent of Argyle, to Mr. Donald
Campbell. In this letter, the following passage oc-
curs:— "It is not without reason and some foirknow-
ledge in preventing further inconvenience, I have written
to you j which, I am assured, ye will consider out of
your own wisdom. I hope ye will press to win the
people (of Ardnamurchan) with [kyndness] rather nor
extremitie, speciallie at the first." 1 In July, 1616, the
Tutor of Ardnamurchan incurred the forfeiture of two
thousand merks, for not appearing before the Privy
Council at that time;2 and it may be conjectured that Mr.
Donald Campbell lost no time in enforcing the sentence
against Macian. By some error or deceit on the part
of Argyle or his agents, a lease of Ardnamurchan had
been granted to Sir Donald MacAllan of Moydert,
captain of the Clanranald, several years before the
expiry of the lease granted to Campbell. In the month
of May, 1618, John MacDonald, captain of the Clan-
1 Original Letter in Ch. Cheat of Airds, dated 16th January, 1616.
2 Record of Privy Council, ad tempua.
1625.] HIS AGREEMENT WITH THE CLAN IAN. 409
ranald, son of the late Sir Donald, united with the Clan
Ian, who acknowledged him as their chief, and expelled
Campbell and his adherents from Ardnamurchan. This
dispute was in the following year submitted to the
decision of Sir George Hay (afterwards Earl of Kin-
nonll) and Sir George Erskine of Innerteil, who found
that Campbell's lease was the best in law, and there-
fore ordered him to be repossessed in the disputed
lands; compensation being made to the captain of
Clanranald for the grassum, or fine at granting of the
lease, paid by his father.1 In 1620, some of the princi-
pal men of the Clan Ian — with Macleod of Harris, the
captain of the Clanranald, and Maclean of Coll as
their sureties — bound themselves to Mr. Donald Camp-
bell for the dutiful obedience of the Clan Ian to the
house of Argyle, and for their being peaceable tenants
to Campbell, and paying him all rents and damages
that might be found due to the latter.2 Two years
later we find Campbell stating to the Privy Council
that AHaster Macian of Ardnamurchan had lately
assembled his clan, and declared to them his intention
of recovering the old possessions of his family, by law
if possible ; and should that fail him, had expressed his
determination to resort to force, in which he made his
clan swear to assist him. Macian, however, making
his appearance before the Privy Council, this accusa-
tion was referred to his oath, when he distinctly denied
the truth of it.3
i Record of Privy Council, 10th November, 1618 ; 29th and Mat
July, 1619.
2 General Register of Deeds, Vol. CCCCXXVI, sub. 15th January,
1630.
s Record of Privy Council, 23rd July, 1622.
410 THE CLAN IAN AGAIN REBEL. [1625.
It is probable, however, that this young chief, whether
instigated by his clan, or provoked by the severities of
the Campbells, did afterwards resort to force against
the latter. In 1624 the Clan Ian were again in rebellion;
and in September of that year Macleod of Harris,
Clanranald, and Maclean of Coll, as having formerly
r
become answerable for the Clan Ian, were charged to
exhibit the leaders of that tribe before the Privy Council
in January following. Having failed to do this, these
chiefs were denounced rebels, according to the usual
forms of Scottish law. At this time the Clan Ian had
seized, manned, and armed an English vessel, and had
betaken themselves, to the number of five or six score,
to a piratical life. In April, 1625, the Archbishop of
Glasgow and Sir William Livingston of Kilsyth were
commissioned to go to the burgh of Ayr, to provide a
ship and a pinnace, properly manned and victualled, for
the pursuit of the Clan Ian. At the same time a com-
mission of fire and sword and of justiciary against
them was given to Lord Lorn and the Lairds of Calder,
Auchinbreck, Lochnell, and Ardkinlass, or any three of
them, Lord Lorn always being one. In the month of
May a Scottish and a Flemish ship, which had been
seized by the Clan Ian, were retaken by Captain John
Osburne for the King. From various letters concerning
this insurrection which are still preserved, it appears that
the pirates of the Clan Ian were for a time the terror
of the whole west coast of Scotland, from Isla north-
wards. Being hotly pursued from Sky (whither they
had probably gone in pursuit of some merchant vessels),
by Sir Ruari Macleod of Harris and a body of his clan,
they landed in Moydert, the captain of Clanranald s
country, and hid themselves in the woods there. Soon
1625.] THE REBELLION SUPPRESSED. 411
afterwards Lord Lorn and his forces arrived at Ardna-
murchan, and meeting with Macleod and other chiefs
engaged in the service, speedily suppressed the insur-
rection, and killed or banished the rebels. From
this time we never meet with the Clan Ian of Ardna-
murchan as a separate and independent tribe ; as any
survivors of them seem, for security, to have identified
themselves with the Clanranald. The services of Lord
Lorn were approved of by the Privy Council, and he
received the thanks of that body accordingly.1 Mr.
Donald Campbell, originally tenant of Ardnamurchan,
became now heritable proprietor under Lorn of that
district and Sunart, for which he paid an annual feu-
duty of two thousand merks. Before the month of
January, 1629, he had been created a Baronet, and
during the reign of Charles I. was well known as Sir
Donald Campbell of Ardnamurchan. He left no sur-
viving male issue ; but his title is now enjoyed by the
present Sir John Campbell of Airds and Ardnamurchan,
the descendant and representative of George Campbell
of Airds, nephew to Sir Donald.2 Of the old Macians,
the last trace I have found is a bond, dated at Edin-
burgh, 22nd April, 1629, by Alexander Macian, son and
heir of the late John Macian of Ardnamurchan, to
Robert Innes, burgess of the Chanonry of Ross, for the
1 This account of the proceedings against the Clan Ian, is taken from
the Record of Privy Council, 22nd September, 1624 ; 27th January,
21st April, 31st May, and 28th July, 1625 ; and from Letters, Campbell
of Calder, the Archbishop of Glasgow to Lord Melros (afterwards Earl
of Haddington); from Macleod of Harris to Mr. Donald Campbell — all
preserved in the General Register House, Edinburgh ; and from the
Council to the King, preserved in the Denmylne MS., dated in the
months of April, May, and July, 1625.
2 Documents in Charter Chest of Airds.
412 MACBONAJLDS OF SUAX*
sum of fort j thousand pounds Scots.1 From this it may
he inferred that Macian had received, or was about to
receive, compensation for his claims on Ardnamurekan.
Haying now brought the general history of the West
Highlands and Isles down to the period proposed in the
outset of the present work, I shall conclude by adding
such particulars regarding the various tribes of whom I
have treated, as may serve to illustrate their position
with regard to each other during the reign of Charles I.
and his successors.
The House of Lochalsh had in 1 625 been for about a
century extinct in the male line; and while the represen-
tation of this family, through a female, had devolved upon
Donald MacAngus of Glengarry, its possessions, for the
most part, were in the hands of the Maokenzies, whosa
<jhief, Colin/ Lord Kintaill, was in 1623 dignified with
the title of Earl of Seaforth.
The House of JSleat which, for several generations
after the last forfeiture of the Lord of the Isles, had to
struggle with numerous difficulties, and barely succeeded
in retaining its possessions from the grasp of the Siol
Tormod, was in 1625 in a very prosperous condition.
In that year Donald Gorme Oig of Sleat (nephew and
heir of the last Donald Gorme, who died in 1616,
being the son of the latter's brother, Archibald), after
having concluded in an amicable manner all his dis-
putes with the Siol Tormod, and another controversy
in which he was engaged with the captain of Clan,-
ranald, was created a baronet of Nova Scotia by Charles
1. The present Lord Maodonald, his heir*male and
1 General Register of De#da, Vol CCCCXVTL
1ULCD0NALDS OF COLONSAY. 41 S
representative, is the twelfth baronet of the family. In
addition to Sleat, Trouterness, and North Uist, Lord
Maodonald now possesses the estate formerly held by
the Mackinnons in Sky (with the exception of one
small property held by Mr. Macallaster of Strathaird),
which was purchased in the reign of George III. by his
. Lordship's grandfather.
We have seen in a preceding chapter the total ruin
of the principal house of the Clan Ian Vor. It now
only remains to glance at the position of the surviving
cadets of that powerful tribe. The first of these we
shall notice is the family of Colonsay. The grandfather
of Coll Keitache MacGillespick Macdonald of Colon-
say was Coll, q, brother of James Macdonald of Dunyveg
and the Glens, and of Sorley Buy Macdonald, father
of the first Earl of Antrim. Some, years previous to
the breaking out of the great civil war, Coll MacGil-
lespick was expelled from Colonsay by the Campbells,
with whom he had a quarrel. His family was dispersed,
and one of his sons, the well-known Allaster MacColl
Keitache, having gone to Ireland, returned to the
Highlands in 1644 at the head of the Irish troops sent
to assist the Scottish Royalists by the Marquis of
Antrim. Allaster acted as Lieutenant-General to the
celebrated Marquis of Montrose, and received from
that leader the honour of knighthood. Although brave
to a fault, and, therefore, well qualified to lead irregular
troops like the Highlanders, Sir Allaster Macdonald
allowed his desire of revenging the wrongs of his family
upon the Campbells, to divert him from the proper
objects of the war. He was thus a principal cause of
the disaster which befel the Royal arms at Philiphaugh
— having previously withdrawn many of the Highlanders
414 MACDONALDS OF SAND A AND LARGIE.
from Montrose's camp, to assist him in his private feuds
in Argyleshire ; a service in which the western clans
were all very ready to engage. Being driven from the
Isles by General Leslie, and having lost all his followers,
Sir Allaster went to join the Royalists in Ireland, and
was soon afterwards killed in battle there. His father,
old Coll MacGillespick, being left once more in charge
of the Castle of Dunyveg, was entrapped into a surren-
der by Leslie, and was handed over to the Campbells,
by whom this restless Islander was at length executed.
He was hung from the mast of his own galley, placed
over the cleft of a rock near the Castle of Dunstaffnage.
Dr. Macdonnell, who resides at Belfast, is believed to
be the representative of this branch of the Clan Ian
Vor. Of the Earls of Antrim descended from Sorley
Buy we have already spoken (supra, p. 227). This
noble family is now extinct in the direct male line ; and
the title of Antrim is enjoyed by the heir of line of the
family. The next branch of the Clan Ian Vor we have
to notice is that of Sanda in Kintyre, whose ancestor
was Angus I lack, paternal uncle of James Macdonald
of Dunyveg and the Glens, and of Sorley Buy. The
representative of this family contrived to save his estate
at the time of the forfeiture of Kintyre by James VI.
From him descended in a direct line the late Sir John
Macdonald Kinnear, whose eldest son is the present
representative of the Macdonalds of Sanda. The origin
of the Macdonalds or Clanranaldbane of Largie has
already been noticed (supra, p. 63). The chieftain
of this branch likewise succeeded in preserving his
estate from forfeiture under James VI. In the direct
male line this family has been for some time extinct —
the estate having gone by marriage to the family of
MACDONALDS OF KEPPOCH. 415
Lockhart of Lee and Garnwath. The Macdonalds of
Sanda and Largie were actively engaged in supporting
both Montrose and Dundee.
The Clanranald of Itocliaber, or Macdonalds of Gar-
ragach and Keppoch, were one of the most active clans
on the Royal side in the great civil war. Soon after
the Restoration, the prosperity of this family received a
severe check from the barbarous murder of the young
chief of Keppoch, Alexander Macdonald Glas," and his
brother, two young men who had received a liberal
education, and were exerting themselves for the improve-
ment of their estates. They fell under the daggers of
some of their own discontented followers ; and although
their murder was amply avenged by their kinsman, Sir
James Macdonald of Sleat, yet the family did not soon
recover from the blow. Coll Macdonald of Keppoch
vanquished the Macintoshes, with whom he was at feud
regarding the lands he occupied, in the last clan battle
that was ever fought in the Highlands. The scene of
this conflict was on a height called Mulroy, near the
house of Keppoch (for the Macintoshes had invaded
Lochaber in the prosecution of the quarrel), and it took
place immediately before the Revolution in 1688.
Keppoch afterwards joined Dundee, and fought at Kil-
liecrankie ; and he likewise joined the banner of the
Earl of Mar, and was present at the battle of Sheriff-
muir in 1715. His son, Alexander Macdonald of
Keppoch, entered eagerly into the rebellion of 1745, and
fell gallantly leading on his clan, when the hopes of the
Jacobites were finally extinguished at Culloden. There
are still numerous cadets of this family in Lochaber ;
but the principal house, if not yet extinct, has lost all
influence in that district.
416 THE CLANRANALD OF KOYDEBT.
During the seventeenth century, the Clanranald of
Garmoran continued to prosper and increase. Donald
MacAllan, captain of the Clanranald in the latter part
of the reign of James VL, had several brothers. From
Ranald, one of these, descended the family of Benbecula,
which, on the failure of Donald's descendants, succeeded
to the barony of Oastletirrim and the captainship of
the Clanranald, and is now represented by the present
Ranald George Macdonald of Clanranald. The Mae-
donalds of Boisdale are cadets of Benbecula, and Staffa
is a cadet of Boisdale. From John, another of these
brothers, descended the family of Kinlochrnoidart, which
is now extinct in the direct male line, the estate being
possessed by Colonel Robertson Macdonald, in right of
his wife, the heiress of this family. From John Oig, uncle
of the above-mentioned Donald MacAllan, descended
the Macdonalds of Glenaladale. The head of this
family, John Macdonald of Glenaladale, being obliged
to quit Scotland about 1772, in consequence of family
misfortunes arising out of the rebellion of 1745, sold his
Scottish estates to his cousin (who is represented by
the present Angus Macdonald of Glenaladale), and
emigrating to Prince Edward's Island, with about two
hundred followers, purchased a tract of forty thousand
acres there, on which his heir-male now resides, while
the two hundred Highlanders have increased to three
thousand. In that remote colony, the language, man-
ners, and customs of the Highlanders, as in several
districts of Upper Canada, are preserved in greater
purity than in the mother country. The family of
Knoydart, mentioned in the Introduction (supra, p.
66), fell into decay about 1611, the lands of Knoydart
having previously come into the hands of Lochiel, by
KNOYDABT, MOBAB, AND GLENGARRY. 417
whom they were granted to Donald MacAngus of Glen-
garry, to hold of Lochiel and his successors. The
superiority of Knoydart was afterwards acquired from
Lochiel by the Marquis of Argyle. The old family of
Morar, mentioned in the Introduction (supra, p. 66),
soon became extinct ; and the position of the more
modern chieftains of Morar, as heirs-male of Allan Mac-
Ruari, chief of the Clanranald in the reign of James
IV., has already been noticed (supra, p. 158), and need
not here be repeated. The estate of Morar has passed
into other hands, but the family still exists in the male
line. The family of Glengarry, notwithstanding its
losses in Ross-shire, continued to prosper in other
quarters. Angus, or -35neas, the head of this family,
was, at the Restoration, elevated to the Peerage by the
title of Lord Macdonnell and Aros, for his services to the
cause of the Stewarts. This nobleman, presuming on
his Peerage, endeavoured to get himself recognised as
chief of all the Macdonalds, in which, however, he
failed. He left no male issue, and his title, being
limited to heirs-male of his body, died with him. The
late Alexander Ranaldson Macdonnell1 of Glengarry,
* As some persons attach great importance to the mode of spelling
the name " Macdonald," it may be proper to observe here that, until
of late, the spelling of Highland names was so lax as to deprive
of all weight any argument resting on so uncertain a foundation.
It could easily be shown that, on many occasions, the Glengarry
and Eeppoch families, who have now adopted Macdonnell, fre-
quently used Macdonald. The most proper way of spelling the
name, according to the pronunciation, was that formerly employed
by the Macdonalds of Dunyveg and the Glens, who used Mac-
conneU. Sir James Macdonald, however, the last of this family in
the direct male line, signed Makdonall. I have adopted Mac-
donald throughout this work, as being the spelling most generally
recognised.
30
418 CLAN IA1T OF GLKNOO, AM> CLAX ALLASTER.
styling himself also of Clanranald, revived the claims of
his predecessor to pre-eminence among the Macdonalds;
bat with no better success — as that honour, by the
general opinion of the Highlanders, belongs to the chief
who receives from them the title of MacDhomitt ndn
EUean, or Macdonald of the Isles ; in other words, to
Lord Macdonald. The principal families descended of
the house of Glengarry, were the MacdonneUs of Barris-
dale, Greenfield, and Lundie. Of these, the first still
occupies its original seat of Barrisdale in Knoydart. It
is needless to expatiate here on the devotion which all
the branches of the Clanranald have uniformly displayed
towards those whom they considered their rightful
sovereigns. They engaged in every attempt for the
restoration of the Stewarts, and suffered severely in con-
sequence ; but after all their sufferings and losses, they
still form a numerous and gallant tribe, as attached to the
house of Hanover as they ever were to the House of Stewart.
Of the Clan Ian of Glenco little remains to be said
The name recalls the dreadful massacre of Glenco, by
which it was endeavoured to annihilate this tribe. la
spite, however, of the massacre, and of their later suffer-
ings as Jacobites, several families of Macdonalds still
possess lands in the vale where their ancestors so long
resided. The final ruin of the Clan Ian of Ardna-
murckan has been detailed in the present chapter ; and
the name of this ancient tribe is now only to be found
in the fast fading traditions of the West Highlands.
The Macallaster8 of Loupe continued to possess their
lands in Eintyre, until the estate was sold by Colonel
Somerville Macallaster, the present heir-male of the old
family of Loupe. Many of the name are still to be
found in Eintyre and the neighbouring districts.
THE CLAtfGILLEAN OF DOWABT. 419
The family of Maclean of Dowart, which, in the
reign of James VI., was the most powerful in the
Hebrides, had before the end of the seventeenth cen-
tury lost nearly all its great possessions, and was almost
deprived of influence. The seeds of the decay of this
important family were sown in the reign of Queen
Mary, when the great feud between the Macleans and
Macdonalds first broke out. In the reigns of James
VI. and Charles I., many debts had accumulated against
the barony of Dowart, which enabled the Marquis of
Argyle and his successors to establish a claim to that
estate; and this claim the Macleans, owing to their
exertions in favour of the Stewarts, never had an oppor-
tunity of shaking off. Sir Lauchlan Maclean of Mor-
vern, immediate younger brother of Hector Maclean of
Dowart, and grandson of Lauchlan Mor (supra, p. 285),
was created a Baronet of Nova Scotia by Charles I.
On the death of his elder brother, Sir Lauchlan suc-
ceeded to the estate of Dowart ; and, on the failure of
the male issue of Sir Lauchlan, some generations later,
the Baronetcy devolved on Allan Maclean of Brolos,
descended from Donald, a younger brother of the first
Baronet of Dowart. Sir Allan's heir-male, who now
bears the title, is Lieut.-General Sir Fitzroy Maclean
of Morvern, eighth Baronet. From Lauchlan Oig
Maclean, a younger son of Lauchlan Mor of Dowart,
sprung the family of Torlusk in Mull. The estate of
Torlusk is now held by the heiress of line, Mrs. Clepbane
Maclean, and will eventually pass to that lady's grand-
son, the second son of the present Marquis of North-
ampton. During the seventeenth and eighteenth cen-
turies, the Macleans of Lochbuy, Coll, and Ardgour,
more fortunate than those of Dowart, contrived to pre-
420 THE CLANLEOD OF LEWIS.
serve their estates nearly entire as regarded the pro-
perty ; although compelled, by the power and policy of
the Marquis of Argyle, to renounce their holdings from
the Grown, and to become vassals of that powerful
nobleman and his successors. There were numerous
flourishing cadets of all the principal families of the
Macleans, too numerous to be noticed in detail in the
present brief sketch. The principal of these were —
the Macleans of Kinbchaline, Ardtornish, and Drim-
nin, descended from Dowart; of Tapul, and Scallas-
dak, descended from Lochbuy; of Isle of Muck,
descended from Coll ; and of Borrera in North Uist,
and Tressinishy descended from Ardgour. All the
Macleans were zealous partisans of the Stewarts, in
whose cause they suffered severely ; more particularly at
the battle of Inverkeithing, in 1652, when this clan lost
several hundred men, and a large proportion of officers.
Of the Siol Torquil, or Macleods of Lewis, the
principal surviving branches during the seventeenth and
eighteenth centuries were the families of Rasay and
Assint. The latter property came into the hands of
the Mackenzies, who expelled the Macleods towards
the end of the seventeenth century; but the family
continued to exist, notwithstanding its misfortunes and
losses, and was long represented by the late venerable
Donald Macleod of Geanies, Sheriff of Ross-shire,
whose grandson is now the head of this branch. The
Macleods, formerly of Cambuscurrtf, now of Cadboll,
are cadets of those of Assint. The present heir-male
of the old Macleods of Lewis, and chief of the Siol
Torquil, is John Macleod, now of Rasay.
The Siol Tormod, or Macleods of Harris, Dunve-
gan, and Glenelg, continued to possess these extensive
THE CLANLEOD OF HARBIS. 421
estates until near the end of the eighteenth century ;
but the estates of Harris and Glenelg have now passed
into other hands. The principal cadets of this power-
ful tribe were the families of Bernera, Talisker, Griser-
nish, and Hamer, descended from Sir Norman, Sir
Roderick", Donald, and William Macleods, younger
sons of Sir Ruari Mor. Besides these, however, there
were many other most respectable families of the name
settled in Sky, and also in Harris and Glenelg, where
some of them still remain. From the family of Bernera
sprung that of Luskinder, of which the late Sir
William Macleod Bannatyne, formerly one of the Sena-
tors of the College of Justice, was a cadet. The author
takes this opportunity of paying a tribute of respect to
the memory of that lamented gentleman, who, during a
public life of seventy years (for he died at the advanced
age of ninety-one), was ever distinguished by his zeal
in all matters tending to benefit the Highlands and
Isles. He early turned his attention to the history of
the principal Highland families, and to the peculiar
manners and customs of the Highlanders ; in the eluci-
dation of which his progress was so great, at a time
when, from political causes, these subjects were gener-
ally neglected, as to make it matter of regret that he
never thought proper to communicate his knowledge to
the world. To Sir William Macleod Bannatyne, the
author of the present work was indebted for much curious
information and many valuable suggestions.
The Clanchamcron, from the time of the submis-
sion of Allan Cameron of Lochiel to the Government
(supra, p. 403), continued to prosper ; and, with some
trifling exceptions, the various branches of this tribe
still enjoy their ancient possessions. The celebrated
422 THE CLANCHAMERON AND CLAJKCHATTAN.
Sir Ewin Cameron, commonly Ewin Dubh of Lochiely
succeeded, about the year 1664, in making a satisfac-
tory arrangement of the long standing feud with the
Macintoshes, by which, in consideration of a sum of
money paid by him, he was left at length in peaceable
possession of the disputed lands of Glenluy and Loch-
arkaig. This family, like many others, was constrained
to hold its lands from the Marquis of Argyle and his
successors. The Clanchameron took an active part
in all the rebellions in favour of the house of Stewart ;
and the chivalrous character of the " gentle Lochiel,"
who led his clan in 1745-6, has left an impression which
will not readily be forgotten.
During the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries, the
Clanchattan was a flourishing clan; and the present
Alexander Macintosh, captain and chief of Clanchat-
tan, besides his estates in Badenoch, still possesses the
lands in Lochaber so long disputed between his ances-
tors and the Macdonalds of Keppoch. The Macpher-
8ons, or Clanvurich, have, during the same period,
succeeded in establishing themselves as a separate clan
from the Macintoshes, although not without a struggle.
At the head of the Clanvurich is the present Ewen
Macpherson of Cluny, commonly called Cluny Mac-
pherson, who styles himself also chief of Clanchattan.
It is, however, well known and easily proved that the
title of captain and chief of Clanchattan has been en-
joyed by the family of Macintosh for at least four hundred
years. The Clanchattan (under which term I compre-
hend the Macintoshes and their followers) and the
Clanvurich have both distinguished themselves as
zealous and gallant supporters of the claims of the
home of Stewart.
TBS CLANNEILL OF BARBA AND OIGHA. 423
The history of the Clanneill of Barra, owing to its
remote situation, offers little of interest during the seven-
teenth and eighteenth centuries; nor have there sprung
from this ancient stock any branches of importance.
Lieut.-Colonel Roderick Macniel, the present repre-
sentative, possesses Barra and the adjacent Isles, which
can be distinctly traced to have been held by his ances-
tors for upwards of four hundred years; and tradition
carries their possession much farther back.
The Clanneill of Gigha multiplied much more
rapidly. The direct line of the old family, who were
certainly in possession of Oigha more than four hundred
years ago, failed in the person of Neill MacNeill of
Gigha, in the latter part of the reign of Queen Mary.
Neill of Gigha, the father of this individual, and many
gentlemen of the tribe, were killed in a feud with Allan
Maclean of Torlusk, commonly called Akin na7n Sop,
prior to the year 1542. Torlusk afterwards disputed,
but without success, possession of Gigha with James
Macdonald of Isla, to whom Neill, the son, had sold
the property. On the extinction of the direct male line
Neill MacNeill Vic Eachan of Taynish became heir-
male of the family; and his descendant, Hector Mac-
neill of Taynish, purchased from the Macdonalds the
Isle of Gigha, in the end of the reign of James VI., or
early in the reign of Charles I* Hector's descendants
possessed the estates of Gigha and Taynish until the
reign of George III., when they were sold. The family
however, still exists in the male line, being represented
by Daniel Hamilton Macneill of Raploch in Lanark-
shire; and while the present work is passing through the
press, the Island of Gigba has been purchased by Gap-
tain Alexander Macneill, younger, of Colonsay. Next
424 THE CLANFINNON AND CLANQUARBIE.
to the family of Taynish, the principal cadets of the
old Macneills of Oigha were those of Gallochelly,
Carskeat/, and Tirfergus. From Malcolm Beg Mac-
neill, a younger son of John Oig of Gallochelly, in the
reign of James VL, sprung the Macneills of Arichonan,
a younger son of which family acquired from the family*
of Argyle the Isle of Colonsay, which is now possessed
by his descendant, the present John Macneill of Colon-
say. Torquil, a younger son of Lauchlan MacNeill
Buy of Tirfergus, acquired the estate of Ugadale by
marriage with the heiress of the MacKays in the end
of the seventeenth century. Many cadets of the Clan-
neill of Gigha have settled in the North of Ireland,
where several flourishing families of the name are still
to be found.
The MacMmions, after engaging both in the rebel-
lion of 1715 and in that of 1745, lost all their property,
partly by forfeiture, partly by sale; and there is now no
proprietor of the name holding any part of their ancient
possessions either in Mull or Sky. There are still,
however, many gentlemen of the name resident in the
Highlands, particularly in the last mentioned island.
The honour of being heir-male of this ancient family is
disputed between William Alexander Mackinnon, M.P*
for Lymington, and Lauchlan Mackinnon of Letter-
fear n; nor is the evidence relied on by either party
conclusive on this head.
The old Macqmrries of Viva appear to have been
for some time extinct. The principal cadet of this
house was Macquarrie of Orrnaig, a family which is
likewise believed to be now extinct. Some branches
of the Maceacherns still remain in Eintyre. The
estate of Ugadale, the ancient inheritance of the
THE MACKENZIES AND MACDOUGALLS. 425
Mackays in Kintyre, passed by marriage, as above
mentioned, to a younger son of Macneill of Tirfergus,
in the end of the seventeenth century.
From the accession ef Charles I. to the death of
Queen Anne, the power of the Mackenzie*, under the
Earls of Seaforth and Cromarty, was, next to that of
the Campbells, the greatest in the West Highlands.
The forfeiture of the Earl of Seaforth in 1715, and of
the Earl of Cromarty in 1745, weakened that power
greatly ; yet the Mackenzies ' are still one of the most
numerous and wealthy tribes in the Highlands. The
estates of the noble families above mentioned are both,
with some exceptions, now held by heiresses — the
Hon. Mrs. Stewart Mackenzie of Seaforth, and the Hon.
Mrs. Hay Mackenzie of Cromarty ; but neither of the
titles have been restored. George Falconer Mackenzie
of AUangrange appears to be heir-male of the Earls of
Seaforth; and Sir Alexander Mackenzie of Tarbat,
descended from Alexander Mackenzie of Ardloch, to be
heir-male of the Earls of Cromarty. The principal
branches of the house of Seaforth, after AUangrange,
were those of Gruinard, Kilcoy, Applecross, Coul, Assint,
Redcastle, Suddy, Achilty, Fairburn, Devachmaluak,
Gerloch, and Hilton. The principal branches of the
house of Cromarty, after Ardloch, were those of Pres-
tonhall, Scatwell, Balone, and Kin nock.
The Macdougalh of Dunolly suffered much in the
great civil war, being stanch Royalists ; and, at a later
period, their estate was forfeited for joining in the
rebellion of 1715. Being restored on the eve of the
rebellion of 1745, the Macdougalls were prevented from
engaging in that unfortunate attempt ; and the estate
of Dunolly is now held by Captain Macdougall of
426 THE STEWARTS A5D CAMPBELLS.
Macdougall, R.N., who appears to be the heir-male of
Dugall, mentioned in the Introduction as the eldest
son of Somerled. The principal families sprang from
the house of Dunolly were those of GaUanaeh and
Soraba. The history of the Macdougalls of Betray,
the earliest cadets of the house of Lorn, is very obscure
during the seventeenth and eighteenth centuries. It is
believed, however, that this family is now represented
by Coll Macdougall of Ardincaple.
The Stewarts of Appin engaged in all the attempts
made by the Highlanders in favour of the house of
Stewart The principal family has been extinct for
some time, and their estate has passed into other hands.
But there are still many branches of this tribe remain-
ing in Appin. The chief cadets of Appin were the
families of Ardshiel, Invernahyle, Auchnacone, Fasna-
cloich, and Balachulish.
It now only remains to glance at the progress made
by the Campbells during the seventeenth and eighteenth
centuries. The Marquis of Argyle, commonly called
Gillespick Gruamach, increased the influence of his
family more than any of his predecessors. He suc-
ceeded in establishing claims to a great part of the
estate of Do wart, and he caused all the other Macleans,
and also the Clanchameron, the Clanranald of Garmo-
ran, the Olanneill of Gigha, and many other tribes, to
become his vassals, although they previously held their
lands of the Crown. His son, the ninth Earl of
Argyle, consolidated the power thus acquired ; and, as
the forfeitures of this Earl and his father were both
rescinded, the family of Argyle, after the Revolution of
1688, found itself possessed of more influence than any
family in Scotland* This influence was, as formerly,
CONCLUSION. 427
supported by the Willing services of many powerful
families of the name, whose distinguishing titles have
been sufficiently indicated in the course of the present
work, and do not require to be repeated here.
Having now fulfilled the task which, on undertaking
this work, he imposed upon himself, the author takes his
leave ; trusting that he will be found to have succeeded
in clearing away some of the clouds which formerly
obscured the history of the West Highlands and Isles.
THE END.
INDEX.
Aberdeen, 182, 184, 266.
Abertarf, 160.
Acheron of Gosfurd, 395.
Agricola, 1.
Aiff, son of the Laird of (seems error
for Dunyyeg), 193.
Airdrie, Laird o£ 297.
Albanich, The, 3.
Albany, John Duke o£ Regent to James
V., 116, 117, 122, 123, 125, 138.
Murdoch, Duke o£ 33, 35.
Robert, Duke of, Regent to James
I., 31, 32, 33.
Albion, 3.
Alexander IIL, King of Scotland, 20,
21,22.
Anne, Queen of Great Britain, 425.
Angles, The, 2.
Angus, Earls o£ 44, 129, 131, 132,
152, 168, 256, 260.
Angus, William Earl o£ 37.
Angus, son of Somerled, 13, 14, 17, 19.
AncruniMuir, Battle of, 168.
Antrim, County o£ 61, 226.
Antrim, Earls of, see Isles.
Anstrather of that ilk, Sir James,
younger, 278.
Apnadtdl, 134.
Appin, 103, 229, 426. See Stewarts
of Appin.
Arasaig m Garmoran, 27.
Ardgour, 71.
Ardmanach in Ross, Castle of, 56,
57.
Ardnacross in Mull, 396.
Ardnamurchan, 25, 27, 67, 118, 125,
239, 405, 406, 407, 408, 411, 412.
For Maciana of Ardamurchan, see
Isles.
Ardnamurchan, The Point of, separat-
ing the Northern from the Southern
Hebrides, 14, 122, 306, 371.
Ardrissak, Point of, 383.
Ardtornish, Castle of, in Morvern, 30,
47.
Argyle, Barons of, 400.
Argyle, Bishops of,
Neill Campbell, 246.
Lauder, 45.
Argyle, Countess of, Annas Keith,
widow of Regent Murray, 246, 248.
Argyle, Earldom of, 234, 246, 247,
248, 249, 251, 258, 369, 399.
Argyle, Campbells, Earls o£ 83, 248.
Archibald, 2nd Earl, 85, 92, 94,
95, 96, 98, 100, 101, 103, 104,
106, 107, 112, 115, 128.
Archibald, 4th Earl, 135, 136,
138, 139, 140, 141, 142, 145,
154, 155, 156, 157, 166, 167.
168, 171, 173, 175, 178, 180,
181, 182, 183, 185, 187, 196,
205 405.
Archibald, 5th Earl, 187, 188, 192,
200, 201, 203, 205, 206, 207,
222.
Archibald, 7th Earl, 234, 236,
244, 245, 246, 247, 248, 249,
250, 251, 252, 253, 254, 257,
258, 259, 260, 267, 274, 289,
290, 296, 297, 304, 305, 306,
310, 311, 312, 313, 317, 327,
341, 342, 343, 346, 348, 354,
355, 356, 359, 365, 369, 370,
372, 373, 374, 376, 377, 378,
379, 380, 381, 382, 383, 384,
385, 386, '387, 388, 389, 390,
391, 392, 399, 400, 401, 406,
407, 406.
Archibald, Lord Lorn, Marquis
430
INDEX.
of, and 8th Earl, 401, 410, 411,
419, 420, 422, 426.
Archibald, 9th Earl, 426.
Colin, 1st Earl, 49, 50, 51, 52,
53, 73, 84, 85.
Colin, 3rd Earl, 115, 116, 119,
121, 123, 124, 125, 126, 127,
129, 132, 133, 134, 135, 139,
141 342.
Colin/ 6th Earl, 214, 215, 216,
217, 219, 223, 229, 245, 248.
Argyle, Family of (Campbell), 83,
84, 127, 139, 142, 172, 187, 203,
409, 424, 426.
Argyle, or de Ergadia, territorial sur-
name of the Macdugalls, Lords of
Lorn. See Lorn.
Argyle Proper, district of, 201, 255,
334, 371, 376, 378, 379, 400.
Justice Air of, 100.
Argyleshire, 141, 143, 201, 202, 293,
312, 318, 370, 874, 377, 379, 381, :
414.
Armada, The Spanish, 239.
Aros in Mull, Castle of, 822, 32&
324.
Arran, Earl of, 101.
James Hamilton, Earl o£ Begeiti
of Scotland, Duke of Chatelner-
ault, 103, 146, 147, 148, 151,
152, 153, 156, 157, 165, 169,
171, 172, 175, 177, 180, 181,
182, 183, 187, 206.
Arran, Captain James Stewart, Earl
of, 215, 229.
Arran, Isle of, 14, 17, 19, 100, 127>
132, 184, 164, 198, 351, 352, 3gff.
Askomull in Kintyre, 282, 317, 326.
Aasint in Sutherland, 73, 102. See
Macleod and Mackenzie.
Attacotti, 2.
Athole, 53, 214, 367. 868, 375.
Athole, Countess of, 53, 54.
Earls of, 50, 52t 53, 54, 185, 186,
201, 202, 214, 215, 244, 257,
868.
Athole, The Raid «$ 58, 54.
Auchindoun, Castle o£ 260.
Aulaf MacSitric, King of the Isles, 4.
Avandale, Andrew, Cord, 210.
Ayr, a Burgees of, 140.
Ayr, Burgh of, 180, 184, 185, 282,
824, 410.
Ayr, Shire o£ 318, 877.
#
Badenooh, 43, 77, 78, 98, 108, 105,
160, 216, 254, 257, 402, 422.
BagnaD, an English officer in Ireland,
195. ^
Ballamonyn in Ulster, 226.
Balliol, Edward, pseudo-Kingof Soot-
land, 26.
Balliol party in Scotland, The, 24, 84.
Balmerino, James, 1st Lord, 316, 334,
335.
Balquhidder, 134, 216.
Ban, a river in Ulster, 194, 226.
Banffshire, above Carron, 391.
Bannatyne of Karnes, 63.
Barra, Isle of, 27, 79, 346, 347, 418,
423. See MacneilL
Barrisdale in Knoydert, 418.
Barton, Robert, 101.
Beaton, Cardinal, 146, 151, 152, 153,
154, 156, 175, 179.
Beauly, Priory of, in the Aird, 162.
Benbecula, Isle o£ 29, 60, 66.
Benderaloch in Lorn, 250.
Benmore in Mull, 235.
Benquhillinin Sky, Battle of; 296, 297.
Bern-bige in Ida, Battle o( 285.
*Bef ri8ay, near Lewis, Rock o£ 838.
Berwickshire, 266.
Binning, Sir Thomas Hasnfton, Lord,
afterwards Eaii of Metros and Had-
dington, 348, 353, 354, 366, 873,
375, 876, 877, 879, 880, 882, 388,
389, 411.
Bishop. Thomas, 168.
Bisset, Margery or Mary, heiress of
* the Glens in Antrim, 38, 61, 192.
Bistache in Coll, error for Brekaahe,
which see.
Blackness, Castle of, 219, 306, 321
Black water, Battleo^ in Ireland, 226.
Blair in Athole, 1 10.
Blairnepark in Boss, Battle of, 42.
Blantyre, Lord, 268.
Blar-na-leine, Battle o£ See Kintaeh-
lochy.
Bloody Bay in Mull, Battle < JBt, «8,
65. 69, 73, 74, 79.
Boisdale in South Uitt, 79. Bar
Maodonalds of Boisdale, see Isles.
Boquhan, Lands ofj 251.
Borders, 237, 266.
Borve in Benbecula, Castle o£ 2t.
Boswell, Captain, 383, 386.
Bothwell, Earl o$ 160, 161.
Stuart, Earl of, 244.
Bourkes in Connaught, 196.
Bowes, Mr. Thomas, ambassador :
Queen Elizabeth to lames VJL,
Boyse, a river in Ulster,
Bracadale in Sky, 74.
Braes of Loohaber, 160.
Brae Boss, 302.
Bran, ship of war, J8Z.
INDEX.
431
Breadalbane, 134, SOL
Brekache in CoU (Bistache), Castle
of, 269, 270, 398.
Brereton, Andrew, leader of English
troops in Ireland, 194.
Breve or Celtic Judge of the Lewis,
The, 210, 213, 271, 291.
Bristol, 164.
Britons, The Strathclyde, 2.
Brodick in Arran, Castle o£ 44, 164.
Broke, Richard, 164.
Brosse, Sienr de la, 158.
Bruce, Lady Mary, sister of Bobert
I., 84.
Bruce, Princess Marjory, 25.
Bnchanan, Laird of, 93, 112.
Buchan and Ross, John Stewart, Earl
of, 33.
Burleigh, Cecil, Lord, 224, 225.
Burley, Lord, in Scotland, 357.
Burntisland, 367.
Burrowmnir of Edinburgh, 90.
Bute, Family of (Stewart), 149.
Bute, Isle of, 14, 17, 18, 19, 20, 23,
45, 116, 127, 154, 164, 166, 371.
Bute, Justice Air o£ 100.
Bute, Sheriff of. 371.
Bute, Shire of, 266, 282, 377.
Caithness, Bishop of, 175, 176.
Caithness, County or Shire of, 48, €0,
105.
Caithness, Allan Stewart, Earl of,
37, 38, 62.
Caithness, Earl of; 374.
Caledonii or Caledonians, 1, 2.
Camerons of Callart, 344.
of Erraoht, 343.
of Erracht, Ewin, 202, 203,
228,229.
Camerons of Glesmeris, or MacSorlies,
77,202.
Cameron of Glennevis, AUaster, 343.
Cameron of Kinlochiel, 343.
Cameron of Kinlochiel, John, 202,
203, 228, 229.
Camerons of Letterfinlay, or MacMac-
tins, 77, 345.
Camerons of Loobiel, Captains of the
Claochameron :~
Allan MacConnell Buy (Beg. Ja.
m.), 76.
Allan Mac Ian Duy (Beg. Ja.
VI.), 203, 226, 229, 248, 261,
279, 285, 306, 339, 340, 341,
342, 343, 344, 345, 346, 397,
402, 403, 416, 421.
Allan MacOchtry (Beg. Bob.
IL),75.
Donald Dubh (Beg. Ja. L), 75,
76.
Donald Dubh MacDooald Vic
Ewin (Beg. Maria), 183, 202,
203.
Ewin AUanson (Beg. Ja. IV. and
Ja. V.), 77, 91, 92, 97, 99, 115,
127, 159, 178, 179,202, 203, 206.
Ewin Beg Donaldson (Beg. Ma-
ria), 182.
fiir Ewin Dubh (Beg. Car. EL),
64,403,422.
John (father of Sir Ewin), 398, 402.
Camerons of Strone, or Macgillonies,
77, 345.
Cameron, Donald, a bastard son of
Ewin Bee of Lochiel, 228, 229.
See Clanchameron.
Campbells, Earls of Argyle. See
Argyle.
Campbells, The, 83, 84, 85, 128, 132,
136, 139, 216, 234, 247, 255, 289,
356, 357, 361, 370, 375, 390, 402,
410, 413, 414, 425, 426.
Campbell, Lady Agnes, wife of James
Maodonald of Dunyveg and the
Glens, 187, 207, 225.
Campbell, Archibald, son to the Prior
of Ardchattan, 376, 377, 379.
Campbell, Arthur, son of Sir Arthur,
35.
Campbell, Sir Arthur, 35.
Campbell, Lady Elisabeth, wife of
Lauchlan Cattanaoh Maclean of
Dowart, 128.
Campbell, James, 35, 36, 38, 62.
Campbell, John MacArthur, 34, 36.
Campbell, Lady Kauherine, wife of
TorquilMadeodofthe Lewie, 73, 96.
Campbell, Margaret, widow of John
Gig Campbell of Cabrachan, 247,
250, 252, 253.
Campbell, NeiU, Bishop of Argyle, 246.
Campbell of Aberuchill, Colin, 370.
Campbell of Airds, George, 411.
Campbell of Airds and Ardnanrar-
chan, Sir John, Baronet, 411.
Campbell of Ardchattan, Alexander,
called Prior e£ 360, 372, 374, 377.
Campbell of Ardkinlass, Sir James,
246,247.
John (Beg. Ja. VI.), 244,
247, 249, 250, 251, 252, 253, 255,
371, 379, 383, 384, 392, 400, 407,
410.
Campbell of Ardnamurchan, Sir Do-
nald, Baronet, formerly Mr. Don.
Campbell of Barbreck-Lochow, 371,
382, 384, 400, 407, 408, 409, 411.
432
INDEX.
Campbell of Auchinbreck, Archibald,
135.
Duncan, younger, 206.
— — — — Dougal, afterwards Sir Don-
gall, 246, 247, 305, 369, 370, 371,
374, 379, 380, 392, 400, 410.
Campbell of Barbreck-Craicnish, 400.
Campbell of Barbreck-Lochow. See
Campbell of Ardnamurchan.
Campbell of Cabrachac, John Oig
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 247, 250, 252, 253.
Campbell of Calder, Sir John, 1st
Laird (Reg. Ja. V.), 126\ 127, 128,
132, 141, 342.
John, 3rd Laird (Reg. Ja.
VI.), 244, 245, 246, 247,- 248, 249,
250, 251, 252, 253, 254, 255, 257,
407.
Sir John, 4th Laird (Reg.
Ja. VI.), 289, 355, 356, 357, 358,
359, 360, 361, 362, 363, 364, 365,
366, 367, 369, 370, 371, 372, 373,
375, 377, 382, 383, 384, 385, 386,
387, 410.
Campbells of Calder, The, 212, 255.
Campbell, Captain of Craignish, 370,
400.
Campbell, Robert, Captain of Dunoon,
383.
Campbell, Captain or Constable of
Dunstafinage, 25, 400.
Campbell of Duntroon, 400.
Campbell of Elangreg (Ilangerig), 400.
Duncan, 135.
Campbell of Glenfalloch, Robert, 400.
Campbell of Glenurchy, Duncan
(Reg. Ja. V.), 135.
- — Duncan (Re* Ja. VI.), 246,
247, 248, 249, 250/ 251, 253.
Campbell, son of Glenurchy, 229.
Campbell of Inveraw, Dougal Mac-
conachy, 217.
Campbell of Kilberry, Colin, 383,
400.
Campbell of Eilmichael, Colin, 383.
Campbell, James, Lord Kintyre, 399.
Campbell of Lawers, Sir James, 348,
356, 359, 370.
Campbell of Lochnell, Archibald
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 246, 247, 248, 249,
250, 251, 253, 258.
» Alexander (Reg. Ja. VL),
371, 379, 382, 384, 400, 410.
Campbells of Lochnell, The, 249.
Campbell of Lochow, Sir Duncan,
1st Lord Campbell, 84.
.Sir Neill (Reg. Rob. I.), 84.
Campbell of Loudoun, Sir Hew, 247,
Campbell of Lundy, Colin, 249, 369,
370, 371, 392, 400, 408.
Campbell of Otter, 400.
Campbell of Skipnish, 126, 135, 141.
Campbell, Prior of Strath611an, Ar-
chibald, brother to Campbell of Law-
ers, 356, 359, 362, 365. 368, 369, 388.
Campbellton, Burgh o( 277.
Campbellton, Castle of, in Kintyre,
93, 99, 378, 406
Canna, Isle of, 239.
Cara, Isle of, 382, 383, 384.
Carneburg (Kerneburg), a castle on
one of the Treshimsh Isles near
Mull, 69, 80, 101, 115, 126.
Carrick, Bailliary of, in Ayrshire, 132,
134, 167, 226, 282, 312.
Carrick, Castle of, in Cowal, 253.
Carrickfergus. See Knockfergus.
Cary, Governor of Dunluce, 225.
Castle Sweyn in Knapdale, 79, 84, 381.
Charles I., King of Great Britain, 411,
412. 419, 423, 425.
Chatelherault, Duke of. See Arran.
Chisholm of Comer, Wiland, 114.
Clackmannanshire, 320.
Clan Allaster, or MacAllasters of
Kintyre, 63, 68. 235, 281, 308, 388,
4ia See Mac Allaster.
Clanchameron or Camerons, 37, 38,
40, 56, 60, 68, 70, 71, 74, 75, 76, 77,
78, 95, 103, 110, 127, 143, 178, 182,
202, 203, 216, 228, 229, 254, 257,
341, 342, 343, 344, 346, 402, 406,
421. 422, 426. See Cameron.
Clanchattan or Macintoshes, 37, 38,
39, 40, 41, 56, 64, 66\ 69, 70, 71, 72,
75, 77, 78, 79, 103, 123, 143, 208,
228, 254, 255, 257, 341, 398, 415,
422. See Macintosh.
Clandonald, North. See danhuistein.
Clandonald, South. See Clan Ian Vor.
Clandonald, all the Macdonaldsor de-
scendants of the House of the Isles,
collectively, 69, 74, 79, 83, 311, 417.
fiaa IflleS
Clandonald in Ulster, 192, 193, 195,
196, 197, 198, 199, 200, 201, 221,
222, 223, 224, 225, 226, 227. See
Isles, and Clan Ian Vor.
Clanduffie, or Macfies of Colonsay,
68, 81, 235. See Macfie.
Claneachern, or Maceacherns of Kil-
lelan, 63, 68, 81, 308, 424. See
Maceachern.
Claneboy, a district in Ulster, 200,
221, 222, 225.
danfinnon, or Mackinnons, 80, 177,
236,413,424. See Mackinnon.
INDEX.
43S
Clangillean, or Macleans, 51, 60, 68,
69, 70, 71, 72, 76, 95, 110, 128, 132,
143, 177, 191, 192, 201, 217, 218,
228, 230, 231, 233, 234, 235, 236,
238, 239, 240, 257, 274, 283, 284,
285, 28G, 301, 305, 348, 426. See
Maclean.
of Coll, 70, 71, 77, 269.
See Maclean of Coll.
of Dowart, 69, 80, 81, 101,
111, 143, 203, 269, 419. See Mac-
lean of Dowart.
of Lochbuy, 69, 70, 111,
143. See Maclean of Lochbuy.
Clangregor, or Macgregora, 250, 257,
303, 304, 311, 344, 346.
Clanguarie, or Macquarries, 81, 177,
236, 424. See Macqnarrie.
CSangun, GO.
Clannuistein, or Macdonalds of Skat,
called also Clandonald North, and
Clandonald of Sky and North Uist,
61, 81, 94, 102, 106, 107, 108, 110,
130, 131, 144, 146, 191, 203, 204,
206, 209, 213, 230, 231, 235, 295,
290. See Isles.
Clan Ian,or Maciansof Ardnamurchan,
59, 67, 110, 125, 178, 235, 238, 239,
369, 405, 406, 407, 408, 409, 410,
411, 418. See Isles.
Clan Ian Abrach,orMacians ofGlenco,
59, 96, 110, 418. See Isles.
Clan Ian Vor, or Macdonalds of Isla
and Kintyre. called also Clandonald
South, 32, 59, 61, 62, 63, 68, 80, 81,
82, 108, 120, 132, 178, 191, 192,
199, 200, 201, 218, 221, 222, 223,
224, 228, 230, 232, 233, 234, 235,
236, 238, 239, 240, 265, 268, 269,
274, 283, 284, 285, 300, 31 1, 312,
337, 351, 352, 353, 355, 356, 357,
359, 360, 366, 367, 368, 369, 372,
373, 374, 376, 377, 378, 390, 413,
419. See Isles.
Oankenzie or Mackenzies, 52, 56, 57,
82, 83, 92, 111, 112, 146, 183, 209,
210, 211, 212, 213, 299, 300, 301,
302, 303, 336, 337, 338, 340, 341,
412, 420, 425. See Mackenzie,
danleod, or Macleods collectively, 51,
68, 72. See Clanleod of Harris and
Clanleod of Lewis.
Clanleod, or Macleods of Harris,' Dun-
▼egan, and Glenelg, called also Siol
Tormod, 72, 73, 74, 81, 130, 144,
177, 203, 204, 205, 206, 207, 236,
272,295,296,412,420. SeeMacleod
of Harris, Dun vegan, and Glenelg.
Clanleod, or Macleods of Lewis, called I
also Siol Torquil, 72, 73, 74, 131,
144, 145, 177, 181, 185, 210, 211,
219, 220, 221, 235, 265, 278, 336,
338, 34a 366, 420. See Macleods of
Lewis, Rasay, and Assint.
Clanneill, collectively, 5 1 , 68- See Clan-
neill of Barra. and Clanneill of Gigha.
Clanneill, or Macneills of Barra, 79,
177, 236, 257, 346, 347, 423. See
Macneill of Barra.
Clanneill, or Macneills of Gigha, 63, 79,
235, 308, 376, 423, 424, 426. See
Macneill of Gigha.
Clanranald, or Macranalds of Garmo-
ran ; or of Moydert, Morar, Knoy-
dert, and Glengarry, 34, 56, 59, 60,
63, 65, 66, 94, 107, 109, 134, 147,
157, 158, 159, 160, 161, 162, 163,
178, 182, 183, 218, 235, 239, 299,
300, 301, 302, 303, 304, 411, 416,
417, 418, 426. See Isles.
Clanranald of Lochaber, or Macranalds
of Keppoch, called also Macdonalds,
and Sliochd Allaster Vic Angus, 32,
56, 59, 63. 64, 78, 108, 109, 208,
254, 257, 341, 415, 422. See Isles.
Clanranaldbane, or Macdonalds of Lar-
gie, a branch of the Clan Ian Vor,
63, 108. See Isles.
Clanricarde, Richard Earl of, 198.
Clanvurich, or Macphersons, 254, 255,
257, 341, 422.
Clan Vic Gilvore in Lewis, 291, 292.
Clerache, Bean, a vassal of Lord Lovat,
161, 162.
Clyde, Frith of, 1, 153, 293.
Clydesdale, Lower Ward of, 282.
Coan, The (an image used in witch-
craft), 303.
Cogeache, District 0$ 73, 102, 214,
270.
Coll, Isle of, 17, 24, 70, 71, 79, 191,
217, 269, 270.
Colonsay, Isle of, 27, 372, 424.
Colquhoun, Chamberlain of the Isles
(Keg. Ja. V. and Maria), 169, 174.
Colquhouns, The, 303.
Col win, John, an Historical Writer,
232.
Comyn, The Family of, 24, 77, 84.
Congregation, Lords of the, 187, 188.
Conn of the hundred battles, King of
Ireland, 10.
Connan, River in Ross-shire, 56.
Connaught, 198.
CornwaUis, Dame Anna, Countess of
Argyle, 399.
Corpach in Lochaber, 71*
Cowal, 253.
31
434
INDEX.
Cowal, District of, 100, 379, 400.
Crawford, Earls of. 40, 42, 44, 50, 52,
98, 372, 373, 374.
Crawford, Captain, 364.
Creichmor, Lands of, in Sutherland,
59..
Craiganairgid in Morvern, 125.
Craignish in Argyle, 132.
Crofts, Sir James, 195.
Cromarty, Mackenzie Earl of, 425.
Culloden, Battle of, 415.
Cnmrays (Cumbraes), 44, 198.
Cunningham, Bailliary of, in Ayrshire,
132, 134, 167, 282.
Dalriads, The, 2, 3,
Darnley, Henry Lord, 73.
David II., King of Scotland, 26, 27,
28, 29, 67, 72, 73, 84.
De Ergadia, or of Argyle. Territorial
surname of the descendants of Dugal
son of Somerled. See MacDugall
and Lorn.
De Insulis, or of the Isles. Territorial
surname of the descendants of Begi-
nald son of Somerled. See Macao-
nald and Isles.
Diarmed Mac Maelnambo (an Irish
Prince), Kiug of the Isles, 5.
Dicaledones, The, 2, 3.
Dingwall, 100, 105.
Dingwalls, The, 82.
Dingwall of Eildun, 218.
Dingwall, Castle of, 40, 49, 117.
Donald Bane, King of Scotland, 11.
Donald Gorme (a vassal of the Lord
of the Isles, 1481), 57.
Donald MacTade (an Irishman), Re-
gent of the Isles, 7.
Donibirsel in Fife, 244.
Douglas, Castle of, 42.
Douglasdale, 260.
Douglases, The, 45, 46, 129.
Douglas, Sir George, brother of llarl
of Angus, 165.
Douglas, Archibald, Earl of and Duke
of Touraine, 39, 40.
Douglas, James, ninth Earl of, 44, 45,
47.
Douglas, Sir John, of Balvany, 42, 44,
47.
Douglas, William, eighth Earl of, 41,
42,43.
Doune in Menteith, Woods of, 250.
Dowart in Mull, Barony of, 419, 426.
Dowart, Castle of, 69, 217, 231, 233,
234, 306, 307, 322, 324, 393.
Dowdall, Archbishop of Armagh,
19a
Drogheda, 176, 221.
Drumchatt, in Boss, Skirmish o£ 92.
Dubhgall, The, or Danes, 8, 9.
Dublin, 175, 177, 201, 221, 226.
DufFerin (Duffreyn), or White's Coun-
try in Ulster, 195, 222.
Dugal], King of the Isles, son of So-
merled, 13, 17, 18, 426. Ancestor
of the Lords of Lorn and the Mac-
dugal Is.
Duirinish in Sky, 74.
Dunand, a fort in Isla, 377.
Dunaverty, Castle of, in south Kin-
tyre, 89, 99, 149.
Dunbar, Castle of, 207.
Dunbars, The, 41.
Dunbar of Westfield,Sir Alexander,41.
Dumbarton, Burgh of, 100, 133, 134,
148, 165, 166, 264, 266, 282, 283,
292,304.
Dunbarton, Castle of; 153, 164, 165,
168, 175, 308,311,324.
Dunbarton, Justice Air of, 100.
Dunbarton, Shire of, 132, 282, 318, 377.
Dunconnell. Castle of, in Scarba, 69.
Dundalk, 193.
Dundee, Burgh of, 259.
Dundee, Viscount o£ 415.
Dunfermline, Alexander Seton, Earl
o£ and Chancellor of Scotland (Reg.
Ja. VI.), 354, 359, 360, 361, 362,
365, 366, 379, 382.
Dunkeld, Bishop of, 251.
Dunkerd, Castle of, in Garveloch Isles,
69.
Dunluce, Barony of, 197.
Dunluce, Castle of, 225, 226.
Dunluce, Viscount of. See Isles.
Dunolly, Lands of, 425. See Mao-
dougall.
Dunoon in Cowal, Castle o£ 166.
Dunoon, Village o£ 166.
Dunseverig in Ulster, 226.
Dunskaich in Sleat, Castle ot, 115.
Dunstaffnage in Lorn, Castle of, 25,38,
87, 229, 414. See Campbell.
Dantroon in Argyle, Castleof, 362,382.
Duntullim in Trouternees, Castle o£
396.
Dunvegan in Sky, Lands of, 74, 203;
206, 278, 279.
Dunyveg in Isla, Castle of; 63, 149,
232, 273, 288, 307, 312, 313, 319,
322, 340, 349, 350, 351, 352, 353,
354, 355, 356, 357, 358, 359, 360,
361, 362, 363, 364, 365, 370, 372,
373, 375, 376, 378, 384, 385, 386,
387, 414.
Durham, Laurence, Bishop o£ 47.
INDEX.
435
Barer in Lorn, District of, 24, 27, 70,
95, 100, 126.
Earls, Scottish Catholic (Beg. Ja,
VI.), 256, 257, 258, 259, 260.
Edgar, King of Scotland, 11, 12.
Ediuburgh Castle, 91, 93, 103, 112,
135, 188, 243, 292, 306, 310, 311,
316, 317, 327, 237, 357, 395.
Edinburgh, City, 90, 134, 135, 143,
148, 164, 214, 275, 291, 303, 310,
324, 329, 343, 344, 346, 354, 370,
373, 374, 380, 402, 404.
Edinburgh, Shire, 320.
Edinburgh, West Port of, 317.
Edward Balliol, pseudo-King of Scot-
land, 26, 72.
Edward IV. . King of England, 47, 49.
Eicg, Isle of, 27, 239, 368, 369, 370,
372.
Elandonan in Kintaill, Castle of, 98,
101, 145, 146, 177, 209.
Elanlochgorme in Isla, Fort of, 233,
322, 363, 364, 376, 377, 385, 386.
Elanterim in Moydert, Castle of, 29,
31, 65, 393, 394.
Elder, John, a Highland Priest, author
of a curious letter to Henry VIII.,
156.
Elgin, 179, 315.
Elizabeth. Queen of England, 222, 223,
224, 226, 244, 261, 274, 275.
England, Kings of, 226.
English Catholics, 260.
English mercenaries employed by
Macdonald of Isla, 240, 241.
English vessel seized by pirates of
the Clan Ian, 410.
Enniskillen, 261.
Enzie, George Lord Gordon, Earl of,
eldest son to the first Marquis of
Huntly, 343, 344, 371, 391, 392,
398 402 403.
Erroll, Earl of, 256, 257, 259, 260.
Erskine, M r. George, ad vocate,247,253.
Erskine, Sir George, of Innerteil, 409.
Evre, Sir Ralph, 168.
Exchequer, Lords of, in Scotland (Keg.
Ja.,VL), 263, 264, 265, 276, 278.
Falkland in Fife, 287.
Fernacostrie in Sutherland, Lands of,
59.
Fifeshire, 146, 244, 320, 335.
Fingal MacGodred, King of the Isles,
5, 6.
Fiongall, The, or Norwegians, 8, 9.
Fiongail, King of the (one of the ap-
pellations of the Lords of the Isles), 8.
Flemish ship seized by pirates of the
Clan Ian, 410.
Flodden, Battle of, 93, 104, 108, 112,
124.
Florida, The, a vessel of the Spanish
Armada, 239.
Forbes, Lord, 257.
Forfarshire, 135, 146, 320.
Forret of Fingask, John, 278, 297.
Forth, Frith of, 147, 367.
Fort- William, 277.
Francis I., King of France, 153.
Fraser of Foyers, James, 162.
Frasers, The, 161, 102, 179, 208. See
Lovat.
Galloway, District o£ 167, 312, 318,
397.
Galway in Ireland, 387.
Garbhchrioch. See Garmoran.
Garmoran, or Garbhchrioch, Lordship
of, comprehending Moydert. Ara-
saig, Morar, and Knoydert, 24, 27,
30, 34, 60, 65, 66, 94. See Clan-
ranald of Garmoran.
Garragach in Brae Lochaber, 64.
General Bond, The (vulgar name for
an Act of the Scottish Parliament,
1587), 237.
George III., King of Great Britain,
413, 423.
Gerloch in Boss, District of, 73, 111,
112, 272, 341. See MacKcnzieand
Siol Vic Gillechallum.
Gigha, Isle of, 27, 191, 207, 384, 423.
See Clanneill and M acneill of Gigha.
Gilladomnan, grandfather of Somerled,
10.
Gillechallum. See Siol Vic Gille-
challum.
Gillecolane, son of Somerled, 16.
Gilli, Jarl of the Isles, 5.
Gillibrede of the Cave, father of
Somerled, 10, 11, 12.
Glammis, Master of, 247.
Glasgow, Archbishop o£ 325, 410.
Glasgow, City, 60, 134, 268, 307, 336.
Glasgow Muir, Battle ot, 165.
Glasgow University, 205.
Glenarm, Monastery o£ in Antrim,
197.
Glencairn, Earl of (Reg. Maria), 153,
155, 165, 167, 168 {Reg. Ja. VI.),
243.
Glenco, 24, 27, 67, 70, 95, 100, 126..
Glenco, Massacre o£ 315, 418.
Glenelg, 73, 203, 206, 278, 279, 421.
Glenfrune, Battle of, 304.
Glenlivat, Battle of, 257, 258, 259, 261.
430
INDEX.
Glenluy in Lochaber, 75, 77, 78, 108,
227, 397, 403, 422.
Glenmoriston, 159.
Glennevis, 77.
Glens in Antrim, The, 38, CI, 63, 90,
108, 193, 197, 199, 200, 222, 224,
225, 388. See Isles.
Glenspean in Lochaber, 160.
Glenurchy in Lorn, 371.
Godfrey, Lord of Uist. See Isles.
Godfrey MacFergus, Toshach of the
Isles, 10.
Godred Orovan, King of the Isles, 5, 6.
Godred MacSitric, King of the Isles, 5.
Godred the Black, King of the Isles,
7, 13, 14, 15, 17, 20.
Gofra MacArailt, King of the Isles, 5,
11.
Gothred, or Gorrie Dnbh, 254.
Gorme, Gormeson. See Isles.
Gorrie. See Riol Gorrie.
Gordon, Alexander Seton, Lord of,
and of Huntly, 40.
Gordon, Alexander, Lord of, A.D. 1500,
95.
Gordon, George, Lord, son of the first
Marquis of Huntly. See Enzie.
Gordon, Lords of, 79. See Huntly.
Gordon, Sir Patrick, of Auchindoun,
256.
Gordon, Sir Robert, Tutor of Suther-
land, 337, 338.
Gordons, The, 244, 248, 345.
Graham of Eryne, George, 354, 355,
359, 360, 361, 362, 363, 364, 365,
366, 374.
Graham, Mr. John, advocate, 247.
Grant of Bellintone, Archibald, 248.
Grant of Freuchy, Laird of Grant,
John (Reg. Ja. V.), 114.
Grant, Laird of (Reg. Maria), 159,
160, 162.
Grant of Freuchy, John (Reg. Ja.
VL), 248, 357, 403.
Grant of Monynmsk, 248.
Grant of Rothiemurchus, Patrick, 248.
Grants, The, 159, 248, 254, 257.
Griban in Mall, 80.
Haco, King of Norway, 17, 18, 26,
22.
Haddington, Earl of. See Binning.
Hamilton, Marquis of, 371, 374.
Hamilton, Paul, Captain of Arran, 377.
Hanover, House of, 418.
Harald, King of England, 6.
Harald Hardrada, King of Norway, 6.
Harald Harfager, King of Norway, 4,
7, 10.
Harald, son of Godred Crovan, King
of the Isles, 6
Harald the Black, 5.
Harlaw, Battle of, 69, 75.
Hart, Robert, a Pursuivant (Reg. Jac.
V.), 133.
Harris, Isle of, 73, 203, 206, 278, 279,
295, 336, 421.
Hay, Sir Alexander, Clerk Register of
Scotland, 289, 355.
Hay, Sir George, afterwards Earl of
Kinnoull, 409.
Hay of Netherliff, Sir George, 31G,
334, 335.
Hay of Beauly andKingask, Sir James,
Comptroller to James VI., 314,319,
321, 325, 329.
Hebndes,or Western Islesof Scotland.
See Isles.
Hebrides, The Northern. See North
Isles.
Hebrides, the Southern. See South
Isles.
Henderson, William, Dean of Holy-
rood, 143.
Henry VIII., King of England, 152,
153, 154, 156, 164* 167, 168, 169,
170, 171, 172, 173, 175, 176, 178.
Hepburn, Robert, Lieutenant of the
King's Guard, 307.
Hertford, Earl of, 174.
Hobeg in Uist, 394.
Holyrood, Church of, 37-
Holland, States, 357, 358, 401.
Home, Alexander, Lord. 117.
Home, David, younger ofWedderbnrn,
278.
Home, William, brother to Alexander,
Lord Home, 117.
Huntly, Countess of, 184.
Huntly, Alexander Seton, 1st Earl of
and Lord of Gordon, 40.
Alexander,3rd Earl of, 97,98,101,
102, 103, 104, 105, 106, 117,
123, 125, 130.
George, 2nd Earl of, 50, 52, 56, 57,
96.
George, 4th Earl of, 146, 154, 155,
156, 157, 159, 160, 161, 163,
168, 171, 173, 175, 178, 179.
181, 182, 183, 184, 185, 187
203, 205, 206, 220.
George, 6th Earl of and 1st Mar-
quia, 236, 244, 248, 2(9, 250,
252, 253, 254, 255, 256, 267,
258, 259, 260, 261, 274, 266,
287, 290, 292, 294, 296, 297,
. 299, 313, 314, 315, 342, 343,
344, 346, 367, 391, 394, 9961
J
INDEX.
437
Huntly, Earls of, 79, 247. See Gor-
don and Enzie.
Hnntiy, House of; 398.
Icolmkill or Iona, Isle of, 16, 30, 330,
404.
Icolmkill, Statutes, 330, 331, 332, 333.
Ilanshand, or Shant Isles, near Lewis,
279.
Hyntassan near Isla, 361.
Inchcoonell, Castle of, in Lochow, 53,
55, 85; 96.
Inchdaholl, an island near the coast of
Ireland, 386.
Ionerkip in Ayrshire, 44.
Innerwick. 380.
Innes, Robert, Bargees of the Chan-
onry of Ross, 411.
Insnlis. See Be Insnlis and Isles.
Iona. See IcolmkilL
Inver, a river in Antrim, 193.
Inverary, 143, 389.
Inverkeithing, Battle o£ 420.
Inverlochy in Lochaber, Battle of, J
A.D. 1431, 38, 62, 75.
Inverlochy in Lochaber, Castle of,
53, 99, 105, 106, 228.
Inverness, Burgh of, 35, 36, 4S, 54,
55, 56, 65.
Inverness Castle, 43, 47, 56, 105, ]
354. '
Inverness, Justice Air of, 100.
Inverness, Sheriffship, 105.
Inverness-shire, 48, 100, 105, 266, 286,
377, 391.
Ireland, Chancellor of, 195.
Ireland, Deputy or Lord Lieutenant
of, 261, 374, 381, 387.
Irvine, Burgh of, 134, 282.
fsay, Isle ot, in Waterness, 212.
Isla, Old House of, afterwards Lords
of the Isles. See Isles.
Isla, Modern House of, Lords of Duny-
veg and the Glens. See Clan Ian
Vor and Isles.
Isla, Isle of, 6, 14, 17, 18, 27, 32, 53,
54, 62, 67, 69, 90, 94, 148, 149, 191,
230, 233, 238, 272, 273, 274, 284,
286, 287, 288, 307, 306, 318, 319,
320, 322, 347, 348, 349, 350, 351,
352, 353, 354, 355, 356, 357, 358,
359, 360, 363, 364, 365, 366, 367,
368, 369, 370, 371, 372, 373, 375,
377, 378, 384, 385, 386\ 387, 388,
410.
Isla, 0 of, 386.
Isla, Rinns of, 191, 232, 265, 272, 273,
284, 361, 385.
Isla, Sound of, 362.
Islanders, Islesmeu, or Hebrideans,
75, 83, 84, 88, 90, 91, 92, 95, 96,
97, 98, 101, 103, 104, 113, 115, 120,
126, 132, 134, 135, 136, 137, 138,
142, 143, 145, 146, 149, 171, 172,
173, 174, 176, 177, 180, 181, 187,
244, 261, 264, 267, 274, 275, 294,
304, 307, 309, 312, 315, 319, 321,
322, 323, 325, 326, 328, 329, 330,
331, 332, 333, 334, 339, 306, 402,
404,405.
Islanders, The South, 310.
Isleborg, Castle at, 69.
Isles, Barons and Council of the, 46, 170.
Isles, Bishopric of the, 172.
Isles, Bishops of the,
Angus, son of Donald, second Lord
of the Isles, 33.
Andrew Knox, 318, 320, 321, 323,
324, 325, 326, 329, 330, 333,
334, 339, 340, 349, 350, 351,
352, 353, 354, 355, 366, 357,
358\ 359, 365, 374, 404.
Isles, Family of the (the heads of which
were, first, Lords of Isla, and after-
wards Lords of the Isles and Earls of
Rons), 1, 9, 18, 19,73, 74, 75,84, 172.
Lords of Isla.
Angus Mor, son of Donald Mac-
Reginald, 18, 20, 22, 23, 67.
Angus Oig, son of Angus Mor,
24, 25, §6, 66, 75.
Donald, son of Reginald Mac-
Somerled, King of the Isles, 18.
John Mac Angus Oi& 26,27, called
also the Good John of Isla. See
John, first Lord of the Isles.
Lords of tJie Isles and Earls of Boss.
Alexander, third Lord, and second
Earl of Ross, 33, 34, 35, 36,
37, 38, 39, 40, 41, 59, 60, 70,
75, 76, 78, 79.
Angus (bastard son and heir of
entail of John, last Lord, but
died before bis father), 48, 49,
51, 52, 53, 54, 55, 56, 65, 74,
84,97.
Donald, second Lord, and first
Earl of Ross of his family, 29,
30, 31, 32, 61, 69, 80.
Donald Dubn (son of Angus the
bastard), pseudo-Lord of the
Isles and Earl of Ross (Reg. Ja.
IV., Ja. V. et Maria), 53, 54,
55, 84, 85, 96, 97, 98, 99, 102,
438
INDEX.
103, 108, 1&5, 143, 144, 154,
155, 156, 162, 167, 168, 169,
170, 171, 172, 173, 174, 175,
176, 177, 178.
Sir Donald Galda of Lochalsh,
pseudo-Ijord of the Isles (Beg. !
Ja. V.), 115. See below, tinder
House of Lochalsh.
James Mac Alexander Macdonald
of Dunyveg and the Glens,
pseudo-Lord (Beg. Maria), 177,
178. See below, under House
of Isla and Kintyre.
John of Isla, commonly called
the Good John, first Lord, 26,
27, 28, 29, 30, 31, 61, 63, 64,
65, 66, 67, 69, 72, 78, SO, 109.
See John Mac Angus Oig, Lord
of Isla.
John, fourth and last Lord, and
third and last Earl of Boss,
33, 40, 41, 42, 43, 44, 45, 46,
47, 48, 49, 50, 51, 52, 54, 55,
56, 57, 58, 60, 61, 62, 64, 65,
67, 69, 70, 71, 72, 73, 74, 76,
78, 83, 84, 86, 87, 89, 107, 130,
412.
Isles Family, Branches of the, as un-
der:—
House of Ardnamurchan^ or Madam.
Alexander, or Allaster of A. (Beg.
Ja. IIL), 60, 157.
Alexander of A. (Beg. Maria),
134, 170.
Alexander MacDonald Vic Ian of
A. (Beg. Ja. VI.), 405, 407,
409, 410, 411, 412.
Angus, son of John Macian of A.
(Beg. Ja. V.), 125.
Angus of A., son* of John Spran-
gaich (Reg. Da. IL), 26, 27, 67.
Donald, Tutor of Ardnamurchan
(cir. 1612), 407, 408.
Fynvola, wife of Hugh, Lord of
Sleat, 60.
John of A. (Reg. Ja. IV. et V.),
67, 90, 92, 95, 96, 101, 108, 110,
116, 117, 118, 121, 122, 124,
125,405.
John Sunoirtich,son of John Mac-
ian of A. (Beg. Ja. V.), 125.
John of A. (Beg. Ja. VI., cir.
1590), 238, 239, 240, 256, 405.
John Oig of A. (Beg. Ja. VL),
405.
John MacAllaster Vic Ian of A.
(1602-6), 306, 406.
John MacDonald Vic Ian in A.
(1615), 408.
John Sprangaich, son of Angus
Mor of Isla, and founder of the
Clan Ian of Ardnamurchan, 67-
Mariot, heiress (Beg. Ja. V. et
Maria) of A., 405, 406.
Mac Vic Ian, Usurper of A., 406.
See Clanian of Ardnamurchan.
House of Garmoran and the Worth
Isles; or, MacRuaries.
Allan, son of Buari MacReginald
Vic Somerlcd, 18, 22, 23, 24.
(Beg. Alex. III.)
Amie, daughter, and eventually
heiress of Roderick or Rnari,
bastard son of the above Allan,
and first wife of John, first Lord
of the Isles (Beg. Da. II. ), 31,
64,65.
Christina, daughter and heiress of
the above Allan, 24, 35.
Dugall MacBuari, King of the
Isles, 18, 22.
Family of MacBuari, 18, 22, 27,
28,73.
Ranald MacBuari, brother of the
above Amie (Be*?. Da. II.), 27.
Roderick or Buari MacAllan. bas-
tard brother of the above Chris-
tina (Beg. Rob. I.), 24, 25.
House of Gleneo, or Macian*.
John Abrochsoun (Re?. Ja. IV.),
67.
John Fraoch, founder of the Clan-
ian of Gleneo (Beg. Da. IL),
66„67.
Macian of Gleneo (1605), 306.
See Clan Ian of Gleneo.
House of Glengarry, or Macranalds
(now Macdonnelh).
Alexander Banaldson of G. (Reg.
Ja. V. et Maria), 114. 126, 147,
170.
Angus MacAllaster of G. (Reg.
Ja. VL), 211, 216.
Angus, younger of Glengarry, son
of Donald Mac Angus, 300, 301.
Angus or ^Sneas of G., Lord Mac-
donnell and Aros, 417.
Col. Alexander Banaldson Mac-
donnell of Glengarry and Clan-
ranald, 417.
INDEX.
4S9
Donald MacAngus of 6. (Reg.
Ja. VI.), 218, 219, 264, 300,
302, 303, 304, 412.
John Macranald of G. (Reg. Ja.
III. et Ja. IV.), 66.
Family of Glengarry, 417, 418.
Macdonnella of Barrisdale, Cadets
ofG., 418.
Macdonnella of Greenfield, Cadets
of G., 418.
Macdonnella of Lunelle, Cadets of
G., 418.
Allan Macranald of Lnndie (A.
D. 1603), 302.
A son of Donald MacAngus of
G. (1615), 388.
See Clanranald of Garmoran.
House of Ida and Klntyre ; or,
Macdonalds of Dunyveg and
the Qlcns, and their Cadets.
Alexander of Isla, son of Sir John
Cathanach (Keg. Ja. V.), 93,
108, 116, 124, 125, 132, 133,
136, 137, 138, 139, 140, 141,
142, 143, 149, 194, 308, 311.
Alexander Oig MacAlexander,
brother of James of Isla (Reg.
Maria), 199, 200, 201.
Sir Alexander, or Allaster Mac-
Coll Keitache,son of Macdonald
of Colonsay, and lieutenant-
General to the Marquis of Mon-
trose (1645), 413.
Alexander MacSorley Buy, 226.
Angus MacAlexander, brother to
James and Alexander Oig, 170,
171.
Angus Ilach, younger son of Sir
Johu Cathanach, and tirst of
the house of Sanda, 414. Fam-
ily of Sanda, 415.
Angus MacJames of Isla (Reg.
Ja. VI.), 200, 218, 222, 225,
227, 228, 230, 231, 232, 233,
234, 235, 236, 237, 241, 242,
243, 244, 255, 256, 262, 263,
265, 269, 272, 273, 274, 275,
280, 281, 282, 283, 284, 288,
289, 297, 305, 306, 307, 308,
310. 311, 312, 318, 319, 322,
326, 327, 328, 329, 330, 334,
339, 347.
Angus Oig MacAngus, son of the
preceding, 319, 349, 350, 351,
352, 353, 354, 355, 357, 358,
359, 360, 361, 362, 363, 364,
365, 374.
Archibald MacAngus of Gigha
(Reg. Ja. VL), natural son of
Angus MacJames, 308, 311.
Coll MacAlexander, brother of
James of Isla, and progenitor
of the Macdonalds of Colonsay
(Reg. Maria), 195, 413.
Coll Keitache MacGillespick Vic
Coll of Colonsay (Reg. Ja. VI.
et Car. I.), 349, 358, 360, 364,
366, 368, 369, 370, 371, 373,
383, 385, 386, 388, 413, 414.
Coll MacJames, brother of Angus
of Isla (Reg. Ja. VI. ), 234.
Doctor Macdonnell, Belfast, de-
scended from the family of Co-
lonsay, 414.
Sir Donald Balloch Maclan Vor
of Isla (Reg. Ja. II. et Ja.
III.), 37, 38, 39, 44, 45, 47,
48, 62; 63, 64, 76, 88.
Donald Gorme, bastard son of
Sir James MacAngus of Isla
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 349, 378, 387,
388.
Donald Gorme son of James Mac-
Alexander of Isla (Reg. Ja.
VI. ), 225.
Donald MacRanald Bane of Lar-
gie, 63, 99, 101. Family of
Largie, 414, 415.
James MacAlexander Vic Tan
Cathanach of Isla (Reg. Ma-
ria), 142, 143, 149, 157, 167,
171, 177, 178, 180, 187, 191,
192, 195, 197, 199, 200, 201,
205, 206, 207, 221, 413, 414,
423.
Sir James MacAngus of Knock -
rinsay, afterwardsof Isla.grand-
son of the preceding, 232, 233,
263, 268, 273, 280, 281, 282,
283, 284, 285, 286, 287, 289,
305, 306, 311, 316, 317, 318,
322, 326, 327, 328, 337, 349,
350, 351, 357, 366, 367, 368,
369, 370, 372, 373, 374, 375,
376, 377, 378, 379, 382, 383,
384, 385, 386, 387, 388, 397,
398, 399, 401, 402, 417.
Sir James MacSorley Buy of Dun-
luce io Antrim, 226, 227, 268,
269, 273, 274, 275, 347, 383,
392.
Sir John Cathanach (Mac Ian
Vic Donald Balloch) of Isla
(Reg. Ja. IV.), 47. 48, 62, 63,
66, 67, 87, 88, 89, 90, 92, 108,
120, 124.
440
INDEX.
John Mot of Isla, 2nd son of John
first Lord of the Islet; by Lady
Margaret Stewart, ancestor of
the Clan Ian Vor of Isla and
Kintyre (Reg. Rob. III. and
Ja. I.), 29, 32, 35, 36, 38, 61,
G2, 63, 192, 193.
Laird of Largie, (1605.) 307,
(1615.) 384, (1618.) 400.
Ranald Bane Marfan Vor, first
of the family of Largie (Reg.
Ja.II.et III), 47, 63.
Ranald MacColl Vic Alexander
(Reg. Ja. VI.), cousin-german
of Angus of Isla, 232.
Ranald MacJames Vic Alexan-
der, brother of Angus of Isla
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 232, 234> 3C3,
383.
Sir Ranald MacSorley Bny, Vis-
connt of Dunluce, and first
Earl of Antrim, 226, 227, 347,
348, 352, 357, 413.
Ranald, second Earl and first
Marquis of Antrim, 413, 414.
Ranald Oig. bastard son of Angus
of Isla (Reg. Ja. VI.), 349,
370, 388.
Sorley Buy MacAlexander Vic
Ian Cathanach, father of first
Earl of Antrim, 199, 200, 221,
222, 223, 225, 226, 268, 275,
347, 413, 414.
Sorley MacJames, bastard son of
Sir James MacSorley Buy of
Dunluce, 383, 384, 386, 387, 392.
See Clan Ian Vor.
House of Keppoch and Garragach in
Lochaber; or Macranalds (now
MacdonnelU).
Alexander or Allaster Carrach,
Lord of Lochaber, 3rd son of
John 1st Lord of the Isles and
of Lady M argaret Stewart ( Reg.
Ja. I.), 29, 32, 39, 40, 63, 64,
78, 108.
Alexander or Allaster Mac Angus
Vic Allaster Carrach of Kep-
poch (Reg. Ja. III.), 64.
Alexander MacColl, of Keppoch
(killed 1746), 415.
Alexander MacDonald Glas Vic
Allaster of Keppoch, murdered
(Reg. Car. II ), 415.
Alexander or A Ureter MacRanald
Vic Ranald of Keppoch (Reg.
Ja. VL), 254, 260, 306, 341,
367, 368, 370, 379, 383, 386,
388, 391, 392, 397, 398, 399,
401,402.
Angus MacAllaster Carrach of
Keppoch (Reg. Ja. II.), 40, 77.
Coll MacAllaster Boy of Kep-
r>ch(Reg. Ja. V1L et Geo.
), 415.
Donald Glas MacAllaster Vic
Angus of Keppoch (Reg. Ja.
IV.), 109.
Donald Glas of Keppoch, second
son of Allaster MacRanald
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 396.
Donald MacAngus Vic Allaster,
Carrach of Keppoch (Reg.
Ja. III. et IV.), 64, 90, 92,
108.
Family of Keppoch, 32, 108, 417.
John MacDonald Vic Angus of
Keppoch (Reg. Ja. IV.), 108,
109.
Mariot, daughter of Agnus Mac-
Allaster Carrach, and wife of
Allan Cameron of Lochiel, 77.
Ranald MacAllaster Vic Ranald,
younger of Keppoch (Reg. Ja.
VI.), 367, 370, 383, 388,391,
398, 402.
Ranald MacDonald Glas of Kep-
poch (Reg. Maria), 6% 159,
179, 203, 208.
See Clanranald of Lochaber.
House ofKnoyderl, or Macranalds.
Allan Macranald of K. (Reg. Ja.
IV.), 66.
Angus Ranaldson of K. (Reg.
Maria), 17a
Family of Knoydert, 416.
See Clanranald of Garmaran.
House of Lochalsh, or Macdonaids.
Sir Alexander of Lochalsh (Reg.
Ja. IV.), son of Celestine, 55,
56, 57, 59, 60, 66, 78, 87, 88,
92. 93, 106, 108, 124.
Celestine, Lord of Lochalsh,
brother of John, last Lord of
the Isles and Earl of Roes, 41,
55, 56,59, 76\
Sir Donald Galda of Lochalsh,
son of Alexander (Reg. Ja.
V.), 106, 113, 114, 115, 116,
117, 118, 119, 120, 121, 123,
124, 125, 126, 218.
Family of Lochalsh, 126, 412.
INDEX.
441
Margaret, sister of Sir Donald of
Lochafeh, 218.
House of Loupe, or MacaUaaters.
Alexander or Allaster, son of
Donald MacReginald, Lord of
Isla, and ancestor of the Clan
Allaster, 68.
Angus MacAllaster of the Loupe,
son of John Dubh (Reg. Ja.
V.), 68.
Charles MacAllaster, Steward of
Kintyre (Bee. Ja. HI.), 68.
John Dubh of Loupe (Reg. Ja.
IV.), 68.
Gorrie MacAllaster, of Loupe
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 281, 307.
Col. Somerville MacAllaster of
Loupe, 418.
Tutor of Loupe (Reg. Ja. VI.),
and his sons, 281.
MacAllaster of Loupe, 68, 400.
MacAllaster of Tarbert, t>8, 400.
See Clanallaster.
Old House of Morar, or Macranakh.
Angus Macranald of Morar, 66.
Family of Morar, 417.
See Clanranald of Garmoran.
Modern House of Morar, or Macra-
nalds (now Macdonatds).
Dougall MacRanald Bane Vic
Allan, Ancestor of this family,
157, 158.
Family of Morar, 417.
See Clanranald of Garmoran.
House of Moydert or Clanranald;
Macranalds and Macallans (now
Macdonalds) and its Cadets.
Alexander or Allaster MacAllan
Vic Ruari, Captain of Clan-
ranald (Reg. Ja. V.), 157, 158.
Allan MacRuari Vic Allan, Cap-
tain of Clanranald (Reg. Ja.
III. et Ja. IV.), 65, 66, 67, 90,
92,110, 157, 158.
Angus Macdonald of Genaladale,
416.
Sir Donald MacAllan Vic Ian
Moydertach, Captain of Clan-
ranald (Reg. Ja. VI.), 315,
323, 325, 330, 339, 340, 346,
347, 348, 349, 367, 371, 377,
392, 393, 394, 396, 404, 408,
409, 416.
John MacAllan Vic Ian Moyder-
tach, first of Kinlochmoydert,
393,416.
John MacDonald Vic Allan, Cap-
tain of Clanranald (Reg. Ja.
VI. et Car. 1.), 404, 405, 408,
400, 410, 412.
John Moydertach MacAllaster,
Captain of Clanranald, bastard
son of Alexander MacAllan Vic
Ruari (Reg. Ja. V. et Maria),
134, 147, 158, 160, 163, 170,
179, 182, 185. 186, 187, 206.
John Macdonald of Glenaladale
(Reg. Geo. III. ), 416.
John Oiff Mac Ian Moydertach
Vic Allaster, first of Glenala-
dale, 416.
Family of Benbecula, 416.
Family of Boisdale, 416.
Family of Glenaladale, 416.
Macdonald of Staffa, 416.
RanaldBane MacAllan Vic Ruari,
Captain of Clanranald (Reg.
Ja. IV), 102, 107, 110, 130,
157, 158.
Ranald Galda MacAllan Vic Rua-
ri, of Moydert, younger half
brother of the above Ranald
Bane, 157, 158, 159, 160, 162.
Ranald, son of the first marriage
of John first Lord of the Isles,
and ancestor of the Clanranald
of Garmoran, 29, 30, 31, 34, 65.
Ranald MacAllan Vic Ian Moy-
dertach, first of Benbecula,
393, 416.
Col. Robertson Macdonald of
Kinlochmoydert, 416.
Roderick or Ruari MacAllan Vic
Ranald, Captain of Clanranald
(Reg. Ja. II.), 63.
Roderick or Ruari MacAllan Vic
Ian Moydertach, 393.
Roderick or Ruari MacAllaster,
brother of John Moydertach,
Dean of Morvern and Bishop
elect of the Isles (Reg. Maria),
172.
See Clanranald of Garmoran.
House of North Uist and Garmoran,
or MacOorries,
Allaster MacAllaster Vic Gorrie
of Garmoran (Ree. Ja. II.), 65.
Allaster or Alexander MacGorrie
442
INDEX.
Vic Ian of Garmoran (Reg. Ja.
L), 34, 36, 65.
Godfrey or Gome, Lord of North
Uist and Garmoran, son of the
first marriage of John first Lord
of the Isles, and ancestor of the
Siol Gorrie, 29, 30, 31, 32, 34,
64, 65.
. Gorrie, a descendant of the pre-
ceding (Beg. Ja. IV.), 109.
See Siol Gorrie.
House of Sleat, or MacdonaUU.
Alexander MacConnell Gallach,
brother of Donald Gruamach
of Sleat, 146.
Archibald, or Gillesnick the Clerk,
sonof Donald Gallach, and Cap-
tain of Clanhuistein, 146, 170.
Archibald or Gillespick Dubh,
bastard son of Hugh of Sleat,
and Captain of Clanhuistein,
107, 130.
Archibald, son of Donald Gorme-
son of Sleat, and father of Sir
Donald Gorme Oig of Sleat,
412.
Donald Gallach of Sleat (Reg. Ja.
IV.), son of Hugh, 60, 107, 131.
Donald Gorme of Sleat (Reg. Ja.
V.), son of Donald Gruamach,
144, 145, 177.
Donald Gorme Mor of Sleat (Reg.
Ja. VI.), son of Donald Gorme-
son, 227, 230, 231, 232, 233,
236, 241, 243, 244, 256, 261,
262, 264, 278, 279, 280, 295,
296, 323, 325, 330, 339, 348,
352, 368, 371, 377, 396, 412.
Sir Donald Gorme Oig of Sleat (son
of Archibald),nephewand heirof
Donald Gorm Mor (Re:*. Ja. VI.
et Car. I.), 396, 404, 405, 412.
Donald Gormeson of Sleat, son of
Donald Gorme (Reg. Maria et
Ja. VI.), 146, 177, 183, 202,
206, 207, 209, 212, 213, 230.
Donald Maclan Vic James (Reg.
Ja. VI.), 295.
Donald Gruamach of Sleat, son
of Donald Gallach (Reg. Ja.
V.), 131, 134, 144.
Family of Sleat, 177, 412.
Hugh, Lord of Sleat, brother of
John last Lord of the Isles, 41,
60, 61, 65, 106, 131, 230, 264.
Hnistein MacGillespick Clerache
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 230.
Sir James Maodonald of Sleat
(Reg. Car. II.), 415.
James of Castle Cames, son of
Donald Gruamach. 216.
John MacJaines of Castle Cames,
216.
John, eldest son of Hugh of
Sleat (Keg. Ja. IV.), or John
Huchonson of Sleat, 60, 61, 90,
107.
Lord Macdonald,60,412,413,418.
Macdonald Terreaghe (Reg. Ja.
VI.), 230, 233.
See Clanhuistein.
Isles, Kings of the : —
Aulaf MacSitric, 4.
Diarmed MacMaelnambo, 5.
Dugall MacRuari Vic Reginald
Vic Somerled, 18, 22.
Dougall MacSomerled, 13, 17, 18.
Ewin Mac Duncan Vic Dugall
Vic Somerled, 18, 22.
Fingal MacGodred, 5, 6.
Godred Crovan, 5, 6.
Godred the Black, 7, 13, 14, 15,
17, 20.
Godred MacSitric, 5.
Gofra MacArailt, 5, 11.
Ketil, 4.
Lagman, 6.
Maccus MacArailt MacSitric, 5.
Magnus MacOlave, 6, 20.
OJave the Red, or Olave Billing,
6, 7, 9, 12, 16.
Ragnal MacGofra, 5.
Reginald MacGodred, 17. '
Reginald MacSomerled, 13, 14,
16, 17, 18.
Sigurd (Earl of Orkney), 5.
Thorfin (Earl of Orkney), 5.
Isles, Jarl of the, Gilli, 5.
Isles, Ladies of the —
Elizabeth Seton, Countess of
Ross, 40.
Mary Leslie, Countess of Ross in
her own right, 30, 31, 32, 33,
36.
Isles, Angus of the, son of John, who
was a son of the first marriage of
John, first Lord of the Isles, 29.
John of the, father of the pre-
ceding, 29.
John of the, bastard son of John,
last Lord of the Isles, 51.
Flora of the, sister to John last
Earl of Koss, 78.
Margaret of the (Reg. Ja. HI.),
sister or daughter of the last
Lord of the Isles, 52.
INDEX.
443
Isles, Margaret of the, daughter of
John, first Lord of the Isles, 69.
Isles, Lords of the (generally), 79, 85,
86, 139, 146, 147. For the indi-
vidual Lord, see Isles, Family of the.
Isles, Lords Commissioners for im-
proving the (Reg. Ja. VL), 325,
326, 329, 333, 334.
Isles, Lordship of the, 50, 51, 53, 55,
57, 58, 74, 79, 81, 87, 88, 94, 95,
103, 111, 129, 139, 143, 144, 149,
187.
Isles (Ylis), Monsieur de, 117.
Isles, North, or the Hebrides north
of the Point of Ardnamurchan, 14,
22, 24, 28, 30, 34, 99, 102, 106, 107,
129, 130, 131, 137, 203, 270, 280,
292, 293, 309, 313, 314, 318, 385.
See Barra, Benbecula, Canna, Eigg»
Harris. Lewis, Muck, Rasay, Hum,
Sky, Uist.
Isles, North, Justiciar of the, 99.
Isles, Regent of the, Donald Mac-
Tade, 7.
Islemen, North, 373, 379.
Isles, South, or the Hebrides south of
the Point of Ardnamurchan, 14, 17,
100, 106, 107, 130, 131, 136, 137,
138, 140, 141, 148, 218, 236, 237,
280, 290, 293, 306, 310, 312, 313,
314, 318, 347, 356, 391. See Arran,
Bute, Colonsay, Coll, Gi?ba, Isla,
Jura, Kintyre, Man, Mull, Scarba,
Tiree.
Isles, South, Justiciar of the, 100.
Isles, Tenants of the, 88, 133.
Isles, Toshach of the, Godfrey Mac-
Fergus, 10.
Isles, The Western, of Scotland, or He-
brides. See Arran, Barra, Benbe-
cula, Bute, Canna, Colonsay, Coll,
Eigg, Gigha, Harris, Isla, Jura,
Kintyre, Lewis, Man, Muck, Mull,
Rasay, Rum, Scarba, Sky, Tiree,
Uist.
James I., King of Scotland, 33, 35, 36,
37, 38, 39, 40, 62, 65, 75.
James II.. King of Scotland, 39, 40,
41, 42, 43, 44, 45, 46.
James IIL, King of Scotland, 49, 50,
51.
James IV., King of Scotland, 58, 59,
62, 85, 86, 87, 88, 89, 90, 91, 92, 93,
94, 95, 96, 97, 98, 100, 101, 104,
106, 108, 109, 110, 111, 112, 114,
124, 139, 154, 180, 288, 397, 417.
James V., King of Scotland, 108, 113,
114, 122, 123, 125, 127, 128, 129,
131, 133, 134, 135, 136, 137, 138,
139, 140, 141, 142, 143, 145, 146,
147, 148, 149, 150, 152, 155, 158,
181, 182, 186, 209, 311, 342.
James VI., King of Scotland, 227, 229,
230, 232, 234, 236, 240, 241, 242,
243, 244, 245, 256, 259, 260, 263,
265, 267, 268, 269, 272, 273, 274,
275, 277, 278, -282, 283, 284, 287,
288, 292, 293, 294, 299, 303, 304,
305, 306, 307, 308, 309, 310, 311,
313, 314, 315, 316, 317, 318, 319,
320, 321, 323, 324, 325, 326, 327,
328, 329, 333, 334, 335, 336, 337,
339, 340, 342, 348, 350, 353, 356,
357, 358, 359, 363, 365, 370, 373,
374, 375, 377, 378, 380, 382, 387,
389, 390, 392, 393, 394, 396, 399,
401, 402, 405, 410, 411, 414, 416,
419, 423, 424.
James of Bute, son of Angus Mac-
Rorie (MacSorlie?), 19.
Jane, daughter and heiress of James
of Bute, 19.
Jura, Isle of, 14, 17, 24, 27, 67, 69,
70, 230, 233, 311, 373, 370, 3S4.
Koill in Morvern, 406.
Kenalban or Morvern, 25.
Kenlochew. See Kinlochcw.
Kenneth Moire (Qu. Chief of the
Mackenzies, Reg. Ja. 1.), 36.
Keppoch in Lochaber, 415.
Kilchrist in Ross, Pibroch of, 302.
Kilchrist in Ross, Raid of, 302, 303.
Killicrankie, Battle of, 415.
Kilmorie in Strathaird, Sky, 393.
Kiltrynad, Church of, in Uist, 295.
K inel Concl on Lough Foyle, in Ulster,
261.
Kinel Owen on Lough Foyle, in Ulster,
261.
Kingussie in Badenoch, 105.
Kinlochew (Kenlochew), in Ross, 112,
145, 146.
Kinloch-lochy in Lochaber, Battle of
(A.D. 1544), called also Battle of
Blar-na-leine, 161, 162, 163, 179.
Kinross-shire, 320.
Kintaill in Ross, 27, 83, 135, 145, 148,
301,302.
Kintaill, Lords of. See Mackenzie.
Kintaill, Men of, 146.
Kintyre, District of, 14, 17, 25, 26, 27,
32, 50, 51, 02, 63, 81, 82, 85, 94,
100, 136, 137, 138, 141, 148, 167,
178, 198, 235, 267, 268, 269, 272,
273, 274, 277, 280, 281, 282, 283,
286, 287, 288, 293, 295, 305, 306,
444
INDEX,
307* 308, 310, 311, 312, 350, 359,
371, 373, 376v 377, 378, 379, 380,
382, 384, 387, 390, 400, 414, 418,
424.
Kintyre, Lordship o£ 399.
Kintyre, North, 149, 308, 311.
Kintyre, South, 149, 308, 311.
Kintyre, Waste lands of, 2C8, 308.
Knapdale, District o& 14, 25, 26, 27,
50, 51, 69, 79, 84, 88, 94, 100, 148,
371, 381.
Knepoch in Lorn, 251.
Knockfergus, or Carrickfergus, in Ul-
ster, 170, 171, 172, 193> 196, 198,
221 222.
Knox'of RanfarKe, John(A.D. 1614),
353, 354, 358, 359.
Knox, Mr. Thomas, son to Andrew,
Bishop of the Isles (A.D. 1614),
353, 354, 358, 359.
Knoydert in Garmoran, District of,
27, 340, 368, 416, 417, 418.
Kyle in Ayrshire, Bailliary of, 132,
134 167.
KyieofSky, 301.
Lady' 8 Rock, near Lismore and Mull,
128.
La^ebread in Rose, Battle of (Reg.
Ja. III.), 52.
Logman, King of the Isles, 6.
Lambert, Sir Oliver, 362, 363.
Lamont, The Laird of, A.D. 1615,
383.
Latoun, Sir Brian, 168.
Israeli tigh Mhic Dhonuill, 146.
Lander, Bishop of Argyle, 45.
Leirraonth of Balcolmy, James, 278,
291, 297.
Leith, 164.
Lennox, Duncan, Earl of (Reg. Ja.
I.), 33.
Lennox, Earldom, or District of, 166,
267, 303.
Lennox, Ludovick, Second Duke of
(Reg. Ja. VL), 260, 267, 278, 283,
286, 287, 290, 292, 317.
Lennox, Matthew, Earl o£ Regent to
James VL, 152, 153, 164, 165, 166,
167, 168, 169, 170, 171, 172, 173,
174, 176, 177, 178, 179, 194, 213.
Leod, Progenitor of the Clanleod, 72.
Leslie, General, 414.
Lewis, Barony of, 131.
Lewis, Estate o^ 144.
Lewis, Isle of, 22, 26, 27, 72, 73, 96,
111, 147, 210, 22^ 270, 272, 277,
278, 279, 280, 286, 287, 290, 291,
292, 294> 295, 297, 298, 299, 304,
309, 310, 313, 314, 316, 334, 336,
336, 337, 391.
Lewis, Lowland Colonists or Adven-
turers of (Reg. Ja. VL), 278, 279,
280, 286, 287, 290, 291, 292, 297,
298, 304, 309, 310, 315.
Lradores, Patrick, Commendator of,
278.
Lindsay, Alexander, a pilot pta?- J*»
V.X 147.
Lindsay of Balcarras, John, Secretary
of State for Scotland to James VL,
272, 273, 274, 277.
Lismore, Isle o£ 128.
Livingston, Sir James (Reg. Ja. ILL),
43.
Livingston of Kilsyth, Sir William,
410.
Livingstones, The, 41.
Lochaber, Lordship or District o£ 24,
27, 32, 37, 38, 53, 54, 56, 64, 66,
67, 70, 71, 74, 75, 76, 77, 78> 96,
96, 97, 98, 100, 103, 105, 109, llfi,
163, 203, 229, 260, 277, 343> 344,
367, 368, 371, 388, 391, 397, 398,
402, 403, 415, 422.
Lochaber, The Braes of, 70.
Lochaber, Lord of. See lake.
Lochalsh in Ross, District of, 59,218,
300, 301.
Locharkaig in Lochaber, Lands d, 75.
77, 78, 103, 228, 397, 403, 422.
Lochbroom in Ross, District and Loch
of, 59, 218, 270, 309.
Lochcarron in Ross, 59, 218, 219, 300.
Lochcrinan in Argyle, 382.
Locngruinart in lsla, Battle of, 284,
285, 286, 305.
Lochiel in Lochaber, Lands o& 59, 70;
76» 77, 95, 110, 126, 342.
Lochkilkerran in Kintyre, 100, 307.
See Campbellton.
Lochkilkerran, Castle o$ 93, 9a See
Campbellton.
Lochlochy in Lochaber, 160, 161.
Lochmaben, Castle o( 42.
Lochow, Barony o£ 249.
Lochrannoch, 368.
Lochransa in Aran, 132.
Lodoms, a harbour in Isla, 385.
Loghill in Ulster, 226.
London, 309, 310, 399, 401, 402.
Long Island, 9. See Barra, Benbe-
cula, Harris, Lewis, and Uist, which
form the Long Island.
Lorn, District or Lordship o£ 24* 38,
83, 84, 100, 126, 201, 202, 245^ 250,
251, 371, 373, 376, 379, 400.
Lorn, Lords of, territorially surnamed
INDEX.
445
de Ergadia or o/Argyk; and patro-
nymically MacDugall, from Dugall
con of Somerled, 18, 24, 83, 84, 426.
Alexander (Reg. Alex. III. et
Rob. I. ), 23, 24.
Ewin (erroneously John), called
King Ewin, son of Duncan, son
of Dugall, son of Somerled, 18,
22.
John, son of Alexander (Reg.
Rob. L), 24.
John or Ewin, son of John, son of
Alexander (Reg. Da. I L), 28, 80.
Lorn, Stewart, Lord of, 83.
Lough Foyle in Ulster, 261.
Lovat, Lords, 83, 97, 98, 157, 158, 159,
160, 161, 162, 163, 179, 181, 208,
216 248.
Lovat^ Master of (AD. 1544), 161,
162.
Loyng, Isle of, 216, 250.
Lyndale in Sky, Lands of, 74.
MacAlexander, Coll, the three sons of,
193.
MacAllan of Moydert. See Isles.
MacAllan Vic Allan, the peculiar
patronymic of the Chieftains of
Knoydert, 66. See Isles.
MacAllaster of Loupe. See Isles.
Mac Alias ter of Tarbcrt. See Isles.
MacAlpin, Kenneth, King of Scot-
land, 3, 7, 10.
MacAulay of Ardincaple, Sir Aulay,
352.
MacConeyllis Kin (Macdonald'sKin),
the chiefs of the family of the Isles,
147. See Isles.
MacConnel Day,orMacDonald Dubh,
the peculiar patronymic of Cameron
of LochieL See Cameron and Clan-
chameron.
MacDhonuill na'n Eilean, or Mac-
Donald of the Isles, the peculiar
patronymic of the Chiefs of Sleat,
and of their representative, Lord
Macdonald, 61, 418. See Isles.
Maodonald, a patronymical surname,
generally used in modern times by
all the branches of the family of
the Isles. See Isles.
Macdonald, Hush, a Seannachie, or
Genealogical Historian, 10.
MacdonneU of Glengarry. See Isles.
Macdonnell of Keppoch. See Isles.
Maedougall of DunoUy, Alexander
(A.D. 1493), 83.
Maedougall of Ardincaple, Coll, 426.
Duncan, 249, 250, 251, 252.
Captain John, R.N., and of Mae-
dougall, 425, 426.
Maedougall, Laird of (Dunolly), 38*2,
400.
Macdongalls, The, 83, 425, 426.
Maedougall of Lorn (Dunolly), 63.
Macdougalls of Gallanach, 426.
Maedougall of Morar. See Isles.
Maedougall of llaray, John, 382, 400.
Maedougall, Alexander, brother ti>
John of Rarny, 372.
Macdougalls of Raray, 426.
Macdougalls of Soraba, 426.
Macdougalls of Argyle and Lorn, IS,
28. See de Ercadia and Lorn.
Macdufiie. See Mactie.
Maceachern of Killelan, Colin (A.D.
1493), 82.
MacEllar, the assassin of Campbell of
Calder(A.D. 1592), 250, 252.
Macfarlane of Tarbet, Walter, 160.
Macfie (Macduffie) of Colonsay, Do-
nald (A.D. 1463), 81.
Donald (A.D. 1609), 330.
Malcolm (A.D. 1615), 376, 378,
379, 386, 387, 389.
Murroch(A.D. 1531), 81.
Mnctinnon or Macfingon. Sec Mac-
Kinnon.
MacGillecrist Vic Gillereoch, Donald
Dubh, 112, 113.
MacGillonies of Strone in Lochaber.
See Cameron.
MacGorrie, Allaster, 300.
MacHenry in Glenco, Dougall, 66, 67.
MacHeth, Malcolm or Wymund, Earl
of Murray, 15.
Maclan Abrach. the peculiar patrony-
mic of Maclean of Coll, 71.
Macian of Ardnamurchan. See Isles.
Macian of Glenco. See Isles.
Macian in Jura, Donald'Gigach (A.D.
1615), 376, 379.
Mac Ian Vor, John (A.D. 1615), 386,
387.
Macilduy. Keill, a follower of Maclean
of Dowart (A.D. 1609). 323.
Macintosh, Captain and Chief of Clan-
chattan.
Alexander (Reg. Gul. IV.), 422.
Duncan (Reg. J a. HI. et IV.),
41, 56, 78, 87, 91.
Ferquhard (Reg. Ja. IV.), 56,
78, 91, 93, 103.
Lauchlan (Reg. Ja. VI.), 208,
228,236.
Sir Lauchlan, grandson to the
preceding (Reg. Ja. VI.), 357,
391, 402, 403.
44G
INDEX.
Malcolm (Reg. Ja. II.), 39, 78.
William (Reg. Da. II.), 7a |
William (Reg. Maria), 179, 184,
208.
William Lauchlanson (Reg. Ja.
V.), 115.
See Clanchattau.
.Macintosh, Laird o£ Steward of Loch-
aber, 108.
Mackay of Strathnaver. 20S. j
Donald (Reg. Ja. V.), 147. ,
Y (Reg. Ja. IV.), 102.
Mackaya of Strathnaver, The, 82.
Mackay of Ugadale in Kintyre, Gil-
christ Mac Imar (Reg. Rob. I.),
82.
Mackaya of Ugadale, 63, 68, S2, 30S,
388, 424, 425.
Mackenzies of Achilby, 425.
Mackenzie of Allongrange, George
Falconer, 425.
Mackenzies of Applecross, 425.
Mackenzies of Assint, 425. i
Mackenzie of Ardloch, Alexander, 425.
Mackenzies of Balone, 425.
Mackenzies of Coal, 425.
Mackenzie of Cogeache, Sir Ruari
(Tntor of Kintaill), 270, 335, 337,
340.
Mackenzie of Cromarty, Hon. Mrs.
Hay, 425.
Mackenzies, Earls of Cromarty, 425.
Mackenzies of Davachmaluak, 425.
Mackenzies of Fairburn, 425.
Mackenzie of Gerloch, 341.
Alexander, 211.
Eachan or Hector Roy, 111, 211.
John, 213.
Murdoch, son of Gerloch, 341.
Mackenzies of Gerloch, 341, 425. *
Mackenzies of Gruinard, 425. *
Mackenzies of Hilton, 425.
Mackenzies of Kilcoy, 425.
Mackenzies of Kinnock, 425.
Mackenzies of Kintaill —
Alexander (Reg. Ja. III.), 83.
Colin (Reg. Ja. VI.), 209, 212,
216, 218, 219, 220.
Colin, 2nd Lord Kintaill and 1st
Earl of Seaforth (Reg. Ja. VL
et Car. I.), 337, 391, 412, 425.
Kenneth i'Vlaire (Keg. Ja, IIL
etIV.),52, 54, 56, 83.
Kenneth Oig, son of the preced-
ing (Reg. Ja. IV.), 83, 91, 93,
111, 112.
Kenneth (Reg. Maria), 202, 205.
Kenneth, 1st Ijord Kintaill (Reg.
Ja. VL), 270, 271, 279, 280,
290, 291, 292, 295, 298, 300,
301, 302, 303, 316, 335, 336.
John (Reg. Ja. IV. et V.), 83,
III, 112, 116, 117, 145, 148,
209, 210, 211.
Mackenzie, Janet, daughter of John
Mackenzie of Kintaill, and first wife
of Ruari Macleod of Lewis (Reg.
Ja. V.), 209.
Mackenzies of Prestonhall, 425;
Mackenzie of Redcastle, Ruari, 219.
Mackenzies of Redcastle, 425.
Mackenzies of Scatwell, 425.
Mackenzie of Seaforth, Hon. Mrs.
Stewart, 425.
Mackenzies of Suddy, 425.
Mackeuzie of Tarbat, Sir Alexander,
425. See Clankenzie.
Mackinnou of Strathordell in Sky and
Mishnish in Mull, Chief of his Clan.
Ewin (Reg. Ja. V. et Maria), 170.
Lauchlan (A.D. 1585), 216, 234.
Sir Lauchlan (Reg. Ja. VL), 234,
285, 330, 339, 371, 392, 393,
394, 396, 404, 405.
Lauchlan (Reg. Ja. I.), 80.
Neill (Reg. Ja. V.), 81, 121.
Mackinnon, Neill son to Lauchlan M.
of Strathordell (A.D. 1585), 234.
Mackinnon, William Alexander, M .P.,
424.
Mackinnon, Lauchlan, of Letterfeam,
424.
Maclauchlan, The Laird of (A.D.
1615), 383.
Maclean of Ardgour : —
Donald, son of Lauchlan Bronach
of Dowart (Reg. Ja. IL), 71.
Ewin, son of Donald (Reg. Jo.
III.), 71.
Ewin (Beg. Ja. VL), 234.
John (Reg. Maria), 170.
Lauchlan Mac Ewin (Reg. Ja.
IV. et V. ), 72, 121.
Macleans of Ardtornish, 420.
Macleans of Borrera, 420.
Maclean of Brolos, Allan, afterwards
Sir Allan Maclean of Morvern or
Dowart, 419.
Donald, first Laird, 419.
Maclean, Captain of Carnebnrg, 302.
Hector, 234.
Maclean of Coll : —
Hector, son of John Abrach (Reg.
Maria), 19a
Hector, grandson of John Abrach
(Reg. Ja. VL), 269.
John Abrach (Reg. Ja. V. et
Maria), 71, 134, 170.
INDEX.
447
John Garve, first Laird of Coll,
Bon of Lauchlan Bronach of
Dowart (Reg. Ja. II. et III.),
40, 70, 71, 76, 79.
John, son of John Garve (Reg. ,
Ja. IV.), 71, 76.
Lauchlan (Reg. Ja. VI.), 269,
270, 297, 330, 371, 392, 393,
394, 396, 404, 409.
Macleans of Coil, 269, 419, 420.
Maclean of Dowart : —
Hector, son of Lauchlan Luba-
nach (Reg. Ja. I. ), 69.
Hector, son of Lauchlan Oig
(Reg. Ja. III. et IV.), 69, 91,
92/
Hector, son of Lauchlan Catta-
nach (Reg. Maria), 134, 136,
137, 140, 148, 170, 174, 19Q
207.
Hector, son of Sir Lauchlan Mor
(Reg. Ja. VI..), 234, 259, 285,
300, 302, 306, 318, 322, 323,
324, 325, 329, 330, 334, 339,
346, 348, 371, 377, 379, 392,
393, 394, 395, .J96, 404.
Hector, son of the preceding (Reg.
Ja. VI. et Car. I. ), 419.
Lauchlan Lubauach, first of Dow-
art (Reg. Da. II., Rob. II.,
Rob. III., et Ja. I.), 69, 70.
Lauchlan Bronach grandson of
the preceding (Reg. Ja. I. et
II.), 60, 71.
Lauchlan Oig, son of Lauchlan
Brooach (Reg. Ja. II. et III.),
71.
Lauchlan Cattanach (Reg. Ja.
IV. et V), 97, 99, 101, 115,
116, 119, 121, 122, 123, 124,
127, 128.
Sir Lauchlan Mor (Reg. Ja. VI.),
216, 217, 218, 219, 227, 230,
231, 232, 233, 234, 235, 236,
237, 238, 239, 240, 241, 242,
243, 244, 249, 255, 256, 259,
264, 265, 269, 270, 274, 275,
283, 284, 285, 286, 405, 419.
Macleans of Dowart, 269, 419.
Macleans of Isle of M uck, 420.
Maclean of Kengarloch, Donald (Reg.
Maria), 170.
Macleans of Kinlochaline, 420.
Maclean of Loch buy :—
Hector Reganach, first of the
family (Reg. Rob. II. et HI.),
69, 70.
Hector (Reg. Ja. VI.), 330, 342,
371, 392, 393, 394, 396, 404.
John (Reg. Ja. IV. et V.), great-
grandson of M orchard, 55, 70,
76, 87. 99, 101, 119, 122, 126,
134, 342.
Murchard, son of Hector Rega-
nach (Keg. Ja. I.). 70.
Murdoch ( Keg. Maria), 170.
Macleans of Lochbuy, 419, 420.
Maclean of Morvern, Sir Lauchlan,
afterwards of Dowart, 419.
Lieut. -Gen. Sir Fitzroy G. Mac-
lean, eighth Baronet, 419.
Macleans of Scallasdale, 420.
Macleans of Tapul, 420.
Maclean of Torfusk and Gigha, Alein
na'n Sop, brother to Hector of Dow-
art (Reg. Ja. V. et Maria), 170,
178, 217, 423.
Maclean of Torlusk : —
Lauchlan, younger son of Sir
Lauchlan Mor, 323, 330, 395,
396, 419.
Mrs. Clephane, 419.
Macleans of Tressinisb, 420.
Maclean, Allan, brother to Hector
Mac Lauchlan Mor of Dowart (A.D.
1609), 330.
Allan, a near relation of Lauchlan
Mor(A.D. 1585), 233, 234.
Allan, son to Ewin of Ardgour
(A.D. 1587), 234.
Donald, son to Hector of Carne-
burg (A. D. 1587), 234.
Donald, uncle to Lauchlan Catta-
nach of Dowart, 121.
Fynvola, daughter of Dowart and
wife of Celestine 6f Lochalsh
(Reg. Ja. III. ), 60.
Hector, son to Lauchlan of Tor-
lusk (Reg. Ja. VI.), 396.
Hector, son of Alein na'n Sop,
217.
John, uncle of Sir Lauchlan Mor,
216.
Lauchlan Barrach, a son of Sir
Lauchlan Mor, 285.
Patrick, Justiciar of the Isles,
brother of Hector of Dowart
(Reg. Maria), 172.
See Clangillean.
Macleod of Assint, Neil Angusson
(Reg. Maria), 213.
Tormod, first of Assint, 37. See
Macleod of Geanies.
Macleods of Assint, 73, 420.
Macleod of Bernera, Sir Norman, first
of, 421.
Macleods of Cadboll, 420.
Macleods of Cambuscurry, 420.
448
INDEX.
Macleod of Cogeache, Torquil Conna-
nach, 316. See Macleod of Lewis.
Macleod of Dun vegan. See Macleod
of Harris.
Macleod of Geanies, Donald, 420. See
Macleod of A saint.
Macleod of Gerloch, Ruari MacAllan
(Reg. Maria et Ja. VI.), 211, 212,
213.
Macleod of Glenelg. See Macleod of
Harris.
Macleod of Grisernish, Donald, 421.
Macleod of Hamer, William, 421.
Macleod of Harris, Dnnvegan, and
Glenelg : —
Alexander or Allaster Crottach
(Reg. Ja. IV., et V.), 74, 93,
101, 115, 11C, 119,122, 124, 130,
131, 134, 144, 145, 147, 170.
Donald (Reg. Maria), 204, 207.
John Oig (Reg. Maria), 204, 205.
Malcolm, son of Tormod (Reg.
Da. II.), 73, 74.
Mary (Reg. Maria et Ja. VI.),
184, 187, 204, 205, 206.
Sir Ruari Mor (Reg. Ja. VI.),
261, 264, 270, 278, 280, 285,
295, 296, 315, 323, 324, 330,
336, 338, 339, 369, 371, 377,
392, 393, 394, 396, 397, 404,
405, 409, 410, 411, 421.
Tormod (Reg. Ja. VI.), 202,206.
207 227.
William (Reg. Ja. III.), 60, 74.
William, son of Allaster Crottach,
(Reg. Maria), 203, 204.
William, son of Tormod (Reg. Ja.
VI.), 231, 234.
Macleod of Lewis : —
John MacTorqnil (Reg. Ja. V.),
131, 134, 144.
Malcolm, uncle of the preceding,
111, 116, 125, 131, 144.
Tonnod,/ottr£/i son of Rnari (Reg.
Ja. VI.), 219. 298, 299, 309,
310 337.
Torquil (Reg. Da. II.), 72.
Torquil (Reg. Ja. IV.), 73, 85,
93, 96, 97, 99, 102, 111, 130, 131.
Torquil Connanach (also styled of
Cogeache), eldest son of Ru-
ari (Reg. Maria et Ja. VI.),
209, 210, 211, 212, 213, 214,
220, 221, 264, 265, 270, 271,
316.
Torquil Oighre, younger of Lewis,
second son of Ruari (Reg.
Maria), 210.
Torquil Dubh, third son of Ruari
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 219, 264, 265,
270, 271,291,298,337.
Ruari or Roderick (Reg. Ja. I.),
73.
Ruari or Roderick (Reg. Ja. III.
et IV.), 73, 90.
Ruari or Roderick (Reg. Ja. V.
Maria et Ja. VL). son of Mal-
colm, 144, 147, 170, 183, 185,
202, 209, 210, 211, 212, 213,
214, 219, 220, 227, 291, 298,
337, 338.
Macleods of Luskinder, 421.
Macleod of Rasay (Reg. Ja. V.), 125.
John or Ian na Tuaidh (Reg. Ja.
V.), 210, 211.
John (Reg. Gul. IV.), 430.
Malcolm or Gillechallum Garve
MacAUaster (Reg. Maria et
Ja. VI.), 212, 338.
Malcolm or Gillechallum Oig, son
of the preceding, 338, 341.
Macleods of Rasay.
See Siol Vic Gillechallum.
Macleod ofTalisker, Sir Roderick, 421.
Macleod, Alexander or Allaster, bro-
ther to William of Harris (A.D.
1587), 234.
Allaster, brother to Sir Ruari
Mor of Harris, 296, 323.
Donald, bastard son of Ruari of
Lewis (Reg. Ja. VI.), 220, 221.
Donald Glas, a near relation of
Sir Ruari Mor of Harris, 295,
296.
Donald, son of Neill the Bastard
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 336, 337.
John, son of Torquil Connanach
of theLewis (Reg. Ja. VL),220.
Malcolm, son of Ruari Oig, the
bastard (Reg. Ja. VL), 336,
337, 366, 370, 388, 392.
Murdoch, bastard son of Ruari
of Lewis (Reg. Ja. VL), 220,
291, 292, 297.
Neill, bastard son of Ruari of
Lewis (Reg. Ja. VL), 220, 271,
291, 292, 297, 298, 309, 310,
315, 324, 335, 336, 337.
Ruari Oig, bastard son of Rnari
of Lewis (Reg. Ja. VL), 220,
221, 336, 337.
Ruari, son of Rnari Oig the bas-
tard, 336, 337.
Ruari, son of Torquil Dubh of
Lewis, 388.
Tormod Uigach, bastard son of
Rnari of Lewis (Reg. Ja.(VL),
290.
INDEX.
449
Torquil, son of Torquil Dubh of
Lewie, 33a
William, son of Ruari Oig the
bastard, 336, 337.
William, son of Torquil Dubh of
Lewis, 338.
Macleod Bannatyne, Sir William, 421.
SeeClanleod.
MacMakan (MaoMahon or Mathew-
son of Lochalsh), 36.
MacMasters of Ardgour, The, 71.
Macneill of Arichonan, Malcolm Beg,
424.
Macneill of Barra, 79.
Gilleonan, son of Roderick, son
of M orchard (Reg. Ja. I.), 79.
Gilleonan (Beg. Ja. IV. et V.),
79, 91, 99, 121.
Gilleonan, Gilliganan (Reg. Ma-
ria), 170.
Neill, son to Ruari (Reg. Ja. YL
etCar. I.X 346.
Roderick or Ruari (Reg. Ja. YL),
234, 285, 315, 346.
Lieut. -Col. Roderick, 423.
Macneill of Carskeay, Hector (A.D.
1618), 400.
Macneills of Carskeay, 424.
Macneil of Colonsay* Captain Alex-
ander, younger, 423.
John, 424.
Macneill of Gallocbelly, Jobn Oig, 424.
Macneills of Galloche ly, 424.
Macneill of Gigha, Constable of Castle
Sweyn(Reg. Ja. III.), Hector Mac-
Torquil, 79.
Macneill of Gigha, 80.
Neill (Reg. Ja. Y.)f 423.
Neill, son to the preceding (Beg.
Maria), 168, 423.
Malcolm (Reg. Ja. IV.), 79.
Captain Alexander, younger of
Colonsay, 423.
Macneill of Kaploch, formerly of Tay-
nish andGigna,DanielHamilton,4SS.
Macneil] of Taynish, Neill Macneill
Yic Eacheo (Reg. Maria), 423.
Macneill of Taynish and Gigha, Hec-
tor (Reg. Ja. YL), 354, 373, 376,
377, 379, 400, 423.
Macneills of Taynish, 424.
Macneill of Tirfergus, Lauchlan Mao-
Neil! Buy, 424, 425.
Macneills of Tirfergus, 425.
Macneill of Ugadale, Torquil, 424,425.
Macneill, a son of Ruari of Barra
(Reg. Ja. VI.), 258.
John, son of Ruari of Barra (Reg.
Ja. VI. ), 234.
Malcolm, uncle to Hector of Tay-
nish and Gigha (A.D. 1616),
354.
Murdo, son to Ruari of Barra
(Reg. Ja. VI). See Clanneill.
Macneill (Kg, Hugh, Captain of Clane-
boy, in Ulster, 195, 196.
Macphersoo of Cluny, Ewen (Reg.
GuL IV.), 422.
Macranald of Glengarry. See Isles.
Maoranald of Kep|wch. See Isles.
Macranald of Knoydert. See Isles.
Macranald of Moydert. See Isles.
Macranald of Morar. See Is es.
MacRanald Bny, Sir Alexander, of
Dunluue, 195, 197 (MacRannil
Boy's son).
Macras in Kintaill, The, 146.
Mac Ruari of Garmoran and the North
Isles. See Isles.
Mac Ruari, Neill, in Mull, 323.
Macquarries of Ormaig, 424.
Macquarrie of Ulva, Dunslaf (Reg.
Ja. IV. et V.). 81, 99, 101, 121.
Gillespick (Reg. Ja. VI), 330.
John (Reg. Maria), 170.
John (Reg. Ja. 111.), 81.
Macauarries <>f Ulva, 424.
MacQuillan, Richard, of the Route
in Ulster, 197.
MacQuillans in Ulster, 195, 199, 223.
MacSorlieofGlennevis. See Cameron.
Mao Vic Allan, the ]>ecnliar patrony-
mic of the later Captains of Clan-
ranald, 66.
Mac Vic Allaster, the peculiar patro-
nymic of the Chieftains of Glen-
garry, 66.
Mao Vic Ranald, the peculiar patro-
nymic of the Chiefs of Keppoch, 64,
Mac Vu rich, genealogist of the Clan-
ranald of Garmoran, 30.
Maccus King of the Isles. 5.
Magnus Barefoot, King of Norway, 6,
14.
Magnus, King of Man and the Isles,
6,20.
Magnus, King of Norway, 20, 21.
Maitland, Chancellor. SeeThirlstane,
Malcolm Canmor, King of Scotland,
6, 11, 14
Malcolm IV., King of Scotland, 15,16.
Malcolm MacHeth, Earl of Murray,
15.
Mamore in Lochaber, Lands of, 77,97,
98, 100, 343.
Man, Isle of, 5, 6, 13, 14, 16, 17, 20,
23.
Mansell, Sir Rise, 164.
32
450
INDEX.
Mar, Earls of, 37, 38, 62, 71, 184,
213, 214, 247, 253, 415.
Maries, The Queen's, 206.
Marischall, Earls, 98, 186.
Mary Queen of Scots, 150, 151, 152,
153, 171, 189, 201, 202, 205, 207,
248, 405, 419.
Mary of Guise, Queen of James V.,
and Regent to Mary Queen of Scots,
148, 153, 165, 181, 182, 183, 184,
185, 186, 187, 188, 205, 214.
Maxwell. John, Lord (Earl of Mor-
ton), 249.
Maxwell, Lord, 317.
Mffiats, The, 1.
Mekill Cumray, 100.
Menteith, District of, 134.
Merry man, an English officer in Ire-
land, 226.
Methven, Castle of, 185.
Methven, Wood of, 368.
Mewtas, Sir Peter, 164, 168.
Minganish in Sky, Lands o£ 74.
Mingarry in Ardnamurchan, Castle
of, 87, 90, 118, 240, 324, 407.
Mishnish in Mull, 80.
Monk, Captain, 385.
Montrose, Earl of, 247.
Chancellor, 292.
Montrose,Marquis of, 333, 413,414,415.
Monypenny of Kinkell, Thomas, 299.
Moon, The, a Pinnace, 362
Morar in Garmoran, District of, 27,
301, 368, 417.
Morar, North, 126. 300.
Morton, The Regent, Earl of, 213,
214, 215, 216, 219, 224.
Morvern, or Kenalban, District o£
12, 25, 27, 69, 70, 111, 125, 126,
132, 348, 391, 406.
Moy in Mull (Lochbuy), 393.
Moydert in Garmoran, District o£
27, 35, 159, 410.
Muck, Isle of, 239.
Mull, Isle of; 14, 17, 24, 52, 67, 69,
70,71, 80, 81, J01, 115, 122, 128,
132, 148, 174, 191, 228, 233, 235,
23S, 239, 240, 300, 301, 304, 307,
322, 323, 391, 419, 424
Mull, Sound o£ 322.
Mullintrea in Isla, 233, 234
Mulroy in the Braes of Lochaber,
Battle of, 415.
Munro of Foulis, William (Reg. Ja.
IV.), 57, 97, 115.
Munroes, The, 82, 92, 111.
Murchard O'Brien, King of Ireland,?.
Murray, Earls of : —
Archibald Douglas, 44
James, son of James IV., 135,
136, 137, 140, 142.
James, son of James V., and
Recent to James VI., 201,
207, 208, 209, 213, 248.
James, Lord Donne, called the
" Bonny Earl," 244, 245, 247,
248, 249, 250, 252, 253, 254,
257.
Wymund MacHeth, 15.
Murray, Earldom ot 184, 216, 247.
Murray, Captain William, 278.
Murthiie in Perthshire, 368.
Nairn, Burgh of, 48.
Nairn, Shire o£ 48.
Northampton, Marquis o£ 419.
North Uist See Uiat
Northumberland, Duke o£ 195.
Northumberland, Earl o£ 142.
North Isles. See Isles.
Norway, Kings of: —
Haco, 17, 18, 20, 22.
Harald Hardrada, 6.
Harald Harfager, 4, 7, 10.
Magnus, 20, 21.
Magnus Barefoot, 6, 14
Newhaven, near Edinburgh, 367.
North Highlands, 254.
O'Cahan, a Chief in Ulster, 198.
O'Cahans, The, in Ulster, 195.
Ochiltree, Andrew Stewart, Lord,
244, 318, 321, 322, 323, 324, 325,
327 340.
0' Domaell,' Calvagh, 196.
O'Donnell in Ulster, Family o£ 193.
O'Donnell Hugh, Lord of Tirconnell,
193 198.
O'Donnell, Red Hugh, 261, 262.
O'Donnell, Menus, Earl of Tiroonnell,
196.
Olave the Black, King of Man end
the Isles, 17.
Olave the Red, or Olave Bitling or
Klining, King of the Isles, son of
Godred Crovan, 6, 7, 9, 12, 16.
O'Neill, 198.
O'Neill, Hugh Buy, Ancestor of the
O'Neills of Claneboy, 38.
O'Neill, Shane (styling himself O'-
Neill), son of Con, Earl of Tyrone
(Reg. Elizab.), 195, 22L
O'Neill, Torlogh Luiaeaca, suocessar
to Shane O'Neill, 201, 228; 223,
224.
O'Neills, The, 200.
O'NeiUa of Claneboy, 193. Sse Ty .
rone:
INDEX.
451
Orange, Maurice, Prince of, 337.
Oransay, Isle of, 93.
Orkney, Bishop of (Robert Maxwell),
147, 186.
Orkney, Earls of—
Sigurd, 5.
Thorfin, 5.
Orkney, Isles of, 60, 147, 291, 340.
Ormond, Earl of (in Ireland), 194.
Ormond and OBSory, Earl of, 173,
175, 176.
Ormond, Hugh Douglas, Earl of, in
Scotland, 44.
Osburne, Captain John, 410.
Oversay, Isle of, 383.
Panl, a Nobleman in the Isles, 13.
Paisley, Burgh of, 282.
Paisley Monastery, 58.
Park, or BUlirnepark, Battle of, 56,
67, 92.
Perrot, Sir John, Deputy of Ireland,
225 226
Perth,' City, 75, 110, 130, 185, 209,
306.
Perth, Justice Air of, 100.
Perthshire. 135, 320. 367; above Dun-
keld, 391 ; Highlands of, 367.
Philip II., King of Spain, 256.
Philip III., King of Spain, 401.
Philiphaugh, Battle of, 413.
Phoenix, a Man of War, 362.
Picti, or Picts, 2, 3.
Piers, Captain, an English officer in
Ireland, 201, 224.
Pincarton in Stirlingshire, Lands of,
249.
Pinky, Battle of, 180.
Pittenween, Sir William Stewart,
Commendator o£ 265, 266, 267,
268, 269, 270, 272, 273, 277, 278,
281, 297, 308.
Presbyterians, 260, 315.
Primrose, James, Clerk of Scottish
Privy Council, 345, 347, 348.
Prince Edward's Island, 416.
Quinish in Mull, District o^ 71.
Bagnhildis, Daughter of Olave the
lied, King of the Isles, and wife of
Somerled of Argyle, 7, 12.
Bachlin, Isle of, 198, 384, 385.
Bagnal MacOofra, King of the Isles, 5.
Bannoch in Perthshire, 368.
Basay, Isle of, 73.
Beginald MacGodred, King of Man
and the Isles, 17.
Beginald MacSomerled, King of the
files, 13, 14, 16, 17, 18.
Renfrew, Burgh of, 134, 282.
Renfrewshiie, 132, 134, 282, 318, 377.
Robert Bruce, or Robert I., King of
Scotland, 24, 25, 26, 75, 77, 82,
84.
Robert II., King of Scotland, 29, 30,
58, 61, 75.
Robert III., King of Scotland, 75.
Robertson of Strowan, Robert (Beg.
Ja. V.), 405.
Roderick or Ruari of Bute, son of
Reginald MacSomerled, and accen-
tor of the MacRuaries of the North
Isles, 17, 18, 1<J, 20, 22.
Rona- Lewis, Isle of, 279.
Rose of Kilravock, Hugh, elder (Reg.
Ja. IV.), 56,57.
Rose of Kilravock, Hugh, younger
(Reg. Ja. IV.), 56,57.
Roses of Kilravock, The, 82.
Roseneath, 132, 251.
Ross, Bishop of, 186, 188.
Ross, Countess of, Mary Leslie, Lady
of the Isles, 30, 31, 33.
Ross, Earl of, surnamed Ross, 26, 27.
Ross, Earls of, Lords of the Isles,
106. See Isles.
Ross, Earldom of, 50, 51, 52, 55, 56,
57, 74, 82, 83, 88, 92, 216.
Ross, Easter, 300.
Ross, Sheriff of, 100.
Ross, Shire of, 48, 105, 145, 148, 303,
335. 417.
Ross, Wester, 115, 299, 300.
Rosses, The, 82.
Rothsay, Burgh, 100, 282.
Rothsay, Castle, 164.
Route, The, a district in Antrim,
199, 221, 222, 223, 225, 388.
Roxburgh Castle, 46.
Roxburghshire, 26o.
Rum, Isle of, 27, 239.
liuthven in Badenoch, Castle o£ 43,
179, 257.
Sadale, Monastery of, in Kintyre, 16.
Sadler, Sir Ralph, 155, 188.
Sandy (Sanda), Isle of, near Kin-
tyre, 178.
Sandilands of Slamanno, Sir James,
278.
Savage of the Arde in Ulster, 193.
Scandinavians, 3. Their connection
with the Isles,4 to 21, both inclusive.
Scarba, Isle of, 27, 69, 70.
Scone, David, 1st Lord, 306, 307, 308,
310, 311.
Scotland, East Coast of, 147.
Northern Shires, 135, 147.
452
INDEX.
Southern Shires, 135, 320.
West Coast of, 410.
Western Shires, 147, 312.
Scots, The Irish, or Dalriads, 2, 3.
Scottish ship, A, taken by pirates of
the Clan Ian, 410.
Selkirkshire, 266.
Sheriffinuir. Battle of, 415.
Shetland, 340.
Sidney, Sir Henry, Deputy of Ire-
land, 196, 109, 201, 221, 222, 223.
Sigurd, Earl of Orkney, 5.
Sigurd, King of the Isles, son of Mag-
nus Barefoot, 6.
Siol Gorrie, The, 34, 59, 64, 65. See
Isles.
Siol Vic Gillechallum of Rasay and
Gerloch, 111, 272, 341, 420.
Sky, Isle of, 17, 22, 26, 27, 60, 61,
72, 73, 74, 83, 104, 107, 130, 145,
146, 147, 210, 230, 231, 235, 295,
296, 301, 313, 314, 368, 371, 410,
413, 421. 424.
Slaines Castle, 260.
Sleat, a district in Sky, 60, 107, 131,
147, 204, 301, 368, 413.
Sleat, Sound of, 148.
Sliochd a Bhrathair Shean, 109.
Sliochd Allaster Vic Angus of Kep-
poch, 64.
See Clanranald of Lochaber.
Sliochd Gillemhantich, 109.
Smerbie in Kintyre, 282.
Solway, Battle of, 152.
Somerled, Prince of Argyle, 7, 9, 10,
11, 12, 13, 14, 15, 16, 17, 18, 19,
22 23 63 426.
Somerset, Earl of (Reg. Ja. VI.), 365.
Somerset, Duke of, Protector of Eng-
land, 180.
Spa, The, 399.
Spanish mercenaries employed by the
Macleans. 239, 241.
Spens of Wormestoun, Sir James
(Kee. Ja. VI.), 278, 297, 298, 299,
316, 334, 335.
St Andrews Castle, 179.
City, 292.
St Anthony, Church o£ in or near
Edinburgh, 90.
St Bride, Chapel o£ in A thole, 53.
St John, Sir William, 322.
St Ledger, Lord Anthony, Viceroy of
Ireland, 196.
Stewart of Appin :—
Dougal, 83, 108.
Duncan (Reg. Ja. IV.), 95, 96,
97.
Duncan (Reg. Ja. VI. ), 307, 400,
John (Reg. Ja. VI.), 249, 250.
Stewart of Ardshiel, 426.
Stewarts of Athole, 215.
Stewart of Auchnacone, 426.
Stewarts of Appin, 83, 103, 127, 255,
426.
Stewart of Balachulish, 426.
Stewart, Constable of Dunyreg (Reg.
Ja. V.), Archibald, 149.
Stewart of Duror, Allan (Reg. Ja.
V.), 127.
Stewart of Fasnacloich, 426.
Stewart of Grantullie, Thomas, 248.
Stewart of InnermeathandLorn, John,
28.
Stewart of Invernahyle, 426.
Stewart of Rosyth and Lorn, Robert,
28.
Stewarts, Lords High Steward of
Scotland : —
Alexander, 19.
Robert, 25, 26, 29. See King
Robert IL
Walter 19.
Walter(Reg. Rob. I.), 25.
Stewart. Lady Margaret (daughter of
Robert II.), Lady of the Isles, 29,
61, 63.
Stewart, Barbara, daughter of Lord
Avandale, and wife of Ruari Mae-
leod of Lewis (Reg. Maria), 210.
Stewart, House of, 19.
Stewart, Royal House of, 333, 417,
418, 419, 420, 422, 426.
Stillington, Mr. Robert, 47.
Stirling Castle, 324.
Stirlingshire, 320.
Stirling, Town, 93, 136, 138, 173,
252.
Stirling of Auchyle, William, 40S.
Stirling of Glorat, 165, 175.
Stornoway in Lewis, Burgh, 277.
Stornoway Castle, 102, 220, 335.
Strathbogie, 257.
Strathbogie Castle, 260.
Strathconnan in Ross, 56, 209.
Stratherrick, Inverness-shire, 160.
Strathordell (Mackinnon's country),
in Sky, 80, 301.
Strathspey, 160, 254.
Strone Castle, in Lochcarron, Ross-
shire, 60, 76, 98, 101, 120, 219,
300, 302.
Sunart, a district in Argyleshire, 62,
66, 67, 405, 411.
Surrey, Earl of, Lord lieutenant of
Ireland, 193, 194.
Sussex, Earl o£ Lord Lieutenant of
Ireland, 196, 197, 198, 199.
INDEX.
453
Sutherland of Dufius, 248.
Sutherlandshire, 69, 147.
Tain, Burgh at, 100, 105.
Tantallon Castle, 37, 39.
Tarbert, between Kintyre and Knap-
dale, 25, 100, 379, 382, 383, 389.
Tarbert, Caatle of, 25, 68, 88, 89, 94.
Tarbert, Sheriffdom of, 100, 266, 312,
318, 374, 377, 381.
Tarbert, West, 383.
Taynish in Knandale, 423.
Thirlestane, Chancellor Maitland,
Lord, 245, 249, 250, 253.
Thorfin, Earl of Orkney, 5.
Thorfin, son of Ottar, a Hebridean
noble, temp. Somerled, 13, 14.
Tiree, Isle of, 17, 24, 27, 111, 122,
132, 191, 235, 391.
Teinlipeil, Inch of, near Tiree, 126.
Tobermory in Mull, 52, 80, 239.
TorluBk, in Mull, 238, 419.
Torwood, The, 93, 112.
Touraine, Archibald Earl of Douglas
and Duke of, 39, 40.
Treshinish, Isles o£ 80.
Trouterness in Sky, 74, 107, 122, 130,
131, 144, 145, 146, 147, 204, 207,
278, 279, 295, 396, 413.
Tullibardine, 1st Earl of (Reg. Ja.
VI.), 357, 367, 368, 369, 374.
Tyrone, Earls of, 200, 201, 226, 261,
262, 274, 275.
Uist, Isle of, 27, 60, 65, 66, 94, 314.
Uist, North, 61, 131, 204, 207, 295,
413.
Ulster, 62, 63, 142, 192, 193, 194,
195, 196, 198, 199, 201, 222, 224,
225, 261, 274, 275, 325, 356.
Ulva, Isle of, 81.
Upper Canada, 416. *
Urquhart Castle, 43, 114, 159.
Urquhart, Lands of, 159.
Urquhart, Sheriff of Cromarty, Sir
Alexander, 56.
Urquharts, The, 82.
Vecturiones, The, 2.
Vikingr of the Isles, The, 4.
Wales, Edward, Prince of (afterwards
Edward V.), 152.
; Walsingham, Sir Francis, 224.
j Warbeck, Perkin, 92.
Waterness in Sky, 73, 212.
White of Dufferin in Ulster, John,
195.
Wick in Caithness, 105.
Williamson, Kenneth, an Hebridean
Student of Law (Reg. Ja. IV.),
104.
Wolsey, Cardinal, 194.
Wood, Captain, 385, 387, 388, 390.
Wymund MacHeth, Earl of Murray,
15.
THE END.
BILL AMD BAM, niKTBBfl, OXJJQOW.
*1
< I
* » i
: I
THE BORROWER WILL BE CHARGED
AN OVERDUE FEE IF THIS BOOK 18
NOT RETURNED TO THE UBRARY ON
OR BEFORE THE LAST DATE STAMPED
BELOW. NON-RECEIPT OF OVERDUE
NOTICES DOES NOT EXEMPT THE
BORROWER FROM OVERDUE FEES.